The Seed in Genesis 3 - 15 - An Exegetical and Intertextual Study PDF
The Seed in Genesis 3 - 15 - An Exegetical and Intertextual Study PDF
The Seed in Genesis 3 - 15 - An Exegetical and Intertextual Study PDF
2002
Recommended Citation
Ojewole, Afolarin Olutunde, "The Seed in Genesis 3:15 : an Exegetical and Intertextual Study" (2002). Dissertations. 116.
https://digitalcommons.andrews.edu/dissertations/116
This Dissertation is brought to you for free and open access by the Graduate Research at Digital Commons @ Andrews University. It has been accepted
for inclusion in Dissertations by an authorized administrator of Digital Commons @ Andrews University. For more information, please contact
repository@andrews.edu.
Thank you for your interest in the
This manuscript has been reproduced from the microfilm master. UMI films
the text directly from the original or copy submitted. Thus, some thesis and
dissertation copies are in typewriter face, while others may be from any type of
computer printer.
In the unlikely event that the author did not send UMI a complete manuscript
and there are missing pages, these will be noted. Also, if unauthorized
copyright material had to be removed, a note will indicate the deletion.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Andrews University
A Dissertation
Doctor of Philosophy
by
May 2002
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
UMI Number. 3042921
Copyright 2002 by
Ojewole, Afolarin Olutunde
____ _______ (f t
UMI
UMI Microform 3042921
Copyright 2002 by ProQuest Information and Learning Company.
All rights reserved. This microform edition is protected against
unauthorized copying under Title 17, United States Code.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
©Copyright by Afolarin Olutunde Ojewole 2002
All Rights Reserved
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
THE SEED IN GENESIS 3:15: AN EXEGETICAL
A dissertation
presented in partial fulfillment
of the requirements for the degree
Doctor of Philosophy
bv
-------
Roy E. flane Dean. SDA
Associate Professor of Hebrew Bible and John K. McVav
Anfii€1tt Near Eastern Languages
[JUA.9,
Jiri jjHoskala
Associate Professor of Old Testament
Exegesis and Theology
La
Associate Profes
Dafe approved
taster in Theology
Adventista de Ensino do Nordeste
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
ABSTRACT
by
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
ABSTRACT OF GRADUATE STUDENT RESEARCH
Dissertation
Andrews University
The Topic
This dissertation seeks to ascertain the meaning and referent of the “seed” and its
The Purpose
The meaning and referent of “seed” and its related pronouns in Gen 3:15 have
been discussed throughout the history of Jewish and Christian interpretation. This
dissertation analyzes Gen 3:15 exegetically, intratextually, and intertextually, tracing the
meaning of this “seed” in Genesis, the rest of the Old Testament, and the New Testament.
The Introduction briefly surveys the centuries o f the Jewish and Christian
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
interpretations of Gen 3:15 classifying them into related categories such as literal,
interpretations.
Chapter 1 surveys Gen 3:15 and its context. The textual analysis shows that the
ancient texts significantly follow a Hebrew text similar to the MT. The literary, structural,
of Gen 3:15 demonstrate that this verse is the center of the message of Gen 3.
The nanowing movement in the Hebrew text of Gen 3:15 reveals the Messianic
import of this watershed verse. The clash between the serpent and the woman becomes
the long-lasting enmity between their respective plural collective seed comprising all
human beings. This narrows down into a fatal clash between Satan, the singular serpent,
and the Messiah, the singular, individual representative Seed of the woman.
Chapter 2 examines the intratextual use of the seed and its related pronouns of Gen
3:15 within the rest o f the book of Genesis beginning from Gen 1:28. The narrowing from
the plural collective seed to the singular, individual, representative Seed establishes a
pattern for signifying Messianic intention in some of these seed passages, especially Gen
22:17-19 and Gen 24:60. The special Seed is already described as Messianic, royal, and
priestly in Genesis.
portrayal of the seed o f Gen 3:15. The intertextual study of the seed shows that
subsequent authors o f the OT and NT recognized and followed the same understanding of
the seed.
Chapter 4 examines the similarities and differences between Gen 3:15 and the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
relevant ancient Near Eastern literature. This illuminates the figurative understanding of
implications of the seed of Gen 3:15 by showing the major themes and minor motifs.
Conclusions
This dissertation concludes that there is a Messianic intention in Gen 3:15 based on
the narrowing phenomenon of the seed in the Hebrew text of this verse. The Seed and the
serpent have a fatal and deadly clash in which the Messiah is eternally victorious on behalf
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
To my dear wife, Foluso,
and our darling children,
David and Dorcas
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
TABLE OF CONTENTS
INTRODUCTION ..................................................................................................... 1
Chapter
I. GEN 3:15 AND ITS IMMEDIATE CONTEXT ............................................. 50
Textual Analysis............................................................................................... 50
The Dead Sea Scrolls-Qumran.................................................................... 51
iv
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
The Septuagint (LXX) ................................................................................ 53
Targum Onqelos to Genesis (TO).................................................................. 59
Palestinian Targums...................................................................................... 63
TargumNeofiti 1 (T N I)............................................................................ 63
Targum Pseudo-Jonathan ( P J ) ................................................................. 65
Fragmentary Targums .............................................................................. 67
General Similarities in the Palestinian Targums......................................... 69
The Syriac Peshitta ...................................................................................... 71
Latin Versions.............................................................................................. 72
Literary, Structural, Terminological, and Thematic Analysis............................. 75
Genre, Form, and Style ................................................................................ 75
Analysis of the Book of Genesis.................................................................... 80
n i l b i n (Toledot) Structure of Genesis................................................... 81
Literary and Thematic Structure o f Gen 1-11 ........................................... 85
Literary, Thematic, and Structural Links within Gen 1-3........................... 86
Parallel Between Gen 2:4b-25 and Gen 3:1 - 2 4 ..................................... 88
The Transformations and Reversals in Gen 2 -3 ..................................... 95
Literary Analysis of Gen 3 ........................................................................ 97
Numerical Pattern in Gen 3 ................................................................. 98
Analysis of Gen 3:14-19........................................................................ 99
Analysis of Gen 3:14-15 ...................................................................... 104
Structural and Terminological Links
Between Gen 2-3 and Gen 4 ..............................................................105
Structural Links .................................................................................. 106
Terminological Links .......................................................................... 109
Syntactical Analysis of Gen 3:14-15 ................................................................I l l
Morphological and Semantic Analysis ..............................................................126
©nan “The Serpent” ................................................................................126
T
n n x n n R “You Are Cursed Above. . . ” ..................................... 134
• T • T
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Same Root but Different Meanings ....................................................... 174
Meanings from Text Emendation and Commentary ...............................176
ItfKI “Head” .............................................................................................. 177
3j?2 “Heel” ................................................................................................ 179
Head/Heel Dichotomy................................................................................181
The “Seed” and Its Related Pronouns in Gen 3:15 .........................................183
Serpent Versus the Woman: Singular Individual (Vs. 15a, b ) .................... 184
Seed of the Serpent Versus Seed of the Woman:
Plural Collective (Vs. 15c)......................................................................186
Narrowing to the Singular Serpent and Singular Seed (Vs. 15d)................ 190
Clash Between the Serpent and the
Singular Seed of the Woman (Vs. 15d, e ) ............................................... 207
Summary ...................................................................................................... 215
Intertextuality Defined....................................................................................297
vi
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Intertextual Allusions to the “Seed” of Gen 3:15 within the Pentateuch .......... 298
Exod 11:1-10.............................................................................................. 299
Exod 15:1-21.............................................................................................. 300
Lev 12:1-8.....................................................................................................301
Nutn 23-24 ................................................................................................. 302
Deut 17:14-20 ............................................................................................ 305
Intertextual Allusions to the “Seed” of Gen 3:15 in the rest of the OT ............ 306
2 Sam 7:4-19................................................................................................ 306
Isa 5 3 .............................................................................................................319
Ps 2 ...............................................................................................................324
Ps 18:50 (Heb 51) ........................................................................................ 325
Ps 68 ........................................................................................................... 326
Ps 72 ........................................................................................................... 328
Ps 89 ........................................................................................................... 332
Ps 1 1 0 ...........................................................................................................333
Thematic and Terminological Links Between the Book of Job
and Gen 1-3 ............................................................................................ 336
Intertextual Allusions to the “Seed” of Gen 3:15 in the N T ...............................339
Rom 16:20a.................................................................................................. 342
Gal 3:16, 19, and 2 9 .................................................................................... 344
Rev 1 2 ...........................................................................................................348
Summary...........................................................................................................350
vii
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
V. THEOLOGICAL IMPLICATIONS OF THE SEED OF GEN 3:15 383
Summary o f Findings.................................................................................................406
Conclusions............................................................................................................... 428
Implications for Further Studies................................................................................ 431
BIBLIOGRAPHY.........................................................................................................433
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
LIST OF ABBREVIATIONS
BN Biblische Notizen
ix
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
CRINT Compendia rerum iudaicarum ad Novum Testamentum
JB Jerusalem Bible
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
KJV King James Version Bible
MT Masoretic Text
Or Orientalia
RB Revue Biblique
xi
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
TDNT Theological Dictionary o f the New Testament
TZ Theologische Zeitschrift
UF Ugaritische Forschung
VT Vetus Testamentum
xii
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
PREFACE
Since I gave my life to Christ, I have always been fascinated with the gospel. I
searched intently in the Scriptures to find all the hints of God’s plan of salvation for His
fallen children. I discovered that this plan precedes the creation and the fall of man. That
is too amazing! I determined to find the first major mention of this plan in the Old
I have immersed myself in these studies, in one way or another, for the past decade
findings and conclusions, after my intense scholarly research, are presented in this
dissertation.
I offer profound gratitude to the Almighty Father for His Son Jesus Christ who
saved me and has walked with me all this while. To God alone be all the glory! I am
thankful for my godly parents, Elder and Mrs. Ezekiel Ojewole, for giving me Jesus above
all things. My siblings, Olubukola (deceased), Olubunmi, Olajiire, and Bolanle, helped me
to demonstrate Christ’s love also. I am blessed with mentors such as Or. and Mrs. Joseph
Ola, Prof. Adekunle Alalade, Dr. David Babalola, Pastor Onaolapo Ajibade, and Prof.
sharpened my understanding o f the Word. Dr. Roy Gane and Dr. Jiff Moskala gave
xiii
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
wonderful suggestions that improved the result of this dissertation. I am thankful for the
genuine Christian love shown to me by Dorothy Show, Mabel Bowen, Brenda Kis, Dr.
Nigeria if Dr. and Dr. (Mrs.) Deji Adeleke had not rendered the initial financial assistance
that enabled my wife and I to come to Andrews University in September 1995. I cannot
thank them enough for their inspiring generosity and selflessness. Only heaven can reward
them adequately for how they continue to touch numerous lives for the kingdom.
Foluso, my sweetheart, is the gem above all. She endured the trying times with
me. I will always love her, my beloved. David and Dorcas, our children, are a great
blessing. Now they can have their husband and daddy back. No more doctoral excuses!
xiv
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
INTRODUCTION
“And I will put enmity between you and the woman, and between your seed and
her seed; he shall bruise you on the head, and you shall bruise him on the heel” (Gen 3:15
NASB).1
The word “seed,” together with its related pronouns,2 in Gen 3:15 has been
discussed throughout the history of Jewish and Christian interpretation.3 John Ronning
‘This English version will be used throughout this dissertation unless otherwise stated.
: “Related pronouns” refers to those pronouns with “seed" as their antecedent noun in the
passage. The word “seed,” with the lower-case “s,” will be used in this dissertation when referring to
plural or collective seed only, except when the word appears in a quotation or in a Bible version. The
word “Seed” with the upper-case “S,” will be used when referring to the singular individual Messianic
Seed only, except when the word appears in a quotation or in a Bible version.
Notable works on the history of the interpretation of Gen 3:15 include: Tibor Gallus, Der
Nachkomme der Frau (Gen 3, IS) in der Altlutheranischen Schriftauslegung, vol. 1, Luther, Zwingli und
Calvin (Klagenfurt: Carinthia, 1964); ibid., vol. 2, Von den Zeitgenossen Luthers bis zur Aufkldrungszeit
(Klagenfurt: Carinthia, 1973); ibid., Der Nachkomme der Frau (Gen 3, IS) in der Evangelischen
Schriftauslegung, vol. 3, Von der Aufkldrungszeit bis in die Gegenwart (Klagenfurt: Carinthia, 1976);
ibid., Die Frau in Gen 3, IS (Klagenfurt: Carinthia, 1979); John L. Ronning, “The Curse on the Serpent
(Gen 3:15) in Biblical Theology and Hermeneutics” (Ph.D. dissertation, Westminster Theological
Seminary, 1997), 6-101; and Dominic Unger, The First-Gospel: Genesis 3:15 (St. Bonaventure, NY:
Franciscan Institute, 1954); idem, “Patristic Interpretation of the Protoevangelium,” Marian Studies 12
(1961): 111-164. Other writers include Charles L. Feinberg, “The Virgin Birth in the Old Testament,”
BSac 117 (1960): 313-324; Jack P. Lewis, “The Woman’s Seed (Gen 3:15),” JETS 34 (1991): 299-319;
and Ken Schurb, “Sixteenth-Century Lutheran-Calvinist Conflict on the Protoevangelium,” Concordia
Theological Quarterly 54 (1990): 25-47.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
2
notes that the predominant positions and interests of interpreters have changed over time.1
The two ends of the spectrum of interpretation are the literal and the figurative, with
The literal interpretation is “naturalistic” because it sees in the text only the
natural serpent, the human being, and the hatred between them. The figurative
interpretation employs symbolic, spiritual, and even allegorical meanings for the serpent,
The early Jewish interpretations of Gen 3:15 are divergent. They range from
seed of the woman, to strictly naturalistic,5 philosophical,6 and allegorical.7 The “seed” is
'Ronning, ii.
TL A. Martin, “The Earliest Messianic Interpretation of Gen 3:15,” JBL 84 (1965): 427. W. S.
Vorster agrees with Martin in seeing the messianic meaning of Gen 3:15 in the LXX (“The Messianic
Interpretation of Gen 3:15: A Methodological Problem,” Ou Testamentiese Werkgemeenskap in Suid-
Afrika 15 [1972]: 110-111). The Targum Onqelos, Samaritan Targum, Palestinian Targums, Targum
Pseudo-Jonathan, and Targum Neofiti all refer to the fulfillment of the verse in the messianic age.
However, the Targum Onqelos tends more strongly towards the eschatological-messianic application of
the verse. See Bernard Grossfeld, The Targum Onqelos to Genesis, The Aramaic Bible, vol. 6
(Wilmington, DE: Michael Glazier, 1988).
'Instances are found in James H. Charlesworth, ed.. Old Testament Pseudepigrapha (Garden
City, NY: Doubleday, 1985), 1:43,44 , 49,50; and Herman L. Strack and Paul Billerbeck, Das
Evangelium nach Matthdus (Munich: C. H. Beck’sche Verlagsbuchhandlung, 1956), 1:958.
7See Philo Allegorical Interpretation o f Genesis II, III 3.188. Notable comments are seen in the
works of Louis Ginzberg, The Legends o f the Jews (Philadelphia: Jewish Publication Society, 1925), 1:77,
78; 55:100, no. 84; 5:101, no. 84; M. Rosenbaum and A. M. Silbermann, Pentateuch with Targum
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
3
The Church Fathers did not do rigorous exegesis of Gen 3:15; rather, they merely
made cross-references between the Old and the New Testaments, using Christian terms to
explain the text. They understood the woman’s Seed as pointing to either Christ
(individual application) or to the church or the human race (collective application). The
woman was either the church, Eve, or Mary. Most of them agreed that the serpent
represented Satan but took the serpent’s seed to be demons, wicked people, or the natural
messianic interpretation of Gen 3:15, with some still allowing for the collective
interpretation. Luther and Calvin became the leading figures around whom all other views
Ortkelos, Haphtorah, andRashi's Commentary: Genesis (New York: Hebrew Publication, 1965), 12, 15.
Midrash Hane ’lam Zohar B ’reshith 19 is also cited in Michael M. Kasher, Encyclopedia o f Biblical
Interpretation: Genesis, trans. Harry Freedman (New York: American Biblical Encyclopedia Society,
1953), 1:132. Cf. The Talmud o f Babylonia: An American Translation, vol. 22A, Tractate Baba Bathra
Chapters 1-2, trans. Jacob Neusner (Atlanta, GA: Scholars, 1992).
'P. Wemberg-Meller, Studies on the Texts o f the Desert ofJudah, vol. I, The Manual o f
Discipline: Translated and Annotated with an Introduction (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1957), 27, 84,85,
no. 62. Qumran speaks of two ethical classes of people: the good and the evil. Charlesworth cites several
occurrences of the figurative application (Old Testament Pseudepigrapha, 2:272,273,277,285).
^Mention should be made of Church Fathers such as Justin Martyr, Irenaeus, Clement of
Alexandria, Cyprian, Origen, Serapion, Jerome, Augustine, and the Syrian Fathers. See The Fathers o f
the Church: A New Translation, 95 vols. (Washington, DC: Catholic University of America, 1947-97);
Alexander Roberts and James Donaldson, eds., Ante-Nicene Fathers, 5 vols. (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans,
1989-90); and Unger, “Patristic Interpretation,” 111-164. The papal bull issued by Pius EX in 1854
announced the mariological interpretation of Gen 3:15. Other mariological doctrines such as “co
redemption” and “assumption” were also derived from Gen 3:15. Cf. Unger, First-Gospel, vii. This work
is hereafter cited as FG.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
4
in the debate clustered.1 Luther called Gen 3:15 the “Protoevangelium,” that is, the first
gospel with emphasis on the promise of a Savior.2 To Luther, the woman was Mary, and
her Seed was Christ in verity, but could mean the Church by extension.
Calvin termed Gen 3:15 the first promise o f salvation, with emphasis on its
collective interpretation.3 He took the woman as Eve; her Seed, in terms of the enmity,
was the human race, but in terms of the victory, was Christ.
presuppositions at this time, the Mosaic authorship of Gen 3:15 was rejected, its exegesis
became unimportant, and it was stripped of any messianic application or any New
Testament referent.4
The modem period evidences the widest variety of the understanding of Gen 3:15
between liberal and conservative scholars, Catholics5 and Protestants.6 Ronning points out
'See Ulrich Zwingli, On Providence and Other Essays, ed. William John Hinke (Durham, NC:
Labyrinth, 1983). Gallus referred to about 70 Lutheran theologians in the second volume of his work on
Luther earlier mentioned. Gallus catalogued 20 more authors who contributed to this debate
(Altlutheranischen Schriftauslegung, 2:163). Schurb noted several Calvinists and Lutherans (pp. 25-47).
2Martin Luther, Luther's Works, vol. 1, Lectures on Genesis Chapters 1-5, trans. George V.
Schick, ed. Jaroslav Pelikan (Saint Loius: Concordia, 1958), 140-147.
]John Calvin referred to Gen 3:15 in his Institutes o f the Christian Religion, ed. John T. McNeill,
trans. Ford Lewis Battles, Library of Christian Classics (Philadelphia: Westminster, c. 1960), 20.14.18;
and his Commentary on the First Book o f Moses, Called Genesis (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1948), 166-
171.
sCathoiic contributors to this subject include among many, Antonine DeGuglielmo, “Mary in the
Protoevangelium,” CBQ 14 (1952): 104-115; Francis X. Peirce, “The Protoevangelium,” CBQ 13 (1951):
239-252; FG; idem, “Patristic Interpretation,” 111-164; Bruce Vawter, A Path Through Genesis (New
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
5
that “Hengstenberg and Kline seem to be the greatest defenders of the last 200 years of
the view of Gen 3:15 as a proto-gospel”1 Several critical scholars now accommodate the
In the only dissertation on the passage, Ronning further develops the figurative
identification of the two seeds as the righteous and the wicked. He traces the further
fulfillment of the predicted enmity throughout the Old Testament. The demise of Israel as
a nation was his justification for future messianic fulfillm en t of Gen 3 :15 in the New
AProtestant scholars who have written about this passage include Victor P. Hamilton, The Book o f
Genesis: Chapters I-l 7, New International Commentary of the Old Testament (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans,
1990), 199,200, and endnote 20; Gordon J. Wenham, Genesis 1-15, WBC, vol. 1 (Waco: Word, 1987),
79-81; and Edward Joseph Young, Genesis 3: A Devotional and Expository Study (London: Banner of
Truth Trust, 1966).
'Ronnings, 100; more information on pp. 63-101. Cf. Ernst William Hengstenberg, Christology
o f the Old Testament, and a Commentary on the Predictions o f the Messiah by the Prophets 3 vols., trans.
Reuel Keith (Alexandria: William M. Morrison, 1836-1839); idem, Christology o f the Old Testament, and
a Commentary on the Messianic Predictions, 4 vols. (Grand Rapids: Kregel, 1956). Meredith G. Kline
has written extensively on Gen 3:15 in his Kingdom Prologue: Genesis Foundationsfo r a Covenantal
Worldview (Overland Park, KS: Two Age, 2000); idem, Images o f the Spirit (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1980);
and idem, By Oath Consigned: A Reinterpretation o f the Covenant Signs o f Circumcision and Baptism
(Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1968).
:Heinrich HSvemick and Friedrich Schrdder are examples of those rationalists who have allowed
for some measure of figurative application by implication and extension. See Gallus, Gen 3,15 in der
evangelischen Schriftauslegung, 4(5-44. Other critical scholars who also allow for figurative and symbolic
application of this text include: Manfred Gfirg, “Das Wort zur Schlange (Gen 3,I4f): Gedanken zum
sogenannten Protoevangelium,” BN 19 (1982): 3; Josef Haspecker and Norbert Lohfink, “Gen 3,15: weil
du film nach der Ferse schnappst,” Scholastik 36 (1961): 359-363; Knut Hotter, “The Serpent in Eden as a
Symbol of Israel’s Political Enemies: A Yahwistic Criticism of the Solomonic Foreign Policy?” SJO T1
(1990): 106-112; and Walter Wi&ll, “Gen 3:15-A Protoevangelium?” CBQ 36 (1974): 361-365.
3Ronning, iii-iv. His work gives abundant detail of the historical interpretations of Gen 3:15 in a
very unique way. However, he does not present a full-blown exegesis of the words, terms, and pronouns
in Gen 3:15.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
6
The meaning and referent of “seed” and its related pronouns in Gen 3:15 have
been discussed throughout the history of Jewish and Christian interpretation. While many
see in the word “seed” and pronouns with “seed” as antecedent only a literal, natural
interpretation, others insist that there is a symbolic and spiritual meaning. The main
question to be asked of the text is: What do “seed” and related pronouns really mean in
Gen 3:15 and to whom do they refer? This query engenders sub-questions such as: What
reasons might be given for multiple meanings and referents? Is there a shift from the
collective (plural) to the individual (singular) in the usage of the word “seed” and related
pronouns in this verse? These are the issues to be addressed in this dissertation.
The purpose of this dissertation is to analyze Gen 3:15 in order to determine the
meaning and referent of the term “seed” and related pronouns in this passage. This
involves examining the context and purpose of the passage and comparing the use of
“seed” and related pronouns within Genesis, the rest of the Old Testament, the New
Testament, and comparing these with some ancient Near Eastern literature.
The meaning of “seed” and related pronouns in Gen 3:15 is at the heart of the
understanding and application of this text. In spite of multiple discussions, from one end
o f the Jewish and Christian theological spectrum to the other, not until very recently has
any dissertation examined this important verse. Ronning’s dissertation provides a detailed
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
7
chronological study of the history of the interpretation of Gen 3:15 and a summary of the
history o f the enmity between the righteous and the wicked.1 However, Ronning has not
exhausted the exegetical and intertextual examination of this text. In particular, he did not
provided a detailed investigation of the term “seed” and its related pronouns.
The approach and emphasis used in the present dissertation have not been applied
to Gen 3:15 in any prior dissertation. A semantic, morphological, syntactical, literary, and
structural analysis of Gen 3:15 will be presented. This will entail a thorough examination
of “seed” and related pronouns in order to arrive at a more satisfactory explanation of the
and medical nuances of the word “seed” are not considered. The use and referents of
“seed” and related pronouns, as found in Gen 3:15 and other parts of Genesis are the main
concentration,2 while their use and application in the rest of the Old Testament and the
New Testament have been examined only as they have bearing on the Genesis texts that
are referred to.3 My criteria for the choice of texts to relate to Gen 3:15 are initially
2Passages in Gen 3; 4; 12:7; and 22:17, 18; 24:60 and others will be studied.
3Allusions to Gen 3:15 that will be examined will include 2 Sam 7:12-13; Pss 68:22 (Heb 21);
110; and Isa 53. Some of the intertextually relevant New Testament passages to be examined include:
Rom 16:20; Gal 3:16; Rev 12; John 3; and passages on the virgin Mary and the virgin birth of Jesus in
Luke 1:26-2:52; and Matt 1:18-25.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
8
developed in the course of the research. I do not present a detailed history of the
interpretation of Gen 3:15 because Ronning has done this exhaustively.2 However, I am
advancing the investigation of this text by classifying the various historic interpretations
into categories.
available elsewhere.3 The possibility of the literary and structural unity of the Pentateuch
'For the definition and methodology of intertextuality, see Danna Nolan Fewell, ed., Reading
Between Texts: Intertextuality and the Hebrew Bible (Louisville, KY: Westminster/John Knox, 1992); and
Michael Fishbane, Biblical Interpretation in Ancient Israel (Oxford: Clarendon, 1985).
2Ronning, 6-101. He traced the history of the interpretation of Gen 3:15 from the Early Jewish
interpretation based on the manuscripts of LXX, MT, OT Pseudepigrapha, Dead Sea Scrolls, the
Targums, and the writings of Philo and Josephus, through later Jewish interpretation to the Church
Fathers, the Reformers, and their followers. He saw the effect of the translation from orthodoxy to
rationalism and all recent commentaries, theological studies, and special studies of Gen 3:15 to date.
’Herbert Wolf recalls: "Few subjects have generated more discussion and more disagreement than
the question of who wrote the Pentateuch” (An Introduction to the Old Testament Pentateuch [Chicago:
Moody, 1991], 51). Examples of the documentation of the history of Old Testament criticism include: R.
K. Harrison, Introduction to the Old Testament (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1969), 3-82; and R. J.
Thompson, Moses and the Law in a Century o f Criticism Since Graf(Leiden: Brill, 1970). See also John
B. Gabel, Charles B. Wheeler, and Anthony D. York, "The Composition of Pentateuch,” in The Bible as
Literature: An Introduction, 4* ed. (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 2000), 101-115; Otto Kaiser,
Introduction to the Old Testament: A Presentation o f Its Results and Problems (Minneapolis: Augsburg,
1975); M. Noth, A History o f Pentateuchal Traditions (Englewood Cliffs, NJ: Prentice-Hall, 1972); and
Moses H. Segal, The Pentateuch: Its Composition and Its Authorship (Jerusalem: Magnes, 1967).
4See Gleason L. Archer, Jr., A Survey o f Old Testament Introduction, rev. ed. (Chicago: Moody,
1985), 89-189; Umberto Cassuto, The Documentary Hypothesis and the Composition o f the Pentateuch
(Jerusalem: Magnes, 1961); David J. A. Clines, The Theme o f the Pentateuch, 2** ed., JSOTSup, 10
(Sheffield: Sheffield, 1997), 7; Duanne Garrett, Rethinking Genesis: The Sources and Authorship o f the
First Book o f the Pentateuch (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1991), 51-54; Gerhard F. Hasel, Biblical
Interpretation Today (Washington, DC: Biblical Research Institute, 1985); Isaac Kikawada and Arthur
Quinn, Before Abraham Was: The Unity o f Genesis l~ll (Nashville: Abingdon, 1985); R. W. L. Moberly,
The Old Testament o f the Old Testament: Patriachal Narratives and Mosaic Yahvism (Minneapolis, MN:
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
9
The overall methodology is a close reading of Gen 3:15. This could be called
Interpretation.”1 The basic procedure is to allow the final form of the text to stand as is.
This dissertation investigates the final form of Gen 3:15 and related texts.2 The
Fortress, 1992); Jeffrey J. Niehaus, God at Sinai: Covenant and Theophany in the Bible and Ancient Near
East (Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1995), 43-80; David L. Petersen, “The Formation of the Pentateuch,” in
Old Testament Interpretation: Past, Present, and Future, ed. James Luther Mays, David Petersen, and
Kent Harold Richards (Nashville: Abingdon, 1995), 31-45; Y. T. Radday, H. Shore, M. A. Pollatschek,
and D. Wickmann, “Genesis, Wellhausen, and the Computer,” ZAW94 (1982): 467-481; John H.
Sailhamer, The Pentateuch as Narrative: A Biblical-Theological Commentary (Grand Rapids: Zondervan,
1992), 1-33; and William H. Shea, “Date of the Exodus,” The International Standard Bible Encyclopedia,
2:230-238.
'Moshe Greenberg, Ezekiel 1-20: A New Translation with Introduction and Commentary, The
Anchor Bible (Garden City, NY: Doubleday, 1983), 18-27. Greenberg explains this treatment of the text
as: “. . . Listening to it patiently and humbly” (21). Greenberg insists that one must avoid all temptation
of imposing “antecedent judgments on the text” (21), while deeply and repeatedly immersing oneself in
the text with all “sensors alert to catch every possible stimulus-mental-ideational, aural, aesthetic,
linguistic, visual-until its features begin to stand out and their native shape and patterning emerge” (21).
This approach is close to that of the Canonical approach to the Scripture stipulated by Brevard
S. Childs. See his Introduction to the Old Testament as Scripture (London: SCM, 1979). He earlier
wrote “Interpretation in Faith: The Theological Responsibility of an Old Testament Commentary,”
Interpretation 18 (1964): 432-449; and idem. Biblical Theology in Crisis (Philadelphia: Westminster,
1970). Childs’s more recent works include: Old Testament Theology in Canonical Context (Philadelphia:
Fortress, 1986); Biblical Theology o f the Old and New Testaments: Theological Reflection on the
Christian Bible (Minneapolis: Fortress, 1993); and “Old Testament Theology,” in Old Testament
Interpretation: Past, Present, and Future: Essays in Honor o f Gene M. Tucker, ed. James Luther Mays,
David Petersen, and Kent Harold Richards (Nashville: Abingdon, 1995), 293-301. Childs is supported by
R. W. L. Moberly, “The Church’s Use of the Bible: The Work of Brevard Childs,” Expository Times 99
(1988): 104-109; Paul R. Noble, The Canonical Approach: A Critical Reconstruction o f the Hermeneutics
o f Brevard S. Childs (Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1995); and Gerald T. Sheppard, “Barr on Canon and Childs,”
Theological Students Fellowship Bulletin 7 (1983): 2-4. A similar approach to Childs is used by Rolf
Rendtorff, The Old Testament: An Introduction (London: SCM, 1985); and idem, “What We Miss by
Taking the Bible Apart,” Bible Review 14 (1998): 42-44.
Opposing views are expressed by: James Barr, Holy Scripture: Canon, Authority, Criticism
(Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1983); James A. Sanders, Torah and Canon (Philadelphia: Fortress,
1972); idem. Canon and Community (Philadelphia: Fortress, 1984); Krister Stendahl, “Biblical Theology,
Contemporary,” Interpreter’s Dictionary o f the Bible, 1:418-432; and idem, “Method in the Study of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
10
theological exegesis is based primarily on the MT. This methodology involves several
steps. I begin by classifying the interpretation o f Gen 3:15 in order to get a good grasp of
In the first chapter, I briefly examine the textual analysis of Gen 3:14-15 in the
light of the Hebrew text that reflects the MT. A detailed literary, structural, thematic,
3:15 yields what I consider the best possible meaning that arises from the text itself.
A comprehensive study of the term “seed” and its referents in Gen 3:15 is
attempted, with attention to the pronouns that have “seed” as their antecedent. The
possibility of multiple meanings is closely investigated, and the specific meaning and usage
of “seed” and related pronouns in Gen 3:15 are then determined. Relevant textual
evidences are also reiterated. It is on this basis of the above, that I provide my translation
In the second chapter, I analyze Gen 3:15 intratextually,2 first, within the context
of Gen 1-3, and then, the wider context of the book of Genesis. This highlights the major
verbal, thematic, terminological, syntactical, and literary interrelations of Gen 3:15 within
the context of the book o f Genesis. This endeavor helps to better illuminate the identity of
Biblical Theology,” in The Bible in Modem Scholarship, ed. J. Philip Hyatt (Nashville: Abingdon, 196S),
196-209.
2Intratextuality involves interpreting the text through the grammatical features and other
information available only within the limited textual world of that particular text (Fewell, Reading
Between Texts, 23). “Thus the prefix w«ra-(‘within’) rather than mrer-(‘between’ or ‘among’)” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
11
the special Seed of the woman within the successive generations. An exegesis of major
In the third chapter, I analyze the intertextual allusions' to the “seed” of Gen 3:15
elsewhere in the Old and New Testaments. I explore possible echoes, allusions,
references, and applications of the “seed” and its related pronouns of Gen 3:15. This
chapter seeks to determine whether or not later passages have an understanding of the
seed similar to that expressed in Gen 3:15; and whether or not intertextual allusions to
Gen 3:15 continue consistently with the meaning of “seed” as deduced intratextually in the
The fourth chapter presents certain relevant ancient Near Eastern parallels to the
major words and ideas within and around Gen 3:15. It is intended to compare and
contrast the understanding of the “seed” o f Gen 3:15 with the ancient Near Eastern
The fifth chapter brings out the theological implications of the “seed” of Gen
3:15. This shows pertinent major themes and minor motifs that run through the book of
Genesis and the rest of the OT. This further underscores the centrality of the “seed.”
In the conclusion section of the dissertation, I summarize the research and draw
'Allusions can be defined ‘in terms of implicit, indirect, or hidden reference (i.e., focusing on the
artistry of the writer)” (ibid., 21) and as a “text-linking device” (ibid.). “The emphasis is on how the
process of allusion evokes for the reader a larger textual field” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
12
the history of Jewish and Christian interpretations exhibits a great variety of interests and
exegetes of various eras wrestled with this key text. The following are a sample of such
classified.
A good number of scholars fall within this category. They take the text literally as
involving nothing more than snakes and human beings in perpetual hatred one for another.
John Skinner succinctly defines those involved in Gen 3:15: “The whole brood of
serpents, and the whole race of men,”1involving “each member of the species.”2 One
'John Skinner, A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on Genesis, ICC (Edinburgh: T. & T.
Clark, 1951), 79-81, esp. p. 80.
zIbid., 80. Skinner states further: “The general meaning is clear; in the war between men and
serpents the former will crush the head of the foe, while the latter can only wound the heel” (80).
However, he seems to give some allowance within the naturalistic interpretation of Gen 3:14 for the view
that the serpent may also be seen as a demonic character. He suggests that the curse on the serpent is
intended to protest against “the unnatural fascination of snake worship” (80). He is followed by Gerhard
von Rad who points to “a real serpent; but at the same time man’s relation to evil with which he has
become involved” (Genesis: A Commentary, OTL [London: SCM, 1972], 90).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
13
plural.
Josephus gave a more detailed description of the literal condition resulting to the
snake who became deprived of speech, with poison in his tongue as a human enemy.
Humans in turn would “strike their blows upon his head, because it was therein that man’s
danger lay and there too that his adversaries could most easily inflict a mortal blow.”1
Nahmanides (A.D. 1195-1270) believes that humans would crush the serpent’s brain.2
Most of the scholars in this category see the duel between snakes and humans as
endless from generation to generation and trace all snakebites to this. Robinson calls it an
“endless hostility between snakes and men, the one crushing the head of the other
whenever the opportunity arises, and the snake striking at the heel of man.. . . It is
certainly true that most snakebites are inflicted on the foot.”3 The fatality o f human-snake
'Josephus Jewish Antiquities 1.1.4 (50-51), LCL translation. Josephus also indicated that God
“further bereft him of feet and made him crawl and wiggle along the ground” (ibid., 51).
JSee J. Newman, The Commentary o f Nachmanides on Genesis 1-6 (Leiden: Brill, 1960), 78; and
Lewis, “The Woman’s Seed,” 305.
^Theodore Henry Robinson, “Genesis,” The Abingdon Bible Commentary, ed. Frederick Carl
Eiseten, Edwin Lewis, and David G. Downey (New York: Abingdon, 1929), 223. Likewise, Hermann
Gunkei accepts that the two seeds, snakes and humanity, are in perpetual enmity (Genesis, trans. Mark E.
Biddle [Macon, GA: Mercer University Press, 1997], 20-21). Sigmund Mowinckel maintains that the
struggle between mankind and serpents “continues as long as the earth exists. The poisonous serpent
strikes at man’s foot whenever he is unfortunate enough to come too near to it; and always and
everywhere man tries to crush the serpent’s head when he has a chance” {He That Cometh [New York:
Abingdon, 1954], 11).
4While August Dillman insists that a snake’s bite is as fatal as the trampling of the head, seeing
only enmity directly involved, he admits that victory may be implied only because of God’s involvement
(Genesis: Critically and Exegetically Expounded [Edinburgh: T & T Clark, 1897], 156-161). On the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
14
The curse on the serpent was embellished in Jewish legend including about ten
The mouth of the serpent was closed, and his power of speech taken away; his
hands and feet were hacked off; the earth was given him as food; he must suffer
great pain in sloughing his skin; enmity is to exist between him and man; if he
eats the choicest viands, or drinks the sweetest beverages, they all change into
dust in his mouth; the pregnancy of the female serpent lasts seven years; men
shall seek to kill him as soon as they catch sight of him; even in the future world,
where all beings will be blessed, he will not escape the punishment decreed for him;
he will vanish from out of the Holy Land if Israel walks in the ways of God.1
Naturalistic Aetiology
Along similar lines, several scholars explain this text away as an afterthought or
aetiological myth which attempts to explain the natural hostility between mankind and the
'Ginzberg, Legends o f the Jem , 1:77-78. He continues: “Furthermore, God spake to the serpent:
‘I created thee to be king over all the animals, cattle and the beasts of the field alike; but thou wast not
satisfied. Therefore thou shalt be cursed above all cattle and above every beast of the field. I created thee
of upright pasture; but thou wast not satisfied. Therefore thou shalt go upon thy belly. I created thee to
eat the same food as man; but thou wast not satisfied. Therefore thou shalt eat dust all the days of thy life.
Thou didst seek to cause the death of Adam in order to espouse bis wife. Therefore I will put enmity
between thee and the woman’” (78).
“As angels had been present when the doom was pronounced upon the serpent-for God had
convoked a Sanhedrin of seventy-one angels when He sat in judgment upon him-so the execution of the
decree against him was entrusted to angels. They descended from heaven, and chopped off his hands and
feet His suffering was so great that his agonized cries could be heard from one end of the world to the
other” (78).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
15
serpent world.”1 It is only meant to answer questions humans have about their current
Several aetiologies have been drawn from this passage by scholars explaining the
causes of: the Fall; evil; death; human speech (2:19-20); the wearing of apparel (3:7,21);
the fact that the serpent crawls on his belly (3:14), and his inclination to bite (3:15); to
This view also advocates the hopeless endlessness of this struggle between snakes
and humans.4 As Rflger puts it, the enmity between them “is not a fleeting effect, but
'Wifall. 361.
^on Rad, Genesis, 86, 89-90. He denied that the serpent is the “embodiment of a demonic
power” (90) while in the same vein calling it “an evil being that has assumed form” (90). It is seen as
strongly aetiological by James Barr, The Garden o f Eden and the Hope o f Immortality (Minneapolis:
Fortress, 1992); Edouard Lipinski, “Etudes sur des textes ‘Messianiques’ de I’ancien Testament,”
Semitica 20 (1970): 42-44; Skinner, 79-80; Bruce Vawter, On Genesis: A Hew Reading (Garden City,
NY: Doubleday, 1977), 84; and Claus Westermann, Genesis l- ll: A Commentary, trans. John J. Scullion
(Minneapolis: Ausburg, 1984), 259. Gunkel calls it a naturalistic aetiology that explains why humans hate
snakes and why snakes crawl on the belly and eat dust; to mention but a few (Genesis, 20-21). Julian
Morgenstem considers the text an explanation of the “natural human horror of serpents” (The Book o f
Genesis: A Jewish Interpretation [New York: Schocken Books, 1965], 59).
3See Umberto Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, part 1, From Adam to Noah
(Jerusalem: Magnes, 1961), 139. Cassuto vehemently argues against this: “The Hellene had a bent for
abstract speculation, consequently he was eager to know the causes of things; this knowledge, unrelated to
any practical purpose-knowiedge for its own sake-he deemed of great importance. To the Semite, on the
other hand, the desire for knowledge that has no practical value was mere dilettantism Moreover,
the central theme of our section does not aim to give a philosophical explanation of the origin of evil in
the world, but has the practical purpose of providing moral instruction and of assuaging the feeling of
perplexity in the heart of man, who finds a contradiction between the Creator’s paternal love and the
multitudinous troubles that throng his world” (ibid.).
'According to von Rad, in the generic and totally hopeless struggle between the species of human
and snakes, “both will ruin each other Wherever man and serpent meet, the meeting always involves
life and death” (89-90). Vawter posits: “The passage is part of a curse and a condemnation, not a
prognosis of future blessings. It predicts a protracted hostility, even a protracted battle, but not a victory
of one side or the other” (On Genesis, 84). It is interesting that the emphasis of Gen 3:15e advocated by
Haspecker and Lohfink is “the Begrundungssat: for why the snake’s head should be crushed” (“Gn 3,15,”
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
16
rather a permanent state.”1 Moreover, “seed” is usually taken as collective since it refers
Allegorical Interpretation
This is by far the most creative and varied of all the categories in the history of the
interpretation of the Gen 3:15 passage. Philo allegorizes the Fall of man profusely. For
him, the serpent is a “symbol of desire”3: “And desire has a natural enmity toward sense,
which the Scripture symbolically calls woman.”4 Elsewhere, he refers to the enmity
between serpent and the woman by stating that “in reality pleasure is a foe to sense, albeit
thought by some to be a close friend.”5 There is the enmity “between pleasure and sense"®
359) and “not so much a picture of a battle that will take place as a judicial sentence” (ibid.).
'Hans Peter RQger, “On Some Versions of Genesis 3.15, Ancient and Modem,” The Bible
Translator 27 (1976): 105-110, esp. p. 107. His stand is informed by comparison with Num 35:2Iff. and
Ezek 25:15; 35:5. In addition, “this is underlined by the phrase ‘and between your seed and between her
seed,' which clearly shows that ‘seed’ means all the descendants of the snake and of the woman, and not
just a single descendant. The unchangeable character of this ‘enmity’ can also be detected from the second
half of Gen 3:15, where the repeated attempts of men and snakes to kill each other are indicated by means
of the iterative imperfects ‘it bruises you. . . and you bruise it.' The reciprocity of these inimical acts, no
end to which can be foreseen, is emphasized by the use of the same verbal root for the activity of both men
and snakes” (ibid., 107).
:Ibid. “‘Seed’ is evidently a collective noun, which as such [emphasis his] cannot have any direct
or indirect reference to Christ and/or Mary, and secondly, Gen 3; 15 forms part of a curse, and therefore
cannot be a promise or a prophecy by implication” (ibid.).
“Ibid.
6Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
17
Philo translates the expression “between thy seed and her seed” into a kind “full
Passion and mind are mutually hostile just as are pleasure and sense.4
Translating “he shall watch thy head, and thou shalt watch his heel” in Gen 3:15,
he described in direct speech to Pleasure: “‘The mind shall watch thy chief and principal
doctrine, and thou shalt watch it, the Mind, as it acts and rests upon its accepted tenets.’
This basing of conduct and principle on tenets is naturally represented by the word
‘heels’.”5 The ramifications of the words “shall watch” include the fact that “the foolish
mind will show itself a guardian and steward of pleasure. . . ; but the good mind will
prove its enemy, watching for the moment when it shall set upon it and achieve its utter
destruction.”6 On the other hand, Pleasure “watches over and preserves the procedure of
the foolish mind, but endeavours to break up and destroy the way of life of the wise
mind.”7
'Ibid.
’Ibid.
‘Ibid. Philo further commented: “the woman was fashioned out of Adam, sense (that is) out of
mind” (ibid.).
5Ibid., 3:67-68(188-189).
“Ibid.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
18
spiritual interpretation). Our watching his head means to be on guard for the beginning of
all sin, pride (an allegorical interpretation of head as beginning; not of time, but of
pride).”1 The serpent’s head is allegorically interpreted as the beginning of all sin, pride.2
The seed of the devil signifies perverse suggestion, and the seed of the woman the
fruit of the good work by which one resists such perverse suggestion. Thus he
watches the foot of the woman so that, if ever it should slip in that forbidden
pleasure, he might seize her. And she watches his head so that she may exclude
him in the very beginning of his evil temptation.3
Similarly, Erasmus points out that the woman of Gen 3:15 is the “carnal part of
man. For this is our Eve, through whom the most crafty serpent lures our mind to death-
dearing pleasures.”4 When the Christian soldier quickly reacts to the beginning of
temptation, this allows him or her to hiss the serpent away, “crushing straightway the head
JNPNF, 8.346.
3Augustine, Saint Augustine on Genesis, 2.18.28, trans. Roland J. Teske, vol. 84, The Fathers o f
the Church: A Sew Translation (Washington, DC: The Catholic University of America, 1991), 123.
Augustine says that “our flesh is an Eve within us” (NPNF, 8.170).
5lbid„ 363.
6Midrash Hane ‘lam Zohar B ’reshith 19, cited in Menahem M. Kasher, Encyclopedia o f Biblical
Interpretation: Genesis, trans. Harry Freedman (New York: American Biblical Encyclopedia Society,
1953), 1:132.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
19
crushed with the head (of the Academy o f Torah). “Only with Torah can the serpent (the
Evfl Inclination) be crushed. Conversely, the serpent can slay a man only through the heel,
that is to say, when one transgresses and tramples God's commandments under his heel.”1
Benno Jacob takes Gen 3 as allegorical, with the snake representing the human
tendency towards lust and malice. He rejects the charge that the snake represents the
devil or his disguise, though he allows for a symbolism of evil inclination creeping
Samson Hirsch made a moral lesson of the advantage of humans over the serpent
as follows: “Man is given greater strength over his lusts, than these have over him. Man
can stamp his lusts on the head, they can at the most catch him on his heel.”3 He
understood the curse as primarily for the education of mankind rather than the punishment
of the snake. “The strange antipathy implanted in mankind towards snakes may be meant
to bring home to his mind that it was ‘animal wisdom’ that led him astray, and to remind
serpent to the “craftiness to be found in man himself.”5 This labels the serpent as the
personification of evil desire within Eve. The dialogue between the serpent and the
'Ibid.
2Benno Jacob, Das Erste Buch der Tora: Genesis (Berlin: Schoken, 1934), 101-102, 112-115.
’Samson Raphael Hirsch, The Pentateuch Translated and Explained, 2nd ed. (London: L. Honig
& Sons, 1963), 1:81.
4Ibid., 1.82.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
20
woman ‘look place in the woman’s mind, between her wiliness and her innocence, clothed
in the garb of a parable.”1 In other words, it is not really the serpent who “thinks and
speaks but the woman does so in her heart.”2 No wonder, therefore, at his knowledge of
the prohibition and of “the purpose of the Lord God: it is the woman who imagines that
than being literal and naturalistic. For instance, Edward Conklin described the Genesis
Garden story as “a metaphor or analogy for the developing human body and mind. Within
the human brain and mind, various images derived through sensory experience were
placed together in order to explain the origin of all things in a linguistic story form.'*4 He
importance from the primacy of human genital and biological reproduction, to the brain-
‘Ibid.
%id.
3Ibid., 143. See also Alan Richardson, Genesis I-l I: An Introduction and Commentary, Torch
Bible Commentaries (London: SCM, 1981), 71. Samuel Rolles Driver adds that the enmity in Gen 3:15 is
a moralistic interpretation, calling the serpent the representative of “evil thoughts and suggestions,” the
“power of evil,” symbolizing the “power of temptation” (The Book o f Genesis, Westminster
Commentaries [London: Menthuen & Co., 1943], 47-48, 37). Paul Haupt defends: “In the Story of
paradise the serpent symbolizes carnal desire, sexual appetite, concupiscence” (“The Curse on the
Serpent,” JBL 35 [1916]: 162). Contra Laurence Turner, who refutes this because “the serpent is
differentiated from the Man and Woman in the curses of 3.14fT (Announcements o f Plots in Genesis,
JSOTSup 96 [Sheffield: Sheffield, 1990], 43, n. 4).
‘Edward Conklin, Getting Back into the Garden o f Eden (Lanham, MD: University Press of
America, 1998), 133.
sIbid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
21
declares that the “enmity between woman and serpent represents the struggle between
good and evil tendencies in man, with the serpent symbolic of evil. Torah enables man to
strike down the evil impulse, but its absence leaves man a prey to it.”2
word in one context to an entirely different one, homilized on Pss 139:1 l - “Darkness shall
bruise (N1V ‘hide’) me.” “At the approach of darkness at the end of the Sabbath Adam
thought the one of whom it was written ‘He shall bruise thy head’ was coming to bite him.
The Lord gave him two flints to strike against each other and light came forth.”3 Several
such homilies are offered for many other verses of Scripture. Most of these allegories
Historical-Political Interpretation
Transferring the use of “enmity” to address Israel’s political enemies in Ezek 25:15 and
35:5 to its appearance in Gen 3:15, Knut Hotter suggests that the serpent is a symbol of
‘Ibid.
:Samson H. Levey, The Messiah: An Aramaic Interpretation: The Messianic Exegesis o f the
Targum (New York: Hebrew Union College-Jewish Institute of Religion, 1974), 2.
zy. Abod. Zar. 1:2 A; Gen. Rab. 11:2; 12:6; 8:14. “The contrast of wounding on the head and the
heel is used homiletically to teach that vindictiveness should be less than the injury received” (b. Yoma
23a).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
22
Ho Iter observes that animals describe nations (Gen 49), and in particular, snakes
describe Assyria (Isa 14:29), Egypt (Jer 46:22), and invading enemies (Jer 8:17); hence
the serpent of Gen 3:15 metaphorically represents Israel’s enemies. These include all of
Israel’s neighbors and enemies, not only Egypt, but including also Tyre (1 Kgs 5:1-12),
Moab, Ammon, Edom, Sidon, and the Hittites (1 Kgs 11:1).' Dating the Gen 3 narrative
to the time of J, around the Solomonian era, he argues that it contains “an undertone of
'Knut Holter, “The Serpent in Eden as a Symbol of Israel’s Political Enemies: A Yahwistic
Criticism of the Solomonic Foreign Policy?” SJO T1 (1990): 111. He reveals that considering texts like
Isa 14:28-32, esp. vs. 29; Jer 46:2-28, esp. vs. 22 and Jer 8:17 (“compared with the theriomorphisms in
Jer 2:15; 4:7; 3:6; Jer 12:8ff.”), it becomes “clear that the ’serpent’ might act in the Old Testament as a
metaphor for political enemies of Israel, a phenomenon which of course is linked to the important
religious function serpents had among Israel’s surrounding peoples” (ibid., 108-109).
:Ibid., 108-109. He builds on the view earlier expressed by W. von Soden who had suggested
that the “dependence of Adam on Eve in Gen 3 reflects the dependence of Solomon on his Egyptian wife.
The daughter of Pharaoh seems to have had a rather leading position in Jerusalem (cf. 1 Kgs 7:8; 9:24)
and according to von Soden there is a concealed criticism of this in Gen 3. This interpretation has been
further developed by Gdrg, who discusses the role of serpents within Egyptian religion, and sees the
serpent in Gen 3 as a symbol of (Egyptian) wisdom independent of Yahweh” (111). See Manfred Gfirg,
“Die ‘SQnde’ Salomos: Zeitkritische Aspekte der jahwistischen SQndenfollerzahiung,” BN 16(1981): 42-
39; idem, “Weisheit als Provokation: Religionshichtliche und theolgische Aspekte der
SQndenfallerzahiung,” in Die Kraft der Hoffhung: Gemeinde und Evangelium: Festschriftfur Dr. Josef
Schneider sum 80. Geburtstag, ed. Alfred E. Hierold (Bamberg: St. Otto-Verlag, 1986), 19-34; and
Wolfram von Soden, “VerschlOsselte Kritik an Salomo in der Urgeschichte des Jahwisten?” WO 7, no. 2
(1974): 228-240. As for Gen 3:14fF., M. Gdrg understands it as being of post-Yahwistic origin, and he
interprets it as concealed criticism against the foreign policy of Hezekiah (“Das Wort zur Schiange, 121-
140). “This snake was friendly with and deceived a ‘woman’ (Pharaoh’s daughter, who became
Solomon’s wife), who was used for the downfoil of man (Solomon). This woman is a prototype of the
foreign woman, who is seen again in Hezekiah’s mother Abi (2 Kgs 18:2; cf. 2 Chr 29:1, Abijah), whom
Gdrg detects in a leading opposition role early in Hezekiah’s reign. Hezekiah is therefore the seed of the
woman, who destroys the snake statue in fulfillment of Gen 3:13. As for the action of the snake against
the man’s heel; the opposition of head and heel alone would not indicate a fetal as opposed to a non-fetal
injury, since as others have pointed out, a snake bite is no less life destroying than the crushing carried out
by the man. The feet that the snake is pictured as still attacking after its head is crushed (Gen 3:13e
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
23
In like manner, Rogerson links Gen 2-3 and the exile of 587/6 B.C., declaring:
The expulsion from the garden of paradise resembles the deportations from the
Northern kingdom in the eighth century and from Jerusalem and Judah in the
sixth century. The command not to eat from a particular tree resembles the
divine law given to Israel, the disobedient man is a succession of kings from
Solomon onwards who tolerated or encouraged idolatrous cults, and the woman
is the foreign wives of kings who sponsored such cults. The tree and the serpent
can be identified as cult objects in religious practices inimical to official Yahwism.1
Rationalistic Interpretation
Rationalists do not take Gen 3:15 seriously because, to them, the Bible is nothing
more than a product o f human endeavor rather than a product o f divine revelation. The
NT interpretation of the OT was not considered authoritative. They think that Gen 3:15
could not have been quoted in the NT. It was impossible to have had an evil spirit in Gen
follows Gen 3:l5d) indicates the figurative meaning of the picture, and shows that even when Nehushtan
is smashed, the snake remains a menace. Egypt is the continuation of the seduction force of the snake, as
is clear from Isa 27:1, where the three chaos figures (as Gunkel enumerated them) possibly stand for
Egypt, as Rahab does elsewhere. Only later readers ignorant of the original historical circumstances could
see in this passage, therefore, a protoevangelium, although one could connect Jesus to it by viewing him
as another Hezekiah” (Ronning, 92, referring to Gdrg, “Das Wort zur Schlange,” 132-139).
‘John William Rogerson, “Genesis 1-11,” Currents in Research: Biblical Studies 5 (1997): 82.
Callus explains some of these views in detail (Die Naehkomme der Frau, 1:28-36). Johann
Ddderlein (d. 1792) objects that there is no knowledge of evil spirits in the mosaic tradition (Institutio
Christiani in captibus religionis nostris temporibus accomdata. Pars Posterior [Altdorf: Sumtu Monath et
Kussler, 1787], 183-4); Wilhelm Hufnagel affirms that demonology only came to Israel from the time of
the Persian exile (Handbuch der biblischen Theologie, Zweiter Teil [Erlangen: J. J. Palm, 1789], 165-71);
Johann Salomo Semler, Institutio ad Doctrinwn: liberaliter discenduam Auditorum usui destinata (Halae
Magdeburgicae: n.p., 1774), 369-370; and Gotthilf Traugott ZachariS retorts that the seed of the serpent
cannot be demons because there is no such biological generational process (Biblische Theologie: oder
Untersuchung des biblischen Grundes der vomehmsten theologischen Lehren, zweiter Teil [Tubingen: bey
Chr. Gotti. Frank und Wilh. Heinr. Schramm, 1780], 261-79).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
24
By far the majority of scholars who have perused this text allow for an inner
symbolic and figurative interpretation in addition to the literal and naturalistic surface
meaning. One of the earliest extant records of this view is that of John Chrysostom (d.
407), who speaks of the visible serpent (literal snakes) engaged in enmity with the human
race (naturalistic interpretation), and then an “intellectual serpent” (the Devil) who would
Calvin emphasized this shift from a natural or literal meaning of the first part of
Gen 3:15, about the hostile strife between the human race and serpents, to a symbolic one
in the remaining part, addressing the enmity between Satan and humans which reaches
beyond the first generation, extending “as widely, indeed, as the human race shall be
propagated.”2
Franz Delhzsch declares that Gen 3:15 starts with the conflict between humans
and snakes “only as a ‘natural picture’ of the more serious human conflict against Satan
and his seed (the wicked).”3 David Pareus verifies that it evidently begins with a literal
'John Chrysostom said that in the light of Luke 10:19, Gen 3:15 “must be taken much more of
the intellectual serpent [the Devil] God humiliated and made subject under our feet and gave us the
power to tread on his head” (Homilae in Genesimi, 17.7). See also its English translation: St. John
Chrysostom: Homilies on Genesis 1-17, trans. Robert C. Hill, vol. 74, The Fathers o f the Church: A New
Translation, ed. Thomas P. Halton et al. (Washington, DC: Catholic University of America Press, 1986),
237-238. Cf. FG, 123.
:Corpus Reformatorum 51 (1964), 69-71; translated in Calvin, Commentaries on the First Book
o f Moses Called Genesis, 167-168. “Calvin further noted that this curse-saying would have brought but
small consolation to people if it involved serpents but not Satan” (Schurb, 29).
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
25
sense which “we neither ought to repudiate . . . nor are we able to do so.”1 He then
uncovers a clue for a subsequent figurative sense o f the meaning of the text.2
Charles Briggs notes that something beyond the animal snake must be in view
because that creature/tempter is accorded knowledge, speech, and intelligence even higher
than accorded the humans. Moreover, no other animals in Eden are attributed with the
For Edward Young, the word “subtle” is the “first hint that we have to deal with
more than a snake.”4 “A subtlety is at work such as does not belong to snakes.”5
concealed behind the serpent. That the human race should triumph over the serpent, was a necessary
consequence of the original subjection of the animals to man. When, therefore, God not merely confines
the serpent within the limits assigned to the animals, but puts enmity between it and the woman, this in
itself points to a higher, spiritual power, which oppose and attack the human race through the serpent, but
will eventually be overcome” (Biblical Commentary on the Old Testament: The Pentateuch, trans. James
Martin, Biblical Commentary on the Old Testament [Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1959], 3:100).
'Schurb, 33. “It indicated that there would be a ‘perpetual variance’ between the serpent and Eve
and also between their respective offspring, serpents and men” (Schurb, 33, referring to David Pareus,
Commentarius in Genesin, in Opera Theologica Exegetica, Pars Secunda, comp, by John Philip Pareus
[Frankfurt: John Rose, 1647], 102). God directed other curses at the snake (vs. 14), and humans have in
reality continued to experience enmity with snakes! (Schurb, 33).
2Schurb, 33. Pareus then maintained that the word “He” later in the verse (vs. 15c), denoting an
individual, formed an undeniable clue that the literal sense alone will not exhaust the meaning of the
passage. “Therefore a mystical sense must be reached and seen, by which God promises men victory over
the devil himself” (Pareus, 102). Satan and humans are intended in the symbolic aspect
sIbid„ 9-10. Young further enumerates: “To address a serpent is to assume that the serpent is a
rational, responsible being. We must assume then, that the Lord God, in speaking to the serpent is
addressing the beast as the instrument of the evil one, and that the words spoken to the serpent strike
home at this evil one, the tempter of mankind” (ibid., 95). “The purpose of the curse pronounced upon
the serpent is to make clear that there had been a deep-seated wickedness using it” (ibid.).
“The condemnation placed upon the serpent is in line with the principle whereby an animal
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
26
Moreover, this serpent himself, and not his seed, is to bruise the Seed of the woman and it
was not expected to live and not die, so as to do this, definitely, “more is involved than an
actual serpent.”1 In the same vein, “the very language is evidence that God is speaking to
one more powerful than a serpent; the one who used the serpent for his evil purposes. To
place enmity between the serpent and the woman is to point to something higher than a
snake.”2
eat dust, and no ancient writer ever thought they did. One has to take this passage
symbolically, not literally.”3 For Henry Barrington Pratt, there is here “a double
which had been used in an unnatural crime was to be put to death Any beast which had participated
in an unnatural crime with man was along with the man also to be killed. Of course the beast in such
cases was not accountable nor responsible ” (ibid., 96). He cites Gen 9:5 as an example.
'Ibid., 118.
:Ibid. This was similarly observed by Feinberg: “All other usages of 'evah (enmity) in the Old
Testament are in connection with relationships between persons-Num 35:21-22 (the manslayer and cities
of refuge); Ezek 25:15 (Philistines); and 35:5 (Mount Seir, the Edomites). The strong probability is that a
similar sense is called for in Genesis 3:15” (“The Virgin Birth in the Old Testament,” 314). Second,
instead of presuming that the earth was “the normal food of snakes” (ibid.), it only meant that “snakes
would live on the ground A symbolic sense is intended as in the expression Mick the dust’ (Ps. 72:9;
Isa. 49:23; and Mic. 7:17)” (ibid.).
Gallus discusses this extensively. He explained that the snake was said in Gen 3:1 to be “wiser
than all of the animals” rather than “wiser than all of the other animals.” Since this snake talks and is
cunning, it is not only a mere animal. Moreover, its use of lying tactics shows that it has a demonic spirit
(Die Frau in Gen 3:15,111-161).
]Hamilton appeals that “it is fruitless to see in this particular verse an etiology of why snakes no
longer walk on legs and why they lost their legs” (Genesis Chapters 1-17,196-197). “The writer clearly
intends these two facts to be expressions of humiliation and subjugation (as in Ps 72:9; Isa 49:23; Mic
7:17)” (ibid., 197). Contra Robinson, who insists: “Ancient zoology is often strange to us, and there is
other evidence to show that the old Hebrew believed that earth was the normal food of snakes” (Robinson,
“Genesis,” 223).
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
27
One must, under all circumstances, proceed from the fact that the passage reflects
quite realistically man's struggle with the real snake; but one must not stop there,
for the things with which this passage deals are basic, and in illustrating them, the
narrator uses not only the commonplace language of every day, but a language that
also figuratively depicts the zoological species But at the same time, in a kind
of spiritual clearheadedness, he sees in it an evil being that has assumed form, that
is inexplicably present within our created world, and that has singled out man, lies
in wait for him, and everywhere fights a battle with him for life and death. The
serpent is an animal which, more than any other, embodies uncanny qualities that
make it superior to man.2
that the seed represents the righteous and the wicked.3 'The governing thought is that of
'Henry Barrington Pratt, Studies in the Book o f Genesis (New York: American Tract Society,
1906), 42. Pratt states: “It is clear that there is found here a curse upon the whole race of snakes, and a
prophecy of the implacable hatred which exists between them and men. The words of this prophecy. . .
have, as many other prophecies have, a double application and a double fulfilment; as there was not
merely a serpent, but that ‘Wicked One,* who availed himself of that disguise to disarm the suspicions of
Eve” (ibid., 42-43).
won Rad, Genesis, 92. See Driver, Genesis, 44. Terence E. Fretheim mentions that the serpent
is more than an ordinary animal (Creation, Fail and Flood: Studies in Genesis I-11 [Minneapolis:
Augsburg, 1969], 80-81). Westermann refers to those who call the serpent as “Satan in disguise”
(Genesis l-11,237); while Dan E. Bums reports it as “God in disguise” (“Dream Form in Genesis 2:4b-
3:24: Asleep in the Garden,” JSOT37 [1987]: 9).
The Manual of Discipline contains teachings about the creation and Fall of man (Wemberg-
Moller, 2S-7: Plates iii. 13 • iv.26). Gen 3:15 is alluded to in iii. 13 and iv.ISff with statements such as
follows: “It is for the wise man to instruct and teach all the sons of light concerning the genealogies of all
mankind, with respect to both kinds of their spirits withe the (different) characters of their actions in their
generations, and with respect to their visitation of afflictions together with their times of peace”
(Pl.iii. 13,14).
“In these (two) are the genealogies of all mankind, and in their (two) classes all the hosts of their
generations have a share; in their (two) ways they walk, and the entire work of their activity (foils) within
their (two) classes, according to everybody’s share, large or small, in all times for ever. For God has set
them apart until the last time, having put eternal enmity between their (two) classes. (Objects of)
abomination are the doings of deceit to truth, and (objects of) abomination are all the ways of truth to
deceit There is a fierce struggle between all their qualities, for they do not walk together. But God. . .
has put down a limited time for the existence of deceit At the time fixed for visitation He will destroy it
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
28
the two spirits ruling in man and dividing mankind into two sharply distinguished sections,
the children of righteousness and the children of deceit, these two groups being in the
Some scholars posit that the original ramifications of the term “messianic” or
“messianism” refer to “an elaborate king ideology” rather than to the “eschatological
messianism” of the New Testament.2 They apply to the sacral divine kingship in the
ancient Orientals which later informed Israel’s royal theology.3 Attempts have thus been
for ever, and then the truth of the earth will appear for ever Then God will purify all the doings of
man by His truth and purge a part of mankind Until now the spirits of truth and deceit struggle in the
heart of man, some walking in wisdom and (some) in vileness. According to his share in truth and
righteousness, thus a man hates deceit, and according to his assignment in the lot of deceit and
ungodliness, thus he loathes truth” (PI. iv. 1S-2S).
'The Manual o f Discipline, 66. Wemberg-Moller maintains that the two classes of mankind
distinctly separate rejecting the notion that “every human soul is a mixture of both spirits, the
individuality being due to individual ‘mixtures’” (83). He posits that “every man has his share of one of
the two spirits, and some have a larger or smaller share than others. . . and his individuality depends on
the quantity of his share” (83-84).
2Wifell, 362.
3See Ivan Engneli, A Rigid Scrutiny: Critical Essays on the Old Testament, trans. and ed. John T.
Willis (Nashville: Vanderbilt University Press, 1969), 221; and Wifall, 362-363. Speiser looked for
“Mesopotamian links” or “distant traditions that had gained currency through the ages” (Genesis, 20).
James Henry Breasted said that Israel’s “messianism” was ultimately related to Egyptian royal theology (A
History o f Egypt [New York: Bantam, 1964], 172). Breasted cites the composition of an Egyptian Middle
Kingdom Sibylline Prophet named Ipuwer who announces the arrival of a savior who shall restore the
land subsequent to predicted frightful calamities involving all classes: “He shall bring cooling to the
flame. Men shall say, ‘he is the shepherd of all the people; there is no evil in his heart.. . . The thought
of men shall be aflame; would that he might achieve their rescue.. . . ’ Verily he shall smite evil when he
raises his arm against i t . . . ” (ibid., 204-205). This “Messianic” oracle of this prophet proclaims the
coming of the good king. It is argued that this class of literature may be traced to the development of the
form and content of the Messianic prophecies of Hebrew prophets, who gave it “a higher ethical and
religious significance” (ibid., 205).
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
29
made to gain a more concrete picture of “messianic representation through the study of
iconography.”1
Gen 2-11 was taken as Israel’s pre-history written with a view of Israel’s future
while using “David” as the model for the “Adam” stories of Gen 2-3.2 This became the
basis of the royal ideology leading to the description of “the man” taken “from the dust”
and quickened by the “breath of life.” It is alleged that the writer actually lived and wrote
during the tenth century BC, during the time of the King David/Solomon narrative of
Eden story. The phrase “formed from the dust” can be understood as royal covenant
'James H. Charlesworth, ed., The Messiah: Developments in Earliest Judaism and Christianity
(Minneapolis: Fortress, 1992), 52. Charlesworth indicates that “messianism” is at the “intersection of a
collective eschatology and a royal ideology” (ibid.).
2See A. Bentzen, King and Messiah (Oxford: Basil Blackwell, 1970), 38; Joseph Blenkinsopp,
'Theme and Motif in the Succession History (2 Sam xi 2ff.) and the Yahwist Corpus,” VTSup IS (1965):
44-50; Walter Brueggemann, “David and His Theologian,” CBQ 30 (1968): 156-181; idem, “Kingship
and Chaos,” CBQ 30 (1971): 317-332; idem, “From Dust to Kingship,” ZAW84 (1972): 1-18; Ronald
Clements, Abraham and David (London: SCM, 1967), 80; M. L. Henry, Jahwist und Priesterschrift
(Stuttgart: Calwer, 1960), 15; Wifall, “Gen 3:15, A Protoevangelium?” 362; idem, “David, Prototype of
Israel’s Future?’ BTB 4 (1974): 94-107; idem, “The Breath of His Nostrils,” CBQ 36 (1974): 237-240;
and H. W. Wolff “The Kerygma of the Yahwist,” Interpretation 20 (1966): 131-158.
3Furthermore, Brueggemann submits that the Gen 2-11 stories are not to be understood as
historical in the real sense; neither are they “a collection of ancient Near Eastern myths and legends in
any primary way, but they are. . . an extremely sophisticated statement by one of Israel’s earliest, most
profound theologians” (“David and His Theologian,” 156). Cf. R. A. Carlson, David the Chosen King
(Stockholm: Almqvist and Wiksell, 1964); R. H. Pfeiffer and William G. Pollard, The Hebrew Iliad (New
York: Harper, 1957); Gerhard von Rad, “The Beginnings of Historical Writing in Ancient Israel,” in The
Problem o f the Hexateuch and Other Essays, trans. E. W. Trueman Dicken (Edinburgh: Oliver and Boyd,
1966), 176 passim; and Wifall, “Breath of His Nostrils,” 237.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
30
king, and “to return to the dust” means to be “deposed” from kingship. There is a
“connection between kingship and creation.”2 In fact, the initial creation of man “is the
(1) elevation to kingship, (2) restoration of covenant, and (3) giving of new life all
intersect at this point.”4 In addition, the dust motif is commonly used to underscore the
Consequently, Walter Wifall was able to stipulate that “Gen 3; 15 owes its present
Tbid. “The royal imagery has been extended so that the whole people now share in the promise
and hope of the royal tradition” (ibid., 11). See Otto Eissfeldt who traces the process by which a dynastic
promise is shared by the whole community (“The Promise of Grace to David in Isaiah 55:1-5,” in Israel's
Prophetic Heritage: Essays in Honor o f James Muilenberg, ed. Bernard W. Anderson and Walter
Harrelson [New York: Harper, 1980], 196-207).
}Brueggeman, “Dust to Kingship,” 7, n. 14. He concludes that the Yahwist created a pattern of
“creation-enthronement-resurrection” (ibid., 15).
4Ibid., 4. See 1 Sam 2:9; 2 Sam 6:2Iff.; the Ugaritic evidence for kingship with reference to
fertility is discussed in Arthur L. Merrill, “The House of Keret,” SEA 33 (1968): 5-17. Merrill argues
vigorously that kingship has as its task fertility, salubrity, and sovereignty.
’Brueggemann, “Dust to Kingship,” 8-9. He recalls: “A special use of the dust motif occurs when
there is a wish or a promise that ‘we’ should triumph and conversely, those who oppose us should be
destroyed or subjugated Part of the hope for elevation out of dust is the wish or promise that the
others will go to the dust The wish for the enemy to be in the dust is the counterpart of the
enthronement of the king who moves from death to life in its rich, powerful royal form” (ibid.).
This is apparent in the Psalms which are clearly about monarchy or messiah or divine monarchy
like Pss I8:42fF.; 72:9-11; 22:29. “The well-being and elevation of the king (or in Ps 22, Yahweh
himself) depends upon the subjugation of the opposition” (9). Other such texts are Mic 7:16ff.; Isa 47:1;
49:22ft; 25:10-12; 26:4-5; 41:2. See Harris Birkeland, The Evildoers in the Book o f Psalms (Oslo: I
Kommisjon, 1955).
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
31
form to the Yahwist’s adaptation of both the David story (2 Sam-1 Kgs 2) and ancient
The various Targums and Ethiopic manuscripts treat the Genesis passage
Jonathan, Fragmentary, and Neofiti all explain Gen 3:15 collectively and “eschatologicaUy,
speaking of humanity’s victory over the devil ‘in the days of the King Messiah,’ but do not
In 1 Enoch, several Ethiopic manuscripts contain the term “son of man” or its
'Wifall insists that the royal and “Davidic” significance of Gen 3:15 “for both OT and NT cannot
be overlooked” (“Gen 3:15,” 365). Furthermore, “the NT has also portrayed what is considered the
fulfillment of Israel’s history within the same royal or ‘messianic’ framework, now applied to Jesus as the
‘Messiah’ of the Church. Although Gen 3:15 is not a direct prediction of Jesus as the Christ of Israel, it
stands within the royal “messianic” tradition connecting the OT and NT. In this respect, the ‘myth-ritual’
school appears justified in distinguishing the ‘messianism’ of the OT from that of the NT as consisting
mainly in the increasingly eschatological stress of the latter” (ibid.).
3Lewis, “The Woman’s Seed,” 301. More details on these Targum renditions of Gen 3:14-15
will be discussed in the section on textual analysis below. Meanwhile, Hans Peter RQger combats that the
Targum Pseudo-Jonathan and the so-called Fragmentary Targum refer to the Messiah explicitly, “but this
reference has nothing in common with the christological interpretation of Gen 3:15” which identifies the
“Seed of the woman” with Christ or Mary (“On Versions of Genesis 3:15, Ancient and Modem,” Bible
Translator 27 [1976], 109). “In the Palestinian Targums the mention o f‘King Messiah’ merely serves to
specify the date on which ‘the sons of the woman . . . are going to make peace (among each other)” (ibid.,
109). RQger continues: “The meaning of this phrase can be inferred form midrash Tanhuma, 2:
‘In the world to come, ail those having blemishes will be healed, but the snake will not be healed,’ as it is
written: ‘Cursed are you above all cattle’ (Gen 3:14), because everyone will be healed, but it will not be
healed. Of man it is written: ‘Then shall the lame man leap like a hart’ (Isa 35.6) and . . . : ‘the eyes of
the blind shall be opened’ (Is 35.5), and likewise of beasts and of cattle: ‘The wolf and the lamb shall feed
together, the lion shall eat straw like the ox’ (Isa 65-25). But as to the snake, ‘dust shall be its food’ (Isa
65:25), because it will not be healed, for it brought down to the dust all creatures” (ibid., 109, n. 11). He
later contends that the “renderings of Gen 3:15 in the Revised Standard Version and in the Revised
Luther Bible are (emphasis his) doctrinal” (ibid, 109).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
32
equivalents like “son of the woman,” the “son o f the descendants of the mother of the
living,” and “that son of the descendants of the mother of the living.”1 Jack Lewis
comments on these, saying, “Eve must be meant by these terms, and ‘son of the
descendants’ may be a double translation of the zera' of Gen 3:15. This doubling shows a
Zohar, a work outside classical Rabbinic tradition, also identifies the serpent as a
literal serpent, evil tempter, Samael’s mount, Satan, and angel of death. It indicates that
the mixed multitude which went up from Egypt with Israel (Exod 12:38) “are the
offspring of the original serpent that beguiled Eve.”3 The wicked are described in Zohar
Hadash as “ *,372”T^n S Jn n ’’132 (sons of the ancient serpent), who has slain Adam and
*Lewis, “The Woman’s Seed,” 302. Strack and Billerbeck contend that the above in I Enoch
prove that a messianic interpretation of “her Seed” existed in pre-Christian Judaism (Das Evangelium
nach MatthOus, 1:958, n. 1). Michl disagrees, insisting that the above were merely an insertion of
Christian theology into / Enoch (383-386). Martin McNamara states that no conclusions can be based on
the occurrences of these phrases here (Targum Neofiti I: Genesis, The Aramaic Bible, vol. IA
[Collegeville, MN: Liturgical, 1992], 220, n. 92). Mowinckel mentions that the Ethiopic NT regularly
renders “son of man” as “son of the offspring of the mother of the living” (362). See R. H. Charles, The
Book o f Enoch (Oxford: Clarendon, 1912), 86.
Nahum Sarna uses “they” and “their heel” in the text of Gen 3:15 and then adovates that the
woman is the representative of the whole human race, “as the reference to her ‘offspring’ shows”
(Genesis, Jewish Publication Society Torah Commentary [New York: Jewish Publication Society, 1989],
27).
'Harry Spaulding and Maurice Simon, Zohar, 5 vols. (London: Soncino, 1956), l:Ix, 108. Zohar
is identified here as the “fundamental book of Jewish Cabbalism . . . the premier text-book of medieval
Jewish mysticism” (ibid., ix).
4Ibid„ 1:133-134.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
33
The author of Zohar refers to Gen 3:15 in his vision of the messianic era.'
Earlier on, Bar Kokhba, who led the Jewish revolt against Rome between 131 to 135
3:15 by use of the emblem of the serpent to support his messianic claim.2 Gen 3:15 must
The history of the interpretation of Gen 3:15 is filled with the great influence of
the Church Fathers who themselves largely advocated a figurative collective, yet
Christological, interpretation of the text. For some, the woman’s Seed was Christ, or the
Church, or the whole human race; while taking the woman to be the Church, or Eve, or
Mary.3
Origen identifies the woman’s seed collectively as the Church in both the enmity
and the victory.4 He preached that the conflict of Gen 3:15 is a war, beginning with Cain
'This work is attributed to a Rabbi of the 2ndcentury C. E., Rabbi Simeon Bar Yokhal. It was
produced as a mystical work in the IS* century. See Zohar 2 (folio 1206), Exod 22:19.
'Ronning summarized their views and added: “A few fathers recognized themselves as of the
serpent's seed before their conversion to Christ, thus it is the natural state of humanity without the new
birth. Those who took the two seeds as collective for the Christians and the world sometimes applied the
fulfillment of Gen 3:15 to all of human history, beginning with Cain’s murder of Abel, and enduring
martyrdom could be described as defeating the serpent in terms of Gen 3:15” (Ronning, 36).
4See Chrysostom, Homilae in Genesim, 15.5; and FG, 107. Saint Irenaeus, Bishop of Lyons,
concurs when he pointed out that humans who persevere in wickedness, like Cain, would incur the
serpent’s curse on themselves (Irenaeus Against Heresies 323.3 [trans. Roberts and Rambaut, ANF,
1:456-458]). This may imply that the serpent’s seed includes wicked people as well as fallen angels.
Irenaeus seems to includes heretics among the serpent’s seed by saying, “heretics and apostates from the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
34
and Abel, and the believers’ victory is ascribed to Jesus.1 Cyprian also hoped that “when
the serpent begins to be trampled upon by us, he may not be able to bite and throw us
down.”2 Moreover, the Syrian Fathers saw the seed of the woman as collective, for either
Later on during the Reformation Period, Calvin picked up on this view in his
truth. . . show themselves patrons of the serpent and of death" (Against Heresies, 3.23.8).
'See Homilae in Genesim, I5.S; and FG, 107. Origen asserts that “God did not leave them to
themselves when they had been placed in this war, but He is always with them. He is pleased with Abel
but reproves Cain” (FG, 107). Origen enjoined believers to pray that “our feet may be such, so beautiful,
so strong, that they can trample on the Serpent’s head that he cannot bite our heel (Gen 3:15) So you
see that whoever fights under Jesus [Joshua], ought to return safe from battle" (FG, 107). See Homilae in
librwn Jesu Nave, 12.2; and also FG, 106-107; FG, 12.888A-B.
Optamus of Mi leva (d. before 400) saw the murder of Abel by Cain and the massacre of infants
in Bethlehem as part of the continuous outplaying of the hostile rivalry that was established in Gen 3:15
with “the waylaying Devil” (FG, 173-4). See In Natale Infantium qui pro Domino occisi sunt, 5. Basil, the
Great, also saw the enmity of Gen 3:15 as a war engaged by the collective woman’s seed. “The Lord
established for us a war against him [Satan], that when the war had been won through obedience, we
might triumph over the enemy" (FG, 110-111). See Quod Deus non est auctor malorum 8-9.
2St. Cyprian, Saint Cyprian Letters (1-81), trans. Rose Bernard Donna, vol. 51 of The Fathers o f
the Church, A New Translation (Washington, DC: The Catholic University of America, 1964), 170.
Cyprian expounded Eph 6:12-17, indicating that Christians should put on covers for their feet by means of
Gospel preaching (ibid., letter 58,9, “To the people of Thibaris”). Moreover, Cyprian described the
victorious suffering of one Celerinus with these words: “and although his feet were bound with cords, the
helmeted serpent was both crushed and conquered (because he did not deny his faith under torture)”
(ibid., 100, ’To the priests and people,” letter 39,2).
“In early Christian martyrology, Perpetua in a dream treads on the head of the Egyptian, who is a
symbol of the devil” (Perpetua Passion o f Perpetua and Felicitas 32 [ANF, 3:702]).
'See Abraham Levene, The Early Syrian Fathers on Genesis: From a Syrian MS; On the
Pentateuch in the Mingana Collection; The First 18 Chapters o f the MS; Edited with Introduction,
Translation, and Notes; and including a Study in Comparative Exegesis (London: Taylor’s Foreign Press,
1951), 77-78. They believe that the head and heel is “a figure for the judgment upon Satan, how much
lower than us God has placed him. As for us, if we desire the good, through mighty deeds are we able to
smite him, but he on the other hand is able to smite us, since he guards our heels i.e., our way, which is
our deeds; even as ’the iniquity of my heels doth encompass me’” (ibid., 78).
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
35
Calvin identified the woman's seed, in the several parts of his interpretation, as
(1) all men (as against snakes), (2) all men (as against the devil), and (3) Christ as
the Champion of all men (and, by extension from Christ, the Church). He arrived
at Christ because “experience teaches” that all do not conquer Satan; yet,
inasmuch as the passage did promise victory over the devil, there had to be “one
Head” in whom the race would conquer. Having introduced the “headship”
concept, which comes not from Genesis 3:15 but from the New Testament
passages on Christ and His church, Calvin went on to say that Christ shared with
His people the power to overcome the devil.1
Numerous exegetes have followed suit. Dietrich Philips understood the seed
collectively in the spiritual sense. He took all believers as the seed of the spiritual Eve,
the righteous rather than all humanity. Even though the wicked are physical offsprings of
the woman, they have excommunicated themselves by aligning themselves with the
'Schurb, 32. John Calvin asks rhetorically: “Who will concede that a collective noun is to be
understood of one man only'! Further, as the perpetuity of the contest is noted, so victory is promised to
the human race through a continual succession of ages. I explain, therefore, the seed to mean the
posterity of the woman generally The power of bruising Satan is imparted to faithful men, and thus
this blessing is the common property of the whole Church” (Commentaries on the First Book o f Moses,
170-171).
Ronning adds: “Apparently, then, Calvin identified the woman’s seed in Gen 3:15c (the enmity
portion) as the whole human race, but in Gen 3:15d (the victory portion) limits the race to Christ and
those who belong to him, the Church” (Ronning, 46).
:See George Hunston Williams, ed.. Spiritual and Anabaptist Writers: Documents Illustrative o f
the Radical Reformation, LCC, Ichthus Edition (Philadelphia: Westminster, 1957), 230-233. Philips
pointed to the murder of Abel by Cain as the first manifestation of the enmity between God’s children and
the devil’s children, the conflict which has since continued to be renewed to date (ibid.). Robert Jamieson
agrees that the seed of the serpent includes wicked human beings everywhere (cf. John 8:44; 13:38 with
Matt 23:33) while the seed of the woman refers to the children of God (Gal 3:29) (Genesis-Deuteronomy,
A Commentary, Critical, Experimental, and Practical on the Old and New Testaments, vol. 1 [Grand
Rapids: Eerdmans, 1945], 57).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
36
serpent, Satan, and thus spiritually are the serpent’s seed, rather than the woman's.1
On the other hand, Young looks for the seed of the serpent outside the realm of
the human race, identifying them as the evil spirits.2 Geerhardus Vos concurs because “it
seems more plausible to seek the seed of the serpent outside of the human race. The
power of evil is a collective power, a kingdom of evil, of which Satan is the head.”3 They
are the evil spirits which derive their nature from Satan. Similarly, the seed of the woman
must be collective including the human race out of which “a fatal blow will come which
shall crush the head of the serpent.”4 However, Briggs expands the serpent’s race to
include snakes, demons, and evil people; while the woman’s race comprises human beings
^Young, Genesis 3, 116. He recommends: “Far better, therefore, because in keeping with the
demands of the Scripture at this point, is it to hold that the serpent’s seed is found in evil spirits. These
are his spiritual seed, not descended from him in a physical sense, but nevertheless, truly his seed. Satan
rules over a kingdom of evil which is opposed to God, and this kingdom of evil is his seed” (ibid.).
Similarly, John Peter Lange understands the seed of the woman to include the human race while
the serpent’s seed (demons and their powers) are those who have “become ethically children of the power
of temptation” (Genesis, A Commentary on the Holy Scriptures: Critical, Doctrinal, and Homilectical,
vol. 1, trans. Philip Schaff [New York: Charles Scribner’s Sons, 1915], 234).
’Geerhardus Vos, Biblical Theology, Old And New Testaments (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1944),
54. See ibid., 53-55.
4Ibid., 55.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
37
Samuel Driver takes the serpent as the symbol of the power of “manifold
spiritual struggle with all humanity.”4 He reiterated that “the law and aim of humanity is
It is of course true that the great and crowning defeat of man's spiritual adversary
was accomplished by Him who was in a special sense the “seed” of the woman, the
representative of humanity, who overcame once and for all the power of the Evil
One. But the terms of the verse are perfectly general; and it must not be
interpreted so as to exclude those minor, though in their own sphere not less real,
triumphs, by which in all ages individuals have resisted the suggestions of sin and
proved themselves superior to the power of evil.6
of Gen 3:15 is the influence of ancient manuscripts which seem to suggest it, namely, the
'Briggs enumerates: “The term seed is a generic term for the entire race of descendants of the
woman on the one hand and the serpent on the other This prediction points not merely to the whole
family of snakes, but to the serpents of the higher world, the evil spirits, and to the serpents among
mankind, the evil men, and seducers, called by Jesus the children of the devil, indeed all the forces of evil
which array themselves against the children of God. The seed of the woman embraces the human race as
such, that is, all who take part in the conflicts of the race with the forces of evil” (Briggs, 75). He later
verifies that “There are those who by birthright belong to the seed of the woman who become by apostasy
the children of the serpent. There are those who are won as trophies of grace from the seed of the serpent
and are adopted into the seed of redemption. These two great forces are in conflict throughout history”
(ibid., 76). See ibid., 71-77.
3Ibid.
‘Ibid.
5Ibid.
‘Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
38
LXX, Vulgate, Jerome, Targum Onkelos, and Targum Neofiti.1 With a resurgence of
biblical word studies in the Reformation period and beyond, the Gen 3:15 passage also
One of the most ardent proponents of this view is Martin Luther who clearly
identifies the Seed as Christ alone. Christ crushed and still crushes the serpent’s head. He
referred to Christians as being subject to the same hatred as the woman’s Seed, only as a
secondary application of the text of Gen 3:15 which is interpreted primarily in terms of
Christ alone.2 He insists that here, God “is speaking of only one individual, of the Seed of
Luther uses experience, rather than the grammar of the text, to identify the
promised Seed as Christ. Human nature was insufficient to accomplish what was intended
and promised in Gen 3:15, hence Christ had to step in on our behalf.4
on the singular pronoun o f RIH, and the singular direct object suffix in 13S10P). He
insists that the translators of the LXX understood “that there was a mystery underlying
:See Luther, Lectures on Genesis Chapters 1-5.5,24,41,58, 178,319; and Schurb, 28. Luther
adopted a strictly individual and Christological interpretation of the woman’s Seed, but lacked a detailed
identification of the serpent’s seed. Christians are not directly referred to in Gen 3:15, but are involved
only as a result of their relationship with Christ.
Luther treats Gen 3:14 “entirely in figurative language; God is speaking with the serpent, and yet
it is certain that the serpent does not understand these words God is not speaking to an irrational
nature but to an intelligent nature In a figurative sense, Satan’s punishment is meant by the
punishment of the serpent” (Lectures on Genesis Chapters 1-5, 183).
]Ibid., 195-197,220.
"Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
39
these words, and therefore refused to change the gender of the words.”' He deduced that
the use of the singular was intentionally meant to foretell that “from the woman sometime
should proceed the seed which should bruise the head of the serpent, i.e., the Devil; and
that, on the other hand, the Devil would try to hurt his heel.”2 He took the heel to mean
Zwingli believes that all the curse of the snake in Gen 3:14 entirely refers to the
devil’s punishment in being cast down to earth and banished from heaven. The Seed of
the woman is singular, crushing the devil’s head, which refers to the devil’s power and
dominion. On the other hand, the seed o f the serpent is plural including all those who
Aegidius Hunnius defended the application of Gal 3:16 to Gen 3:15 that the same
singular Seed was the subject of the promise both in Eden and to Abraham with blessings
Arthur Pink proposes that the woman of Gen 3:15 “typifies Israel-\he woman
from whom the promised Seed came-the woman of Revelation 12. The children of Israel
'Samuel McCauley Jackson and Clarence Nevin Heller, eds., Commentary on True and False
Religion: Zwingli (Durham, NC: Labyrinth, 1981), 107.
:lbid., 108.
3See Gallus, Der Nachkomme der Frau, 1:149-150. The Latin is found in Corpus Reformation
C, XIII, 28-29 (Farrago annotationeum in Genesim [Tiguri, 1527]), 37-8. The woman’s Seed is in
combat with an individual (the devil), and therefore must be an individual. C£ idem, Altlutheranischen
Schriftauslegung II, 16, 79-80, 102; and Johann Kunad, Disputatio Theologica de Inimicitiis inter
Serpentum et Mulierem, ad Locum Classicum Gen 3, 15 adomata (Lipsiae: Veit et Comp., 1662), 13.
^Schurb, 38, n. 37. See Aegidius Hunnius, Antipareus, Opera Latina, Tomus Secundus
(Frankfurt-am-Main: Impensis Iohan, Iacobi Porsij Bibliopolae, 1608), col. 930,931,933,934,941,942.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
40
being the c hannel through which the Messiah was to come, became the object of Satan’s
continued enmity and assault.”1 He takes the seed of the serpent as the seed of Satan who
is the Antichrist. On the other hand, the woman’s Seed who is the Christ. “In these two
persons all prophecy converges.”2 Pink argues: “I f ‘her seed’ ultimates in a single
personality-the Christ-then by every principle of sound interpretation ‘thy seed’ must also
occurred in verity as indeed the “seed” from a woman, without the participation of a man.4
Mariology involves the subsequent exaltation of Mary, the mother of Jesus Christ, to a
superior status over and above a normal human being. This includes her immaculate
:Ibid.
3Ibid.
“‘Virgin birth” is the most accurate and most proper designation of the birth of Christ. The
“immaculate conception” confuses the births of Mary and Christ; while “supernatural birth” or
“supernatural conception” are two broad terms “in view of the supernatural conceptions of Isaac, Samson,
and John the Baptist, among others” (Feinberg, 313). See J. M. Frame, “Virgin-Birth of Jesus,”
Evangelical Dictionary o f Theology, ed. Walter A. Elwell (Grand Rapids: Baker, 19%), 1143-1145.
Theodore M. Dorman also defines virgin birth as “the designation for the NT teaching that Jesus was bom
without the agency of a human father, being conceived by the Holy Spirit in the womb of the Virgin Mary
and subsequently bom while Mary was yet a virgin It is not to be confused with the ‘Immaculate
Conception,’ the Roman Catholic doctrine that teaches that Mary was conceived without original sin”
(“Virgin Birth of Jesus Christ,” ISBE, 4:990-993, esp. 992).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
41
Serapion, Bishop of Thumis (Egypt; d. after 359) may have given “the earliest
extant argument for the virgin birth predicted in Gen 3:15.”2 He argued seriously for this,
taunting: “But a woman does not have seed, only man does. How then was it said of the
woman? Is it clear that it was said of Christ whom the undefiled Virgin brought forth
without seed? Certainly, He is a singular seed, not seeds in the plural.”3 Abbot Rupert of
Deutz (d. 1135) also confirms that Christ “alone is the seed o f woman in such wise that
He is not also the seed of man.”4 He also said that the lying in wait for his heel meant that
Irenaeus considered Eve as a virgin because the feet that Adam and Eve were
naked and not ashamed shows that they were children.6 He listed analogies between Eve
and Mary. He gives a prominent role to Mary saying: “And thus, as the human race fell
2Ronning, 30.
JIbid., referring to FG, 111 (Catena in Genesim); as cited from S. J. Gallus, Iterpretatio
Mariologica Protoevangelii [Gen 3:15], Temporare postpatristico usque ad Concilium Tridentium
(Rome: n.p., 1949), 24, claiming that it was so found by A. Lippomanus (Paris, 1S46).
*FG, 214-215.
5See In Genesim 2.19 (FG, 214-215). Commenting on Rev 12-3, he further said that the woman
clothed in the sun was the sign of the whole church, whose greatest member is Mary [In Apoc. 12:3] (FG,
216).
6See ANF, 1.455, n. 4. In a special sense, Christ experienced this enmity and conquered on
behalf of humanity. Irenaeus claims that “the Lord summed up in Himself this enmity, when he was
made man from a woman, and trod upon his [the serpent’s] head” (ANF, 1.524).
Unger took this to mean “a concise but complete interpretation of the First-Gospel in a
Christological and Mariological sense” (“Patristic Interpretation,” 122).
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
42
In The Testament o f Adam, dated between the second and fifth century A. D.,
Adam is depicted as educating Seth about the Lord's promise to him o f the coming virgin
birth wherein the Lord said “for your sake, I will be bom of the Virgin Mary.”2 Likewise,
The Book o f the Cave o f Treasures of the sixth century mentions that the Lord cut the
serpent's legs and promised Adam's redemption through the incarnation. “He shall
sojourn in a Virgin, and shall put on a body and through Him redemption and a return
Exegetes of this conviction delved into the textual analysis of Gen 3:15, armed
with ancient manuscripts like the Vulgate which support their idea. The Vulgate reads: “I
will put enmity between you and the woman, and your seed and her seed; she (other
manuscripts: he) shall crush your head, and you shall lie in wait for his heel”4 Jack Lewis
Making the woman to be the addressee had its influence in convincing interpreters
Testament o f Adam 3:1,3; cited in Lewis, “The Woman’s Seed,” 302. Cf. Charlesworth, Old
Testament Pseudepigrapha, 2:272,274.
3E. A. Wallis Budge, ed.. The Book o f the Cave o f Treasures (London: Religious Tract Society,
1927), 67.
'‘RQger, 107. RQger then argues that this translation, using the personal pronoun “she” (ipsa),
“no doubt has a mariologica! meaning, but it is rather unlikely that this reading represents Jerome’s text”
(ibid., 108). Saint Jerome “first quotes Gen 3:15 from the Old Latin ‘ipse servabit caput tuum et tu
servabis eius calcaneum (he shall observe your head, and you shall observe his heel),’ and then adds:
‘melius habet in hebraeo: ipse conteret caput tuum et tu conteres eius calcuneum (one has a better [text] in
the Hebrew: he shall crush your head, and you shall crush his heel).’ This makes it fairly certain that the
original Vulgate equivalent of Hebrew K1H was ‘he’ (ipse) rather than ‘she’ (ipsa)” (Saint Jerome’s
Hebrew Questions on Genesis, trans. C. T. R. Hayward [New York: Oxford University Press, 1995]).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
43
that the statement was a promise rather than a part of the curse on the serpent.
Once the pronoun ipsa got into the Latin translation, and once “her seed” was
elaborated into the terminology “woman’s seed” and what that term suggested,
there was really no way to exegete the passage apart from the idea of its
predicting the virgin birth.1
Charles Feinberg holds that this detail is included in the “form as well as intent”2
of the verse, coining the term “Particularistic Messianic interpretation”3 for it. He affirms:
Whether considered from the angle of the precise text of the passage, Scriptural
usage, the history of redemption as unfolded throughout the revelation of God, or
the basic requirements of the case, Genesis 3:15 is to be understood as teaching
the coming in ultimate victory over Satan o f the virgin-born Messiah, Redeemer,
and Son of God. The study of the Scriptural doctrine of the virgin birth of the
Lord Jesus Christ must begin with Genesis 3:15.4
Mariology necessarily sees Mary, rather than Eve, in the text of Gen 3:15. As
of the woman's seed”5 in this verse. It is also the source of such mariological doctrines as
Teinberg, 322.
Tbid.
4Ibid., 324. Concurring with him, though mildly, Herbert C. Leupold upholds that “not
primarily, but at least incidentally,” the particular expression “Seed of the woman” refers to Mary and the
virgin birth (Exposition o f Genesis, Barnes’ Notes on the Old Testament [Grand Rapids: Baker, 1953],
1:169). Leupold continues: “An expression is chosen that meets with literal fulfillment in Him who is
virgin bom and not the seed of man The expression used does not specifically prophesy the virgin
birth, but it coincides and agrees with it under divine providence” (ibid.).
Pink maintains that “her seed”-the woman’s seed, “not the man’s!” indicates “the first
announcement concerning the supernatural birth” (Pink, 42). Albertus Pieters underscores: “Very
remarkably, the man is completely ignored. . . not the seed of both together, or of the man The
position and part of the man is left wholly out of reckoning” (Notes on Genesis: For Minsters and Serious
Bible Students [Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1943], 87-88).
'Ronning, 36.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
44
her sinlessness, assumption, and co-redemption.1 This is the exclusive development of the
Catholic Church2 and this view pervades the interpretation of Gen 3:15 by Catholic
A close reading of Gen 3:14-15 has led several exegetes to observe a movement
in the text, not only from God's attention to the literal snake and symbolic serpent (Evil
force, Satan) but also from the collective figurative seed to a singular-individual
'Ibid., and also n. 36. He believes that “if the seed is properly taken as a collective (not just by
application), then Mary cannot be the woman (except as an anti-type of Eve)” (ibid.).
Ronning coins the term “hyper-marioiogicar in order to “distinguish from the mariological
interpretation, in which Mary is said to be ‘the woman’ predicted in Gen 3:15. The hyper-mariological
interpretation goes beyond this to elevate Mary from her place alongside the rest of the saints, even
‘blessed among women,’ to a role as co-redeemer with Christ, in which she crushes the serpent in a way
that other believers do not” (ibid., 32).
2A Papal Bull announcing the doctrine of Mary’s immaculate conception was issued by Pius IX
in 1854. For exhaustive studies on the development of the Virgin Birth doctrines, see: Saint Anselm,
Archbishop of Canterbury, Virgin Conception and Original Sin (Albany, NY: Magi, 1969); Thomas
David Boslooper, The Virgin Birth (Philadelphia: Westminster, 1962); Hans von Campenhausen, The
Virgin Birth in the Theology o f the Ancient Church, Studies in Historical Theology, 2 (London: SCM,
1964); Charles Gore, Dissertations on Subjects Connected with the Incarnation (New York: Charles
Scribner, 1895); John Gresham Machen, The Virgin Birth o f Christ (New York: Harper, 1932); and
Vincent Taylor, The Historical Evidencefo r the Virgin Birth (Oxford: Clarendon, 1920).
For Mariology see: Stephen Benko, The Virgin Goddess: Studies in the Pagan and Christian
Roots o f Mariology (Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1993); Elliot Miller and Kenneth R. Samples, The Cult o f the
Virgin: Catholic Mariology and the Apparitions o f Mary (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1992); Edward Dennis
O’Connor, ed., The Dogma o f the Immaculate Conception: History and Significance (Notre Dame, IN:
University of Notre Dame Press, 1958); Joseph Pohle, Mariology: A Dogmatic Treatise on the Blessed
Virgin Mary, Mother o f God (St Louis: Herder, 1953); William Bernard Ullathome, The Immaculate
Conception o f the Mother o f God: An Exposition (Westminster: Art and Book, 1905).
3See among numerous others: DeGuglielmo, “Mary in the Protoevangelium”; Peirce, “The
Protoevangelium”; Unger, “Patristic Interpretation;” idem, FG; and Vawter, A Path Through Genesis;
idem, On Genesis: A New Reading.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
45
Pareus made a distinction between Gen 3:15c and 15d. He maintained that the
“woman’s seed” in 15c is collective, not individual while the “He” in 15d is singular. He
emphasized that the athnach under the word zar'ah before 15d was significant. “God
placed it there so readers would not confuse this portion with what preceded it.”2 He
insisted that the “He” of 15d denoted “the Seed of the woman, that is, a certain one from
among the seed, as if he goes forth from the midst for battle, an athlete and hero more
robust and strong than the devil, certainly Christ.”3 He described the overlap between the
two expressions in 15c and 15d in that ‘“He’ was the Seed (singular) in that He was the
Pareus then enumerated his reasons for taking the Seed of the woman in Gen
1. The word “He” was used instead of a repetition of “his seed.” Thus, God
separated this portion of the verse from what preceded it. Pareus conceded the
weakness of this argument by hselfc but he argued that it be considered together
with the others.
2. The Septuagint rendered “He” with the word autos.
3. Opposed to the Seed in 15c stood not another seed, as in 15b, but the serpent
himself, an individual.
4. The word contereor, more generally, the idea of the fight and the mode of
victory suggested a single entity.
5. It took divine strength to crush Satan’s reign (Zechariah 3:2; Romans 16:20).
But the one prophesied would be both the Seed of the woman and God.
'Pareus’s book has been fully cited above. I have adjusted his reference to the parts of Gen 3:15
to follow my suggested divisions of the Hebrew text of this verse as presented on pages 119-120 below.
-Ibid., 35.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
46
6. God sometimes spoke individually of Christ as “Seed” (Gal 3:16; 1 Chr 17:11
[in which Seed was Christ; Solomon was not involved]; see also Isaiah 9:6).
7. Gen 3:15 attributed to this Seed the proper office of the Christ, namely, to
break the power of Satan (Pss 68:19; 110:6). David, Joshua, and Samson were only
types; Christ was victor over Satan directly.
8. The New Testament showed the fulfillment of this promise in Christ alone
(1 John 3:8; John 14:30; Luke 10:18; John 12:31; 1 Cor 15:54-55; Heb 2:14;
Rev 20:2).'
Pareus believes that Christians are drawn in with Christ as part of the “He” of
Gen 3:15c because what is said concerning the head also pertains “by participation to the
Satan bit Christ on the heel, but since Christ was the head, His death pertained to
the whole body. So Christians suffer and die with Him, and by virtue of His
victory they would daily fight sin, death, and Satan, and win.. . . Therefore under
this Seed, which is Christ, all the faithful are also contained.3
Keil and Delitzsch vividly saw both the collective and singular seed of the woman
in Gen 3:15. Taking a cue from the difference between the natural serpent (snake) and the
spiritual serpent (Satan), they distinguished between the woman’s natural Seed-the natural
Against the natural serpent the conflict may be carried on by the whole human
race, by all who are bom of woman, but not against Satan. As he is a foe who
can only be met with spiritual weapons, none can encounter him successfully but
such as possess and make use of spiritual arms. Hence, the idea of the “seed” is
modified by the nature of the foe.5
'Ibid., 36.
^ id ., 37.
5Ibi<L, 101.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
47
They verified their view by examining “the history of the human race”1which
spiritual condition of the physical descent of human beings. Seth's lineage, chosen out of
Adam and Eve's three sons, carried the human race to the time of Noah's flood. From
Shem’s lineage, the chosen out of Noah's three sons, came Abraham, the one chosen to
bless the world through his chosen seed, Isaac. They report:
The “seed,” to which the victory over Satan was promised, was spiritually or
ethically determined, and ceased to be co-extensive with physical descent. This
spiritual seed culminated in Christ, in whom the Adamic family terminated,
henceforward to be renewed by Christ as the second Adam, and restored by Him
to its original exaltation and likeness to God. In this sense Christ is the seed of the
woman, who tramples Satan under His feet, not as an individual, but as the head
both of the posterity of the woman which kept the promise and maintained the
conflict with old serpent before His advent, and also of all those who are gathered
out of all nations, are united to Him by faith, and formed into one body of which
He is the head (Rom. xvi. 20). On the other hand, all who have not regarded and
preserved the promise, have fallen into the power of the old serpent, and are to be
regarded as the seed of the serpent, whose head will be trodden under foot
(Matt, xxiil 33; John viii. 44; 1 John iii. 8).2
They quickly admit that “it does not follow. . . that by the seed of the woman we
are to understand one solitary person, one individual only. As the woman is the mother of
all living (ver. 20), her seed, to which the victory over the serpent and its seed is promised,
must be the human race.”3 He is aptly described as “the centre of the collective he, the
‘Ibid.
Tbid., 102.
3Ibid., 101.
Tranz Delitzsch, Old Testament History o f Redemption (Edinburgh: T & T Clark, 1881), 26. He
also emphasizes that notwithstanding the fact that victory is promised generally for the human race in this
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
48
The arch-foe of man is brought to the fore in that God speaks o f “thy head,” and
“thou shalt bruise.” There is a certain solidarity in the kingdom of evil, and that
solidarity appears in that the kingdom of evil is here hidden, as it were, behind its
head. In the ensuing enmity and conflict, it is not merely the seed o f the serpent
which will be wounded, nor is it merely from that kingdom that a bruise will be
inflicted upon the seed of the woman. Rather, it is the head of that kingdom
himself who is brought to the fore and the kingdom is as it were hidden behind
him. Here is to be a decisive victory. Not merely will the kingdom over which
the evil one rules be defeated, but the very head of that kingdom will receive the
capital blow.1
Young recognizes a correlating solidarity whereby the seed of the woman, which
includes “the entirety of humanity,”2embraces “both the good and the evil, the righteous
and the unrighteous”3 because “God deals with the world.”4 “Nevertheless, it is also true
that the way in which man will vanquish Satan is . . . Jesus Christ, who will obtain the
victory.. . . It is the seed of the woman as comprehended in the Redeemer that will
Meredith Kline agrees that the woman's seed consists of the righteous people
while the serpent's seed includes the wicked people. The first part of the verse entails the
collective for the seeds for each side of the combat. However, in the second part (Gen
conflict, since it is the tempter that is to be overcome, “we may consequently infer that the seed of the
woman will culminate in One” (idem, Messianic Prophecies, 27-29).
"Ibid., 119.
JIbid.
4Ibid. He adds: “The prophecy is uttered in general terms, and its primary meaning is that the
human race is to be victorious over the serpent” (ibid., 120).
5Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
49
3:15d-e), “a climactic battle in the holy war”1pitches an individual Seed as the federal
head of God’s kingdom and champion of the rest of the woman’s seed, against Satan.
“The all-decisive battle is a judgment ordeal by combat, fought by a champion from each
All the scholars mentioned above have neglected to examine the word 271T and
its referents within Gen 3:15 in detail. This is a serious inadequacy. This lack is the main
:Ibid., 83. “Mention of a wound to be suffered by the champion of the woman's army does not
throw in doubt the decisive victory he was to gain for them” (ibid., 89).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
CHAPTER ONE
elucidate the ramifications of the passage. This chapter begins with a brief textual analysis
Textual Analysis'
The Hebrew text of Gen 3 is practically problem-free.2 Some argue that they can
'Vinton A. Dearing states that Textual Analysts “determines the genealogical relationship
between different forms of the same message” (Principles and Practice o f Textual Analysis [Berkeley,
CA: University of California Press, 1974], 1). A message includes a mental phenomenon, visual images,
words, sounds, or meta-messages. Dealing further enumerates that Textual Analysis is the “determination
of the descent of texts” (A Manual o f Textual Analysis [Westport, CT: Greenwood, 1983], 3). Each
manuscript records and transmits different forms of the text. “The determination of the descent of
manuscripts” is also called Bibliographical Analysis (ibid.).
‘However, J. A. Soggin refers to the differences in the translations of Gen 3:2, some of which
insert a before the giving the reading, “of every tree of the garden” (“The Fall of Man in the
Third Chapter of Genesis,” in Old Testament and Oriental Studies, BibOr, 29 [Rome: Pontifical Biblical
Institute, 197S], 90). LXX has d u o JtavtO^ £uA.ot>, while the Vulgate has “de omni ligno” (ibid.).
“This is obviously not a true textual variant but a gloss to specify an otherwise vague reference, neither
adding nor subtracting anything in the text” (ibid., 91).
Some authors suspect at least two sources underlying the present text For example, I. Lewy,
“The Two Strata in the Eden Story,” HUCA 27 (1956): 93-99.
50
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
51
discern traces of an original in meter and rhyme of the story.1 Oesterley wrongly suggests
that the following words in Gen 3:1, “than any beast of the field which the Lord had
made,” were an unnecessary addition to the consonantal MT.2 The Syriac Version follows
the LXX in further adding “the Serpent” after “and he said,” in the same verse.
Oesterley’s main reason for objecting to this supposed addition is that “the whole
presentation of the Serpent is so emphatically alien to the idea of his being one o f ‘the
beasts of the field,’ that the words in question would be more appropriately omitted.”3
The text would have originally been: “The serpent was subtle (or crafty), and said to the
woman... There is no evidence in the text itself to support this theory of this phrase
being a later addition. This phrase is one of the connections within the whole creation
“Genesis. . . was very popular among the Qumranites. Both the number of
biblical manuscripts and the collection of scrolls involved with retelling its compelling
stories attest to this fact.”5 There were twenty-four manuscripts on Genesis alone, a
'Procksch, 35.
:W. O. E. Oesterley, The Evolution o f the Messianic Idea: A Study in Comparative Religion
(New York: E. P. Dutton, 1908), 76-77.
3lbid., 77.
4lbid. I strongly disagree with his position because the phrase in question has its function in
linking the serpent in 3:1 with 3:14. Moreover, it is needed to show that the serpent belonged to the
natural order of creation and not a supernatural creation.
’Martin Abegg, Jr., Peter Flint, and Eugene Ulrich, The Dead Sea Scrolls Bible: The Oldest
Known Bible Translatedfo r the First Time into English (New York: Harper Collins, 1999), 3-5.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
52
These Genesis manuscripts are “all relatively fragmentary and preserve only
thirty-two chapters among their crumbs. They do, however, reveal a text of Genesis that
is generally very close to the traditional Hebrew text.”2 In particular, the ones found at
Wadi Murabba'at, “dated according to their script,. . . are identical to the traditional
Hebrew text.”3
The importance and reliability of the Genesis manuscripts are underscored by the
fact that out of over eight hundred manuscript fragments found at Qumran, only four
contain the title of the scrolls, and the Genesis manuscripts happens to be one of these
The only extant portions of Gen 3 are 3:1-2 from 4QGenk; and 3:11-14 from
lQIGen. These verses from this manuscript are identical with the Hebrew text.6 This
'Ibid. The remains of possibly twenty manuscripts were unearthed at Qumran itself: one
manuscript each at lQGen, 2Gen, 6QGen, 8QGen, and 16 manuscripts in Cave 4. Four other
manuscripts were found at Wadi Murabba'at and south of Masada.
2Ibid.
3Ibid. The two (or possibly three) manuscripts from Wadi Murabba'at, which are “dated
according to their script,” were most likely created “at the beginning of the second century CE” (ibid.).
sIbid. 4Q12paleoGenmis dated from the middle of the second century BCE. At least two scrolls,
namely, 4QGen-Exod* and 4QpaieoGen-Exod', “contain both Genesis and Exodus, confirming an ancient
order for these two important books.”
6Ibid., 7.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
53
The Septuagint-LXX'
quality than that of the other parts of the Old Testament.2 Focusing on Gen 3:14-15, one
sees a great similarity with the Hebrew text. The LXX translation here appears very
literal. In fact, the early chapters of Genesis were an “exact and literal representation” o f a
Hebrew Vorlage to the MT.3 John Wevers asserts that the LXX translators followed the
consonantal text o f MT, trying to translate into Greek “what they believed God intended
In several instances, LXX follows the Hebrew word order, including prepositions,
adverbs, and articles, at the risk of translating it into “unidiomatic and wooden Greek.”3
The introductory speech of Gen 3:14 demonstrates this. “Both Hebrew and Greek begin
with a conjunction, which is followed by a main verb, a subject (the divine name and title
'I have followed the Rahlf s edition of the LXX for the most pan.
2Martin, 427. Cf. Henry Barclay Swete, An Introduction to the Old Testament in Greek
(Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1902), 315 passim; and Henry St. John Thackeray, Grammar o f
the Old Testament in Greek: According to the Septuagint (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press,
1909), 13 passim.
4John William Wevers, Notes on the Greek Text o f Genesis, Septuagint and Cognate Studies
Series. 35 (Atlanta, GA: Scholars, 1993), xii-xiii. He believed that the MT was treated as a sacrosanct
canonical text by the LXX translators who were very intentional, slavish and faithful to the received text,
rather than being haphazard.
The Pentateuch was very prominent in ancient Judaism and thus would have been copied with
extreme caution and interest in its wording. The LXX was the synagogal Scriptures in Alexandria.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
54
occurring in the same order), and an indirect object with the article.”1 This shows how
and used laboriously four times in Gen 3:15. This would have been unnecessary but for
the way the Greek translations seem to faithfully follow the Hebrew.2 This
overpreoccupation with following the underlying Hebrew text caused the LXX translators
In the LXX translation, Gen 2:25 [MT/Eng.] equals 3:1; hence 3:14-15
[MT/Eng.] equals 3:15-16. Gen 3:14 reads: “Kal eiuev Kiipioc o 0€cx; tqj 8<|>€i',O t i
euoCqoac; xoCto, emKaxdpaxcx; ai) airo ndvTcov taw Krqwjv Kai duo udvxcou
tcov Gripicov zt \q y f\? cttI Tq> oxf|0€L oou Kal tfj koiAux uopeuofl Kal yfjv
4mxyt) TTaoa; tat; qpepag xfjc Cun); oou” (LXX Gen 3:14).
This can be translated: “And the Lord God said to the serpent, Because thou hast
done this thou art cursed above all cattle and all the brutes of the earth, on thy breast and
belly thou shalt go, and thou shalt eat earth all the days of thy life.”
'Ibid., 42, including n. 121. He continues: “The Greek becomes awkward or clumsy where it
translates the nominal sentence in 3.14: TiriK THK as CTiKaxapaxoc oi), without the copula” (ibid.).
See Ilmari Soisalon-Soininen, Stitdien zur Septuaginta-Syntax, Suomalaisen Tiedeakatemian Toimituksia
Annates Academia; Scientiarium Fennicae, Ser. B, vol. 237 (Helsinki: Suomelainen Tiedeakatemia, 1987),
79.
:Andrews, 42. Morever, “a relatively common Septuagintal Hebraism can be found in vs. 16,
where the Greek tries to render the infinitive absolute with a finite verb and a circumstantial (adverbial)
participle of the same verb” (ibid.). Compare Thackeray, 47-48.
3Ibid., 43. Andrews adds: “Unlike BHS, neither Rahlfs’s edition nor the Gdttingen text makes
any attempt to arrange the passage in lines, it may be noted that other parts of Genesis ore set out in
poetic form in these Greek editions: 4.23-24; 9.25-27; 2121-29,39-40; 49.1-27” (ibid., un. 123).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
55
The passage continues in Gen 3:15: “Kai exOpav 0no<u ava peoov oou Kai
ava peoov xf\Q yuvaiKoc; Kai ava jieoov tou oirepnatot; oou Kai ava peoov
tou OTreppatoc; autfv;* autoc; oou TT]pfjaei K6<t>aA.Tiv, Kai oi) tT)pt|0€Lc; autou
This has been translated: “And I will put enmity between thee and the woman and
between thy seed and her seed, he shall watch against thy head, and thou shalt watch
The “beasts of the field” (HISH I"ITI) in Gen 3:14 is translated in LXX as T(I>v
0T|pL(i)v rfj<; yfy;, that is, “beasts of the earth.” rn ® rt n*n appears four times in the
book o f Genesis and thirty-one times in the OT. This phrase is translated very literally by
the four times that it appears in Genesis. In its appearance in the creation narrative (Gen
2:19,20), this phrase is translated as aypoO “field,” but rendered as yfy; “earth” twice
(Gen 3:1, 14) in connection with the serpent. The translator might have assumed that the
“earth” as opposed to “field” was more related to the serpent’s sphere of life.2
'Ibid., 43. He mentions the four exceptions as: Gen 3:1, 14; Exod 23:29, and Lev 26:22 (ibid., n.
126).
Tbid., 44. yfjc is used to translate 1ST in 3:14, 19; HOTtt in 3:17,19; and THO in 3:14.
“Perhaps the sheer number of times yfj is employed (six times) in six verses is an indication that its use
serves some stylistic purpose in making the text sound more solemn” (ibid.).
According to Johann Cook, yq is used in Genesis to translate 2% times (95%) out of the 311
uses of fn tt; 43 times (98%) out ofthe 44 uses of HOIK; 5 times (55%) out of the 9 uses of “IStf; and
4 times out of the 48 uses of HltD (“The Exegesis of the Greek Genesis,” Volumefo r the 6** Congress o f
the International Organisationfor Septuagint and Cognate Studies, Jerusalem, 1986, ed. Claude E. Cox,
Septuagint and Cognate Studies Series, 23 [Atlanta: Scholars, 1987], 91-125). See also Andrews, 44, n.
127.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
56
In Gen 3:14 where the MT reads: “upon your abdomen (belly) shall you go,”
' f f i r h s , the LXX translates “upon your breast and your abdomen (belly) shall
you go,” 6TTi tcJ> orn0€i oou Kal trj k o i Xlq: tropeuor). This is the “first significant
departure” from the Hebrew text and is the only recorded use of the expression that
The LXX’s addition of the “breast” seems to make the curse on the serpent “more
dramatic,”2 to clear up “an inherent vagueness in the text,”3 and to “explicate the
underside of the snake”4 showing that the “whole length of the snake is involved.”3 This
further “intensifies the sense of humiliation and degradation which is the effect of God's
judgment on the serpent (i.e., it can now scarcely raise its head from the ground), and may
'Andrews, 44. Andrews remarks: “It is unlikely that the translator thought that the Hebrew
required two words in order to make the text’s meaning plain. In Leviticus 11.42, the only other
occurrence of ]1l*I3, in a passage prohibiting the eating of creatures which crawl on the ground, the
Septuagint translates it with the one term koiA u^. Other instances of o-rqBoq both within and outside
the Pentateuch demonstrate that it refers to the breast, and not the abdomen. On the assumption, then,
that KOlAia and ]Tt3 are lexical equivalents, it is probable that orqBoq was the added term” (ibid.).
Exod 28:29-30; Prov 6:10; 24:48; and Dan 2:32 are examples showing that OTfjSoc is used
exclusively for “breast,” separately from “abdomen.” Andrews continues: “It ought to be noted, however,
that while orrjBoq is not missing in any manuscript or translation, the phrase Kal tfj KOlAia is
omitted in an Ethiopic translation This means that the Ethiopic supports the MT ‘in having only one
phrase.’ Surprisingly, Jerome was of the opinion that ‘and abdomen’ was the term added by the Greek
translator” (ibid., 44, n. 129). See Centrum LXX interpretes addiderunf' (Hebraicae Questiones in Libro
Geneseos at 3.14).
:Andrews, 44.
}Ibid., 44-45.
‘John W. Wevers, “An Apologia for Septuagint Studies,” Bulletin o f the International
Organizationfo r Septuagint and Cognate Studies 18(1985): 33.
5Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
57
Another important implication of LXX wording of this text is that the translator
was “less interested in the story as an etiology about why serpents crawl than he is
the serpent’s food “dust” OSB) with “earth” (yf|), a more general term, instead of xou<;,
a more specific term, seems to indicate the translator’s “lack of interest in the story’s
etiological potential.”3
The LXX uses the phrase “to consume (or devour) the earth” metaphorically for
destruction in all instances beyond Gen 3:14. The subject can be fire (Deut 32:22), a
people (tribe of Dan in Jer 8:16), or a hostile foreign power (the 4th or last beast in Dan
7:23).4
The LXX renders the obscure Hebrew verb *|112?, used twice in Gen 3:15, as
derived both times from the root TTipcG).5 The other certain occurrence of *]}©, in Job
9:17, is translated with €KTpt(ki), “to rub, wear out.” The third occurrence in Ps 139:11
'Andrews, 45. It might be that the translators felt that the serpent used to stand erect before this
curse, having arms and legs, which were amputated at that time. He cites a personal indication of R. P.
Gordon that the translator possibly made “a pun on the phrase ‘beast of the HI® since the Hebrew for
‘breast’ is 1®. He, however, rejected this suggestion because 1® ‘is used almost exclusively of women,
and the LXX reserves paOToq for this term (cf. Gen 49.25)” (ibid., n. 131).
:Ibid., 45.
3Ibid. Aquila used xouq for this text. The LXX of Mic 7:17 also refers to the serpent food, but
uses xoOq instead of yfj used in Gen 3:14: “They will lick dust (xouv) like a serpent”
sAquiia’s Greek translation of Gen 3:15 uses trpocmriPu, “to rub against”; while Ephiphanius
has (fiuArtoocj and Symmachus uses 0A.l|3cj.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
58
is uncertain.'
The LXX’s choice of rrpea) is not easy to explain. Its meaning varies from “to
watch” (cf. Prov 23:26; Eccl 11:4; Jer 20:20; Dan 6:12; 2 Macc 14:29; Jdt 12:16); “to
guard or protect” (cf. 2 Esdr 8:29; Prov 4:23; 1 Macc 4:61); “obeying” (cf. 1 Kgs 15:11;
Tob 14:3; Prov 3:1, 21); “to watch in order to destroy,”2 to “to lie in wait.”3
Stephen Andrews suggested three possibilities for the LXX’s choice of Tipeo) in
Gen 3:15.4 First, the translator might have been aware of another meaning for ppE? or
one of its cognates.3 Second, a translator who did not know the meaning of may
have conjectured one.6 Lastly, he might have mistaken 10® for himself or simply
'The use of the verb to describe the action of the serpent in Gen 3:15 is difficult to define,
seeing that the usual word for serpent’s ability to bite is “to bite.” Whenever this verb occurs in the
literal sense, it always has a snake or serpent as its subject. See Milton C. Fisher, “^$3,” TWOT(1980),
2:604. An example is Num 21:6,8. The LXX translates it as 5okvu).
3Marguerite Harl, La Bible d'Alexandrie: La Genese (Paris: Edution du Cerf., 1986), 108.
Andrews posits: “Because of the serpent’s characteristic as a deceiver (Genesis 3.13), it seems most likely
that ’lying in wait’ is the sense of TT]p€(i) employed here” (Andrews, SO).
4Andrews, 50-51.
5Alison Saivesen cites the example of its likely relation to the Arabic saffa, 10mform, meaning
“look through” (Symmachus in the Pentateuch, Journal of Semitic Studies Monographs, 15 [Manchester.
England: The Victoria University of Manchester, 1991], 14).
6Such translation pattern is discussed in Emmanuel Tov, “Did the Septuagint Translators Always
Understand Their Hebrew Text?” in De Septuaginta: Studies in Honour o f John William Wevers on His
Sixty-fifth Birthday, ed. Albert Pitersma and Claude Cox (Mississauga, Ontario: Benben, 1984), 53-70:
and idem, “The Septuagint,” 170-171. Wevers suggests that “the translator relies on his knowledge of
snakes and people’s relation to them," in order to find a verb for both actions, that is, rripeo), meaning “to
watch carefully” (“Apologia,” 33). Alexandre, on his part, is convinced that the translator was avoiding
taking a strong position on this difficult verse by using a single general word that fits the actions of both
the serpent and the woman’s seed (316).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
59
Aramaic.1
Ronald Hendel takes the position that from the MT of Gen 3:15
becomes TipTjoei in LXX, thus reflecting the Hebrew * p O \ This is a graphic confusion
of 3 /3. So also, MT has 13SflOri whereas the LXX has TT)piTO€L<; which comes from
Andrews rightly concludes from the deviation of the LXX from the Hebrew word
'Further discussions on the Targums Onkelos, Pseudo-Jonathan, and Neofiti are below. The root
word *1(33 means “observe.” Meanwhile, it is interesting to observe, along with Andrews, the possibility
of a wordplay based on the assonance between *1(93 and t i p - (Andrews, 51, n. 153).
Donald S. Hendel, The Text o f Genesis I-l I: Textual Studies and Critical Edition (New York:
Oxford University Press, 1998), 126-127.
5Andrews, 51. He refers to such a pattern in an 111" century minuscule (ibid., n. 154). Wevers
remarks on the LXX translators’ use of pronominal modifiers (“Apologia,” 32).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
60
Aramaic and it is also Palestinian in origin.1 Gen 3:15 is “translated carefully, so it seems
likely that the translator did not regard this passage as poetry.”2 It is translated as
follows:3
:k s id S r r S nea T in n m ^ a n p S a rrS m a i n n a T a n k t
Below is the English translation given by Moses Aberbach and Bernard Grossfeld,
along with my suggested corrections and clarifications (which harmonize with the MT) in
italics:4
(Vs. 14) And the Lord God said to the serpent, 'Because you have done this, cursed
are you beyond all the cattle and beyond all the wild beasts; on your belly you shall
crawl, and dust you shall eat all the days of your life. (Vs. 15) And I will put enmity
'It is viewed as an anempt to translate the scriptures into Aramaic authoritatively. John Bowker
dates this a part of the trend in “Judaism from the second century A.D. onward to provide. . . a safeguard
against Christian interpretations of Scripture based on LXX” (The Targums and Rabbinic Literature: An
Introduction to Jewish Interpretations o f Scripture [Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1969], 24-
25).
Philip Alexander affirms that the Aramaic of Targum Onqelos is closely related to that of
Genesis Apocryphon, containing some, though comparatively limited, interpretative elements (“Jewish
Aramaic Translations of Hebrew Scriptures,” in Mikra: Text. Translation, Reading, and Interpretation o f
the Hebrew Bible in Ancient Judaism and Early Christianity, ed. M. J. Mulder, Compendia rerum
iudaicarum ad Novum Testamentum, 2 (Van Gorcum: Assen/Maastricht, 1988), 242). See also Geza
Vermes, “Haggadah in the Onkelos Targum,” in Post-Biblical Jewish Studies (Leiden: Brill, 1975), 127-
138.
:Andrews, 65, n. 196. The translator also paraphrases Gen 49 though it is clearly poetic in the
MT.
3Moses Aberbach and Bernard Grossfeld, Targum Onkelos to Genesis: A Critical Analysis
Together with an English Translation o f the Text (New York: Ktav, 1982), 37.
4Ibid., 36.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
61
between you [singular] and the woman, and between your [singular] children and
her children, [+ emphatic he], they [he] will remember what you did to them [him]
in ancient times, and you will preserve (your hatred) for them to the end (of time).
living outside the area of human habitation.”1 However, in vs. 15, a couple of alterations
are made to the MT. For example, TO uses defective plural forms of ]2 for IHT , which
may connote “mankind,” though retaining the singular masculine pronouns of the MT.2
The next alteration is the Hebrew verb used twice in vs. 15. TO renders it as
"CT, meaning “to mention” or “to remember” in the first instance, and as 1CS3, meaning
“to guard, watch, keep, observe” in the second occurrence. The second verb 1J23 can also
mean “to keep in memory.”3 This shows an overlap between the two verbs used by TO.
hiss”). Hissing is “an action characteristic of the serpent when aroused to anger and hate
Tewis, “The Woman’s Seed,” 301. Bernard Grossfeld discovered that TO usually uses ]2,
rendered “children, of&pring, or descendants,” whenever the Hebrew term IHT “refers to humans
exclusively, or to humans and animals”; while it retains I7HT “where the Hebrew has reference to plant
life” (47). Andrews accepts this as an indication of the “translator’s tendency to substitute more concrete
and realistic terms for more abstract and figurative expressions” (Andrews, 65). Such is also evidenced in
vs. 16.
3Michael Sokoloff A Dictionary ofJewish Palestinian Aramaic o f the Byzantine Period (Ramat-
Gan, Israel: Bar Han University Press, 1990), 348. It is sometimes used to replace the word "lQtf. Cf. TO
fix’ Gen 27:41; Targum Pseudo-Jonathan, Gen 37:4,5,8; and the gloss to Targum Neofiti, Gen 27:41.
4This shows a likely overlap of the LXX tradition with the TO. The TO translator might have
had a Greek source before him. Striking enough is the assonance mentioned earlier, between "103 and
TT)p-.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
62
and about to strike.”1 Hissing and hatred are associated closely in some Midrashic
passages like Genesis Rabba XVI, 4, which “alludes to Media whose people Hainan
inflamed (with hate); (alternative version: whose eyes Hainan inflamed [with hate] like a
serpent.).”2 Also, Esther Rabba Proem 5 “alludes to Haman who hissed at the people (with
Grossfeld also postulated that revolves around *]RB (“long for”). Hence,
the TO translator deduced “the somewhat related roots o f ‘to remember’ and ‘to
The MT’s CRH (head) is taken by TO “in the abstract sense o f ‘beginning,’ ‘in
antiquity,’ ‘in ancient times.’ Likewise, MT 3£S7 (heel) is understood by TO, in contrast
to BR1 (beginning) as ‘end,’ i.e., until the end of time.”s This takes cognizance of a
time line stretching from creation to the Messianic era and the eschatological end of the
world.6
some tradition of interpretation. The literal text is seen in conflict with this tradition in the
points of alteration discussed above. This will be seen in the other Targums below.
:Ibid.
’Ibid., 37.
'Grossfeld, 47, n. 9.
’Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
63
Palestinian Targums
The extant Palestinian Targums which will be considered include Targum Neofiti
1, Targum Pseudo-Jonathan (PJ), and Fragmentary Targum. Though the Targum Onqelos
is also related to Palestinian as mentioned above, these contain a fuller treatment of Gen
3:14-15, almost twice as long as both the MT and TO. They tend to reflect more
homiletical and judiciary expansions and are more wordy and interpretative.
I will now proceed to briefly examine each of the Palestinian Targums in order to
see the peculiarity of each and how each contributes to our understanding o f Gen 3:14-15.
'See Alejandro Diez Macho, ed., Neophyti I: Targum Palestinense ms. de la Biblioteca
Vaticadicion principe, introduccion y version castellana (Madrid: Consejo Superior de Investigaciones
Cientificas, 1979).
R e p ro du ced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
64
(Vs. 14) And the Lord God said to the serpent, ‘Because you have done this, you
shall be cursed, O serpent, above all the cattle and above all the beasts that are on
the face of the field. Upon your belly you shall crawl, and dust shall be your
food all the days of your life. (Vs. 15) And I will put enmity between you and the
woman, and between your sons and her sons. And it shall come to pass that
when her sons keep the Law and do the precept they shall aim at you and smite
you on the head and kill you. And when they forsake the precepts of the Law
you shall aim at and bite him in the heel and wound him. For her sons, however,
there shall be a remedy, and for you, serpent, there shall be no remedy; for they
are to make cure for the heel m the days of the King Messiah.
TN 1 is more literal than all the other Palestinian Targums. “Following a pattern
that recurs in many other verses, the first half of this verse is translated quite literally (bnh
may be singular or plural), but, the last six words have generated many lines of midrashic
text.”2
Targum Neofiti 1 has several unique characteristics. First and foremost, the use
of the vocative “O serpent” in vs. 14, and “serpent” in vs. 15 “gives more force to the oral
presentation of the targum.”3 In a bid to make the Hebrew text clearer, it adds to the
Hebrew wordings: “beasts of the field” (ITltSn flTt), making it “the beasts that are on
'Martin McNamara, The New Testament and the Palestinian Targum to the Pentateuch, Analecta
Biblica 27a (Rome: Biblical Institute, 1978), 218-219.
!B. Barry Levy, Targum Neophyti I: A Textual Study, vol. 1, Introduction, Genesis. Exodus
(Lanham, MD: University Press of America, 1986), 96. Levy put the Targum Neofiti side-by-side with
the MT and demonstrated that: “Notwithstanding the departure from the literal translation in the second
half of the verse, there are clear references in the midrashic passage to the original Hebrew” (ibid., 97).
He admits: “Since the curse applies to the descendants of the women, not just to her, the midrash in effect
updates the text to apply to the listeners as current doctrine” (ibid., 96).
3Ibid., 95. See also the Fragmentary Targum (V) for Gen 3:15. A. Shinan calls this a homiletic
feature preserved from the Targum’s oral stage, designed to add vigor to the hearing of the listening
audience (“Echoes from Ancient Synagogues: Vocatives and ‘Emendations’ in the Aramaic Targums to
the Pentateuch,” JQR 91 [1991]: 357). Andrews suggests that this “may also reflect the phraseology of a
judicial pronouncement” (Andrews, 68).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
65
here influenced by the underlying Hebrew text, or he may have taken ‘sons’ as a
collectivity.”1 This abrupt and intentional shift to the third-person singular should also be
Ernest Clarke and others presented the Aramaic of Targum Pseudo-Jonathan as:3
'McNamara, New Testament and the Palestinian Targum, 219. Some describe this shift as due to
scribal error, or that it is a collective singular. “Son” also becomes “they” later on in this verse. Mignel
Perez Fernandez, Tradiciones messianicas en el Targum Palestinense: Estudios exegeticos, Institucion
San Jeronimo, 12 (Valencia, Spain: Artes Graficas Soler, 1981), 43. Levey declares that “Neophyti 1 has
a confusion of person, reading ‘you will aim and wound him,’ etc.” (The Messiah: An Aramaic
Interpretation, 148).
*1 see a link with the LXX and TO, in support of the MT, in seeing a narrowing from the plural
to the singular, signifying a messianic understanding. Contra McNamara, who argues that “The
Messianic interpretation of the Palestinian Targum is connected with 3pS7, ‘the heel/ not with the ‘the
seed.’ 2p3 is first rendered literally and then taken in its transferred sense o f‘final period, end of the
days’ which is considered to be Messianic times” (New Testament and the Palestinian Targum, 219-220).
He further combats that “there can be no question of taking it to refer to the Messiah, seeing that the
paraphrase informs us that this ‘seed,’ i.e., the son or sons of the woman, might not observe the precept of
the Law. Such would be inconceivable for the Messiah” (ibid., 220).
'Ernest G. Clarke et al., Targum Pseudo-Jonathan o f the Pentateuch: Text and Concordance
(Hoboken, NJ: Ktav, 1984), 4.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
66
(Vs. 14) And the Lord God brought the three of them to judgment, and he said
unto the serpent, ‘Because thou hast done this, cursed art thou above all cattle,
and above every beast of the field; upon thy belly shah thou go, and your feet will
be cut off, and your skin you will cast off once in every seven years, and the
poison of death will be in your mouth, and dust shalt thou eat all the days of thy
life.
(Vs. 15) And I will put enmity between thee and the woman, and between the seed
of your offspring and the seed of her offspring; and h shall be that when the
offspring of the woman keep the commandments of the Law, they will aim right
(at you) and they will smite you on the head; but when they abandon the
commandments of the Law, you will aim right (at them), and you will wound
them in the heel. However, for them there will be a remedy, but for you there
will be none, and in the future they will make peace with the heel in the days of
the king, Messiah.
especially concerning Gen 3:14. The verse seems to be a general introduction for
everything that follows from vss. 14-19. Here it announces that “the Lord God brought
me that this supports the structural consideration that 3:14-19 is unified, and that the other
judgments in vss. 16-19 are subsets of and subordinate to the judgment of the serpent in
vss. 14-15.2
‘Bowker, 122.
:See more details below in the section on literary and structural analysis of Gen 3:14-19.
Andrews observed that “the passage begins and ends with a reference to 'judgment’ (K H , repeated in vs.
19). This inclusio would seem to set the context of the passage, and perhaps highlights the importance of
‘judgment’ for the translator” (Andrews, 68).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
67
definite regarding the identity o f the serpent, Samael, the adversary of God and man.2
“her seed.” Andrews calls this “cumbersome,” and an “attempt at both interpretation
(e m an atin g from an attempt to be more concrete) and fidelity to the Hebrew text.”3
Fragmentary Targums
There are two manuscripts, namely the Fragmentary Targum (V) and the Paris
Text, each lacking vs. 14. Frag. Tg. (V) contains only vss. 15 and 18 within the unit of
Gen 3:14-19. Michael Klein renders the translation of vs. 15 from it as follows:4
•pj is alone in this specific elaboration except in some rabbinic texts. For example, Gen. R. xx. 5
is said to have stated that “Ministering angels descended and cut off its hands and feet” Further on in the
same passage, Gen. R. says that God had created the serpent to walk upright like a man. Rabbi Eliezer
also said: . . (God) decreed that it (the Serpent) should cast its skin and suffer pain once in seven years
. . . and the gall of asps, and death is in its (the serpent’s) mouth” (Pirque de Rabbi Eliezer [PR£\ 14: 99).
Josephus agrees with much of these also (Jewish Antiquities i.50).
Bowker posits that this elaboration “was based on observation of the present appearance of
snakes, interpreted in terms of punishment” (127). This trend of elaborating on the serpent’s condition is
also seen in PJ Exod 7:9, where the translator relates that the serpent was made naked before “all
creation.”
:See Bowker, 125-126; Leon Domingo Mufioz, Dios-Palabra: Memra en los Targumim del
Pentateuco (Granada: Editorial Imprenta Santa Rita, 1974), 125-135; and Michael J. Maher, Targum
Pseudo-Jonathan: Genesis, The Aramaic Bible, vol. IB (Collegeville, MN: Liturgical. 1992).
’Andrews, 70. This is a similar feature in the Paris text of the Fragment Targum of Gen 3:15.
‘Michael L. Klein, ed., The Fragment Targums o f the Pentateuch: According to Their Extant
Sources, Analecta Biblica, 76 (Rome: Biblical Institute Press, 1980), 1:46.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
68
And I will put enmity between the serpent and the woman, and between the
offspring of your children and the offspring of her children; and it will come to be
that when the woman’s children toQ in the torah and keep the commandments
they will take aim and strike you on your head and kill you; and when the
woman’s children refrain from toiling in the Torah and from keeping the
commandments you will take aim and bite them on their heels and afflict them;
however, there will be a remedy for the children of the woman, whereas for you
there will not be any remedy; for indeed they shall appease one (another) in the
final end of days, in the days of the King Messiah.
Frag. Tg. (V) also evidences a vocative, “O serpent,” showing the force in its oral
presentation which is lacking in the Paris text even though their translation is similar.
Moreoever, the Paris text, Frag. Tg. (P), begins vs. 15 with a sentence not found in the
Frag. Tg. (V): “And enmity: And I will put enmity between the serpent and between the
woman, and between the seed of your sons and between the seed of her sons.”2
third-person address (‘the serpent’ instead o f ‘you’) and then switching to the second-
The Fragmentary Targums state clearly that the seed of the woman, the Law-
3Ibid., 70. Andrews probes whether the third party is the reader or the divine assembly.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
69
obeying community, “shall make peace with one another in the end.”
While all of the three Palestinian Targums give similar witnesses to Gen 3:15, the
Fragmentary Targums omit vs. 14. This may indicate the “strength and importance of Gen
3:15 in ancient Jewish exegesis.”1 These Targums emphasize the serpent’s defeat through
the keeping of the Law and all refer to the coming messianic age, thus pointing to a
The idea of obedience to the Law comes from the Targums’ understanding of the
Hebrew word as 1£S3 (“to guard” or “keep”). “The association o f ‘keeping’ with
‘cursing’ in a context describing punishment and retribution”3 must naturally have evoked
the subject of Torah observance in the minds of the Targum translators since such a link is
paramount in the Scriptural blessing and cursing passages like Deut 28:1-68; 30:15-20/
Torah.”3 The subject of root "1CD3 (which the Targums use to replace the Hebrew *110) is
'Ibid., 69.
:Ibid., 70, n. 216, enumerates their lack of textual interdependence and points out their stylistic
differences in their attempt to reflect and smoothen the Hebrew text.
3lbid., 71.
4Ibid.
5Ibid., 73.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
70
prospering because of their faithfulness to the Torah continually resurfaces in the Targum,
with the use of plural in Gen 3:15. They then predict a clear victory over the serpent for
the woman’s offspring. Extending the meaning of to cover “to keep, smite, and
peace,” the translators visualized eventual peace among the people obedient to the Law,
following the defeat of the serpent.2 This is expected to happen “in the days of the King
Messiah.”
This messianic understanding results from extending the meaning to the Hebrew
Aramaic 2 'p 2 , to mean “the end of the age.”3 Furthermore, the translators may
Ps 89:52/ The people might have thought that “national obedience to Torah would itself
'See Roger Le Deaut, Targum du Pentateuque: Traduction des deux Recensions palestiniennes
compleetes avec Introduction, Paralleeles, Notes et index, in collaboration with Jacques Robert, 3 vols..
Sources chreetiennes, 245 (Paris: Editions du Cert 1978), 1:94-95. Le Deaut cites PJ Gen 25:23; Tg.
Neof. (M) Gen 27:22; TO, PJ, Tgs Neof., Gen 30:18; PJ Num 24:14; Tg. Neof. Deut 33:29.
2Andrews, 72. All the Palestinian Targums mention the eventual peace. “Peace” was an addition
to the text which was derived from a play on words. Bowker cites: “The Hebrew text has yeshupheka and
teshuphenu (bruise); Ps. Jon. has shephiyutha (‘peace’)” (127-128).
3R0ger denies that this verse has anything to do with the Christological interpretation which
points to Christ or Mary. He defends, rather, that “in the Palestinian Targums the mention of ‘King
Messiah’ merely serves to specify the date on which ‘the sons of the woman . . . are going to make peace
(among each other)” (109). Andrews accepts that “this may reflect a naive idea of the ancient view of the
Messiah and his relationship to the community of Israel,” noting that Targum Neofiti of Gen 49:10-12
portrays King Messiah as a warrior (Andrews, 73, n. 225).
‘Andrews, 73. See m. Sotah. McNamara finds no Messianic interpretation of Gen 3:15 in
Rabinnic sources: “A midrash similar to the PT Gn3:15 is referred to in the Zohar but has no reference to
the Messiah The references to Gen 3:15 found in Jubilees, 1 Enoch, Josephus, and Philo given by J.
Michl, pp. 381-8, have no parallel to the PT on the verse. Neither do the notes of L. Ginzberg to the
midrash offer a true parallel” (New Testament and the Palestinian Targum, 220). See also Kasher, 132, n.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
71
usher in the messianic age (or conversely, that the messianic age would bring about perfect
fidelity to Torah).”1 Since Gen 3:15 promises healing as a result of keeping the Torah,
this was probably related to the Messiah who “brings about the fulfilment of the Torah.”2
It is generally believed by scholars that ancient Jewish tradition found its way, at
one point or the other, into the Syriac Peshitta.3 Striking parallels have also been observed
between the Peshitta and the LXX.4 However, the Peshitta text of Gen 3:14-15 appears
53.
McNamara continues: “The nearest parallel I have been able to find to the PT paraphrase is a
saying of R. Levi (PA 3, c. 320) according to which ‘in the future world all will be healed except the
serpent and the Gibeonite’ (Gen. R. 20 to 3,15). This PT paraphrase is, then, very probably a very old one
and, considered in itself has every chance of being pre-Christian” (New Testament and the Palestinian
Targum, 220-221).
'Andrews, 73.
JIbid. P6rez Fernandez makes a connection between the Messiah and healing (68-73) and
presents an elaborate discussion on the Messiah and the Torah (ibid., 73-84). Rabbi Levi said: “In the
Messianic age all will be healed save the serpent and the Gibeonite” (Genesis Rabbah 20:5).
'See Peter B. Dirksen, “The Old Testament Peshitta,” in Mikra, ed. Martin J. Mulder, CRINT,
Il/l (Philadelphia: Fortress, 1988), 259-265. Andrews give details of relevant sources on the various
opinions about the Peshitta’s origin and development (Andrews, 83-84). Bruce K. Waltke defines the
term Peshitta as “‘the simple [translation],’ and it refers to the Syriac Bible (Syr)” (“Old Testament
Textual Criticism,” in Foundationsfo r Biblical Interpretation: A Complete Library o f Tools and
Resources, ed. David S. Dockerey et al. [Nashville, TN: Broadman & Holman, 1994], 167).
4J. HSnel, Die aufiermasorethischen Gbereinstimmungen zwischen der Septuaginta und der
Peschittha in der Genesis, BZAW, 20 (Griefien, n.p., 1911).
5Andrews, 85. See Martin J. Mulder, “The Use of the Peshitta in Textual Criticism,” in La
Septuaginta en la Investigacion Contemporanea (V Congreso de la IOSCS), ed. N. Fernandez Marcos
(Madrid, Spain: Instituto “Arias Montano” CSIC, 1985), 52.
Andrews comments: “The Peshitta shares a targum-like penchant for clearing up ambiguity in
the Hebrew text. In the following places it is alone among the Versions in the additions (indicated by the
R e p ro du ced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
72
(Vs. 14) And the Lord God said to the serpent, “Because you have done this,
cursed are you above all the cattle and above all the beasts of the field. And upon
your belly shall you go, and you shall eat dust all the days of your life.
(Vs. 15) And I will put enmity between you and the woman, and between your
offspring and her offspring. He shall trample your head, and you shall strike his
heel.”
Unlike the LXX, but very much like the Palestinian Targums, the Peshitta uses
two verbs to translate the senses of the Hebrew word The first verb is dws
Another vivid case of narrowing is reflected in the Peshitta as the term “seed” is
followed by the singular pronoun “He.” This supports a messianic reading, following the
Latin Versions
Latin translations of the Bible, based on the LXX, started in the early period, as
Tertullian is believed to have used one in the later half of the 2nd century AD.3 The text in
italics): 'and the serpent said to the woman' (Gen 3:1); ‘where are you, AdamT (Gen 3:9); 'and the Lord
said' (Gen 3:11). This striving for clarity is a feature of most ancient translations” (Andrews, 86, n. 277).
'Andrews wonders if Peshitta is here following the Targum tradition to imply the serpent’s defeat
(Andrews, 86). Ephraem sees a natural snake in the text which has become Satan’s tools (Sancti
Ephraem Syri in Genesim el in Exodum Commentarii, ed. and trans. R. M. Tonneau, Corpus scripturam
Christianorum Orientaiium, 1S2, 1S3, Scriptores Syri, vols. 71,72 [Louvain: L. Durbecq, 19S5], 32-34,
42-44). Cf. Budge, 63-68; and Levene, 77.
^Ephraem makes a Christological comment on the verse: “The blessed Infant crushed the head of
the serpent that bruised [Eve]” (De Nativitate 132; 22.31.3; 26.8.5-8; De Virginitate 37.1.5-7). See
further, Tryggve Kronholm, Motifsfrom Genesis I-l 1 in the Genuine Hymns o f Ephrem the Syrian: With
Particular Reference to the Influence o f Jewish Exegetical Tradition, Old Testament Series 11 (Uppsala,
Sweden: Almqvist & Wiksell, 1978).
3Joseph Ziegler, Antike und modeme lateinsche PsalmenQbersetzungen (Munich: Verlag der
Bayerischen Akademie der Wissenschaften, 1960), 5, called the Old Latin “the Septuagint in Latin
clothing.”
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
73
discussion are the Old Latin and the Vulgate, both of which have been subject to
numerous editing over the ages, intended to bring them in line with the Greek text.1
(Vs. 14): et ait Dominus Deus ad serpentem quia fecisti hoc maledictus es inter omnia
animantia et bestias terrae super pectus tuum gradieris et terram comedes cunctis diebus
vitae tuae. (V. 15): inimicitias ponam inter te et mulierem et semen tuum et semen illius
A translation of the Vulgate, with variations in the Old Latin noted in the text, is
as follows:
(Vs. 14) And the Lord God announced (K. E: said) to the serpent, ‘Because you
have done this, cursed are you among (K, E: above) all animals (K, E: cattle) and
(K adds above all kinds of, E adds above all) the beasts o f (E: that are upon) the
earth. Upon your breast (K, E add and belly) shall you walk (K: crawl). And you
shall consume (E: eat) earth (K: earth shall be your food in) all the days of your
life.
(Vs. 15) And I will put enmities (K: enmity) between you and the woman and
between your seed and her seed. She (some MSS of K, E: he) shall crush
(K, E: tread on) your head and you shall lie in wait for (K, E: watch) his heel.3
The Old Latin manuscripts from the European text type (E) and the North African
one uses the masculine intensive pronoun, ipse, following the MT, LXX, Targum
Onqelos, Targum Neofiti, and the Syriac Peshitta. Jerome seems to have also followed
'Augustine also complained that there were several non-authoritative texts (De doctrina
Christiana, 2.1522). The Old Latin distinguishes between a European text type (E) and a North African
one (K). The Jerome text on Genesis is called Hebraicae Quaestiones in Genesim.
2Bonifatio Fischer, lohanne Gribomont, H. F. D. Sparks, and W. Thiele, eds., Biblia Sacra: luxta
Vulgatam Versionem, vol. 1, Genesis-Psalmi (Stuttgart, Germany: WQttembergische Bibelanstalt, 1969),
7.
’Andrews, 89.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
74
However, some OL manuscripts, like Fischer’s edition, and the Vulgate use the
fem inine singu la r pronouns ipsa and eius with the woman as the antecedent. The Patristic
authors also introduced the Church, along with Eve, as the antecedent in this context. The
clear intention is to make “her seed” refer exclusively to Christ, the son of Mary.2
The Latin translations favor the victory of the woman’s offspring and the
serpent’s woeful defeat. The serpent is victim of a hostile and aggressive act, with his
head being “trodden upon” (calco, OL mss, K,E) or “crushed” (<contero, Vulgate). On the
other hand, the woman's heel (or that of her seed) will only be “watched” (observo, OL,
'See the discussions above on the LXX, Targums Onqelos, Neofiti 1, Peshitta. Jerome’s
Hebraicae Quaestiones in Genesim has Gen 3:1 Sc as “melius habet in hebraeo ipse conteret caput tuum,
et tu conteres eius calcaneunT (emphasis mine).
2Skinner suggests that the use of the feminine pronoun “may have been prompted by a feeling
that the proper antithesis to the serpent is the woman herself” (Skinner, 80). However, it is possible that
the Latin translators and their later re-editing and transmissions inched closer and closer to harmonizing
the passage with early Christian Christological understanding and teaching.
Andrews suggests that Vulgate translation of Gen 3:15 “coincided with an early, developing
Mariology” (Andrews, 91). He further observes: “The earliest expressing an interest in Mary may well be
the Gospels themselves. Subsequent speculation on Mary reflecting her exalted status can be found in
Ignatius of Antioch (Ephesians 19.1), and, in the eastern Syrian tradition, in the Ascension o f Isaiah 11.2-
17; and the Odes o f Solomon 19.8-9 (from about the middle of the 2nd century AO). Moreover, from at
least the time of Hippolytus and Methodius, the woman of Rev 12 (a text which has been associated with
Gen 3) has been identified with Mary or the Church” (ibid., n. 297).
3See Andrews, 91-92. These double verbs all witness to a Christological understanding of this
passage. Jerome also agrees with this. Lewis puts the Vulgate as follows: “The woman crushes the
serpent’s head, and he wounds her heel” (“The Woman’s Seed,” 301). These Latin texts agree with the
Targums and Peshitta in using two different verbs to express the promise of the serpent’s defeat.
However, it is interesting to note along with Andrews that there are Latin manuscripts using “observabo
for the first verb, which would bring the text into line with the Septuagint” (Andrews, 92, n. 299).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
75
examine its literary, structural, terminological, and thematic context within the book of
Genesis. These provide important links within and outside the book, bringing the
illumination needed to elucidate the meaning to our text. In this section, I intend to
discuss the literary style, genre, and form of our passage. In order to locate the text of
Gen 3:15 within the framework of the book of Genesis, its surrounding chapters, and, in
particular, chapter 3 to which it belongs, literary and structural analyses are set forth.
Literary, terminological, and thematic links and parallels are noted. Establishing the most
the book of Genesis, in general, and of its early chapters, in particular, affect one’s
understanding and application of the text of this study. If specific links are established,
and common motifs, themes, and structures observed within the early chapters of the book
of Genesis especially, then it will be possible to situate Gen 3:15 within its larger structural
and thematic context. This enhances the subsequent exegesis of Gen 3:15.
intratextuality and intertextuality that are pursued later on in this study in pursuit of the
Gen 3 is of a narrative genre cast in numerous direct speeches and addresses. The
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
76
writing is presented in a manner like historical record of literal events.1 The stories of the
origin of the cosmos and humanity are present “genealogically.”2 Gen 1-2:4 contains the
Human past is defined by both “the historical and biological facts and the meanings
attached to them.”3 History is summarized vividly in these genealogies. “In them the past
The creation and the Fall in Gen 1-3 are “literal, straightforward historical”3
accounts just like the subsequent Genesis narratives. Other OT and NT writers vividly
'See Walter C. Kaiser, Jr., “The Literary Form of Genesis 1-11,” in New Perspectives on the Old
Testament, ed. J. B. Payne (Waco, TX: Word, 1970), 48-65. See Richard M. Davidson, “In the
Beginning: How to Interpret Genesis 1,” Dialogue 6, no. 3 (1994): 9-12.
’See Jacques Doukhan, The Genesis Creation Story: Its Literary Structure, Andrews University
Seminary Doctoral Dissertation Series, 5 (Berrien Springs, Ml: Andrews University Press, 1978), 167-
220. Doukhan states: “Creation belongs to human history as do the episodes of the patriarchs” (ibid.,
214). Edmond Jacob emphasizes: “The same priestly author uses the term toledot for the creation of the
heavens and the earth (Gen 2:4) as well as for the genealogy of the patriarchs” (Theology o f the Old
Testament [New York: Harper & Row, 1958], 139). Bernhard W. Anderson laments: “What often escapes
attention is that the creation story. . . is inseparably related to the historical narration which unfolds
through the period of the fathers of Israel Often we detach ‘creation’ from this historical context and
consider it as a separate ’doctrine.’ . . . But this violates the intention of the creation stories. They want
to speak to us primarily about history. Accordingly, the greatest weight must be given to the form of these
stories: they are ’historical accounts’ and, as such, are part of the historical narration” (Creation and
Chaos: The Reinterpretation o f Mythical Symbolism in the Bible [New York: Associated, 1967], 33). Cf.
Claus Westermann, Creation, trans. John Scullion (Philadelphia: Fortress, 1974), 27.
'Ellen van Wolde, Stories o f the Beginning: Genesis l-l I and Other Creation Stories, trans.
John Bowden (London: SCM, 1996), 2.
’Ibid., 3. She continues: “Therefore Genesis is primarily gene-sis. This is expressed by the word
irn^in, which means fatherings, but also births, begettings, becomings or generatings” (3).
'Davidson, “In the Beginning,” 9,10.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
77
refer to Gen 1-11 as literal and historical.' Even notably critical scholars like von Rad
honestly submit that “what is said here . . . is intended to hold true entirely and exactly as
it stands.”2
Gen 3 has been erroneously treated as only a myth or legend by some scholars.3
Hermann Gunkel surmises his form criticism of the book of Genesis which he simply calls
a “collection of legends.”4 Discounting any ability of history writing prior to late Judaism,
he charged the ancients as lacking any mature objectivity. “They were able to present
historical events only in poetic form, in songs and legends.”3 These arguments are
'The following NT verses support the historicity of Gen l-l I: Matt 19:4-5; 24:37-39; Mark 10:6;
Luke 3:38; 17:26-27; Rom 5:12; 1 Cor 6:16; ll;8-9, 12; 15:21-22,45; 2 Cor 11:3; Eph 5:31; I Tim 2:13-
14; Heb 11:7; 1 Pet 3:20; 2 Pet 2:5; 3:4-6; Jas 3:9; 1 John 3:12; Jude 11, 14; and Rev 14:7.
'See Brevard S. Childs, Myth and Reality in the Old Testament, Studies in Biblical Theology, 27
(London: SCM, 1962), 31 -50; Hermann Gunkel, The Legends o f Genesis, the Biblical Saga and History,
trans. W. H. Carruth (New York: Schocken, 1964); and Soggin, “The Fall of Man in the Third Chapter of
Genesis,” 92. John William Rogerson postulates a form of the myth that must have preceded the
canonical version, based on the 2nd century text, Pfrysiologus, and its interpretation of Gen 2-3: “An
original pair of humans, ignorant of procreation, were kept in this state of ignorance by the gods, who did
not wish the humans to be able to procreate independently of them. The secret of sexual knowledge was
located in the fruit of a tree, hence the well-known prohibition. One of the gods, the serpent, expressed
the secret to the humans. They ate the fruit, and became equal to the gods in the maner of procreation.
They were excluded from paradise by the gods” (“Genesis 1-11,” 83). Rogerson was referring to D. U.
Rottzoll, “Dir werdet sein wie Gott indem ihr ‘Gut und BOse’ kennt,” ZAW 102 (1990): 385-391; and B.
Lang, Eugen Drewermann: interprete de la Bible (Paris: Cerf 1994), 70.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
78
Gen 1-3 was written as an intentional polemic against ancient Near Eastern mythology.1
Alan Richardson wrongly defines “Genesis 3 and all of the primordial history of
Genesis as a series of parables . . . a literary genre o f largely didactic nature.”2 They are
“mythical in form ,ni though not only myths, rather, “parable.”4 He denies the reality of
Adam, Eden, the Serpent, and so on, reducing them all to mere “poetical figures,”5
completely missing here. Genesis does not truly resemble the parables contained
'See Gerhard Hasel, “The Polemic Nature of the Genesis Cosmology," The Evangelical
Quarterly 46 (1974): 81-102; idem, “The Significance of the Cosmology in Genesis I in Relation to
Ancient Near Eastern Parallels,” AU SS10 (1972): 1-20.
'Richardson, 27.
4Ibid., 27-28. “A parable is a story which may or may not be literally true;. . . it conveys a
meaning beyond itself. It implies that beyond the words of the story which our outward ears have heard
there is a meaning which only our spiritual hearing can detect A parable is not an allegory; it is not
a tale in which every object mentioned stands for something else; it has just one ‘point’, one total
implication. It is the meaning of the parable as a whole that is the important matter" (ibid.).
5lbid., 29.
6Ibid. Richardson explains the “truth” contained in his “Genesis parables” as “the truth of
religious awareness” which “cannot be stated in philosophical, theological or psychological terms” (ibid.,
30). They offer only “personal knowledge about my existence, my dependence upon God, my alienation
from him, my need of reconciliation to him” (ibid.). I must first understand that I am the Adam being
addressed here before I can understand the “deep implications concerning mankind in general” (ibid., 30-
31).
Examples of scholars who take Gen 1-3 as Poetry: Henri Blocher, In the Beginning: The Opening
Chapters o f Genesis, trans. David G. Preston (Downers Grove, IL: Inter-Varsity, 1984), 49-59; and D. F.
Payne, Genesis One Reconsidered (London: Tyndale, 1964).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
79
elsewhere in the Bible.1 Furthermore, the feet that poetry, similar to Hebrew poetry, is
found in Gen 1-3 does not negate its historicity-similar to “Exodus 15, Daniel 7, and some
40 percent of the Old Testament, which is in poetry. Biblical writers often write in poetry
to underscore historicity.”2
Dan Bums misses the point with his position that Gen 2-3 is cast in a dream
form.3 This is unacceptable because the passage deals with realities rather than dreams.
In like manner, the symbolic view4 of Gen 1-3, rather than detract from its historicity,
actually affirms it by pointing beyond itself.5 Similarly, the theology view o f Gen 1-3 fells
short because this portion does not present a profound theology of God, humanity, and
'Archer rejects Richardson’s view on the basis of the comparison of the Gen 3 material with NT
parables: “The characteristic introduction to Jesus’ parables was: ‘the kingdom of God is like-’ . . . But
the narratives and genealogical lists of Genesis 1-11 have no such framework. Nowhere is it stated that
the beginning of the world or of mankind was like anything analogous. A parable is never to be explained
in terms of itself; it always involves an analogy drawn from something else” (208).
3Bums, S. He took the opening stage as Gen 2:4b-20 until Adam is put to sleep in 2:21. “Events
in the center of the narrative (2.22-3.6), which may be read as if it were Adam’s dream, are characterized
by numinous qualities, including transformation, juxtaposition, paradox, and disguise” (ibid.). Adam’s
eyes opened after eating the fruit (3:7). Eve appeared in his unconscious dream, acting out his
prohibitions, becoming a reality when they both wake up.
‘See Derek Kidner, Genesis: An Introduction and Commentary, Tyndale Old Testament
Commentaries (Downers Grove, IL: Inter-Varsity, 1967), 34-58; Robert C. Newman and Herman J.
Eckelmann, Jr., Genesis One and the Origin o f the Earth (Downers Grove, IL: Inter-Varsity, 1977), 64-
65; and P. J. Wiseman, Creation Revealed in Six Days (London: Marshall, Morgan, and Scott, 1948), 33-
34.
’Davidson asserts: “The language of the Garden of Eden and the occupation of Adam and Eve
clearly allude to sanctuary imagery and the work of the Levites (see Exodus 25-40). Thus the sanctuary of
Eden is a symbol or type of the heavenly sanctuary” (“In the Beginning,” 11). See Gordon J. Wenham,
“Sanctuary Symbolism in the Garden of Eden Story,” Proceedings o f the World Congress o f Jewish
Studies 9 (1986): 19-25. A little more attention given to this fact in chapter 2 below.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
80
The style of Gen l-2:4a manifests solemn, majestic, repetitive, stereotyped, and
balanced structures which appeal to the intellect. It has a cosmic perspective. The world
On the other hand, the style of Gen 2:4b-4:26 is story-like and artistic. It has
dramatic use of dialogue here and it appeals to the imagination. Moreover, man is the
done by hand and God is portrayed as immanent, intimate, involved, and gracious.4 There
analysis, form, and tradition criticisms. The attention has shifted more to synchronic
Borman Habei, Literary Criticism o f the Old Testament, OTS (Philadelphia: Fortress, 1971), 20.
3Ibid.
4Ibid., 20,27. Habei reveals: “The various acts of God the creator are closely interrelated rather
than separated by distinct periods of time or repeated expressions The creative workings of God are
interdependent parts of one story” (ibid., 27).
sDoukhan’s dissertation is solely dedicated to proving that this difference in emphasis does not
imply difference of authorship (Genesis Creation Story, 1-187).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
81
analysis using structuralism, rhetoric, and literary-aesthetic criticisms. While some feel
that “Genesis is not an independent book that can be interpreted by itself,”1others see it as
“a unitary composition thematically developed and integrated from the beginning to end.”2
A number of recent studies led to the conclusion that Genesis is a unified work of
literary art that can stand by itself.3 Its content makes prologue to the rest of the
presented below is to situate Gen 3:15 within the book o f Genesis, from the general
colophons indicating the accurate sequence of a series of tablets. In like manner, the
-Bruce T. Dahlberg, “On Recognizing the Unity of Genesis,” Theology Digest 24 (1976): 361.
'See page 8, n. 4 above for some references of works that address this issue.
*See Gerhard von Rad, Old Testament Theology: The Theology o f Israel's Historical Traditions,
vol. 1, trans. D. M. G. Stalker (New York: Harper & Row, 1962).
The book of Genesis is conveniently structured into three sections as outlined below:
1. Creation-Gen 1-2
2. Fall and Consequences-Gen 3-11
3. Patriarchs-Gen 12-50
a. Abraham narrative-12-50
b. Jacob narrative-26-36
c. Joseph narrative-37-50.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
82
structure of Genesis is said to follow eleven n r r b i n lines, showing eleven tablets. The
LXX translators considered the n l l b i n divisions of the book so significant that they
gave the whole book the title “Genesis,” which is the Greek equivalent of the Hebrew
The rn"T*?in lines, expressed in the phrase, “these are the generations o f . . . ,”2
have been described as the “master key to the method of compilation that underlies the
structure of the book of Genesis.”3 They represent the “successive stages in the progress
of the narrative.'’4 The whole book, as it is in the present canon, has been cast into this
“framework, or scheme.”5
This phrase is used in Genesis “/o point back to the origins o f the family history
indicate the tracing back of the genealogy to its origin.”6 It may not be connected with a
'P. J. Wiseman, Ancient Records and the Structure o f Genesis: A Casefo r Literary Unity
(Nashville, TN: T. Nelson, 1985), 60. Eleven tablets are considered because only eleven out of the
thirteen n ll S i n repetitions represent separate tablets. The occurrences of H llS in in 10:32 and 25:13
are repetitive and do not mark off separate tablets. He defines n ilS lD as “history, usually family history
in its origin" (ibid., 62).
2lbid., 59.
3Ibid.
Mbid. He adds: “If this phrase is handled consistently,. . . it will be found to solve the literary
and many other difficulties which the book has so long presented” (ibid.). He mentioned several scholars
who have endeavored to divide the Book of Genesis into sections which begin with the phrase: Herbert E.
Ryle, G. J. Spurred, F. Lenormant, J. Skinner, J. E. Carpenter, C. F. Keil, H. Bullinger, J. P. Lange, and
C .E H . Wright
“Wiseman, Ancient Records, 63. Moreover, “it is the concluding sentence of the record already
written and not an introduction to the subsequent record” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
83
genealogical list.1
The name of the person mentioned along with this formula is not to refer to his
history but that he is the owner or writer of the record on the tablet. The tablets were
evidenced by titles (usually the first few words), catch-lines (repetitions of the last words
o f the preceding tablet in the subsequent one), concluding colophons indicating the writer
or owner of the above record, and the date or its writing indicated by location of the
Wiseman and Harrison propose the extent and content of the eleven tablets that
These are obvious structural lines for the book of Genesis, whether there are
indeed ten or eleven tablets.4 I am not subscribing to the elaborate arguments on the
'Ibid., 65.
^ id ., 67-68.
3Ibid., 68-69; and Harrison, 543-553, especially 548. It is debated whether there are either ten or
eleven tablets, depending on whether 25:19b-36:l and 36:2-36:9, both “histories of Esau.’' are taken as
one or two tablets.
‘Casper J. Labuschagne made some comments on the numerical pattern observable in the book of
Genesis {Numerical Secrets o f the Bible: Rediscovering the Bible Codes [North Richland Hills, TX:
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
84
Tablet theory. Rather, I believe that the Tablet structure exhibits a clear pattern of
The Tablet structure is very significant for the historicity of the book of Genesis
account o f time and history.”1 Moreover, the use of n i l S i n in Gen 2:4. which also
governs the garden of Eden account of Gen 2-3, validates the historicity of the creation
and Fall accounts of Gen 1-3. These earlier chapters were intended “to be just as literal as
the rest o f the Genesis narratives.”2 To the extent that we can accept the historicity of the
patriarchal stories which are structured by the n llS iD , it is logical to accept the
lineage/origin is a strong indicator of the message of the book of Genesis. This idea will
BIBAL, 2000], 66-69). I do not see these as being particularly intentional, but most likely incidental. It
also borders on numerology which I do not subscribe to. However, some insights might be gained from
his observations: The eleven headings of the book of Genesis (2:4; 5:1; 6:9; 10:1; 11:10; 11:27;
25:12; 25:19; 36:1; 36:9; and 37:2), introducing the eleven narrative blocks above, intentionally have a
perceivable order. This order is possibly a 4 + 7 equals 11, or 7 + 4 equals 11. The symbolic significance
of the number 7 is for expressing “fullness, completeness, abundance, and the maximum, the highest
possible attainable amount or number” (ibid., 67). It is “an extremely holy number” (ibid., 68) in the
ANE culture.
The number 7 is the sum of 3 and 4 while the significant number 12 is their product. The number
3 expresses “heavenly totality” (ibid., 66) involving the “three vertical dimensions of the cosmos: the vault
of heaven, the earth and the nether world” (ibid.). He adds that the number 4 expresses the “terrestrial
totality” involving the “horizontal dimensions: the four quarters” (ibid., 68). Also, the number 11, “the
sum of 4 as the number of extensiveness, and 7 as the number of fullness” (ibid., 69), attained a
significant symbolic function: “to express the idea of fulfillment” (ibid.).
Tbid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
85
Gen 1-11 has been long recognized as an integrated entity within the Pentateuch.1
which combine to communicate the intended message of the book. They are dependent on
each other and neither is dispensable. A broad structure has been long observed, which
'Morgenstem, 21-24; Speiser, Genesis, liii-lviii; Robert Davidson, Genesis I-II (New York:
Cambridge University Press, 1990), 8-9; Kidner, Genesis, 13; and Michael Fishbane, “Genesis 2.4b-
11.32: The Primeval Cycle,” in Text and Texture: Close Readings o f Selected Biblical Texts (New York:
Schocken, 1979), 17-39.
^For example, Jack M. Sasson, “The ‘Tower of Babel' as a Clue to the Redactional Structuring of
the Primeval History (Gen 1-11:9),” in The Bible World: Essays in Honor o f Cyrus H. Gordon, ed. Gary
Rendsburg et al. (New York: Ktav, 1980), 211-2I9, especially 218; and R. L. Cohn, “Narrative Structure
and Canonical Perspective in Genesis,” JSOT25 (1983): S.
'David C. Hopkins, “The First Stories of Genesis and the Rhythm of the Generations,” in The
Echoes o f Many Texts: Reflections on Jewish and Christian Traditions: Essays in Honor o f Lou H.
Silberman, ed. William G. Dever and J. Edward Wright (Atlanta, GA: Scholars, 1997), 26. Cf. Childs,
Introduction to the Old Testament as Scripture, 145-7; Clines, Theme o f the Pentateuch, 66-9; Fishbane,
“Genesis 2.4b-l 1.32: The Primeval Cycle,” 27-29; B. Renaud, “Les genealogies et la structure de
I’histoire sacerdotale dans le Livre de la Genise,” RB 97 (1990): 5-30; J. van Seters, “The Primeval
Histories of Greece and Israel Compared,” ZA W 100 (1988): 10; T. L. Thompson, The Origin Tradition o f
Ancient Israel, I: The Literary Formation o f Genesis and Exodus 1-23, JSOTSup 55 (Sheffield: Sheffield,
1987), 64-5; and Westermann, Genesis l-11,6-18.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
86
It has been rightly observed that “at the very entrance into Scripture, in the
opening chapters of Genesis, the Bible provides its own key as to the central theme of its
treasure display. . . the ‘grand central theme’ around which every other truth clusters.”1
The Bible opens with creation. History had a beginning, and creation by God was
the beginning.2 Dependence is the first lesson which creation teaches us.3 Creation also
indicates a theology of salvation and election. Salvation indicates a powerful Creator, and
the process of election suggested by the salvation concept refers to the universal
The dramatic accounts of creation in Gen 1-2 are the necessary background for
understanding the depth of the Gen 3 story o f the Fall. These first three chapters are
'Richard M. Davidson, “Cosmic Metanarrative for the Coming Millennium,” JATS 11, no. 1-2
(2000): 102-119, esp. 103-104.
'Doukhan, Genesis Creation Story, vii. Claus Westermann observes that the majority of the Old
Testament passages concerning the creator and creation are within the context of the joyous, sincere, and
spontaneous praise of God’s majesty and glory. Hence, he concludes that the real goal of these creation
stories is the praise of Creator-God (The Genesis Accounts o f Creation, trans. Norman E. Wagner
[Philadelphia: Fortress, 1964], 4,5,37).
‘Doukhan, Genesis Creation Story, vii. However, I disagree with the view of von Rad that:
“Faith in creation is neither the basis nor the goal of the declarations in Gen., chs. 1 and 2. Rather, the
position of both the Yahwist and the Priestly document is basically faith in salvation and election” (von
Rad, Genesis, 46).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
87
syntactically. They shed significant light on each other. The accounts of Gen 2-3 are
A number of scholars have demonstrated the parallels between the first creation
account (Gen 1:l-2:4a) and the second (Gen 2:4b-25).2 Many scholars have argued for a
break and serious distinction between Gen 1 and 2 stories.3 There is a strong connection
and a striking parallelism between the creation accounts recorded in Gen 1:1-2:4 and Gen
2:5-254 in both literary structure and thematic content. In the same vein, the whole story
'Doukhan's dissertation referenced above is solely dedicated to proving this (Genesis Creation
Story, 1-187).
H3en 2:4 is not intended to be pieced into two irreconcilable parts as argued by documentary
hypothesists. There is no justification for such dichotomy, but “there are definite indicators that it is a
unity, and also that the first half belongs to the story of the garden of Eden” (Cassuto, A Commentary on
the Book o f Genesis, 1:97). The two parallel half-sentences that make up this verse are arranged in
chiastic order; and can refer to the succeeding text just as it can refer to the preceding text. It is possible
to be an organic whole that belongs entirely to the section of the garden of Eden. Most importantly, Gen
2:4 connects the two narratives. Cassuto affirms: “The structure for the verse follows the precise rules of
sentence-building and parallelism that normally govern exalted prose as well as poetry” (ibid., 98).
3von Rad submits: “The difference is in the point of departure: Whereas in ch. I creation moves
from the chaos to the cosmos of the entire world, our account of creation [chap. 2] sketches the original
state as a desert in contrast to the sown” (76). Westermann adds: “The narrative of Gen 1 is characterized
by its onward, irresistible and majestic flow that distinguishes it so clearly form the drama narrated in Gen
2-3” (Genesis I-l 1 ,80). Clines posits: “While chap. 1 views reality as an ordered pattern which is
confused by the flood, chs. 2-3 see reality as a network of elemental unions which become disintegrated
throughout the course of the narrative from Eden to the flood” (Theme o f the Pentateuch, 81). Moreover,
he argues that the creation story of chap. 1 is different in teaching us that everything in the whole world
was created according to God’s will by His unrestrained word. Chap. 2, on the other hand, is only a part
of the stoty of the garden of Eden which includes chap. 3 (Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f
Genesis, 1:71, 84-94). Chap. 3 is meant “to explain how it is that in the Lord’s world, the world of good
and beneficent God, evil should exist and man should endure pain and troubles and calamities” (ibid., 90).
4I am inclined to follow Alviero Niccacci who argued syntactically, semantically, and structurally
that Gen 2:4 must not be split into two and separated into the preceding and succeeding creation
narrations (as Gen l:l-2:4a and Gen 2:4b-25) (“Analysis of Biblical Narrative,” in Biblical Hebrew and
Discourse Linguistics, ed. Robert D. Bergen [Dallas, TX: Summer Institute of Linguistics, 1994], 183-
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
88
of the Garden of Eden spanning from Gen 2:4b to 3:24 shows several links and reversals
various reasons have been postulated for this. Obviously, both chapters span the story of
the garden of Eden.2 The creation of man, which occupies the central position in Gen 2,
belongs inseparably with the Fall of man in Gen 3. They are not merely following each
other, “but rather one inclusive event which stretches from the introductory aside in 2:4b
187). Further discussion is presented in the later part of this chapter under “Syntactical Analysis.”
'Defenders of the unity of Gen 2-3 include: Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis,
1:71-177; George Wesley Coats uses the term “Paradise Tale” (Genesis: With An Introduction to
Narrative Literature, Forms of Old Testament Literature [Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1984], 28); Jacob,
Das erste Buch der Tora, 71-134; Kidner, Genesis, 38; Skinner, 51; and Speiser who called them “the
brief Eden interlude” (Genesis, 14-28, esp. 18). John McKenzie says “the Paradise Story is a unified
narrative with a climactic structure” (“The Literary Characteristics of Genesis 2-3,” Theological Studies
IS [1954]: S67-S68). Gunkel enjoined: “A series of allusions unite the two chapters (3:1a alludes to 2:19;
3:lb-5, 1, 17 to 2:16-17; 3:7 to 2:25; 3:12 to 2:21ff.; 3:19,23 to 2:7). It can be concluded, then, that the
redactor essentially followed one source and that he utilized only fragments of the other” (Genesis, 25).
Contra Westermann, who uses literary analysis charging that the idea that the two chapters are
independent and separate narratives was “one of the most important and decisive results of literary
criticism” (Genesis /- //, 186). He finds in “Gen 2-3 repetitions, lack of balance, gaps in the line of
thought, contradictions. One could not expect anything else.” These were attributed to “the many-sided
process of the formation of this text” (ibid., 190).
JSee Jerome T. Walsh, “Genesis 2:4b-3:24: A Synchronic Approach,” JBL 96 (1977): 161-177.
“The story of man and woman in the garden of Eden holds eternal fascination for scholar and layman
alike. As an object of study, it enjoys an immense bibliography; as a story, it forms part of the literary
heritage of Jews, Christians, and Moslems, and is surely one of the world’s most widely known tales”
(ibid., 161).
3Westermann, Genesis Account o f Creation, 25. “Chapters 2 and 3 are presented in the form of a
drama which not only has a strong thrust of its own but also points beyond itself to the rest of the story”
(ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
89
Numerous diachronic and synchronic structures have been suggested for the
n arra tiv e and literary unity Gen 2 and 3 .' Several concentric or chiastic structural patterns
suggested for these two chapters show their connectedness.2 The narrative rhetorical
analysis brought forth elements of its semantic structure like the alimentary code, the code
of the animals, sexual code, and life/death.3 Action sequences identified include mainly a
p u n ishm en t sequence and several other sequences “embedded in, woven into, or added to
villain, in 3:1-7, was re-established by the initiative of God in 3:8-21. The three
deficiencies identified in Gen 2:5-no man to work the earth, no rain, and the loneliness of
and lack of helper for man (2:18}-were supplied. Man was formed in 2:7-15, his helper
provided in 2:19-25, and tilling the ground and foiling of rain came with the sin and
'The whole issue of Semeia 18 (1980) is dedicated to synchronic and diachronic analysis of the
structure of Gen 2 and 3 as a single unit. Walsh proposes that “the principal pattern is a concentric
arrangement of seven scenes, each of which is itself tightly organized.” and “distinguished from one
another principally by shifts in dramatis personae and changes in literary form” (Walsh, 161-177).
Tor example, Joel W. Rosenberg, “The Garden Story Forward and Backward: The Non-
Narrative Dimension of Genesis 2-3,” Prooftexts 1 (1981): 6. He treated the story as “symmetrical and
largely concentric” making it “a unity, and only as completed1(ibid., 21).
See also, David A. Dorsey, The Literary Structure o f the Old Testament: A Commentary on
Genesis-Malachi (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1999), SO. Walsh saw a series of seven scenes, delineated by the
shifts in dramatis personae and literary form, and arranged in a concentric pattern: (a) 2:4b-17, (b) 2:18-
25, (c) 3:1-5, (d) 3:6-8, (c’) 3:9-13, (b’) 3:14-19, (a’) 3:22-24 (Walsh, 161-177).
Thomas E. Boomershine, “Structure and Narrative Rhetoric in Genesis 2-3,” Semeia 18 (1980):
113-129.
‘Robert C. Culley, “Action Sequences in Genesis 2-3,” Semeia 18 (1980): 25-33. Action
sequence refers to “a basic unit of action in a story” (ibid., 26). “The central action sequence is the
‘wrong/wrong punished’ which is spread out in Gen 2:16-17; 3:1-6,9-13, 16-19. A wrong is done when
the man and the woman eat the fruit and this wrong is punished” (p. 28).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
90
Creation is expressed in Gen 2 by the forging of bonds between “humans and the
soil,” “humans and the animals,” “the man and the woman,” and “humanity and God.”
These relationships of bonds or harmony between each of these pairs are disrupted in
Certain words, terms, and verses stand out vividly as strong links between Gen
2:4-25 and Gen 3:1-24. The serpent “which God had made” in Gen 3:1 definitely points
back to the creation of the anim als in Gen 2:18.3 There is also an interesting play on the
resemblance of the word “cunning” D11B in Gen 3:1 to “naked” D’QVISJ at the end of
the preceding paragraph in Gen 2:25. This is intended by the author to link both chapters
'Daniel Patte and Judson F. Parker, “Structural Exegesis of Gen 2 and 3,” Semeia 18 (1980): 55-
75.
Clines, Theme o f the Pentateuch, 81,82. “The communion between God and man who breathes
God’s breath (2:7) has become the legal relationship of accuser and defendant (3:9ff.); the relationship of
man and woman as ‘one flesh’ (2:24) has soured into mutual recrimination (3:12); the bond of humanity
(adam) with the soil (adama) from which he was built has been supplanted by ‘an alienation that
expresses itself in a silent, dogged struggle between man and sod (3:17ff); the harmonious relationship of
humans with beast in which the human is the acknowledged master (2:l9fE) has become a perpetual
struggle of intransigent foes (3:15)” (ibid.).
Jvon Rad, Genesis, 100. “The theme of shame in ch. 3.7 ff. is taken up and attached (almost
abruptly) to the narrative about creation of man (2.25)” (ibid.).
4Cassut0y4 Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:143-144. In order to make the wordplay more
apparent, the preceding verse (2:25) uses the plural form of Dill? and not DTI?, which occurs
subsequently in 3:7,10,11. Interpretatively, this means that Adam and Eve were “naked,” and remained
“naked” because their ignorance of “good and evil” prevented them from being ashamed of their
nakedness. Yet, notwithstanding their lack of “knowledge,” they were not wanting in “cunning.” Zdravko
Stefenovic declares that “the Hebrew root 'rm in 2:25 and 3:1 is the best discernible lexical link between
(the) two chapters” (“The Great Reversal: Thematic Links Between Genesis 2 and 3,” AUSS 32 [1994]:
51, n. 18). Westermann reinforces that chapter 3 is comprehensible only when it is prefaced by the detail
that “the man and his wife were naked, and were not ashamed” in each other’s presence (Genesis
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
91
Gen 2:5 mentions “plant/thoms of the field,” “grains/herb of the field,” and
“tilling the ground.” Gen 3:18 also has identical “grains/herb of the field”; while “thorns
and thistles” are synonymous with the expression “plant/thoms of the field” and are a
particularization of the general concept of the latter. Man was compelled to “tQl the
The name for God employed throughout both chapters is YHWH Elohim,
describing God’s immanence.2 The returning of man to the ground at death (3:19) only
reverses the initial formation of man from the “dust of the ground” (2:7, 17). The phrase
“at the east of the garden of Eden” in 3:24 echoes a similar expression earlier in 2:8. The
The unity of these sections and their continuity is also seen “in the numerical
symmetry based on the number seven that we find in this section just as we encountered it
in the story of Creation.”4 The words that express the fundamental concepts of the
passage recur in a given number of times, namely, seven times, or a multiple of seven. The
Accounts o f Creation, 30). “The story is misunderstood if we sever these two chapters” (ibid.).
T he exclusive use of Elohim in Gen 3:1-5 in the dialogue between the serpent and the woman is
because “it is unfitting that the personal name of God, which is supremely holy, should be used by the
creature that counsels evil, or by the woman holding converse with it” (ibid., 88).
'Ibid. See pp. 148-177 fix’ various linking of terms in both passages.
4Ibid., 94. Cassuto discusses the importance of the number seven in the symbolism of numbers,
and how it is fundamental to the main theme of the creation story, and how its structure is based on a
symmetry of numerical harmony (ibid., 12-15). Seven is understood as “the number of perfection and the
basis of ordered arrangement”; no wonder it is used in describing the work of the Creator which is marked
by “absolute perfection and flawless systematic orderliness” (ibid., 14).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
92
n am e “Eden” occurs together with 0*TJ3 (east) seven tiroes. The names 0"1K and
QTK, both meaning “man,” appear twenty-eight times, i.e., four times seven. The word
rt©K and its synonyms “ITV (helper) and 37*72 (rib) are used twenty-one times, Le., three
times seven.1
Words derived from the root * » k (eat) occur twenty-one times; out of which it
is used seven times in the paragraph describing the sin (3:1-7). The verbal root H pb
(take) is given special emphasis by being used seven times in vss. 2:23; 3:19,23.
Following the logical division of the context of the section, seven paragraphs naturally
emerge.2 ‘To suppose that all this is a mere coincidence is not possible”3 (emphasis
mine).
On their thematic links, it can be argued that “the primary purpose of the Torah in
these chapters is to explain how it is that in the Lord’s world,. . . evil should exit and man
should endure pain and troubles and calamities.”4 The answer to the question of the
“origin of evil” is here provided in the fact that man corrupts the good world (Gen 1:31)
'Ibid., 94.
^Ibid. Cassuto discusses this section according to its logical divisions. The introductory verse
and transition from the previous section is 2:4. Seven paragraphs emerge: creation of man-2:5-7;
planting of the garden of Eden-2:8-l4; Adam’s task in the garden of Eden-2:15-17; Creation of
woman-2:18-25; Adam’s sin-3:l-7; the judgment and the sentence-3:8-21; and the expulsion from the
garden of Eden-3-.22-24 (ibid., 96-177).
■’Ibid., 15.
4Ibid., 71. McKenzie submits that “the paradise story i s . . . anthropocentric; it is a story of
human sin, of a fall from a primitive state which was free of sin and its consequences The narrative
. . . is intended to signify that the ills of mankind arise from sin. Sin . . . disturbs the order of creation”
(“Literary Characteristics of Genesis 2-3,” 568). This is evident because of the feet that the paradise story
precedes the account of the spread of sin and the degeneration of mankind in the chapters that follow the
story.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
93
by his conduct and brings evil into it as a result of his corruption (Gen 3:16-19). Gen 3
has been concisely described as asserting that “all sorrow comes from sin.”1
The theme of creation of man in God’s image has been observed in this section.
“The garden of Eden story of Gen 2-3 is an expansion of the image of God story in
chapter 1.”3 This concerns human beings, human nature, and their resemblance to God.
The resemblance of God is mentioned at the beginning of Adam’s story as ‘Image of God”
(Gen 1:26), at the end as “like one of us” (Gen 3:22), and in the middle (by the serpent) as
“you will become like God (or gods), knowing good and evil” (Gen 3:5).4
'von Rad, Genesis, 101. Clines declares: “The flood is only the final stage in a process of cosmic
disintegration which began in Eden” (Theme o f Pentateuch, 81).
'John F. A. Sawyer, “The Image of God, the Wisdom of Serpents and the Knowledge of Good
and Evil,” in A Walk in the Garden: Biblical, Iconographicai and Literary Images o f Eden, ed. Paul
Morris and Deborah Sawyer, JSOTSup, 136 (Sheffield: Sheffield, 1992), 64.
4lbid., 65. The image of God is not totally obliterated from humankind even after the Fall.
Reference is made to it in Gen 5:1; 9:6.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
94
presence of God. Man separated from God has not only lost God, but also the
purpose of his humanity.1
Another theme that emanates from these “twin” chapters is “Separation and
Discrimination.” Man and animal were separated from the ground to which they will
return (explicitly for man and implicitly for the animals).2 A distinction is also made
between “all living creatures of the field” and “all birds of the heavens” (Gen 2:19).
While naming them, Adam further divides the “living creatures” into two parts
Another separation is the gulf created between the Adam and his wife when he
passed the blame for his deed onto her.4 Their relationship of equals and corresponding
later occurs between man and the ground from which he was taken (3:17).
'Westermann, Genesis Accounts o f Creation, 20-21. Westermann notes that “God has made man
to communicate with him, so that man might speak to God and he might hear God’s word” (p. 21). See
Karl Barth, Church Dogmatic, vol. 3, The Doctrine o f Creation, Part I (Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, I9S8).
Jonathan Magonet, “The Themes of Genesis 2-3,” in A Walk in the Garden: Biblical,
Iconographical and Literary Images o f Eden, ed. Paul Morns and Deborah Sawyer, JSOTSup, 136
(Sheffield: Sheffield, 1992), 41.
5Ibid. Cattle seems to be a generic term for domesticated animals, those with a permanent
relationship with man. All others are the living creatures of the field. See Gen 1:24-26; 7:14,21; 9:10;
Exod 20:10; Lev 19:19, etc. The snake is further separated from other living creatures of the field, living
apart from man, as being more cunning than the rest. He tempted man to fall.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
95
1. Fruit of tree not given to Adam (2:17), woman gives fruit of tree to her
husband (3:6)
ashamed (3:7)
3. Serpent most crafty animal (3:1), becomes the most cursed animal (3:14)
4. Fruit pleasing to woman (3:6), causes labor pain of the woman (3:16)
5. Man eats fruit of forbidden tree (3:6), bread from sweat and thorns (3:18-19)
6. Humans made leaf aprons (3:7), God made skin garments for them (3:21)
7. Woman’s fascination for the serpent (3:13), woman’s enmity for the serpent
(3:15)
The carefully crafted and chiastic structure of Gen 2-3 enunciates the theme of
the “Great Reversal” brought about by the entrance of sin into God’s perfect world.
Chap. 3 contains a reversed order of similar elements and events found in chap. 2. These
two chapters “come together to present the first of many reversals in the Bible.”2
For the sake of comparison, these chapters can be divided up to reveal their
distinctive themes and reversals.3 Gen 2:4 remains the introductory verse which alludes
2Stefanovic, “The Great Reversal,” 51-56. See idem, “Daniel: A Book of Significant Reversals,”
AUSS 30 (1992): 139-150.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
96
to the reversal in the rest o f the story.1 The rest reveals a chiasm as follows:
The climax of theses twin chapters seems to occur at Gen 2:24-25, according to
this chiasm. These verses describe full happiness in sinless and innocent human
relationship.2
Several reversals of themes are further observed within each of these sections:
'Ibid., 51. The words of Gen 2:4 are marked by the use of double chiasm. The subject/verb order
is reversed-“heaven/earth” and “created” are reversed to “made” and “earth/heaven.” The subject order is
also reversed-“heaven/earth” is reversed to “earth/heaven.”
2Westermann insists that vs. 25 is “the climax of the creation” (Genesis l-ll, 190). Stefanovic
adds: “The climax of the Story of Creation was reached when God rested on the seventh day (2:2-3). The
climax of the story of the Garden of Eden focuses on man’s relationship to other human beings, beginning
with the family unit. The climax speaks of a sinless, harmonious and happy life in all its innocence. A
supernatural unity is related here in which two beings are able to become. . . ’one flesh’ (2:24)” (“The
Great Reversal,” 56).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
97
We will now examine the structure of Gen 3, which is the immediate context of
Gen 3:15, our primary text. This affects our understanding and analysis of the “seed.”
It can be seen that the discourse beginning from Gen 1 and 2 culminates in chap.
3. The structure of this chapter clearly reveals a chiasm which shows the intention of the
'The following structures have been influenced by similar ones presented separately by two
lecturers of the Andrews University Theological Seminary: Jacques Doukhan, “Literary Structure of Gen
3:15,” Class Handout for OTST 653, 1997; and Warren Johns, “Literary Structure of Genesis 3,” Lecture
Notes for OTST 653, 1997. See Wilfred G. E. Watson, Traditional Techniques in Classical Hebrew
Verse, JSOTSup, 170 (Sheffield: Sheffield, 1994), 17.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
98
C God walks in the garden and “called unto Adam” (vss. 8-9a)
C’ Still in the garden, “Adam calls his wife’s name Eve” (vs. 20)
Gen 3. Thus, it is shown that the message of these verses is central in the context.
in the discourse between God and the other characters in the story can be found in Gen 3.
These do not include those of the indirect speeches in 3:1, 3, and 17. This number is
significant because the chapter is organized in the form of speeches. This signifies
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
99
1. The Lord God called to the man and said to him 3:9
2. And he said 3:11
3. And the Lord said to the woman 3:13
4. And the Lord God said to the snake 3:14
5. To the woman he said 3:16
6. To the man he said 3:17
7. Then the Lord God said (deliberation) 3:22.
It is noticeable that the middle (4th) one of the seven speeches in Gen 3 happens
to God’s speech to the serpent (Le., vs. 14). This is the core/center of Gen 3, suggesting
Our key verses (14-15) belong to a unique subset in this chapter. Vss. 14-19
comprise a poetic piece set in the midst of what is essentially narrative. This is a
rhetorical device to draw special attention to this central section.3 It is marked off by an
Furthermore, this subsection uses the curse-form, which is used in the covenant or legal
^Labuschagne, 61. He continues with the other four direct speeches in Gen 4 thus following one
of the perceived formulas of fulfillment: 7 + 4=11. See below in the section on the links between Gen 3
and 4.
’Graham S. Ogden, “A Fresh Look at the ‘Curses’ of Genesis 3:14-19,” Taiwan Journal o f
Theology, no. 7 [1985]: 129-140, esp. 130. John T. Willis explains: “Perhaps these curses were given in
poetry fix’easy memorization because they were frequently sung, or because it was customary to announce
curses in poetic verse” (Genesis [Austin, TX: Sweet, 1979], 126). Westermann confirms: “The rhythmic,
poetic form is to be explained from the function of the pronouncements; they declare a punishment; they
portray an event which corresponds to the ancient legal pronouncements which are also presented in
rhythmic and poetic form” (Genesis l-l 1 ,257). Meanwhile, Skinner says: “The form of the oracles is
poetic; but the structure is irregular, and no definite metrical scheme can be made out” (Genesis, 78).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
100
context of Deut 27-28.' This immediately suggests that a covenant is involved here.2
More factors which point to the distinctiveness and unity of Gen 3:14-19 include
the “use of assonance throughout: sh&p (vs. 15), shuq (vs. 16), shub (vs. 19); ben (vs.
15), ben (vs. 16).”3 The reiterated “labor/pain/sorrow” links Gen 3:16-17 and the
duplicated “to eat all the days of your life” in Gen 3:14, 17 exhibits more internal links.
Lastly, “the ‘enmity’ between snake and mankind and between mankind and earth (vss.
15,18) is contrasted with the mutual longing of the man and woman in vs. 16.”4
demonstrated in the structure above. The curse-unit is well integrated into the narrative
in which it rests.5 There is a deliberate reversal in the order in which the players in the
There is a conscious play on words used to describe the serpent in 3:1 as □‘HI? “clever”
and "YHK “cursed” in 3:14. “The keyword Tikal, ‘eat,’ is found throughout 3:1-13 as
'Ogden, 132. This general curse-form varies slightly all over the OT as can be seen also in Gen
4:11; 49:7; Josh 9:3; Jer 17:5-6; 20:14-16; and 1 Sam 26:19. The curses in Gen 3:14-19 contain all the
elements and are the most expanded curse-forms in the OT. See W. M. Clark, “Law,” in Old Testament
Form Criticism, ed. J. H. Hayes (San Antonio, TX: Trinity University Press, 1974), 113-116; and D. R.
Hillers, Treaty Curses and O. T. Prophets (Rome: Pontifical Biblical Institute, 1964).
iO. Palmer Robertson, The Christ o f the Covenants (Phillipsburg, NJ: Presbyterian and
Reformed, 1980), 67-107.
‘Ibid.
5Ibid. Wenham reiterates that the curses in 3:14-19 are “rhythmical, though the meter is
irregular and they contain clauses in prose that make the rhythms still more uneven” (ibid.). He then
remarks: “The introductorykBecause you have done this’ echoes vs. 13, while ’You are more cursed’ than
’all wild animals’ echoes 3:1, ’the snake was more shrewd than all the wild animals,’ in sound as well as
phraseology” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
101
well as five times in 3:14-19.”' Also, mankind originates from the earth (2:7; 3:19,23).2
Victor Hamilton noted when God came to interrogate the humans, the reference
to the sins of the man (Gen 3:9-11), the woman (Gen 3:12), and the serpent (Gen 3:13)
are presented in a chiastic arrangement with the punishments for the serpent (Gen 3:14-
15), the woman (Gen 3:16), and the man (Gen 3:17-19).3
Syntactically, Gen 3:14-19, dealing with the punishment of the serpent, woman,
and man respectively, forms a single unit. The unit begins with a series of waw-
consecutive imperfect verbs (vs. 14), continues with respect to the woman using a
prepositional phrase and perfect verb (vs. 16), and concludes with a section on the man
some grammatical signals which are mentioned below. This signifies the juncture where
“narrative tension is the highest and the release of that tension begins.”6 Gen 3:14-19
'Ogden, 132.
3Ibid. The phrase “more than any beast of the field” from vs. I is reiterated in vs. 14. The key
word Vial, “eat,” is found throughout vss. 1-13 as well as five times in vss. 14-19.
3Hamilton, Genesis Chapters 1-17,196. See H. Van Dyke Parunak, “Oral Typesetting: Some
Uses ofBiblical Structure,” CBQ62 (1981): 164.
4Eric W. Bolger, “The Compositional Role of the Eden Narrative in the Pentateuch” (Ph.D.
dissertation, Trinity Evangelical Divinity School, Deerfield, Illinois, 1993), 148. He observed that the
“Samaritan Pentateuch has slightly different syntax through the addition of a waw at the beginning of vs.
16 (w’l)” (ibid.). See also John H. Sailhamer, “Genesis,” The Expositor’s Bible Commentary, ed. Frank
E. Gaebelein (Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1990), 2:57.
’Stephen Kempf “Genesis 3:14-19: Climax of the Discourse?” Journal o f Translation and
Textlinguistics 6 (1993): 354.
‘Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
102
seems to points ahead while also ending with the resolution of the problem.'
occurs where “the tension is the greatest and the release of that tension begins, Le., at the
turning point.” This draws attention to and highlights the resolution of the issues raised
in the discourse within which it occurs.2 This is where the narrative tension “intensifies,
reaches its highest point and where the release of that tension begins.”3
symmetrical pattern.4 Other grammatical signals and rhetorical features show Gen 3:14-
1. In Gen 3:14-19 the audience gets the “longest and most detailed account of
the ideological and psychological view of the central character.” The three judgments
2. In Gen 3:14-19, the time frame is advanced “beyond that of the plot o f the
'Ibid. Kempf used a linear perspective to demonstrate that this is the climax of the discourse of
Gen 2-3 by looking at the paragraph structure and prominence of Gen 3:14-19 and the grammatical peak
and resolution of the plot structure of Gen 2-3 (ibid.).
2John Beekman, John Callow, and Michael Kopesec, Translating the Word o f God (Grand
Rapids: Zondervan, 1974), 138-9.
]Kemp£ 3S6. For Robert Longacre, at the climax, “everything comes to a head”; the conflict and
tension reach their highest point (The Grammar o f Discourse [New York: Plenum, 1983], 20-21).
4Kemp£ 362,365. Kempf uses the hortarory genre discourse to analyze this text. He elaborates:
“While the imperative is the highest ranking form on the prominence scale of hortatory discourse, the
judgment of the serpent is announced by a qal passive participle Ttritr 'aid ‘cursed are you.’ In this
context the force of the participle must be considered equal to an imperative.. . . Details of this curse are
described in the form of paraphrase paragraphs, where imperfect verbs are employed as mitigated
imperatives” (362).
sIbid., 368.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
103
story. The audience identifies with the announcement of the three judgments,”1which
“also project to a future time.”2 The reader can identify with the message and its
application.
3. Gen 3:14-19 exemplifies analytical complexities. First, perfect verbs are used
“with fore-fronted indirect objects in Gen 3:16 and 17 rather than the usual event-line
The quote formulas in 14a and 16 have indirect objects in chiasmus with verbs, and “this
stylistic feature closely joins the first two pronouncements together The quote
formula in 3:17 is parallel to the formula in 16a. This links the third judgment with the
two.”4
and “syntactic and semantic parallelism.”7 As a result, the pace o f the action slows down,
5. All the major characters involved in the story are present in Gen 3:14-19.
'Ibid.
^ id .
JIbid.. 369.
4Ibid.
5Ibid.
6Ibid.
7Ibid.
Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
104
“YHWH God, the man, the woman, and the serpent are all on stage at the same time.”1
The resolution of the tension/problem of Gen 2-3 “is found in the way this
section ties up loose ends that are found at the beginning of the discourse. The judgment
o f the man in Gen 3:17-19 shows important features of coherence with the beginning of
the discourse. It is as if to say what ‘was not’ in Gen 2:4b-6 has now come to ‘be’”2:
2:5d - none “to work the soil”- 3:18-19, 23 - “sweat of brow”/ “work the soil”
2:7 - man of “dust of the soil” - 3:19b-e, 23 - man returns to “dust” and“soil.”
The analyses above point to Gen 3:14-15 already mentioned as the chiastic
center of Gen 3.3 It appears that the central message of this passage culminates in these
verses. This is the most important message of the chapter, and the goal towards which
The thematic structure and word rhythm of this climax (Gen 3:14-15) suggest
two strophes. “After an introductory statement of three words (or ‘anacrusis’), the first
strophe (vs. 14) progresses in six lines with an irregular word rhythm (2,2, 3, 3, 2, 3)”“:
'Ibid., 370. Longacre calls such "notional climax” a "crowded stage” (SO),
^ em p f 372-373.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
105
“After an anacrusis of one word, the second strophe (vs. 15) progresses in four lines with
The significance of this parallelism will become more apparent in our discussion of the
It has long been argued that Gen 4 forms a complete unit in itself originally
‘Ibid.
^bid.
3Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
106
independent o f Gen 2-3, having its own motifs and perspectives.1 To the contrary, the
garden of Eden account in Gen 2-3 and the story of Cain, Abel, and Seth in Gen 4:1-26
form one continuous unit.2 The events of Gen 4 are the consequence of the Fall of man
in Gen 3.
Structural links
There are very strong structural similarities and parallels between Gen 2-3 and
Gen 4:1-16. The following numbered correlations exhibit how the same patterns are
functions. Adam’s function was to till the ground and keep the garden (2:5, 15, 19, 23)
while Eve was his companion (2:18-25) and child-bearer (3:16,20; 4:1-2,25). Abel is
presented as a keeper of sheep (4:2) while Cain is a tiller of the ground (4:2).
2. Each story contains two primary intimate contemporary human beings created
'Alan J. Hauser, “Linguistic and Thematic Links Between Genesis 4:1-16 and Genesis 2-3,”
JETS 24 (1980): 297. This neglect of the context encourages the Sitz im Leben fantasy and causes “an
unfortunate myopia that obscures many of the delicate and subtle syntactical structures present in the text”
(ibid.). See Driver, Genesis, 63,71-74; T. H. Gaster, Myth, Legend, and Custom in the Old Testament
(New York: Harper, 1975), 51-75; J. Wellhausen, Prologomena to the History o f Ancient Israel
(Cleveland: World, 1957), 308-309,324; and von Rad, Genesis, 99-105.
:Hauser asserts that “it is not just the case that a clever editor has constructed links between the
two originally independent stories Any attempt to interpret the accounts without reference to their
unity is likely to obscure and distort what the writer intended to say” (305).
3Ibid., 297-298. See also Garrett arguing: “Genesis 2:4-4:26 is a tightly interwoven text It
reads as a single narration” (Garrett, 188-189). Cf. W. Malcom Clark, “The Rood and the Structure of
Pre-patriarchal History,” ZAW 83 (1971): 196-197.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
107
or born so close in time. Their harmony is soon tragically broken in each case as they are
3. In both stories, God issues a word of warning before the disobedient acts are
4. The guilty principal characters were confronted by God with their sinful
deeds by means of leading questions. God interrogated Cain (4:6,10) and also
interrogated the first sinners (3:9, 11,13). Their responses in each instance give the
climax of their alienation from God and from each other (3:9-13; 4:9).
5. God pronounced the sentences and curses brought by their offenses (3:16-19;
4:11-12). Adam and Cain were alienated from the ground which would no longer be
6. They were driven from their original context of abode and livelihood: Adam
and Eve from the garden (3:24), Cain from the ground, the source of his livelihood
(4:14).
7. These guilty persons were hiding from the face of God as a direct result of
8. In the aftermath of each episode, the guilty parties dwelt east of Eden (3:24;
4:16).'
'Beyond the eight items above, Garrett adds that, in addition, both responded to their punishment
(3:20; 4:13-14). “Yahweh then mitigates the effects of the curses (3:21, garments of animal skins; 4:15,
the mark of Cain)” (Garrett, 189). Further, Fishbone itemizes the relationships between Gen 3 and 4:1-
16. For example, he links the rhetorical questions “Where are you?” (3:9) with “Where is your brother?”
(4:9). Cain is “cursed from the earth” (4:11), while the “earth is cursed” because of Adam (3:17)
(“Genesis 2.4b-11.32: The Primeval Cycle,” 26-27). Fishbane sees this as “a deliberate intertextual
feature serving to occasion the concordance of Genesis 3 and 4:1-16 in the reader’s mind” {Text and
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
108
The structural links within Gen 2-4 can be seen in light o f ancient epic structure,
Also, the 7 + 4 = 11 pattern clearly emerges, “linking the Story of the Fall
(Genesis 3) with that o f Cain and Abel (Genesis 4).”2 This concerns the expression of the
introductory formula of the divine direct speeches in the discourse between God and the
other characters in the stories. The seven found in Gen 3:9, 11, 13, 14, 16, 17, and 22
are complemented, completed, and fulfilled by the four found in Gen 4 :6 ,9 , 10, and 15.3
16. For example, he links the rhetorical questions “Where are you?” (3:9) with “Where is your brother?”
(4:9). Cain is “cursed from the earth” (4:11), while the “earth is cursed” because of Adam (3:17)
(“Genesis 2.4b-11.32: The Primeval Cycle,” 26-27). Fishbane sees this as “a deliberate intertextual
feature serving to occasion the concordance of Genesis 3 and 4:1-16 in the reader’s mind” (Text and
Texture: Close Readings o f Selected Biblical Texts [New York: Schocken, 1979], 145, n. 9).
'Garrett, 190.
^Labuschagne, 61.
3Ibid. This exempts the introductory formula of the indirect speeches in 3:1,3, and 17.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
109
Terminological links
Below are several terminological and vocabulary links between Gen 2-3 and Gen
4 which prove beyond reasonable doubt that these two sections are intended to be a
unified whole:1
knowledge as both a desire (3:5-6) and a consequence of nakedness and alienation (3:7-
13) all associated to the Fall. This knowing involves “good and evil.” Hence, even
though it brings new life (3:15-16, 20; 4:1, 19,25), enmity, alienation, and death
2. The use of the verbs r n r t “conceive” and 1*7^ “bear” together in 4:1,17
point back to the sentence God pronounced upon the woman in 3:16 where both verbs
were used together, and also to the act that led to the sentence.2 To add more emphasis
to this fact, the writer uses the verb “bear” alone in 4:2, 18,20,22,25-26.
3. “His brother” was used to express Cain’s intimacy with (4:2) and alienation
from Abel (4:8-11). This parallels the uses of “his wife” and “the woman” in Gen 2-3 to
express Adam’s intimacy with (2:23-25, 3:8) and alienation from Eve (3:12, 20-21 [and
also 4:1]).
'Hauser, 298-303. More links between the vocabulary of Gen 2-3 and Gen 4 can be seen in the
following works: Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 174; David J. A. Clines, “The Tree of
Knowledge and the Law of Yahweh,” FT24 (1974): 8-14; M. Eliade, Patterns in Comparative Religion
(London: Sheed and Ward, 1958), 367-408; and M. Weinfeld, “Sabbath, Temple and the Enthronement of
the Lord, The Problem of the Sitz in Leben of Gen 1:1-2:3,” in Melanges bibliques et orientaux en
I ’honneurde H. Cazelles (Neukirchen: Neukirchener Verlag, 1981), 501-512.
The exact sequence of wording is found in the similar phrases of Gen 3:16 and 4:7. I owe this
awareness to Dr. Richard M. Davidson.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
110
4. Adam's second son was given a symbolic name: S i n “Abel” which means
“‘breath’ (and life) that is fleeting and transitory” (see Pss 62:10; 144:4; Job 7:16)‘; and
refers to the “short and temporary status o f human existence” (Eccl 3:19; 11:8, 10).:
This is intended to contrast the “breath of life” ( D,9n W303 ) signifying “the bounty of
new life” which God breathed into man at creation (Gen 2:7). Subsequent to the Fall
man’s life was shortened to become merely fleeting and temporary. Life is “vanity,”
Abel. This fact is underscored by the sudden and untimely demise of Abel.
5. Adam’s occupation was to “till the ground” (2:5, 15, 17-19, 23). Cain’s
6. Cain’s use of the 'HS “fruit” o f the ground as an offering to God played a
significant role in the offense he committed. This serves as a deliberate reminder of the
n S “fruit” of the tree in the midst o f the garden which constituted the temptation and the
offense o f Adam and Eve. “The reader is thus led to parallel the offense o f Cain with that
7. The verbal root tf"13 “to be driven” used in 4:14 to describe Cain’s
expulsion and banishment from the ground parallels its earlier use in 3:24 to describe the
expulsion and banishment of Adam and Eve from the garden of Eden.
8. Cain’s anger, described with the double use of the word “face” in 4:5-6, is the
cause o f his sinful act and subsequent alienation from God and the ground, which were
‘Hauser, 299.
Tbid.
3Ibi<L, 300.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Ill
also described with the double use of the word “face” in 4:14. These deliberate mentions
of “face” refer back to 3:8 where Adam and Eve’s sinful act and alienation from God
9. The words “east of Eden” (4:16) form a terminological link with 3:24
showing that both parents and Cain ended up away from the original idyllic Edenic home.
10. Furthermore:
God used the words of his oracle for the woman (3:16) in his warning for
Cain (4:7); the voice of Abel’s blood cried out against Cain (4:10), and the voice
o f the Lord God was heard in the garden (3:8); Cain denied being his brother’s
keeper (4:9), and God placed the man in the garden to keep it (2:13) but
subsequently installed the angels to keep the way to the tree (3 :24).'
Gordon Wenham also recognized that it is only in Gen 3:14 and in 4:11 “does
God actually use this traditional formula 'Cursed are you’; elsewhere some third person
narrative or direct speech text, one must faithfully understand the function or syntax of
the verb forms in the text. “Syntactic analysis should never follow the lead of
interpretation and semantics,”3 but rather precede them. This section seeks to do just this
'Allen P. Ross, Creation and Blessing: A Guide to the Study and Exposition o f the Book o f
Genesis (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1988), 154.
INiccacci, 182. He insists: “One should not begin with semantics or interpretation but with
morphology and function. Semantics is important but subservient to morphology and function (syntax)”
(p. 168). He also adds: “Syntax assists interpretation By means of the syntactic devices of Biblical
Hebrew the biblical authors presented their information in a structured form. Our interpretation must be
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
112
by syntactically locating Gen 3:14-15 within the flow of the text1of Gen 1-3.
Gen 2:4 ends the first creation story that begins in Gen 1:1 r The second
creation story begins in 2:5 and ends in 2:25. It begins in 2:5-6, “with nominal sentences
and weqatal forms, all of them conveying information antecedent to the story that
The next completely demarcated text extends from Gen 3:1 to 3:24. Gen 3:1
contains a waw-qatal form (i.e., a compound nominal clause) and therefore is dependent
upon a narrative wayyiqtol. Despite the word echo from Gen 2:25, Gen 3:1 “is better
understood as connected with the following wayyiqtol. The main reason is that a new
based on them, not on our modem understanding or taste” (p. 177-178). See also idem. Syntax o f the Verb
in Classical Hebrew Prose (Sheffield: Sheffield, 1990).
Contra: Y. Endo, The Verbal System o f Classical Hebrew in the Joseph Story: An Approachfrom
Discourse Analysis (Assen: Van Gorcum, 1996); and Ronald S. Hendel, “In the Margins of the Hebrew
Verbal System: Situation, Tense, Aspect, Mood,” ZAH9 (1996): 129-181. Both Endo and Hendel rely on
semantics in classifying tenses without due respect for the function (syntax).
'Niccacci defined a text as “a logical (i.e., intelligible and consistent) sequence of linguistic signs,
placed between two significant breaks in communication” (“Analysis of Biblical Narrative,” 177, referring
to H. Weinrich, Tempus: Besprochene und erzdhlte Welt, 4th ed. [Stuttgart: Kohlhammer, 1985]).
Naccacci then adds this clarification: “A biblical text, for the most part, is generated by a chain of the
same type of verb forms (the chain of wayyiqtol in narrative and of weqatal in direct speech)” (177). He
continues: “Chains of wayyiqtol in narrative and of weqatal in direct speech enhance the ‘textuality’ of a
text; that is, they confer its coherence and consistency” (ibid., 178).
Niccacci seriously contends that Gen 2:4, “a simple nominal clause,” cannot be broken up into
two as commonly suggested (“Analysis of Biblical Narrative,” 183). “The chiastic arrangement of the text
makes it impossible for me to accept the splitting of 2:4 in two halves as literary critics commonly do.
The verse is, in fact, one literary unit” (ibid.). Furthermore, he defends: “Semantics and literary analysis
suggest that 2:4 is connected with the preceding text. In feet, the key terms of 1:1 are resumed. Actually,
the phrases in 2:4 |nK7n tr n tf n / O W l ]HK and DK"iart| / HKB? echo KH3 and
flKH nKl O'i20n n K ofl:l Literary analysis shows, however, that 2:4 is background
information to the preceding story rather that antecedent information to the following one” (ibid.. 184).
}Ibid., 187. This section ends in vs. 25. Niccacci verifies: “Since the wayyiqtol in 2:25 has a
conclusive function, we translate it "Thus (i.e., because they were oneflesh), the two were naked, namely,
the man and his wife, while (or although) they were not feeling shame'” (ibid., 189).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
113
character is introduced, the serpent, and the serpent is going to be important in the
following story.”1
This text evidently closes in Gen 3:24 “because in 4:1 we find a compound
nominal clause that interrupts the main line of narrative in order to convey antecedent
inform atio n ”2 before the next demarcated text, which tells the story of Cain and Abel.3
Naccacci explains:
Between the two significant breaks in the communication (3:1 and 4:1) the texts
flow without major interruption from the beginning to end. Direct speeches are
dominant throughout Indeed, the speeches are of special importance for the
development of the message.. . . The text advances directly and quickly without
allowing any pauses and the tension remains high throughout.4
'Ibid., 189. He continues: “If this understanding is correct, Gen 3:1a conveys information
previous to the main narrative. It is a kind of an indirect appeal of the writer to the reader, as if he were
saying that from the outset the reader should know that the serpent was the most cunning beast of the
earth. This is ‘comment’ (besprechen), not ‘narrative’ {erzdhlen)” (ibid.).
Francis Andersen, discussing “Episode-Initial Circumstantial Clause,” recognizes that Gen 3:1
and 4:1 are exemplify such: “The onset of a new episode is often marked by introducing a new dramatis
persona by means of a circumstantial clause. InGen3:l a new dramatis persona (the snake) is
introduced, and a new episode inaugurated, by means of a circumstantial clause: ‘now the snake was the
cunningest animal A new development in a story may be marked by a circumstantial clause, even
though the subject is not a new character. So the story of Cain begins: ‘. .. and Adam knew Eve his wife
(4:1).’ After that, regular waw-consecutive with prefixed (imperfect) verb (sequential past) clauses
continue the story” (The Sentence in Biblical Hebrew, [The Hague: Mouton, 1974], 79).
3Ibid. This compound nominal clause is translated with his explanation, as follows: “Now (from
the outset the reader should blow that) Adam knew Eve his wife. . . ” (emphasis his).
4Ibid., 194-195. He clarified: “Verbal sentences make up the main level of the narrative and
nominal sentences a secondary level. By using both verbal and nominal sentences, the writer can indicate
progress, pause, and interruption in the communication, allocating all information to either the main or
the secondary level (i.e., foreground or background). His choice is indicated by the verb forms used in the
narrative” (ibid., 175).
Naccacci indicates that “a chain of wayyiqtol constitutes the mainline of communication in
narrative.” For direct speech, however, “a chain of weqatal constitutes the mainline of communication”
(“Biblical Hebrew Verb System,” 177). “The chain of wayyiqtol in narrative as well as the chain of
weqatal in direct speech goes on without interruption until the author intends to signal a change” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
114
Gen 3:11, 13, 14 each begin with wayyiqtol and “are presented as discrete,
coordinate items, all on the same linguistic main level and successive one to the other:
‘He said. . . Then the Lord God said to the woman. . . And then the Lord God said to
the serpent.’”1
Gen 3:14-15 belongs to the syntactical unit of vss 14-19.2 Naccacci comments
on the syntactical arrangement of the quotation formulas of the three divine speeches of
He may, for a special purpose, want to “communicate a piece of information in a subsidiary line
(background) instead of in the mainline (foreground). The verb forms that signal an interruption in
narrative are those in the nominal clauses, either simple or compound” (ibid.).
Naccacci then demonstrates the syntactical flow on Gen 3:1-24 on the basis of the main and the
secondary level of information (ibid., 189-192).
'Naccacci contrasts: “On the contrary, in verses 14, 16 and 17 the three speeches- the first
introduced with wayyiqtol, the other two with (weyqatal— are presented as related items, in the sense
that the second and the third are related to the first as background to foreground” (“Basic Facts and
Theory of the Biblical Hebrew Verb System in Prose,” 177).
:See above on the section of the structural links of Gen 3:14-19. See also Sailhamer, “Genesis,”
57.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
115
The important implication of this is that Gen 3:14-15 remains the central
message of Gen 3 because syntactical and literary structural analysis prove it as such. It
becomes the watershed message that supersedes the punishments of the woman (vs. 16)
and man (vss. 17-19), which emanate from it. Gen 3:16-19 seems to further expand the
extended exposition in apposition of material which is not necessarily implicit in the lead
clause.”3 Each verse has three or more clauses in apposition to the lead clause of each
Francis Andersen observed that “it is customary for a curse or blessing to take
detailed prediction, in indicative mood, o f what the curse or blessing will entail.” There is
'Niccacci, “Analysis of Biblical Narrative,” 194. Niccacci further clarifies: “Wayyiqtol and
related qatal construction make up an indivisible syntactic unit. The qatal is syntactically dependent on
the wayyiqtol sentence” (“Basic Facts and Theory of the Biblical Hebrew Verb System in Prose,” 177). He
continues to explain that the Wayyiqtol is the main-line verb form in biblical Hebrew narrative while qatal
is a secondary-line verb form, used for antecedent information, circumstance or contrast (178).
5Ibid. Andersen earlier clarified: “An apposition sentence consists of two or more clauses in
juxtaposition (no conjunction). Such sentences may be arranged on a spectrum depending on how much
semantic overlap there is between the constituent clauses” (ibid., 36).
4Ibid., SO. This explains Gen 3:15 where the expository apposition “gives details of the enmity
between the snake and the woman” stated in the lead clause. Similar constructions in Gen 44:12; 12:8
have been called “circumstantial” (Paul JoQon, Grammaire de I ’Hebreu Biblique [Rome: Pontificio
istituto biblico, 1947], 487; and A. B. Davidson, Hebrew Syntax [Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1901], 188).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
116
other hand, the lead curse is indicative (predictive) as in the following apposition clauses
Gen 3:14 begins with a causal clause. Wenham noted that “it is unusual for a 'S
(because) clause to precede the main clause.. . . When causal clause precedes the main
clause, it underlines its importance. The most important clause comes first."2 The
causal particle ’S here governs “two juxtaposed clauses the first of which is logically
subordinate.”3 The complete causal phrase reads: “. . . Because you have done this. . . ”
Gen 3:14 consists of a protasis clause: HKT rPOIJ ’’S “Because you did this.”
rnten n»n
V T • * •
rransrrbso nnx
T ** : ~ T * T *
thk
T
“You are cursed among aU the animals and among all the living things of the earth. Upon
your belly shall you go all the days of your life.” For Naccacci, the fact that the verb IT 77
‘be" does not appear in the protasis means that “the sentence is an affirmation rather than
a command: ‘You are the most cursed among the beasts of the earth.'” This contrasts
with the affirmation phrase of vs. 3:1 which reads: “Now, the serpent was the most
:Wenham, Genesis 1-15,48, n. 14a. See also Gen 3:17. With the two juxtaposed clauses that the
causal particle governs, Paul JoQon and Takamitsu Muraoka also observe that: “The order of the
constituent members depends on the relative importance of each of the two ’3 is often in second
position: Gen 8:9; but it is sometimes in first position: Gen 3:14,17” (A Grammar o f Biblical Hebrew,
Subsidia 14 (Roma, Italia: Editrice Pontificio Istitutuo Biblico, 1983), 2:640, §l70n).
'Joflon and Muraoka, 2:638, §170d, citing 1 Sam 26:23 as another such instance. He adds: “The
various nuances of causality are usually rendered by particles. The most common conjunction is '3 , one
of whose many meanings is that o f‘because, for’” (p. 638).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
117
cunning among the beasts of the earth.”1 The protasis clause, HNT rrtDX? '2 “because
you did this,” is presumably “an abbreviated reference representing all that is outlined in
3:1-13 ”2
subject. This is a nominal clause with optative force.3 “The optative force is especially
conspicuous when the predicate is a passive participle and precedes the subject.” Gen
9:25, 1VIK, is similar to Gen 3:14, HflK TT1K. “The reverse sequence is also
Generally, the subject precedes the predicate in the majority of the occurrences
intended when the predicate precedes the subject. “A personal pronoun tends to occupy
:Ogden, 134. See Norman Henry Snaith, Notes on the Hebrew Text o f Genesis I-VIII (London:
Epworth, 1947), 34.
Motion and Muraoka, 2:615, § I63b. It is found in greeting formulae as in Judg 6:23, “greetings
to you!”; Ruth 2:4, “Yahweh be with you!” It is also found in blessings and curses as in Gen 9:26,
“Yahweh be blessed!”
4lbid., 2:566, §154e. See also Francis I. Andersen, The Hebrew Verbless Clause in the
Pentateuch, Journal of the Bible Literature Monograph Series, 14 (New York: Abingdon, 1970), 38,49
passim. JoOon and Muraoka generalized: “The jussive of optative sentences is mostly found before the
subject” (2:566, §155L). See Gen 1:3,6,9, 11,14,20,24; 27:41; Exod 5:21; Num 6:24,25 (priestly
benediction); 20:24; Ps 128:5.
5See JoOon and Muraoka, 2:567-568, §154f. These statistics are based on a study of selected
portions of the OT: see Andersen, Verbless, 31; and Takamitsu Muraoka, EmphaticWords and Structures
in Biblical Hebrew (Leiden: Brill, 1985), 6 passim.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
118
preceding a pronominal subject often does receive some prominence.”1 Furthermore, Jan
Joosten argues for an aspectual difference between the two sequences, subject-participle
present.”2
“the predicate describes the entity represented by the subject, to indicate in what state,
assigned.”3
described as sentences used to make “statements to two (or more) related and
contemporary facts which are not contrastive nor antithetical. The facts may be past
(using 'perfect’ verbs), future (using 'imperfect’ verbs), or timeless (using quasiverbals or
verbless predication).”4 Here, imperfect verbs are used; these two sentence clauses are
‘Joilon and Muraoka, 2:268-569, §1546. See Muraoka, Emphatic, IS; and idem, "On the
Nominal Clause in Late Biblical Hebrew and Mishnaic Hebrew,” in Languages Studies IV, ed. Mosheh
Bar-Asher (Jerusalem: Magnes, 1990), 219-252.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
119
also called “Conjoined Predictive clauses.” These are clauses referring to “concomitant
The final phrase of Gen 3:14 is ,!5v‘b 2 “. . . All the Days of Your Life.”
answering the questions “when?’ and “how long?’2 “The indirect accusative is indirectly
verbal predicate.”3 In this verse, the verbs that govern this indirect accusative are S2KPI
and H ^n.4
15(a) rrtfK r a w
15(c) n i p t *pai ^ s n r y a i
'Ibid. He continues: “Since imperfect verb clauses rarely begin with the verb, conjunctive
sentences with imperfect verbs often resemble contrastive sentences and whether such a sentence is
antithetical or not is determined more by semantic content alone, more in this case than others” (ibid.).
Gen 22:17 is another example of this usage.
2Jo0on-Muraoka, § 126i, 458-459. Examples given include: “this day”; “today’'; “this night” (2
Sam 19:8); “in the evening, in the morning, and at noon I will cause my complaint to be heard” (Ps
55:18); “this year” (Jer 28:16); “in that year” (Gen 26:12); “(in) one day” (Gen 27:45); “six days” (Exod
20:9, 11).
4Ibid. Furthermore: “In some categories of the indirect accusative, that of time and place in
particular, the syntactic relationship is sometimes made more explicit by the use of an appropriate
preposition or by the use of a noun with a paragogic vowel” (ibid.). JoQon-Muraoka gives the following as
examples:
1. Predicative accusative of state: using Adjective, Participle, Substantive;
2. Accusative of limitation; (3) Accusative of local determination (place);
4. Accusative of temporal determination; (5) Accusative of measure;
6. Accusative of cause; and (7) Accusative of instrument (§ 126,455-9).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
120
15(e) a p r i s s ic n n n « i
In Gen 3:15, emphasis is given to the noun HZPhH “enmity” because it is placed
at the beginning of the sentence. It stands at the head of the lead clause in the apposition
as the operating word there. The word guides the meaning and movement o f the
remaining clauses and phrases of the verse which serve to explain it. Thus, it carries the
On a closer look, indeed, the word HIPKI “enmity” runs through all the Gen
“Enmity is ‘established' between the human and the animal world, between man and
There is an obvious shift from the single individuals: ntS’Kil ]'31 “The serpent
and the woman,” to the plural collective: HSHT p s i ^17"IT ]’21 “The seed of the
serpent and the seed of the woman,” and finally to a definitely single individual
representative locked in a duel: “The serpent and the Woman's Seed,” understandable
from the phrases 3j5» 13S1tfR nPHI ^SISP K1H. This evidences the
narrowing from collective to individual, from plural to singular. This has very significant
'G. Savran, “Beastly Speech: Intertextuality, Balaam’s Ass, and the Garden of Eden.” JSOT 64
(1994): 41.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
121
The final part of Gen 3:15 reads: 3j5If ttBTCfFl HFIK1 B in TjSlB*; K1H
“He shall aim at (or crush) your head, whilst you will aim at (or crush) his heel.” These
are two instances of an “independent pronoun added to a finite verbal form.”1 Jouon-
Muraoka wrote:
Since a finite verbal form in itself indicates the person, it can be said that,
whenever a verb occurs with a pronoun, some nuance is intended. Generally
speaking, the addition of a pronoun gives some special prominence to the person
or persons indicated by it, comparable to the close-up focus in photography. The
person or persons may be perceived by the speaker or writer as prominent per se
or in relation to some other person or persons.2
the accusative.”3 This accusative points out ‘That part or object, or that member, which
is specially concerned, and to which, along with the leading idea, special prominence is to
}Ibid., § I26g, 457. See other discussions above. It is called in Arabic terminology: tamyk
“specification.” See 1 Kgs 15:23; Gen 41:40; 17:11; 37:21; Exod 6:3; Josh 7:8, 12; Jer 2:16,27; 18:17;
32:33; Ps 3:8; Deut 22:26; 33:11; 2 Sam 3-27.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
122
These two phrases are set in contrast to each other. Andersen translates:
and you (on the other hand) will crush him heel.”3
These identical verbs “point to similarity, while ‘head’ versus ‘heel’ is contrastive. But
neither of these pairs is brought into prominence. The contrast is between ‘he’ and
‘you.’”4 These two phrases describe two parallel simultaneous but different activities.
The participants in this contrast have been “brought into prominence by realizing them as
Paul Saydon contends that the correct translation demands a conative sense as
follows: “He will attack you in the head, and you will try to attack him in the heel,” i.e.,
“the woman’s seed will completely defeat the serpent, while the serpent will only try, but
in vain, to bite the heel of his adversary.”6 Knut Hotter strongly disagrees, saying that
'Heinrich Ewald, Syntax o f the Hebrew Language o f the Old Testament, trans. James Kennedy
(Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1879), 54. See also Ps 68:22; I Kgs 19:21: “he cooked them (as regards) the
flesh,” i.e., cooked their fleshy parts. Deut 22:26 reads: “he strikes him (in the) soul,” i.e., in the life, i.e.,
dead.
2Ibid.
-Ibid.
5Ibid. Andersen also indicated that: “A mild contrast between two related clauses can be secured
without advancing to the outright opposition between antithetical and exclusive clauses” (ibid.)
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
123
this does not take the perpetual aspect of the sentence into account, and that the verb
should really be read iteratively, whereby both action or attacks happen on the same
level.1
At this juncture, a few remarks are needed on the wow joining Gen 3:1 Sd and
15e, that is, nPIKI.2 Several options have been given on how to rightly construe this
conjunction:
1. HPIKl
r “ : as adversative: This makes the last clause subordinate to the first.
Combining this with the inchoactive gives the idea, “he will crush your head,
while you will only try (and fail) to bite, etc.” This translation, by subordinating
the last clause, does not digress from the curse but rather intensifies it, making
the failure of the snake to inflict mortal damage part of his curse, and thus it
reinforces the human salvation sense. The main problem for this translation,
however, is that it requires the insinuation of the word ‘only’ and the inchoactive
sense. If we ask what in the context would give this insinuation, the only answer
is that which other interpreters have given; namely the head/heel antithesis, which
suffers from the fact that a wound from the snake in the heel may be fatal.3
“because” makes Gen 3:15e “an explanation statement put at the end of the curse,
explaining the guilt of the snake.”5 This means that the curse starts and ends with an
explanation as follows: “because you have done this” (vs. 14), and “because you
'Holter, 110.
4See Emil Kautzsch, ed., Gesenius ’ Hebrew Grammar, trans. A. E. Cowley (Oxford, England:
Clarendon, 1910), 492, § 158a, where Gesenius notes that as a rule, however, a causal clause is introduced
with a causal preposition. This work is hereafter cited as GKC.
sRonning, 94.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
124
attack(ed) his heel." This presents the curse “more as a judicial pronouncement than as a
imperfect is possible. “As Gesenius notes, however, all these passages are in the context
of a conditional future, where the punishments may be avoided, so they cannot provide a
3. Waw in HF1K1, not strictly causal, but also comparative, introducing the
“measure for measure” idea: “The English ‘as,’ meaning both ‘because’ and ‘like,’ would
suggest this dual sense better than the German ‘we//.’"3 Haspecker and Lohfink support
this comparative sense in Gen 3:13 with certain biblical and non-biblical comparison
materials:
a. Retaliation thought in Gen 9:6, “he who sheds man’s blood, by man his blood
shall be shed.” This would reflect in Gen 3:15 as “he will crush your head,
type whereby Gen 3:15 is similar to Gen 3:17-19; 4:10-12; 49:66-67; Deut 28:15-
46; 1 Sam 15:23; 2 Sam 12:12; 1 Kgs 21:19; 2 Chr 12:5; 24:20; Hos 4:5-6 showing
that both punishment and the reason for the punishment are given together.
Conning, 94. See GKC § 158d. Cf. Deut 7:12; 8:20; and 1 Kgs 8:35.
‘Ronning, 94.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
125
“Applied to Gen 3:15, the punishment is ‘he will crush your head,' and the reason is.
c. A line in the Ugaritic epic of Aqhat where El gives permission to the goddess
Anat when she was seeking a revenge: Driver translates, “He who hinders you shall
be utterly struck down,”2 while Coogan translates “Whoever slanders you will be
crushed.”3
d. In the ancient pictorial depictions of battle and victory, “crushing of the head
is either the end of the fight, or a victory gesture over a dead body.”4 In Enuma
elish, Marduk tramples Tiamat’s dead body, and Naram-Sin of Akkad stands on two
dead bodies after a victory. “These and other examples suggest that Gen 3:15 is a
4. The imperfect sense in Gen 3:15d and Gen 3:15e has a present/future
connotation. “The snake will continue to waylay humans (as the prediction of enmity
implies), because it is its nature to do so; therefore the punishment to be inflicted is not
'Ibid., 95. “Further, it is typical in these prophetic judgments for there to be a verbal association
between guilt and punishment; for example ‘eat’ in Gen 3:17, and this common feature explains the
double use of in Gen 3:15” (ibid.). Cf. Haspecker and Lohfink, 365-367.
Conning, 94.
3Ibid. See also Haspecker and Lohfink, 362-363. Cf. ANET, 500; Michael David Coogan,
Stories from Ancient Canaan (Philadelphia: Westminster, 1978), 38; and J. C. L. Gibson, Canaanite
Myths and Legends (Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1977), 111 (Aqhat 18.i. 19).
4Ronning, 95.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
126
only for the original offense, but for all of those which will be committed in the future.”1
The third and fourth options seem to fit the context and the grammar best of all.
The waw is not strictly causal, but also comparative, introducing the idea of “measure for
measure.” Both attacks happen simultaneously and also have a futuristic application to
them. The implications o f this verse are exhibited in the religious history of mankind.
The matter of whether the serpent loses to the special Seed of the woman in this
conflict or not continues to recur. The thematic context and semantics of Gen 3:14-15,
and their intertextuality, shed more light on this matter. The points of attack also seem to
suggest the more serious wound, whether to the head or to the heel. This does not
overlook the fact that each attack had fatal intention and capabilities. We shall now turn
One of the important exegetical processes is the semantic analysis and study of
word use in the text in question. This is the purpose of this section of this chapter. It
concentrates on the major words and significations in Gen 3:14-15 and pronominal and
©n: is a singular masculine noun, with the definite article. It was first
introduced and mentioned by name in the narrative in Gen 3:1 where it was described as
“more subtle than any beast of the field.” In this narrative, it is always appearing with the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
127
article.1 This suggests also that the writer understands that the serpent must have been
earlier introduced to Adam and Eve prior to Gen 3. God must have warned the couple
about an enemy of God and God’s creations somehow before the serpent himself
appeared to them. This appears logical from the use of the definite article.
Referring to Gen 2:15, God put man in the garden rPGSJ*? “to
13X1 also connotes the fact that the couple were like servants working for a superior.
This use here may already be a reminder for loyalty to God rather than another impostor
or enemy.
The second verb "IQ® more clearly hints at what was coming. To be forewarned
is to be forearmed. The varied nuances of this word, as mentioned above, clearly point to
the underlying root meaning: “to pay careful attention to.”2 This includes focusing on
“oneself, on others over whom one has charge, or on the expressed or implicit will of
one’s superior.”3 Further light is shed on the intensity of the responsibility and warning
by the use of the same verb in Gen 3:24. Here, the verb IQ tf is used to indicate the
mandate God gave for the Cherubim and the flaming sword to guard the garden by
'Walter C. Kaiser concludes that since the Serpent, “always with the article and thus, no doubt,
referring to a title” (Toward an Old Testament Theology [Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1978], 36).
’Keith N. Schoville, “Hatf ” NIDOTTE (1997), 4:182; see also pp. 183-184. See J. Hermann
Austel, “1 3 0 ,” TWOT, 2:939-942; BDB (1996), s.v. “in t f "; Georg Bertram, “ ^ u A x f o o w , <f>uA m o),”
TDNT, 9:236-244; Walter C. Kaiser, “ 153,” TWOT, 2:594-595; Harald Riesenfeld, “TTip€o>,” Theological
Dictionary o f the New Testament, 8:140-151; Hans-Georg SchOtz and Colin Brown, “Guard, Keep,
Watch,” NIDNTT, 2:132-137; and Marvin R. Wilson, *103," TWOT, 2:576-577.
’Schoville, 182.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
128
Another hint for the reader about the prior warning given to Adam and Eve
comes from the etymology of the name of the forbidden tree in the middle of the garden
o f Eden found in the expression in Gen 2:17: J711 2i£3 njH H “but of the tree of
the knowledge of good and evil.” The phrase 1711 2l£3 “good and evil” later appear in
the story of the foil in Gen 3:5, 22. The warning about evil that was looming through an
enemy of God was given to them. Similarly, the mention of the possibility of dying (Gen
®n3 is the verb derived from ©rt3. The verb appears only in PieL, meaning
“practice divination, divine, observe signs” “learn by omens,” e.g., Gen 30:27; 44:5; Lev
19:26; 2 Kgs 21:6; 2 Chr 33:6.' This reveals more o f the nuances of the word for snake.
The generic term for snake is ytfn3. However, it has several synonyms in the
in Ps 140:3 [MT 4] “where it is clearly a snake (may be the homed viper, Cerastes
'BDB (19%), s.v. “tins.” Studies on the Serpent/Snake are found in: I. Aharoni, “On Some
Animals Mentioned in the Bible,” Osiris 5 (1938): 461-478; Robert L. Alden, “tfnj,” TWOT, 2:571-572;
Hans Bietenhard and Philip J. Budd, “Dragon, Serpent, Scorpion, Sting,” NIDNTT, 1:507-511; F. S.
Bodenheimer, Animal and Man in Bible Lands (Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1960), 65-68; G. Cansdale, All the
Animals o f the Bible Lands (Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1970), 202-210; Alfred Ely Day and Gregory D.
Jordan, “Serpent,” ISBE, 4:417-418; Heinz-Josef Fabry, “3JT13,” Theologisches Worterbuch zum Alten
Testament, 5:384-397; Wemer Foerster, “afuc,” TDNT, 5:566-582; K. R. Joines, “The Bronze Serpent in
the Israelite Cult,” JBL 87 (1968): 245-256; idem, Serpent Symbolism in the Old Testament: A Linguistic,
Archaeological, and Literary Study (Haddonfieid, NJ: Haddonfield House, 1974); idem, “Winged
Serpents in Isaiah’s Inaugural Vision,” JBL 86 (!%7): 410-5; Gary L. Knapp, “Viper,” ISBE, 4:988-989;
W. Stewart McCullough, “Serpent,” IDB, 4:289-291; Robert C. Stallman, “tfnj,” NIDOTTE, 3:84-88;
and D. J. Wiseman, “Flying Serpents?” Tyndale Bulletin 23 (1972): 108-110.
^obin Wakely, “ *pO,” NIDOTTE (1997), 3:1289. It is used in apposition to the word BTO in
Num 2 1:6 and Deut 8:15 to mean fiery serpents probably to reflect “the nature of the venom of the snakes”
or the “burning inflammation resulting from a snakebite” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
129
cornutus).”' ]PS refers to “cobra” in Ps 58:4[MT 5]. ]EFSKB “appears only in Gen
"OilS!! means “viper” in Prov 23:32;Jer 8:17; Isal 1:8. HJJSK means the
“adder” in Job 20:16. 3792S means “viper” in Isa 14:29 as used in Ps 58:4-5[5-6]
associating it with the act of charming, like the Egyptian cobra (also called uraeus, Naja
haje). n a p is also an hapax legomenon found in Isa 34:15 which may be “a dialectic
equivalent of owl”3 or just the harmless “arrow snake (Eryx jaculusj,”4 or the common
Paul Jouon considers the word “snake” as synonymous to “reptile” in Gen 3:14,
reasoning that snakes have not always walked on their bellies. However, he prefers the
translation “dragon” to both “snake” and “reptile” because “dragon” also signifies a
supernatural being that may even possess wings. He argues that the Hebrew word OTH
has a wider semantic range than the word “serpent.” He believes the curse of Gen 3:14
'Stallmann, 85.
JIbid.
3Ibid., 87.
4Ibid.
sIbid. Additionally, ]Cf3 is “a geographical name and may stand in Ps 68:22[23] as the extreme
opposite of the bottom off the sea (cf. similar language in Amos 9:3), but on the strength of Ugaritic
evidence might also be another name of tannin, the sea monster” (87). Cf. Ugaritic bin; Akkadian
basmu; Arabic baian. Finally, “designates a range of creatures, from those in the sea (Gen 1:21; Ps
148:7), to land snakes (Exod 7:9, 10, 12; Deut 32:33; Ps 91:13), to a mythological sea monster (Job 7:12)
that signifies the kings of enemy nations (Jer 51:34; Ezek 29:3; 32:2) and appears in parallel with
Leviathan (Ps 74:13; Isa 27:1) and Rahab (Isa 51:9)” (ibid., and ibid., 4:313-314).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
130
resulted in the actual physical bodily degradation of the dragon into the form of a snake.'
There is no justification for taking the serpent other than the simple natural snake
that God made at the beginning. Gen 3:1 mentions that the serpent is one of the “beasts
of the field which the Lord had made.” Those beasts were all under the sovereignty of
Adam. They were not supernatural Hence, the serpent was an ordinary snake, although
it may indeed have originally had the ability to fly, as Paul Jouon suggests.2
UJrt3 is also used figuratively; of oppressor (Isa 14:29), of Dan (Gen 49:17);
symbolically, of world-powers (Isa 27:1); and mythologically (Job 26:13; 3:6). It is used
in the form of a simile of pemiciousness of ungodly (Pss 58:5; 140:4), of the effect of
wine (Prov 22:32), and of eating dust (Gen 3:14; Isa 65:25; Mic 7:17).3 This sheds
more light on the negative connotation of the serpent as representing an evil power.
While the text of Gen 3:1 refers to an ordinary snake made by God, there are
also hints in the text that more than a mere reptile is involved. Kaiser rightly argued this:
Note the intelligence, conception, speech, and knowledge the serpent possesses-
indeed, a knowledge that surpasses either what the man or woman have. The
tempter speaks as if he has access to the mind of God-or at least to the
supernatural world. “The Serpent” is clearly individualized, for the pronoun used
of him in Hebrew is the second person masculine singular pronoun. Furthermore,
the serpent of the temptation is the serpent of the final conflict; he is someone
whom a future male descendant of the woman will strike with a crushing blow to
his skull. Thus, the designation “the serpent” is probably a title, not the particular
shape he assumed or the instrument he borrowed to manifest himself to the
original pair Even the alleged demotion of the means of locomotion for
'Paul Jouon, “Le grand Dragon, l’ancien Serpent: Apoc. 12,9 et Genese 3,14," RSR 17 (1927):
444-446. He commends Jerome for using “draconem’ in Exod 7:15, and John for using “snake” and
“dragon” interchangeably in Rev 12.
"Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
131
reptiles from a upright walking position to that of crawling on one’s belly and
eating dust (Gen 3:14) is insufficient to demonstrate that this being had a reptilian
form when he appeared to the first couple. Had not God made creeping things
that crawled on their bellies in the first chapter of Genesis and called them “good”
(1:24-25)? The words of the curse on the serpent, therefore, must be figures of
speech, vividly picturing those who had been vanquished and who must now lie
face down in the dirt while the conquering king literally makes these enemies his
footstool. When all these details are taken into account, the identity of the
tempter can be none other than Satan, that old dragon, the serpent.'
The OT often describes the serpent as God’s cosmic enemy. This is stated in Isa
27:1: “In that day the Lord with His severe sword, great and strong, will punish
Leviathan the fleeing serpent, Leviathan that twisted serpent.”2 This explicitly described
'Walter C. Kaiser, Jr., The Messiah in the Old Testament, Studies in Old Testament Biblical
Theology (Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1995), 38-39. NT identified the serpent of Gen 3:15 as Satan in
Rom 16:20; 2 Cor 11:3,14; and Rev 12:9 (ibid., n. 4). Briggs agrees that the serpent’s ‘intelligence,
conception, speech, and knowledge higher than that of the man or the woman” indicate that it was more
than just an ordinary animal (72-77). The serpent was an evil spirit appearing in the form of a snake in
like manner as God incarnated in human form. See also Ronning, 73; referring to the views of Procksch,
Die Genesis, 34-35. Willis recommends: “The context of Genesis 3 indicates that (a) the serpent is a
wild animal, but also that (b) he has abilities above and beyond that which is typical of wild animals”
(127).
^Leviathan is mentioned as an animal 5 times in the OT. See Ps 74:13-14; 104:26; Job 3:8-9;
41:1 (Heb 40:25); and Isa 27:1. Maarten J. Paul notes: “In many passages in the OT, such as Pss 74, 89,
93, 104, Job 9,26 and 38, there are allusions to a conflict between Yahweh and a dragon (variously
termed Leviathan, Rahab, twisting serpent, or simply dragon) or the sea at the time of creation___
Yahweh’s defeat of the chaos monster in the past is appealed to as a ground of confidence for him to act to
deliver his people in the present” (“]rR*?,” NIDOTTE, 2:778-780). See for further studies: John Day,
God's Conflict with the Dragon and the Sea: Echoes o f a Canaanite Myth in the Old Testament
(Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1985); T. N. D. Mettinger, “Fighting the Powers of Chaos and
Hell: Towards the Biblical Portrait of God,” Studia theologica 39 (1985): 21-38; John N. Oswalt, “The
Myth of the Dragon and Old Testament Faith,” Evangelical Quarterly 49 (1977): 163-172; Mary K.
Wakeman, God’s Battle with the Monster: A Study in Biblical Imagery (Leiden: Brill, 1973); and David
Wolfers, “The Lord’s Second Speech in the Book of Job,” IT 40 (1990): 474-499.
3More stories about the battle between a god and a sea/chaos monster are found in ANET, 66-68
and 125-126; and James Pritchard, The Ancient Near East in Pictures (Princeton: Princeton University
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
132
Similarly in Mic 7:16-17, the enemies of God and His people are said to be tin 33 “like
the serpent” which licks the dust and crawls on their bellies.1
of “apostate” (sata) and “snake” (nas; i.e., tirt3 without the middle guttural).2 “There is
a very close relationship between serpent and divination, particularly seen in the same
word stem for ‘serpent’ and ‘divination.”3 Also, the serpent tin 3 “is presumably related
Distinguishing between the natural serpent and the evil power that possessed it in
Gen 3, Ephrem the Syrian mentioned that the serpent was inferior to human beings,
though more subtle than other animals.3 Thus, the Serpent was definitely acting as “the
obedient instrument o f ‘the Evil One,’ and the ‘executor of the intentions of Satan.’”6
'Prophet Micah roust have intentionally used the same definite article with the serpent in order to
link his imagery to Gen 3:1. Furthermore, the description of licking the dust and crawling echoes Gen
3:14. See also Ps 72:9.
:ANF, 1.250-251, and A. Lukyn Williams, Justin Martyr: The Dialogue with Trypho,
Translation, Introduction, and Notes, Translations of Christian Literature, Series I - Greek Texts
(London: MacMillan, 1930), 216, ns. 5,6.
'Charles A. Haun, Genesis: Chapters One Through Five (Goldsboro, NC: Teaching All Nations,
1984), 133. tins is a masculine noun meaning “divination, enchantment” both found in the story of
Balaam in Num 23:23; 24:1 (BDB (1996), s.v. “tiTO”).
‘Bums, 8. See William Lee Holladay, A Concise Hebrew and Aramaic Lexicon o f the Old
Testament (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1971), 235.
’Kronholm, 89,93.
6fbid. He expatiates: “The seducing Serpent was a reptile of an entirely natural character.. . . It
was under the sovereignty of man, to whom the Creator had given the royal dominion over the created
universe.. . . This total inferiority of the Serpent implies that its pre-eminent subtility, noted in Gen 3:1,
is confined to the animal world, to the singular exclusion of man For Adam/man was wiser than all
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
133
The Wisdom o f Solomon 2:24 also designates the serpent of Eden as the Devil.
Likewise, rabbinic exegesis is filled with the teaching that this serpent represents Satan.1
Cassuto also witnessed to this understanding of the serpent as “the symbol of evil,”2 and
and “God in disguise.”8 Robert C. Stallmann adds that “snakes used in simile and
metaphor indicate wicked behavior that wounds society (Deut 32:33; Pss 58:4[5];
140:3 [4]; Isa 59:5), the misery of a hangover (Prov 23:32), and the ultimate anguish of
the wicked, whose pleasures are only short-lived (Job 20:14, 16).”9 I disagree with these
the beasts— he who had been instituted the ruler and leader of the beasts- and more subtle than all of
them- he who determined the names of them all Although, (the Serpent) was more subtle than the
beasts, he was a fool (in comparison) with Adam and Eve, the rulers of the beasts” (pp. 88-89).
'See Miqraoth Gdoloth on Gen 3:1. Two such notable Jewish scholars are (bn Ezra and S(bmo.
JIbid„ 160.
^Norman P. Williams, Ideas o f the Fall and Original Sin: A Historical and Critical Study
(London: Longmans, Green, 1927), 44.
‘Fishbane, “Genesis 2.4b-11.32: The Primeval Cycle,” 22. Fishbane adds: “The serpent
symbolizes the instinctual, rebellious urges fueling that desire and ‘cleverly’ concocting justifications for
it” (ibid.).
'’Stallman, 87. Other figurative uses are found in the NT: Matt 3:7; 23:33; Luke 3:7; Matt 10:16.
Skinner believes: “The marvellous agility of the snake, in spite of the absence of visible motor organs, its
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
134
allegorical conjectures because God recognized the serpent as an individual being and so
addressed him separately from the human pair, rather than as a mere thought or feeling
residing in humans.
‘ran nn«
T ' T -
irm “You Are Cursed Above ..
T
This is the first occurrence of divine curse. Its root CmK) appears fifty-five (55)
times in the OT, predominantly in the Pentateuch with eight occurrences in Genesis (Gen
3:14,17; 4:11; 5:29; 9:25; 12:3; 27:29; and 49:7). Kenneth A. Matthews elaborates:
In Gen 3:14, the form is a Qal passive participle "111K. This same form occurs
thirty-nine times in pronouncements of curses of both the deterrent and judicial types, and
stealthy movements, its rapid death-dealing stroke, and its mysterious power of fascinating other animals
and even men, sufficiently account for the superstitious regard of which it has been the object amongst all
peoples” (72).
‘Kenneth A. Mathews, Genesis 1-11:26 (Nashville, TN: Broadman & Holman, 19%), 244. See
also H. C. Brichto, The Problem with the “Curse" in the Hebrew Bible, SBLMS 13 (Philadelphia: SBL,
1%8), 114-115; Josef Scharbert, Theological Dictionary o f the Old Testament, 1:405-418, esp.
415.
2Robert P. Gordon, “"HK,” NIDOTTE, 1:524-526. In Deut 27-28, “long series of curses, in a
manner redolent of the Near Eastern vassal treaties, warn against Israel’s defection from the God who has
conferred his benefits on her and has brought her into a covenant relationship with himself. There is an
occurrence of the qal passive participle in the Siloam Tomb inscription (eighth century), 11.2-3 (’Cursed is
the man who opens this’); c£ Gibson, Textbook, 1, 1971,23-4” (ibid., 525).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
135
The Hebrew "HN is a cognate with the Akkadian araru, “curse, treat with
disrespect,” and its associated noun arratu (curse). It also has South Arabic and Ethiopic
cognates.'
“The most frequent OT use of the curse-form is in the covenant or legal context
of Deut 2 7 ,28.”2 This constitutes the basic curse-form pattern for other examples,
“though some do have other minor features as well.”3 Hence, the curse-forms in Gen
3:14-15, 17-19 are the most expanded curse-forms in the OT. They are “formally more
complex than the most basic requirements of the curse as it occurs elsewhere in the OT,
“The qal passive participle THH occurs in a curse formula pronounced at Quinran ceremonies of
initiation (see IQS 2:5,7), and again in a general curse uttered against Belial and ‘all the spirits of his
lot’ in IQM 13:4. There are also reconstructed occurrences of the qal passive participle in several other
Dead Sea Scroll texts” (ibid., 525-526). C f Dictionary o f Classical Hebrew ( 1993), s.v. “"OK.” See also
S. H. Blank, “The Curse, Blasphemy, the Spell, and the Oath,” HUCA 23, no. I (1950-1): 73-95; E.
Combs, “Has YHWH Cursed the Ground? Perplexity of Interpretation in Genesis 1-5,” in Ascribe to the
Lord, ed. L. Eslinger and G. Taylor (London: Sheffield, 1988), 265-287; T. G. Crawford, Blessing and
Curse in Syro-Palestinian Inscriptions o f the Iron Age (New York: P. Lang, 1992); Scharbert, “"HR,”
405-418; and A. C. Thiselton, “The Supposed Power of Words in the Biblical Writings,” JTS 25 (1974):
283-299.
HDgden, 132.
3Ibid. “In Deut 27:15-26 there are twelve examples all conforming to the pattern, ‘cursed is the
man who. . . ’ Each occurrence of the form contains the ’Srur formula together with the object of the
curse. There is no motive clause present, nor is mention made of the content of the curse. In Deut 28:16-
19 the ’BrBr formula is used six times, followed by the object ‘you’, together with an adverbial clause
introduced by be” (ibid., 132). The few examples of curses with the ^/-clause appended include Gen 49:7
and 1 Sam 26:19, both of which have the tf-clause after the ’Srur formula rather than preceding it as in
Gen 3:14, 17.
Mbid. How the form evolved was discussed by Clark, “Law,” 113-116; Delbert R. Hillers, Treaty
Curses andO.T. Prophets (Rome: Pontifical Biblical Institute, 1964); W. Schottroffi Der israelitische
Fluchspruche, WMANT, 30 (Neukirchen: Neukirchen Verlag, 1969); and R Schulz, Das Todesrecht im
A. T , BZAW, 114 (Berlin: TOpelmann, 1969).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
136
(a) tf-clause in which the reason for the curse being pronounced is identified;
(b) the curse-form ’arur,
(c) the object of the curse (“you”, “ground”);
(d) an adverbial clause introduced by ‘al (vs. 14) and be (vs. 17), which begins the
detailed description of the curse’s outworking or effect;
(e) a further clause introduced by waw (vss. 15, 18), elaborating the curse’s effects
in terms of enmity or alienation.1
Preuss explained that curses are usually not extended to descendants in the
distant future. “Us purpose was the immediate or at least speedy extermination of the
person addressed and his ’descendants’. . . . And by its very nature a curse formula
cannot apply both to the person cursed and to his descendants.”2 Hence, the serpent is
the recipient o f God’s curses, and his followers receive it only by extension. Moreover,
death and defeat are the implication of the curse to the serpent.3 On the other hand,
victory belongs to the woman and her seed because they are never cursed.
'Ogden, 31.
*H. D. Preuss, “PIT,” TDOT, 4:158. Preuss cites conforming examples such as: Lev 26:9,29;
Deut 28:4, 11, 18,32,41, SO, 53; 30:19; 32:25. The exception is Deut 30:19, “where it is not the curse
but life that is extended to the descendants. There are probably several reasons that brought about this
evident limitation on the effects of a curse. In the first place, we have the conviction that a curse should
take effect rapidly but not extend through a period of generations And by its very nature a curse
formula cannot apply both to the person cursed and to his descendants” (ibid.). See also Josef Scharbert,
Solidarity in Segen undfinch im ATund in seiner Umwelt, BBB, 14 (Bonn: P. Hanstein, 1958), 47, 103,
128-131,251-5.
'David C. C. Watson postulates: “It is very likely that God's curse upon the serpent reduced its
'brain-power.'.. . Though the snake is now far less ‘intelligent’ than the elephant, dolphin, chimpanzee
and dog, he is still the Artful Dodger of the animal world” (Myths and Miracles: A New Approach to
Genesis l- l l [Worthing, Sussex: H. E. Walter, 1976], 63-64). He enumerates: “Snakes also have a
transparent cap over their eyes, instead of eyelids, so it is difficult to tell whether they are asleep- or
watching you By nature a snake’s tongue is not now adapted fix’speech; but it once may have been,
just as parrots and mynahs can learn to talk-although their tongues were obviously not made fix’this” (p.
64).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
137
It is noteworthy that it was the Lord God Q^nSK HI IT who pronounced the
curse on the serpent. “For a curse to be effective it had to have divine authority and to be
properly directed.”1 The curse of Gen 3:14 is divinely instituted and thus irrevocable. Its
purpose is to safeguard His creation order. This in itself suggests utter defeat for the
that I do not see as most appropriate for this context.2 Kaiser treats it as a “particle of
distinction and eminence, not a partitive (‘any of the cattle’); rather, it is the comparative
form (‘above the cattle’).”3 The “serpent,” distinguished from other divine creations, is
:For example, Hamilton posits that the serpent is alienated from the animal world by this curse;
“hence the translation ‘banned’ rather than ‘cursed’” (Genesis Chapters 1-17, 194). He refers to
Gesenius’s use of p with separating force- "taken from” (GKC, § 119w). Brichto defined the notion
broadly as “to bind (with a spell), hem in with obstacles, render powerless to resist” (82-87). In Gen 3:17-
18 and 4:11, it can only mean “to lie under a spell or ban.” “In 4:11 the spell is on Cain, barring (or
banning) him from the earth’s fertility; in 3:17-18 the spell is on the soil, rendering it recalcitrant to the
ministration of the first man and his descendants. In both cases the colloquial expression ‘hexed’ could be
applied to that which is <3rur” (Brichto, The Problem o f “Curse "in the Hebrew Bible, 8S). See also E.
A. Speiser, “An Angelic ‘Curse’: Exodus 14:20,” JAOS 80 (1960): 198. Elsewhere, Speiser proposes the
translation: “Banned shall you be from all the cattle” (22,24).
Also, Young posits that God cursed the serpent ‘“ away from’ the cattle and beasts of the earth.
The thought is not that of comparison, as though the Lord had said that ail the beasts would be cursed, but
that the serpent would be cursed more than any” (Genesis 3 ,97).
4Ibid. Kaiser reports that the same particle is seen in Judg 5:24: “Blessed above women’—
blessed like no other woman (cf. Deut 33:14)” (ibid.). Nothing indicates that all animals are cursed. Only
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
138
This particle is in the sense of “out of the number of.”1 This particular or
exclusive meaning of ]D is established by cases such as Exod 19:5; Deut 14:2; 33:24.
“Therefore, this beast is singled out for a curse over against ‘all the animals' (behemah)
in general as well as over against ‘the wild beasts' (chayyath hassadheh) in particular.”2
The curse pronounced upon the literal serpent was also intended for the tempter
the serpent and the ground are cursed. Cassuto substantiates that because the serpent was “cunning above
all beasts,” he is also “cursed above all beasts Not only is the expression above all repeated here, but
there is a play on the assonance between QTO7 (cunning, shrewdness) and TPK (cursed). The verbal
correspondence points to parallelism of thought” (A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:159).
Hengstenberg confirms that “this does not necessarily imply that the other animals are also cursed, any
more than the words ‘subtle above all the beasts’ imply that all other beasts are subtle” (Christology o f the
Old Testament and a Commentary on the Messianic Predictions, 1:14, quoted in Wenham, Genesis 1-15,
79). Wenham adds this is the common use of ]0, and “the close parallel with 3:1 makes this much the
most likely construction here” (Genesis 1-15, 79).
Contra Willis, who insists that “since man originally sinned in response to a beast’s temptation,
God apparently curses not only the serpent but all beasts This agrees with Paul’s words in Romans
8:19-23 and with the obvious hostility that exists between man and beast” (128). This view is supported by
Richardson, 74. Haun said that “all the animals are to be cursed. The innocent are to suffer because of
the sins of others However, the brunt of the judgment is borne by the guilty” (164). Keiland
Delitzsch contradict this view of Rom 8:20,21, positing otherwise, that creation has been “made subject to
vanity” and “the bondage of corruption,” in consequence to the sin of humanity (3:98). “Yet this
subjection is not to be regarded as the effect of the curse, which was pronounced upon the serpent, having
fallen upon the whole animal world The creation was drawn into the fall of man . . . but not the
animal world for the serpent’s sake, or even along with the serpent” (ibid.).
'Leupold, 1:161.
JIbid. Haupt used: “Singled out from” i.e., “Thou alone of ail animals” (159).
Hillman, 157. See also Judg 5:24; 1 Sam 2:28; Amos 3:2. “There may be other animals which
are repugnant to men and fill them with vague dread, but so far as man knows, a formal divine curse
attaches to this beast only” (ibid.).
Dillman objects to translations such as “cursed by all cattle” (ibid.) inasmuch as they hate and
shun the serpent, which was suggested by Eichhom, Gesenius, and others. He rejects this because the
curse comes from God and not from the animals because they have no reason to curse the serpent. He also
objects to “cursed before all cattle” meaning “more than they,” because there was no reason for other
animals apart from the serpent to be cursed (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
139
in a figurative or symbolical sense. The curse was more for this spiritual tempter than for
the non-morally culpable beast who was a mere symbol. “The proof, therefore, that the
serpent was merely the instrument o f an evil spirit, does not lie in the punishment itself
but in the manner in which the sentence was pronounced.”1 This curse applies to more
than the literal snake because in the OT, animals are never treated as morally culpable
themselves. Here the curse was intended for the power operating through the snake.
singular noun plus second-person masculine pronominal suffix; and a Qal imperfect
second-person masculine singular verb. “Belly” is probably from the root ]n2 (Aramaic)
gihinnu, meaning “cord.”2 W. Gesenius cites the cognates Arabic ganaha and Egyptian
Aramaic ]f!3, meaning “to prostrate oneself’; and the Jewish Aramaic yn3, Syriac ghen
The word for “belly” occurs again only in Lev 11:42, also of a reptile crawling
on its belly. In Gen 3:14 the word is contained in God’s curse for the serpent, “which
may mean that the serpent must bow down in the dirt as an acknowledgment of God’s
3W. Gesenius, Hebraisches und Aramaisches Handworterbuch uber das Alte Testament, I
(Berlin: Springer-Verlag, 1987).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
140
authority.”1 In Lev 11:42, where an animal that moves “on its belly” is included among
those abominable animals which are unclean for human consumption, “creeping on the
This noun is probably related to the verb root HT13, which means “to draw from
(the womb)” in its only occurrence in Ps 22:10. The serpent going on its belly may mean
that it will “without feet glide along the ground.”3 The name of serpent in Sanskrit is
uraga, i.e., “Going on the breast,” as noted by Tuch.4 “The serpent is the only animal
among those having bony skeletons that goes upon its belly.”3
Skinner imagines the snake pre-Fail, moving erect without legs, and thus writes,
“the assumption undoubtedly is that originally the serpent moved erect, but not
necessarily that its organism was changed (e.g. by cutting off its legs, etc.).*"6 Some
snake species are still able to erect “relatively long portions of their bodies for certain
periods of time.”7 Since there were “creeping things” on earth before the Fall (Gen 1:26,
30), “the divine curse may not be the crawling movement of the serpent but a new
'Cleon L. Rogers, Jr., “p n a,” NIDOTTE, 1:851. See Jacob, Das erste Buch der Tora, 112-113;
Wenham, Genesis 1-15,79.
3Dillman, 157.
4Ibi<L
5Franz Delitzsch, A New Commentary on Genesis, trans. Sophia Taylor, vol. 1 (New York:
Scribner & Welford, 1889), 161.
'’Skinner, 78.
7WiIlis, 128.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
141
We have just noted the possibility that the snake could probably fly before the
Fall This underscores the seriousness of its change in locomotion from flying to
Jer 46:22.3 Rabbinic sources understood the serpent as having stood upright.4 “It is
barely possible that inspection of snake skeletons, which preserve vestigial legs, abetted
such speculations.”5
'Ibid. Willis compares: “As a parallel, it seems likely that there were rainbows prior to the flood,
but after the flood God gave the rainbow a new significance for man (Gen 9:13)" (ibid.). Kaiser also
recalls that “God had already made 'creeping things’ in His creation and had pronounced them ’good’”
(Toward an Old Testament Theology, 36).
’Andrews, 22.
4See for example, Gen. Rab. 19:1. Note that the serpent (MT tannim) of Ezek 32:1-8 has legs
(vs. 2).
’William H. Propp, “Eden Sketches,” in The Hebrew Bible and Its Interpreters, ed. William H.
Propp, Baruch Halpem, and David N. Freedman (Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns, 1990), 19S. He
supposes that it implies that “the serpent has originally been legged, that is, a lizard” (ibid.). He avoids
translating as “snake” or as “reptile” which he actually prefers; in favor of a traditional term which is the
“more ambiguous ‘serpent’ (< serpo ‘creep’), which etymologically includes both snakes and lizards”
(ibid.).
Propp discourages any speculation of the species of the snake of Gen 3:15 as frivolous.
Nonetheless, he notes that the “wordplay in Gen 3:15 involving the root(s) swp, however, brings to mind
the Sipipdn, a species (conventionally, the homed viper) said to attack the heels of horses in Gen 49:17,
just as the serpent of Eden attacks the heels of humans” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
142
not unusual for superior victors of wars to “shame the defeated warriors by forcing them
to crawl on their bellies, with their faces in the dust, in an attitude of inferiority and
that this phrase also has an intended figurative meaning for the tempter's power behind
the literal serpent. The choice of this description was intended to refer to both the snake
and the moral agent instigating it. The phrase is programmatic, indicating a new destiny
second-person masculine singular Qal imperfect verb. The noun "ISE means “dry earth,
dust, loose soil, rubble, plaster.” The Hebrew root “1217 has etymological associations
with the Ugaritic pr, dust. The noun is used one hundred and ten times in the OT in a
2Ibid. See idem, “Shame as a Sanction of Social Control in Biblical Israel: Judicial, Political, and
Social Shaming,” JSOT49 (1991): 47-76. Kaiser also accepts that “creeping on the belly i.e., the posture
of the serpent, came to be regarded as contemptible (Gen 49:17; Job 20:14,16; Ps 140:3; Isa 59:5)”
{Toward an Old Testament Theology, 36).
JRoy E. Hayden, ""IBS,” N1DOTTE, 3:472-473. It is used literally as dry, loose earth (Lev 17:13;
Job 2:12; 39:14; Mic 1:10); as serpent’s food (Gen 3:14; Isa 65:25; Mic 7:17); human body material (Gen
2:7; 3:19; Job4:19; 8:19; Ps 103:14; Eccl 3:20; 12:7); surface of the ground (Exod 8:12, 13; Isa 25:12;
26:5; Job 19:25); holes in the ground (Job 30:6; Isa 2:19); powder (Deut 9:21; 2 Sam 22:43; Ps 18:42[43];
2 Kgs 23:6, 12, 15; Num 19:17); debris of ruined cities, either as dust or nibble (1 Kgs 20:10; Ezek 26:4,
12); material of which the earth is composed, and material used for mortar, clay, plaster (Lev 14:41,42,
45; Prov 8:26; Isa 40:12). See David Miall Edwards, “Dust,” ISBE, 1:998.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
143
Gen 13:16; 28:14; 2 Chr 1:9; Num 23:10; Job 27:16. Dust is used figuratively for how
the King of Aram destroyed Israel’s army (2 Kgs 13:7; Isa 41:2). It expresses judgment
as in Zeph 1:17. Raising someone from the dust is found in 1 Sam 2:8; Ps 113:7; 1 Kgs
6:2; Isa 52:2.' The connection between the dust and death can be found in Gen 3:14, 19
Haupt understands that the phrase “thou wilt eat dust” (bite the dust) means
“thou wilt be prone on the ground” or “thou wilt grovel.”2 “Biting the dust” means “to
The verbal root “lick up,” also describes similar processes of consuming.
“The Hebrew idiom 'lick up dust’ is often used of the vanquishing of enemies. Of the
nations that will one day be defeated before Israel, Mic 7:17 says, ‘they will lick up dust
like the serpent.’”4 This alludes to Yahweh’s curse upon the serpent in Gen 3:14, “dust
“This ‘eating’ of dust does not imply that dust would be the main food supply for
the serpent, but rather that in the process of crawling around on its belly it would get dust
'Hayden, 472-473.
JHaupt, 159.
’Ibid., 159-160.
‘Robert H. O’Connell, “’in*?,” NIDOTTE, 2:785. See also Wolfram von Soden, Akkadisches
Handworterbuch (Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz, 1959-1981), 2:759a. See Ps 72:9; Isa 49:23; and the
Akkadian idiom qaqqaru. . . nasaqu, “to kiss. . . the ground.”
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
144
in its mouth.”1 Hamilton reiterates the fact that “snakes do not eat dust, and no ancient
This leads one to take this passage more symbolically than literally. If the decree
On your belly shall you crawl is taken literally as “a change in the snake’s mode of
locomotion, then to be consistent one must also see in the decree dust shall you eat a
change in the snake’s diet.”3 Since snakes’ diet is not dust, then this passage is not
merely etiological concerning “why snakes no longer walk on legs and why they lost their
legs.. . . The writer clearly intends these two facts to be expressions of humiliation and
Cassuto reiterated: “Measure for measure: having sinned in the matter of eating,
he was punished in the same respect.”5 The man's punishment is based on the same
principle. In the expression: “and dust you shall eat,” “there is possibly to be heard an
echo o f the ancient tradition concerning the subjugation of the serpent and the monsters
'G. Aalders, The Book o f Genesis, Bible Student’s Commentary, trans. William Heynen (Grand
Rapids: Zondervan, 1981), 1:105. Cf. Dillman, 157.
Tbid.
4Ibid. Kaiser joins in construing the phrases: "On your belly you shall go” and “Dust shall you
eat” as “a reference not to the diet and locomotion o f‘the serpent’ but of his humiliation and subjugation”
('Toward an Old Testament Theology, 36,77-79). He noted also that ‘"to eat dust’ equaled ‘to descend to
the grave’ in Descent of Ishtar 5:8; also, note Amama E. A. 100:36” (79). Cf. idem, Messiah in the Old
Testament, 38-9. Leupold also concurs that the serpent’s movement by gliding through the dust "reflects
her humbler station” ( 1:162). That the serpent would eat dust "all the days o r its life also indicates that
"there will be a continual suffering of defeat ‘all the day’ of her existence” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
145
by God.”1 The idea of eating dust occurs in a metaphorical sense in several places in the
This final phrase speaks to the “ultimate end of the serpent and its offspring.
‘Your life’ may be allusion to the snake’s false promise, ‘You will surely not die’ (vs. 4),
made to Eve.” This indicates that “the serpent has a limited life expectancy that will
come to a violent end."3 This follows the pattern that someone beyond the literal serpent
3"K1 “Enmity”
The noun HIPK eyvah is rare, appearing only five times in the OT in Gen 3:15;
Num 35:21; Ezek 25:15; 35:5.4 It means both enmity and hostility.5 IPK is the verb.
'Ibid., 159.
JIbid., 160. See especially Isa 27:1; 65:25. This is definitely “a literary echo only, for Torah . . .
is opposed to the actual legend” (ibid.).
3Mathews describes how, by an intriguing twist of fate, Eve is “later recognized as the source of
‘all the living’ (3:20). Hence, the snake brought about his own death by his treachery, but ultimately Eve
through her seed will outlive her adversary” (245).
Cassuto adds: “The boundary between the primeval serpent and his successors is somewhat
blurred; here the pronoun you addressed to the former includes the latter too, whereas in the following
verse the first serpent is distinguished from his issue” (A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:160).
4Stanley N. Rosenbaum observes that most English language translations like the RSV, KJV,
New English Bible, New Jewish Publication Society, etc., translate the term as “enmity,” a word “which
no longer signifies much to the average Bible reader” (“Israelite Homicide Law and the Term ‘Enmity’ in
Genesis 3:15,” Journal o f Law and Religion 2 [1984]: 145).
’See Tyler F. Williams, “2'K,” NIDOTTE, 1:365-371. Williams mentions that the noun HZFK
is translated in the LXX three times by echthra, “enmity” (Gen 3:15; Num 35:22; Ezek 35:5[?], and once
by minis, “wrath” (Num 35:21) (ibid., 370).
See for further studies: G. Anderson, “Enemies and Evildoers in the Book of Psalms,” Bulletin o f
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
146
“be an enemy”; S'K is Qal participle, “enemy,” “foe.” The root T'K occurs two
hundred and eighty-three (283) times in the OT, fifty-four (54) of which are in the
Pentateuch.1 This root 3'K is well attested in ANE literature. The Akkadian, ayyabu,
“enemy,” occurs in letters, historical, omen, and literary texts to designate individual and
national enemies.2
The Ugaritic ib, “enemy,” turns up in some letters,3 as well as in the Aqhat
legend.4 In the Baal cycle ib appears parallel to $rt, foe, srtu, “one who hates” and qm,
John Rylands University Library o f Manchester 48 (1965-66), 18-29; T. Hobbs and P. Jackson, “The
Enemy in the Psalms,” BTB 21 (1991): 22-29; O. Keel, The Symbolism o f the Biblical World (New York:
Seabury, 1985); Thomas E. McComiskey, “2'K,” TWOT, 1:36-37; Hans Bietenhard and Horst Seebass,
“Enemy, Enmity, Hate,” NIDNTT, 1:553-557; J. Rogerson, “The Enemy in the Old Testament,” in
Understanding Poets and Prophets: FS George Wishart Anderson, ed. A. G. Auld (Sheffield: JSOT,
1993), 284-293; J. Scharbert, “Enemy,” Bauer Encyclopedia o f Biblical Theology (London: Sheed &
Ward, 1970), 220-224; Wemer Foerster, “SX^POC. ex^pa,” TDNT, 2:811-815; Helmer Ringgren, “2'K,”
TDOT, 1:212-218; and Erich Zenger, A God o f Vengeance? Understanding the Psalms o f Divine Wrath,
trans. Linda M. Maloney (Lousiville, KY: Westminster/John Knox, 1996).
'Williams mentions the NT uses: The noun echthra “enmity” is found six (6) times. It is used to
signify the enmity between Pilate and Herod (Luke 23:12); the sinful mind and God (Rom 8:7; cf. Jas
4:4); and Jews and Gentiles before Christ effected reconciliation on the cross (Eph 2:14, 16) (Williams,
“2'K," 370).
'Williams, “2'K,” 370. Cf. M. Dietrich, O. Loretz, and J. Sanmartin, eds., Die
keilalphabetischen Texte aus Ugarit, I, AOAT 24 (Neukirchen-Vluyn: Neukirchener, 1976), 2.33.10, 17,
29; 2.39.31, hereafter referred to as KTU.
’Williams, “2"K,” 370. Cf KTU, 12.4.8; 1.3.3.37; 1.4.7.35,38; and 1.10224. “The
substantive 'wyb appears about 50 times in the non-biblical manuscripts from Quinran, with over half
occurring in 1QM, predominantly in the laws concerning warfare in cols. 2-14 (24 of27 times). In
IQpHab 9.10 the wicked priest is said to have been delivered into the hands of his enemies (byd ’wybyw)
because of his actions against the Teacher of Righteousness. The noun 'ybh is used to describe Esau’s
hostility for Jacob in IQJub b 12 (Jub 35.9) and the unending enmity ( ’y bt “wlm) between truth and
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
147
The verb r K denotes “hatred and active hostility on the part of a person or
group of persons (e.g., a nation) directed towards an individual, group, or nation.”1 The
noun, “enmity, hostility’' shows unending hostility among nations in Ezek 25:15
(Philistines versus Israelites) and Ezek 35:5 (Edomites versus Israelites). In Num 35:21-
22, it distinguishes between intentional (with hostility or hatred) killing and unintentional
(without hostility or hatred) killing, the later allowing the culprit to flee to a city of
In its first occurrence, Gen 3:15, HZTN is the first word in the sentence and
serves as the object of the verb. This word receives the greatest emphasis in this
sentence. Stanley Rosenbaum treats it as a technical and legal term that informed the
later definition and development of the homicide law. On the surface, HZPK seems to be
the punishment for a “mere act of deception” recorded in Gen 3:15. “If we accept the
Biblical principle o f ‘measure for measure,’ then the vendetta between the two species
'Williams, 370. Williams explains that 3’K occurs as a finite verb in Exod 23:22,
showing active hostility. The second instance has the verb in participial form in I Sam 18:29 where “Saul
remained David’s enemy the rest of his days.” The remaining 281 occurrences are Qal Substantive
Participles, i.e., “one who is an enemy.” It is a substantive in the fullest sense rather than a temporary
characterization as “one who hates” (ibid., 366).
This participle 3’K has similar, but not synonymous, words with which it sometimes occurs
such as “adversary,” “foes,” “those who rise up against,” and “wicked.” It is also found as an opposite to
terms like “neighbor,” “friend.” “one’s equal,” and “companion.”
2Ibid., 369. Jack B. Scott supports that the two appearances of the word 'eyvah in Num 35 are
within the context “dealing with the law concerning murder and pronounces the death sentence on anyone
who kills another out of enmity” (“The Place of Enmity in Scriptural Teaching,” in The Law and the
Prophets: Old Testament Studies in Honor o f Oswald Thompson Allis, ed., John H. Skilton et al. [Nutley,
NJ: Presbyterian and Reformed, 1974], 128-129). Similarly, the two appearances in Ezek 25:15 and 35:5
qualify the word “enmity” with the word “perpetual” referring to enmity between Israel and other nations
(Philistia in 25:15 and Edom in 35:5).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
148
m andated in 3:15b must indicate that a far more serious crime is involved, more serious
even than the exile of mankind from the Eden would imply.”1
Upon examining the other biblical texts relating to homicide, Rosenbaum found
that “hatred” and “enmity” are related but are not simple synonyms. So also are enmity
and rivalry.2 A state of “permanent belligerency”3 exists between humans and snakes as
Broadly speaking, the real fruit of that deception which took place in Eden was
murder. By robbing Adam and Eve of immortality the snake and its descendants
are the murderers of our ancestors and, by extension, o f ourselves as well. Any
human death, whatever the apparent cause, is another crime to be laid at the den
of the serpent.5
The perpetual aspect of the fight between the woman and the serpent, lasting for
a long time, is strengthened by the word HTK. Two of the other four places this word
is used in the Old Testament, in addition to Gen 3:15, include Ezek 25:15 and 35:5.
“Both use the expression ub^S HZPK ‘ancient enmity,’ which indicates that the
It can be concluded from the scriptural usage o f the root T K , that enmity, like
'Rosenbaum. 146-147.
2lbid., 147-150.
3Ibid., 147.
“Ibid.
’Ibid., 150. However, seeing that more than a mere snake is involved here, Satan is the one
against whom this charge must be laid primarily.
6Holter, 110. Ogden agrees: “Enmity may be thought of as a breakdown in relationships. Such
an antipathy is a permanent feature of life, as mention of the extension to future generations implies (vs.
15a)” (134).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
149
its verb root, is not applicable to non-morally culpable beasts' but only “between persons
or morally responsible agents.”2 Hence, this “rules out the idea of mere hostility, which is
not enmity, between man and serpents. The personal tempter emerges ever more
The fact that the on-going enmity between the serpent and the woman is
perpetual has caused many scholars to erroneously insist that neither side of the duel is
victorious, “except on a temporary basis.”4 They appeal to the text and theme of the
However, this position is fallacious because the curse is on the serpent and not
on the humans and thus cannot result in a draw but victory for humanity.6 A draw will
mean a promotion for the serpent rather than demotion and can hardly be a curse for it.7
God's part in the enmity He established is to protect His followers while putting fear in
'Leupold, 1:164.
’Ibid.
3Ibid„ 164-165. Westermann calls the hostility “institutional” (Genesis 1-11 ,259).
‘Ogden also declares: “The suggestion that vs. 15 speaks of the victory of the woman’s seed
(Christ) over the serpent (Satan) (ails to recognize that the theme here is perpetual enmity, not victory. To
suggest that the serpent’s head is more vulnerable than the woman’s heel, and thus that the serpent will be
defeated also fails to take account of this theme” (134).
5Scholars who hold that there is no victory in the battle in Gen 3:15 include: Dillmann, saying
that a serpent’s bite is just as deadly as a blow to the serpent’s head and that there is no mention of
victory, only enmity, in the text (161); von Rad, insisting that this is no promise but a curse, the “terrible
point” of which is the “hopelessness of this struggle in which both will ruin each other” (Genesis, 90);
Fishbane, “Genesis 2.4b-11.32: The Primeval Cycle,” 21; Procksch, 35; Richardson, 4; Vawter. On
Genesis, 83-4; Walsh, 175, n. 35; and Westermann, Genesis 1-11,259.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
150
the hearts of, dispossessing, and destroying their enemies, thus assuring His children
victory.1 Several scholars, especially in the Christian era from medieval times to date,
have defended this conclusion.2 This victory was set in motion by God in order to return
to normalcy the distorted hierarchy of creation and lordship of humanity over other
Furthermore, the view that the text is only etiological about human-snake enmity
is inadequate because “there are no real threats to man from non-poisonous snakes-many
people keep them as pets. To talk of natural antipathy between man and snake and to
This is the second word in Gen 3:15. It consists of the Qal imperfect verb and
the first-person singular subject. God, the speaker, is identified in the first singular
'Scott, 132-3. See Gen 35:5; Exod 11:2,3; 14:26; 17:11; 23:27-28; Num 21:34; 25:17-18; 31:2-
3; 33:51-52; Deut 7:24-25; 12:2, 3, 10; 31:3-4.
2For example: Kldner, Genesis, 70; Saydon, 126; Walsh who argues that serpent’s head is more
vulnerable (161-177). Dillmann backs up with a theological view that “a struggle ordained of God cannot
be without prospect of success” (161). This is similar to Driver, Genesis, 48.
}Ogden elaborates: “Unless the curse in its present context has acquired a representative function,
the serpent representing all living animals, then vs. 15 has little significance. The enmity theme depicts
the alienation of mankind from the remainder of the created world. But this too is a poetic attempt to
make a theological statement that sin alienates. It does not explain scientifically why there are these
enigmas in creation. An old etiology (vs. 14) has become the means for illustrating the principle (vs. 15)
that sin may alienate” (135). See also Hauser, 20-36.
Contra Alter, who insists that the curse on the serpent “records a primal horror of humankind
before this slithering, vicious-iooking, and poisonous representative of the animal realm. It is the first
moment in which a split between man and the rest of the animal kingdom is recorded” (Genesis:
Translation and Commentary [New York: W. W. Norton & Co., 1996], 13). He strips this text of
anything “satanic” in his view of the serpent Rather, “behind it may stand, at a long distance of cultural
mediation, Canaanite myths of a primordial sea serpent” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
151
personal pronoun. The root of this verb is TPO. It means “to put, set, place; set up;
impose; appoint; lay, put; pick up; deposit; inflict; fix.”1 This verb is broadly attested in
Leupold points out that “the present o f the verb ( ’ashith) is the type of present
or future that is used in depicting a future scene in a more elevated rhetorical style. The
The subject of the verb exercises power and authority. “The object or person
placed in a new position need not be moved easily, or even willingly, but the fact that it is
accomplished implies that the one who effects the movement has either the requisite
Scott rightly observes that the Creator presented in Gen 1-2 is now introduced as
the “establisher of enmity between the woman and her seed, o f the one hand, and the
serpent and his seed on the other hand.”5 He links this with that “characteristic of the
Creator as the distinguishing God already seen in Gen 1:4,6, 7. In this case God makes a
‘See BDB (1996), s.v. TPS?”; H. J. Van Dijk, “A Neglected Connotation of Three Hebrew
Verbs,” V T18 (1968): 16-30; Sam Meier, “CtB,” NtDOTTE, 3:1237-1241; Heinz-Josef Fabry, -|ri3,"
TfVAT, 5:696-697; G. Vanoni, tP ® ,” TWAT, 7:761-781; and idem, IT ® ,” TWAT, 7:1296-1306. Meier
describes that “as a verb of spatial displacement, it is characteristically associated with prepositions that
specify the kind of location” (‘fl'fB,” 1237-1238). For example, “in” (Ruth 4:16); “beside” (1 Sam 5:2);
“upon” (Gen 9:23); and “between” (Gen 3:15; 30:36; 32:16[17]; Exod 8:19; Deut 14:1; Josh 24:7).
‘Leupold, 1:165.
4Meier, 1237-1238.
’Scott, 128.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
152
distinction between men and sets enmity between the two to maintain that distinction.”1
This second-place verb shares in the emphasis of the first-place noun HZPK.
This verb “emphasizes that it is God who will not suffer this enmity to die down: ‘I will
put.’ God wants man to continue in undying opposition to this evil one and He rouses
the enmity Himself.. . . True enmity on man’s part against the evil foe is a virtue.”2 It
will be wrong to conversely charge God with rousing Satan to enmity against humanity as
This verb underscores the divinely-implanted hatred4 between humanity and the
evil one. The enmity was not going to come about naturally but to be the continued
action of God. The enmity was not to end immediately after the Fall. The verb form
indicates its application in the present, at the moment of its pronouncement by God, as
well as its perpetuity beyond the Fall. This also helps us to see that there was a moral
rraXn
T * T
“The Woman”
This word is comprised of the definite article and a singular feminine noun. It
definitely refers to the woman already mentioned and encountered in the story prior to
Gen 3:15, and also further described in the rest of Gen 3-4. There was no other primal
woman apart from Eve in these stories. HtSfK is feminine noun meaning “woman, wife,
'Ibid.
^Leupold, 1:165.
3Ibid.
4Kaiser calls it “a divinely instigated enmity” {Toward an Old Testament Theology, 79).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
153
female.”1
There are two namings o f the woman. The first is in “the poetic fragment Gen
2:23 where the companion for the man” is named “woman” TTCfK. This shows a
“deliberate play on 'is! ’issa.”2 “The name issa is given in the context of the man's
naming all the other creatures which Yahweh formed in order to find a ‘helper
corresponding to him’ (2:18,20).” This naming was divinely inspired.3 It seems clear
that !f©K is a “generic term” because it is frequently used along with the article or third
The second naming of the woman is in Gen 3:20 which is a personal name TITL
“There can hardly be any doubt that the narrator connects hawwa (Eve) very closely with
lBDB (1996), s.v. “HttfK.” N. P. Bratsiotis points to the uncertainty of the etymology of both
ntfK and tf’K (“tf'K and HtfK,” TDOT, 1:222-223). “It is usually derived from the root ’ns, ‘to be sick,
weak'” (ibid., 223). n$fK is probably a primary noun which is not based on a verbal root. HEfK is found
in the singular and the plural (C'tf3) in the OT 77S times while tf'K occurs 2160 times. Each E'K and
ndK is found “almost uniformly both in OT literature (including Sirach) and in the ancient Hebrew
inscriptions, it is impossible to speak of an earlier or later use of this word, as can be done with some
combinations of words” (ibid., 223).
2Howard N. Wallace, The Eden Narrative, Harvard Semitic Monographs 32 (Atlanta, GA:
Scholars, 198S), 147. He further comments that “G, Sam, Tgs read ki me "tSOi, ‘for from her husband’ for
MT ki me ’is, ‘for from man.’ The former readings are probably secondary with the extra euphony of
’issal’ttah” (174, n. 8).
3Doukhan argues that Gen 2:23 contains a pair of passives (niphal, puai) “which conveys the idea
of an intervention from outside, hence God” (Genesis Creation Story, 46-47). This indicates that the
designation of “woman” was actually given by God while Adam only recognized this designation just as
he recognized that it was God who took her “out of man.” See further, Phyllis Trible, “A Love Story Gone
Awry,” God and the Rhetoric o f Sexuality (Philadelphia: Fortress, 1978), 99-100; and Gerhard Hasel,
“Equality from the Start: Woman in the Creation Story,” Spectrum 7, no. 2 (1975): 23-24.
‘Wallace, 147.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
154
the Hebrew word hay, hayyMi-6., life.. . . ‘Mother of all living’ is a name of honor.”1
This etymology of the name of Eve reflects her role as “first woman and progenitress of
humankind.”2
Already in the judgment of the woman in Gen 3:16, God has ascribed the role of
giving life to the woman. This was another opportunity for the man and woman to be
directly informed of that role, though Gen 1:28 hinted at it and Gen 3:15 implied it. It is
not surprising, therefore, that “the next statement involving the woman is the attribution
of a name which defines that unique aspect of her role in bearing life. The giving of a
'von Rad, Genesis, 96. The history of similar interpretation is summarized in J. Heller, “Der
Name Eva,” Archiv orientdlni 26 (1958): 636-656; and A. J. Williams, “The Relationship of Genesis 3:20
to the Serpent,” ZAW89 (1977): 357-374. Young supports that “Eve” means “she who gives life.. . .
One who is engaged in the work of giving life.. . . She is the life-giver par excellence, for she is the
mother of all who live” (Genesis 3, 141-143). Rosenberg adds that the name ‘Hawah' “resembles the
noun-panem denoting the practitioner of a craft, skill or habit, may be translated as ‘Life-bearer’” (“The
Garden Story,” 14).
^Wallace, 147. Cf. Jacques Doukhan, “Women Priests in Israel: A Case for Their Absence,” in
Women in Ministry: Biblical and Historical Perspectives, ed. Nancy Vhymeister (Berrien Springs, MI:
Andrews University Press, 1998), 29-43.
Wallace enmerates: “The relation between hawwa and hay in the present form of the text depends
more on euphony than on any philological connection evident in biblical Hebrew.. . . Possible
phonological connections exist between hawwa and words meaning ‘life,’ ‘to live,’ etc. In both
Phoenician and Ugaritic the m. sg. adjective, ‘alive,’ is hy and the plural form hym means ‘life, health,
etc.’ The verb ‘to live’ is a 11-w form, hwy. In later Aramaic, the adjective is hay, as in Hebrew, and the
noun hayyin, but the verb ‘ to live’ is h a yi\ or hayi, a II-y form as is the case with Heb. haya. Arabic has
the verb hayya, ‘to live;’ the adjective hayy, ‘alive;’ and the noun hayah, pi. hayawat, ‘life.’ We should
also note the Ethiopic haywa, ‘to live.’ The word for ‘life’ is heywat. The root hyw is opposed to hwy
indicated in Ugaritic and Phoenician. The Old South Arabic evidence is mixed. The most frequent verb,
‘to live,’ is hyw with the corresponding nouns hyn, ‘life, health,’ and hywt, ‘life/ However there also
exists Iwy, ‘life’ and hyy, ‘to live.’” From the evidence above, especially the Ethiopic and Old South
Arabic, we could posit in early Semitic alloroots of the verb ‘to live,’ hwy and hyw, with hyy arising
secondarily” (Wallace, 150-151). See also J. C. Biella, Dictionary o f Old South Arabic: Sabaean Dialect,
Harvard Semitic Studies, 25 (Chico, CA: Scholars, 1982), 168-169, 173-174; and Richard S. Hess,
Studies in the Personal Names o f Genesis l-I I, Alter Orient und Altes Testament, 234 (Kevelaer: Butzon
& Becker, 1993), 22-24.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
155
nam e in this text reflects a discernment which recognizes a role assigned by God.”1
The noun HIT is a masculine singular collective that may also represent the
plural. The most general translation which encompasses its semantic range is “seed.”2 It
may be traced to a Protosemitic root zr ‘ which seems to be a conflation of the two roots
of zr‘ ‘to sow’ and dnv ‘to scatter.’ It remains zr ‘ in Hebrew, Aramaic, Phoenician.
The verb HIT and the noun HIT are used in a literal sense of sowing seed in a
field (e.g., Gen 26:12; Isa 37:30), although this usage is less frequent than the
metaphorical meanings. The verb HIT appears fifty-six (56) times: forty-six (46) times in
'Hess, 111.
I“Seed” is defined as: “The fertilized and mature ovule of a flowering plant which enables the
species to perpetuate itself” (J. D. Douglas, “Seed,” The Illustrated Bible Dictionary, 3:1411). Seed is
also called “a fertilized and ripened egg cell of a plant, capable of sprouting to produce a new plant”
(Ronald F. Youngblood, ed.. Nelson's New Illustrated Bible Dictionary [Nashville: Thomas Nelson,
1995], 1142). For Larry G. Herr, “Seed” is “the part of a flowering plant that contains the embryo from
which a new plant will grow” (“Seed,” ISBE, 4:380). Seed was similarly defined as “the essential plant
organism which enables the species to reproduce itself (Gen 1:11) and of the human male semen (Lev
15:16, 18)” (Charles Pfeiffer et al., eds., Wycliffe Bible Encyclopedia, vol. 2 [Chicago: Moody, 1975],
1543).
'See T. Desmond Alexander, “From Adam to Judah: The Significance of the Family Tree in
Genesis,” The Evangelical Quarterly 61, no. I [1989]: 5-19; M. Dahood, Ugaritic-Hebrew Philology:
Marginal Notes on Recent Publications, Biblica et Orientalia, 17 (Rome: Pontifical Biblical Institute,
1965), 6; Cyrus H. Gordon, Ugaritic Textbook: Grammar, Texts in Transliteration, Cuneiform Selections,
Glossary, Indices (Rome: Pontifical Biblical Institute, 1965), chap. 5: nos. 3-4; chap. 19: nos. 702,705;
Victor P. Hamilton, “BIT,” NIDOTTE, 1:1151-1152; Walter C. Kaiser, “ITIT” 7WOT, 1:252-253; Lewis,
"The Woman’s Seed,” 299-319; S. E. Loewenstamm, “The Ugaritic Fertility Myth: The Result of a
Mistranslation,” IE J12 (1962): 87; CAD (1992), s.v. “Zero”; Siegfried Schulz, “OUtpqa,” TDNT, 7:536-
547, especially 538-542; and Preuss, 143-162.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
156
QaL1once in PuaL,2 six times in the Niphal,3and three times in Hiphil.4 Literally, it refers
Figuratively, it is used “in connection with moral actions: to sow justice (Prov
11:18), righteousness (Hos 10:12), light, i.e., happiness (Ps 97:11), wickedness (Prov
22:8), trouble (Job 4:8), and wind (Hos Z:!).”6 It also represents Israel’s practicing
idolatry (Isa 17:10). In Ps 126:5, it depicts “the grief of hard work followed by joyous
results.”7 It sometimes represents “reigns of kings and princes under the figure of trees
(Isa 40:24).”8 In the Niphal it is used to describe “a woman being made pregnant (Num
'Gen 1:29 (2x); 26:12; 47:23; Exod 23:10, 16; Lev 19:19; 25:3,4, 11,20,22; 26:16; Deutl 1:10;
22:9 (2x); Judg 6:3; 9:45; 2 Kgs 19:29; Job 4:8; 31:8; Pss 97:11; 107:37; 126:5; Prov 11:18; 22:8; Eccl
11:4,6; Isa 17:10; 28:24; 30:23; 32:20; 37:30; 55:10; Jer 2:2; 4:3; 12:13; 31^27; 35:7; 50:16; Hos 2:25;
8:7; 10:12; Mic 6:15; Hag 1:6; and Zech 10:9.
:Isa 40:24.
3Lev 11:37; Num 5:28; Deut 21:4; 29:22; Ezek 36:9; and Nah 1:14.
"Ibid.
7Ibid.
•Ibid.
Ibid. More of such metaphorical uses are described on this same page concerning: “the Lord’s
sowing (planting or establishing) Israel in the land of Palestine in a future day (Hos 2:25) or of his
confession that though he has scattered (i.e., sown) Israel among the countries of the earth, he will also
gather them one day in the future (Zech 10:9)” (252). See more in Preuss, 144-149. Preuss indicates that
the “LXX usually renders the verb by means of speirO or diaspeirfr, once (Nu. 528) it uses ekspermatizlT
(144). Bruce A. Demarest mentions that speirS is used 52 times as verb in the LXX and 53 times in the
NT (Bruce A. Demarest and Colin Brown, “Seed, Plant, Grass, Flower, Harvest,” NIDNTT, 3:521-523).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
157
The noun SH? means “sowing, seed, oflspring.” It occurs 226 times in the OT.1
The four basic semantic categories into which it can be classified include: (1) ‘The time
of sowing, seedtime”2; (2) “The seed as that which is scattered or as the product of what
is sown”3; (3) “The seed as semen”4; and ( 4) “The Seed as the offspring in the promised
line o f Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob or in other groups separate from this people of
kaiser, uO % ” 252.
3Ibid.
‘Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
158
promise.”'
“The primary meaning comes from the realm of agriculture.”2 This includes
seedtime or sowing; seed itself which is planted; the seeds of the harvest; and time of
harvest. This “thereby accords well with the Akkadian zeru ‘cultivated land.. . . Thus
the whole agricultural cycle is practically summed up in the word zera ‘; from the act of
sowing to the seed planted, to the harvest taken.”3 It appears as plural only once and that
is in 1 Sam 8:15 with reference to the seeds demanded by the monarch as part of the
1. 1HT refers to Judah’s idolatry (Isa 17:11). “They are planting ‘pleasant
plants’ along with ‘strange slips.’ This refers either to the Ugaritic n 'mn of the Tammuz-
Adonis cult or to the folly of planting thorns and thistles and expecting a crop of flowers
or vegetables.”4
2. in ? refers to semen in Num 5:28, “she shall be made pregnant with seed.”
'Ibid.
nbid.
'Ibid. “In Old Akkadian, zar’um is used for ‘seed,' ‘descendants’; the later form is zeru(ff>).
Note also the phrases zer bit abi, ‘family’; and zer napSati, ‘living creatures’” (Preuss, 145).
5Ibid., 252-253.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
159
“lying carnally with a woman” (Lev 15:18; 18:20; Num 5:13; Jer 31:27).'
deliberately flexible enough to denote either one person who epitomizes the whole
group. . . or the many persons in that whole line of natural and/or spiritual
descendants.”2
This noun S71T may seem “indefinite” because it may “consist of a whole tribe or
of one son only (iv. 25; xxi. 12,13), and on the other hand, an entire tribe may be
reduced to one single descendant and become extinct in him.”3 Hence, the identity of the
Seed who will crush the Serpent’s head can only be determined by first of all examining
the context following the developing history of the human race as recorded in the canon.4
There is the mention of the BIT of animals (Gen 7:3), which is similar to the
IHT of the serpent in Gen 3:15. The Old Testament uses 1TIT infrequently for the
offspring o f animals.3 Does the word HIT indicate the “offspring” or “brood” of snakes?
The Gen 7:3 passage does not answer this convincingly. “The purpose for taking the
animals into the ark was not actually to keep their offspring alive. This offspring was not
'Ibid., 253.
Tbid. “LXX usually renders the noun by means of sperma, less often by means of sporos or
sporaT (Preuss, “1HT,” 144). Demarest and Brown notes that LXX uses sperma as noun 217 times, while
the NT uses it 44 times (521-523).
4Ibid.
5BDB (1996), s.v. “SHT.” Two main examples include Gen 3:15 and 7:3.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
160
yet present at the time these words were spoken. How could it have been kept alive in
the ark?’ Some translations, avoiding the use of “seed” or “offspring” in Gen 7:3, use
specifically the “royal family” (1 Kgs 11:14; 2 Kgs 25:25; 2 Chr 22:10; Jer 41:1; Ezek
17:13; Dan 1:3; Ezra 2:59; Neh 7:61). “Seed” could be both children and grandchildren
(Gen 46: 6-7). It became a name for the people of Israel: “seed of Abraham” (Isa 41:8;
2 Chr 20:7; Jer. 33:26), and also “seed of Jacob or Israel” (Isa 43: 5; 45:19,25). Also,
addressing the people (Deut 28:46, 59; 30:6, 19; 31:21; Jer 30:10; Isa 54:3; 66:22).2
This also involves the implanting of the law in the heart.3 “In Philo sperma is interpreted
as the starting point of the universe (Plant. 48) and of all that exists (Leg. All. 3, 185).
Man’s body originates from human seed, but the soul from divine seed (Vit. Mos. 1,
219):'*
The reference to the seed produced by the woman in Gen 3:15 raises the issue of
whether females can be said to produce seed. Women are represented as possessing
4Ibid. Philo’s interpretation continues: “God sows every chaste virtue in the soul (Cherubin 52)
and wisdom, the daughter of God, sows knowledge and discernment But man possesses the capacity of
sowing both good (Leg. All. 1,80) and evil (Conf. Ling. 152) seed.”
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
161
“seed” in Gen 4:25; 16:10; 19:32, 34; 24:60; Lev 12:2; Num 5:28; and Rev 12:17.'
However, Hamilton retorts that to read “the LXX as ‘her sperm' and the Vulgate as ‘her
semen’ . . . in order to see a hint here of the virgin birth of this seed (the absence of a
proposal because Eve exclaimed that God has given her “another seed,” “and certainly
Determining the intended meaning of IHT in Gen 3:15 depends on some other
considerations in the text, the first being the identity of the parties to the conflict foretold
in the verse. An actual literal snake seems to be present in Gen 3 because it is actually
compared and related with all the other beasts of the field which the Lord had made.
However, the story of Gen 3 suggests the presence of a demonic force acting
behind and through the snake, which then necessitates another dimension in the meaning
‘Wolde recalls that the woman is intentionally given the capacity for procreation, and the
responsibility for human survival (see 3:16). She is given a name that specifically indicates this life-
giving function (3:20) (Stories o f the Beginning, 50-51). See also Pieters, 87.
Adrien Janis Bledstein concludes: “Both woman and man are mutually interdependent for
reproduction and equally responsible for the fetes of their children” (“The Genesis of Humans: The
Garden of Eden Revisited,” Judaism 26 [1977]: 198). Referring to Gen 24:60 and 16:10, she adds:
“Rebekah becomes the dominating personage in her generation Both Hagar and Sarah actively
influence the fetes of their children If the woman is not merely the incubator of man’s seed, neither
is she the Creatrix” (ibid.).
5Ibid. Cf. F. Schaeffer, Genesis in Space and Time (Downer’s Grove, IL: Inter-Varsity, 1972),
103.
4Woudstra, 197.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
162
of the word ST1T in Gen 3:15.' “The Bible nowhere suggests that demons can have
offspring in the sense of progeny or posterity. When, nevertheless, the word I7HT is used
with respect to the serpent it must, when Satan is in view, have a non-literal meaning.”2
This shows the complex meaning of I7HT. This word refers to literal offspring of the
woman, but less likely concerns literal offspring of snakes. Its non-literal use points to
include expressions such as “seed” of righteousness (especially in the Psalms: Pss 25:13;
37:25-26; 69:37; 102:29; 112:2; cf. 22:31); and the “seed” of wicked (Pss 21:11; 37:28).
community of a particular quality. It is used in a good sense (Prov 11:21; Jer 2:21; Mai
2:15) or in a bad sense for the “community of evil-doers” (Isa 1:4; 14:20; 57:3-4).4
Other passages illustrating the use of “seed” as moral quality include Jer 2:21;
Isa 61:9; 65:9 and 23. The renderings of Isa 65:23: “. . . for they will be a race blessed
by Yahweh, and their children with them” (JB); or “. . . for they are the seed of the
blessed of Jehovah, and their offspring with them” (ASV), show that the word SHT “may
'Ibid. Woudstra elaborates: “There is a diabolical subtlety in the serpents’ suggestions which
points to a sinister background to his words. Later Scripture abundantly confirms this opinion” (ibid.).
2Ibid., 198.
JIbid.
’Woudtra, 198.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
163
One might, while retaining something of the “offspring” notion, understand the
two “seeds” to stand for two “races,” two “communities,” each marked by a
moral quality. These communities are headed up by two distinct principals, the
one principal being the woman, the other the serpent, each of which had just been
set at enmity with the other by God himself Upon this view both “seeds” could
be found among the children of men. This would then alleviate the difficulty of
having to take the word literally in the one instance and figuratively in the other.1
These two moral groups which constitute the opposing race-seeds can be easily
demonstrated first of all in the contrasting nature of Cain and Abel (Gen 4:1-15). Cain is
evil while Abel is righteous. Subsequently, in Gen 4-11, these two seed-groups work
setting God aside (Gen 4:16-24), while the seed (descendants) o f Seth, chosen in place of
murdered Abel, “call on the name of the Lord” (Gen 4:26). The evil genealogy of Cain
(Gen 4:16:24) contrasts the righteous genealogy of Seth (Gen 5:3-32), traced directly
from Adam, instead of his evil surviving brother Cain (Gen 5:1-3).
Adam is said to be created in the likeness and image of God (Gen 5:1, cf. Gen
1:27). This makes Adam the “son of God” in verity. Seth is specifically said to have
been begotten by Adam in his likeness and image, thus qualifying Seth to be rightly called
the “son of God” too (Gen 5:3). Hence, the genealogy of Seth constitutes the “sons of
God,” i.e., the righteous seed-group (best exemplified in the life o f Enoch [Gen 5:19-
24]).
Moreover, the “daughters of men,” representing the evil lives of Cain and his
‘Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
164
descendants (most evident in the wickedness of Lamech [Gen 4:19-24]), are contrasted
with the “sons of God,” representing the righteous seeds of the Sethites1(Gen 6:1-4).
There seems to be a trend that whenever “seed” refers to “an individual child”
(Gen 4:25; 15:3; 19:32,34; 21:13; 38:8-9; 1 Sam 1:11; 2:20; 2 Sam 7:12), it is usually an
descendants, 1HT is a collective, ‘they’ (Gen 9:9; 12:7; 13:16; 15:5,13,18; 16:10; 17:7-
10, 12; 21:12; 22:17-18).”2 Notwithstanding, the NT applies “2 Sam 7:12 to Jesus, and
not only to Solomon (see Heb 1:5).”3 This punctures any definite conclusion that where
'See Gleason L. Archer, Encyclopedia o f Bible Difficulties (Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1982),
79-80; Adam Co, “The Probable Identity of the ‘Sons of God’ in the Literary Context of Genesis 6:1-4,”
(Paper presented at the Annual Meeting of the Evangelistic Theological Society, Nov. 17, 1999, Danvers,
MA), 1-20; Delitzsch, Genesis, 131-138; Gerhard Hasel, Understanding the Living Word o f God
(Mountain View, CA: Pacific, 1980), 151-152; Leupold, 249-254; John Murray, Principles o f Conduct
(Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1957), 243-249.
I reject the other major theories that identify the “sons of God” other than the Sethites, which is
the only meaning of the term which duly respects the literary context of Gen 4-6. These theories include
the identity as “Divine beings”: Driver, Genesis, 82-83; Ronald S. Hendel, “Of Demigods and the Deluge:
Toward an Interpretation of Genesis 6:1-4,” JBL 106 (1987): 13-26; Speiser, Genesis, 44; “Angels”:
Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:29l-294; Dillman, 233-234; F. B. Huey, Jr., “Are the
‘Sons of God’ in Genesis 6 Angels? Yes,” in The Genesis Debate: Persistent Questions about Creation
and the Flood, ed. Ronald F. Youndblood (Nahsville, TN: Thomas Nelson, 1986), 184-209; von Rad,
Genesis, 113-114; Skinner, 141-142; Willem A. VanGemeren, “The Sons of God in Genesis 6:1-4,” WTJ
43 (1981): 321; Wenham, Genesis 1-15, 140; and “Rulers”: Meredith G. Kline, “Divine Kingship in
Genesis 6:1-4,” WTJ 24 (1962): 187-204; Emil G. Kraeling, “The Significance and the Origin of Genesis
6:1 -4,” JNES 6 (1947): 193-208; John J. Walton, “Are the ‘Sons of God’ in Genesis 6 Angels? No,” in
The Genesis Debate: Persistent Questions about Creation and the Flood, ed. Ronald F. Youngblood
(Nashville, TN: Thomas Nelson, 1986), 184-209; and Westermann, Genesis I-l1 ,370-373.
2Hamilton, “SIT,” 1152. Hamilton pleads for caution “about seeing too quickly a clear-cut
reference to some remote individual” (The Book o f Genesis Chapters I-l 7, 198). For Skinner this means
that “the Messianic application therefore is not justified in grammar” (79).
4Ibid. Rom 1:3 and 2 Tim 2:8 discuss Jesus as “Seed of David.”
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
165
references to seed, both singular individual and plural collective applications are intended
in the same text. There is a narrowing from the collective to the singular representative,
hence the immediate individual descendant, the resultant future multiple descendants, and
distant individual representative descendant are in view at the same time in the same text.1
13SH&D.. . . Kin “He, He Shall Bruise You. . . You Shall Bruise Him”
This portion of Gen 3:15(d and e) begins with the use of the singular third-
person pronoun K in “He” to refer to the hitherto collective plural connotation of BIT
earlier in Gen 3:15. Obviously, this singular third-person pronoun K in has the collective
Next, the imperfect verb ^SlttT has the third-person singular as its subject,
referring incontrovertibly only to the same collective BIT. Lastly, the imperfect verb
!32!tf FI has as its pronominal suffix, a third-person singular pronoun which also refers
clearly to the very same collective 3HT. These three powerful witnesses in this passage
reveal its inherent intention to underscore the narrowing down from the collective plural
'See chapters 2 and 3 below for discussions on the narrowing and movement from Plural to
singular Seed in each of the following verses such as Gen 3:15; 15:13; 22:17-18; 24:60; Deut 10:15-19;
1 Sam 20:42; and 2 Sam 7:12.
Kaiser agrees that in Gen 3:15, ‘“ seed’ can be collective noun and embrace one’s whole
biological progeny. At the same time, however, there is something distinctively singular and
individualistic about this seed. . . even though ’he’ acts only as one of the woman’s many descendants”
CMessiah in the Old Testament, 49).
HTf. Delitzsch, OT History o f Redemption, 26; idem, Messianic Prophecies, 27-29; Keil and
Delitzsch, 3:100-101; Kline, Kingdom Prologue, 82-89; Pareus, 102; Robertson, 99-100; Schurb, 35; and
Young, Genesis 3, 118-120. More elaborations will be given to this phenomenon later in this dissertation.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
166
Two verbal expressions are used to signify the reciprocal actions of the serpent
and the seed representing the woman’s side. The action of the woman’s Seed is
singular suffix. Similarly, the action of the Serpent is expressed with a Qal imperfect,
second-person masculine singular plus a third-person masculine singular suffix. The root
The form o f *]!$ of Gen 3:15 recurs only in Job 9:17 and Ps 139:11, and in
both, text and meaning are doubtful. There are a couple of verbs that are similar or
comparable to this verb ^1®. One of such is the verb *^3 which usually refers to the
biting of snakes but once metaphorically describes false prophets as biters, signifying the
deadly effect of their appetite (Mic 3:5). The verb is found in Qal (Num 21:8-9; Amos
5:19; 9:3; Gen 49:17; Eccl 10:8,11, etc.; and also in Piel (Jer 8:17; Num 21:6). It is
found in the Ugaritic root n tk and Akkadian naSaku.* Furthermore, a cognate Arabic
word, shqffia, applies to a cloud approaching and “skimming over the earth.”2
Another comparable verb is *]Ktf(II) which means “shall pierce, wound, bite.”3
It is the assumed root of ]5T9® which stands for “adder” or “horned snake” in Gen
49:17.4 It is also the suggested root for 091SV (or ]£HS©) which is a noun of a
'Stallman, 85-87.
2Driver, “Some Hebrew Verbs, Nouns, and Pronouns,” 371-378, quoted in Leslie C. Allen,
Psalms 101-150, WBC, vol. 21 (Waco, TX: Word, 1983), 251, n. 11c.
}H. D. M. Spence and Joseph S. Exell, eds.. The Pulpit Commentary (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans,
1977), 1:66.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
167
personal name, Shephuphan or Shupham, son of Bela and grandson of Benjamin. This
root is also related to the word for “serpent.” So also is ’OSIC, an adjective for a people
called Shuphamites who are also Benjamhes, the descendants of Shupham. So also is
D^S©, called Shuppiym or Shuppim, the same as Shupham above or perhaps a Merarite
Levhe, son of Hosah, in charge of the West Gate of the temple in the time of David.1
The third comparable verb is © (I) which has a fairly wide range of meaning
including “to gasp, pant, pant after,” or “to gasp or pant (with desire), be eager for,” or
“breathe heavily,” or “snuflf up.” It could also mean “to swallow up.” It has stronger
connotations like “to crush, trample, trample upon,” “to devour,” or “to pulverize by
figuratively to mean “to thirst for one’s blood (from actions of animals).”3 It is used
The meaning and intention of the roots in both usages in Gen 3:15 has
similar root forms and derivatives for the verbs. Some have also postulated text
emendations for these verbs to fit some particular form and meaning. The context of this
verse and the obvious nature and behavior of the two parties involved in the duel have
XBDB (19%), s.v. See Num 26:39; 1 Chr 7:12, 15; and 8:5.
3Ibid.
4Ibid. See 7TfW(1980), s.v. ‘*]K® 0) and (11)”; Daniel C. Fredericks, “*]«©,” NIDOTTE, 4:11;
and Bible Works. See Isa 42:14; Jer 2:24; 14:6; Amos 2:7; 8:4; Ezek 36:3; Job 5:5; 7:2; 36:20 Pss 56:2;
57:4; 119:131; Eccl 1:5 among others. Spence and Exell also suggest meanings such as “shall watch, lie
in wait” for the root r]KSJ (“Genesis and Exodus,” 66).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
168
also influenced the m eanings suggested for the verb of their actions. The various
Procksch takes the root *^0 in the first occurrence to mean “crushing” or
“stepping,” and in the second, “snap.”' The first, “crush,” is based on the analogy of the
Aramaic; while the second, “strike,” is based on the translations of the versions.2
Cassuto sees the usage of the two verbs in Gen 3:15 as a “form of word-play.”3
He interprets its first use as derived from a root that is akin to meaning “trample,
tread upon, or crush” as in Amos 2:7; 8:4. The second use comes from the root
that is a by-form or cognate with *|RC in the normal sense of that root meaning “to
crave, desire.”4
Cornelis Van Dam relates the first use of *]!{£ to the Akkadian sapu, “trample
upon” and to the Syriac cognate, meaning “bruise.” He adheres to the view that the
second verb is taken as a by-form of the Hebrew verb (s p), “gasp, pant after,”
T)illmann, though, admits that the second verb could be "seek to come at," based on philological
grounds and assuming it’s a form of (159). Likewise, Hotter advocates that the first verb comes
from the root I, meaning “to bruise, crush," while the second verb comes from the root II (=
B]K>Zf), meaning “to snatch, strike” (I09-110).
4Ibid. Alter translates both verbs as “boot. . . bite” (13). He explains: “The Hebrew uses what
appear to be homonyms, the first verb meaning “to trample,” the second, identical in form, probably
referring to the hissing sound of the snake just before it bites” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
169
“snap at”; linked to the cognate Arabic term meaning “look at.”1 Westermann concurs
that they are taken from two different roots translating “crush” and “snap at”
respectively, because “the two actions are different, corresponding to the different bodily
Skinner. He observed how in the Aramaic and New Hebrew (the language of Mishnah,
Midrashim, and parts of Talmud) the root T’JJ or J7”SJ has the primary sense of “rub,”
hence “wear down by rubbing”=“crush.” In Syriac, it also means “to crawl.” There are a
few examples of a tendency of 1”37 verbs to strengthen themselves by insertion of K,3 and
it is often supposed that in certain passages (Ezek 36:3; Amos 2:7; 8:4; Pss 56:2, 3; 57:4)
Skinner contends that the only places where the assumption is at all necessary
are Amos 2:7; 8:4 where the K may be simply mater lectionis for the a of the participle
(cf. DK[21, Hos 10:14); in other cases the proper sense of *]£© (‘pant’ or
metaphorically, “long for”) suffices. The reverse process (substituting of for *]KO)
is much less likely; and the only possible instance would be Job 9:17, which is too
uncertain to count for anything. Therefore, there is not much ground for supposing a
2Westermann, Genesis l-l 1,260. Gunkel also translates: “He may tread upon thy head, and thou
mayest snap at his heel” (Genesis, 20).
''Skinner, 79-81.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
170
Haupt discovers a similar verb in Arabic signifying “to foot, to persecute.”1 The
Hebrew verb is derived from “a noun for foot corresponding to Assyrian sepu,”2and used
in the first instance of Gen 3:15. The second usage here, as a “denominative verb does
not mean to tread underfoot, to crush, but to tread on the heels of, i.e., to track, stalk,
Several scholars and sources argue that these two verbs in Gen 3:15 come from
the same root and are to be translated identically. Some translate them with strong words
on an appeal to the Aramaic (e.g., Tg. Onq. Deut 9.21; Tg. Job 14.19) and
the Syriac shaf, ‘rub off, grind' (e.g., Exod 32.20), or the Akkadian shapu, ‘to tread with
the feet.’”8
'Haupt, 158.
JIbid.
JIbid., 159. He realizes that the meaning “to persecute” suits both usages in Gen 3:15 and also
the other occurrences in Job 9:17 and Ps 139:11. However, he rejects the translations “to fall on, to
assail” as inaccurate (ibid.).
6For example, Speiser, Genesis, 23; and Hamilton, Genesis Chapters 1-17, 198.
7L. Koehler, W. Baumgartner, and J. J. Staum, eds., Hebrctisches und aramaisches Lexicon sum
Alten Testament, 5 vols. (Leiden: Brill, 1967-1995). It is from the translation “hart angreifen.”
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
171
passage. Also, the sense o f ‘crush’ or ‘batter’ fits the two other occurrences of the verb
Keil argues for the sense of “crush” in both uses of and more so because
“crush” agrees with Rom 16:20. Both parties intended to destroy each other. Human
triumph is ultimately assured as suggested by Gen 1:28 where Adam is given rulership
over all animals. He sees this fact as further evidence that the curse o f Gen 3:14-15
involves a higher being; otherwise it would be redundant with Gen 1:28 if it referred only
to an animal.3
Delitzsch agrees with the translation “crush” based on the use of the double
accusative, claiming that it is used only for “verbs signifying a hostile meeting.”4 The
Calvin concludes that the word , which means the same thing both times
(bruise, or strike), was chosen to allude to the name of the serpent, in Hebrew ]94S©.
'Cf. G. R. Driver, “Some Verbs, Nouns, and Pronouns,” JTS 30 (1928-29): 375-7; and Alfred
Guillaume, “Paronomasia in the Old Testament,” JSS 9 (1964): 286-288. Van Dam writes: “In Job 9:17,
iwp describes being crushed by a storm. In Ps 139 the image of darkness so thick that it can crush and
overwhelm is graphically portrayed by the use of iwp. There is no need to emend this text” (“ 67).
See further W. A. VanGemeren, The Progress o f Redemption: The Story o f Salvation from Creation to the
New Jerusalem (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1995), esp. pp. 92-94.
‘Delitzsch. Messianic Prophecies, 29. He distinguished between the verbs of hostile endeavour
from those of hostile achievement (e.g., 1721).
sSkinner, 78-80. The Codice A of the LXX gives the idea of “pant after.”
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
172
The difference he sees in the verse is related only to the head and heel.1 Vos saw his clue
for choosing “bruise” as the fact that “both in Greek and Aramaic the words for ‘beating1
two verbs. “It forces on the text a focus that is not there.”4 He also believes that such
double translation erroneously “creates the impression that the blow struck at the serpent
is fatal-its head is crushed-while the blow unleashed by the serpent against the woman's
seed is painful but not lethal—it comes away with a bruised heel”5 In contrast, “the
contrast is not only between head and heel but between it and you."6 He therefore uses
“strike at” as the right translation of *\W in both cases. This covers “the reciprocal
moves of the woman’s seed and the serpent’s seed against each other.”7
Woudstra recognizes that Gen 3:15 places a “relatively heavy emphasis” on the
:Vos, 32-54. According to Warren Austin Gage, “the word play in Gen 3:15, ‘you shall bruise
him on heel’ but ‘he shall bruise you on the head’” is an “irony of degree” (The Gospel o f Genesis:
Studies in Protology and Eschatology [Winona Lake: Carpenter, 1984], 46).
‘Ibid.
5ibid„ 198-199.
“Ibid., 199.
7Ibid., 199-200.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
173
idea o f “enmity.”1 Therefore, “it would seem that the conclusion is warranted that the
emphasis was placed not so much, or at least not in the first place, on the victory gained
in the conflict, but on the fact of the conflict itself and on the way in which this conflict
was to express itself as long as it lasted.”2 Hence, he preferred a “weaker word” than
“crush,” as a translation of *]!# because by “crushing” the head of the serpent, “in terms
of this passage at least, the enmity of which it speaks could no longer be exercised. One
of the combatants would have been knocked out.”3 He saw this necessary because “this
enmity and its mutual expression in terms of the Hebrew verb shuph . . . stand out in this
passage.”4
Manfred Gorg argues that the root *]!© is derived from the Egyptian hf, or the
reduplicated hfhf, which is also found as sp, and spsp, and generally means “damage” or
“demolish.” He indicates that it corresponds with the verbal root HHS used to describe
'Woudstra, 200. His reason is that “this word, by virtue of its forward position in the Hebrew
sentence, a position which interrupts somewhat that normal flow of the Hebrew sentence structure,
indicates the true purpose of the divine deliverance at this point” (ibid.).
nbid., 201.
3Ibid.
4Ibid. The choice of the translation as “strike at” makes it easy to use “one and the same word”
for both activities and avoids the difficulty of “how to conceive of the attack of a snake upon a man’s heel
in terms o f‘crushing’” (ibid.). He reasons further: “The surrounding context seems to suggest a situation
which reaches as far as the horizon of time. The snake’s curse, woman’s childbirth in pain, man’s work
in the sweat of his face, these are conditions that are coextensive with mankind’s history short of
consummation. Would it be strange if in this setting, the Lord had spoken of a perennial and sustained
enmity, set and maintained by him, which was to last as long as time would last?” Another reason to
prefer the translation, “strike at” (p. 202).
sG0rg, 132-139.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
174
Other translations each used for both verbal expressions include “to watch,
guard” from the LXX and “seek to come at,” drawing from the meaning “pant,” etc.,
from the root ^K®.1 Driver appeals to Syriac to support his translation: “he shall graze
The root ^l® is given the two meanings “crush” and “snap at, snatch at.”3 It is
taken to be a by-form of the root ^R®, meaning “crush” (Amos 2:7); and “gasp for,
long for” (Jer 14:6).4 The Vulgate seems to be the precedent for translating sup in two
different ways, using conterero, “to crush, grind, bruise,” the first time, but shifting to
insidior, “to lie in wait, to lie in ambush, to watch,” in the next phrase.
occurrences in Job 9:7 and Ps 139:11, and in Rom 16:20), and in the second use,
“destroy,” “annihilate” (comparable to Jonah 4:7 where an insect (sic, nr*?in) bite is
described with the word “strike” (TjlTI).3 For Kdnig, the root ^l® partly means “press
'Dillman, 156-161.
TJriver, “Some Hebrew Verbs, Nouns and Pronouns," 375-377. Hamilton refutes this by saying
“more than grazing is implied” (Genesis 1-17,198).
4Cf. Westermann, Genesis 1-11,260. Skinner objects that in most cases, the meaning “pant” or
“long for” for B]RC is adequate (Ezek 36:3; Pss 56:2-3; 57:4), and that the substitution of for *]KB
is highly unlikely (Genesis, 79-81).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
175
Wifall also subscribes to the denominative meaning of *^37 as being from the
Akkadian sepu, “foot,” and speculates that it had the same dual meaning that the English
verb “foot” once had: “to tread upon” and “to seize.” He therefore translates: “he shall
tread upon your head and you shall seize his heel.”2
The writer of Gen 3:15 intentionally used twice to make an important point
about the message of the verse. It has been suggested that this verse has a paronomasia,
with the verbs having a different meaning each time.3 This means that in these two
verbal expressions, “two similarly sounding words are set in opposition to each other.”4
The purpose of this paronomasia in this particular context has been suggested to be that
of giving the sentence “some kind of an antithetical force. The fight between the serpent
and the woman will, ultimately, end up with the defeat of the serpent.”3 However, Hotter
is still convinced that Gen 3:15 contains “a perpetual aspect. . . expressed both by the
'Kfinig where he sees this kind of usage as consistent with LXX Ps 139:11, and Aramaic and
Syriac usages (Die Genesis, 248-9).
:WifaIl, “Gen 3:15: A Protoevangeiium?” 364, n. 22. However, he said that it means only
“seize’' when the foot of a bird of prey was doing the seizing. Cf. Ronning, 90-91. Contra, I see this
reference to the English use of “foot” as evidently foreign to the biblical text of Gen 3:15. Moreover.
Hamilton posits that the Akkadian Sapu, “to tread with the feet,” yielding the obvious translation of
“crush” has a problem: “while 'crush with the foot’ is an appropriate designation of what a man would do
to a snake, it is an inappropriate description of what a snake would do to a person’s heel” (Genesis:
Chapters 1-17, 198).
}Gunkel, Genesis, 20. Haupt fully supports this too (155-162). Cf. Guillaume, “Paronomasia in
the Old Testament,” 286-288.
4Holter, 109.
%id.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
176
word BIT ‘offspring’ and by the imperfect tense, which ought to be taken iteratively.”1
In Gen 3:15e, Lipinski repoints IJSICP as 13Sl©n from ^©3 with the
meaning “spit at” for the snake’s injection of venom. “He finds support for this in Job
9:17-18, where he also repoints the verb in which God is compared to a venomous
snake who spits at Job in the storm, and leaves him without breath.”2
Levene comments on this verse as follows: “If we desire the good, through
mighty deeds we are able to smite him (nnVDO*?), but then he can bite us (]323*1) as he
watches PU3) our heel.”3 Likewise, Theodore’s interpretation also appears in the
Diyarbakir MS, and in Isho‘dad’s commentary, as follows: “Men strike (]T!0) the
serpent’s body as well as his head, but although they watch (prtQ) his head to crush
( j n n 1?) it, the serpent stings (j’B l) any limb he can. If we desire the good and great we
can smite (nnVBD1?) him, but he can bite (^23) us as he watches 0 2 3 ) our heel.”4
o f the word . I also reject the argument for two different roots for the same word in
this context. However, I believe that the writer has wisely employed a word which
'Ibid., 110. Hotter insists that the first verb is from the root 1, meaning “to bruise, crush,”
while the second comes from the root II (= r]Kti), meaning “to snatch, strike” (ibid.). He notes:
“Another paronomasia in the same context is the wordplay on D1"U? in 2:25 and 3:1; the first being
derivated from 111?II, the second from D"U? II” (ibid.).
3Levene, 77-78.
4Salvesen, 14.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
177
comes from a single root with a semantic range that is broad enough to embrace the
action of a snake in biting human beings on the heel and the crushing of the serpent’s
head in turn.
I subscribe to the translation “fatally bruise” for both uses. There is no reason in
the Hebrew text to suspect the presence of more than one root for both verbs. Indeed,
the reader understands the normal intensity of such action depending on the doer of each
action. While both actions are fatal, the head is more fragile and bruising it is fatal. This
An important observation is that the intention of the text is to show that the
action described by the verb affects the totality of the person of each actor in this
struggle. The verb affects ultimately the “you” and the “him,” even though the points of
the contact are the “head” and the “heel” respectively. The effects of the attack are by no
means limited only to the points of contact, vis-a-vis, the head and the heel. The text can
be literally rendered as “He will fatally bruise you, [through] the head, and you will fatally
The only other biblical occurrences of the verb ^iB , found in Job 9:17 and Ps
139:11, show that the actions have negative meanings and always affect the whole
person. Recalling the Arabic cognate word which connotes an approaching cloud which
skims over the earth, the verb ^ B seems to connote the idea of erasing or disappearing.
Bi n “Head”
The word BNH “head” is a noun, a common Semitic word, the earliest form is
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
178
an im als numerous times referring to: a serpent (Gen 3 :1 5 ); dog (2 Sam 3 :8 ); ass (2 Kgs
The word is used figuratively, of noble and commoner (Isa 9:13, 14, 15); and of
relative dignity, power, and influence (Deut 28:13,44).2 The head of a family is found in
1 Chr 5:7, 12; 7:3; 8:28; 23:8,11, 19,20; and combined with the word “house,” as in
The word signifies “front,” or “leader’s place” in Mic 2:13; 2 Chr 20:27;
and Amos 6:7. In relation to time, tfK l means “beginning” as in Judg 7:19; Lam 2:19;
Isa 40:21; 41:4,26; 48:16; and Prov 8:23. It means “chief, choicest, best” in Ezek 27:22;
Exod 30:23; Ps 137:6. It refers to “sum, in its sum, i.e., in full,” as in Num 5:7; Ps
139:17. Finally, it is used in terms of the “division of army, company, band” as in Judg
However, in Gen 3:15, the context shows that what we have here is a real and
natural snake whose head is the point of a fatal attack from man. This is the literal head
that sits on top of the neck! It is the physical head of the serpent that is to be crushed in
the duel with the woman’s Seed. This indicates literal death for the serpent.
:Ibid.
3lbid.
'Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
179
3j5B “Heel”
The word 3j2IJ “heel” is a masculine noun meaning “heel, footprint, hoof, or
hinder-part”; figuratively, it means “trace, mark, end, extremity.”1 Several contexts of its
use are found in its thirteen occurrences in the OT. The heel of man is said to be an
object of attack from behind in Gen 3:15; 25:26; Job 18:9; while in Jer 13:22, heels are
treated violently, i.e., are rudely exposed. The heel of an animal is mentioned in Gen
49:17; and Judg 5:22; while it means “hinder-part, rear” of a troop of men in Gen 49:19;
The verb form 3j?X7 in Qal means “seize the heel, hold by the heeL attack at the
heel, supplant, overreach, deceive,” and in Piel means “arrest, rearguard, hinder, hold
'Further enumerations are found in: N. Ararat, “Scripture’s Battle Against Cunning,” Beth
Miqra 26 (1980): 67-78; Eugene Carpenter and Michael A. Grisanti, “2j3I7,” NIDOTTE, 3:504-506;
Robert Gordis, The Book o f Job: Commentary, New Translation, and Special Studies (New York: Jewish
Theological Seminary of America 1978); Victor Hamilton, The Book o f Genesis, Chapters 18-50, WBC
(Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1995); Alex T. Luc, “2p » ,” NIDOTTE, 3:506-507; Heinz-Josef Zobel. “3p»,”
TWAT, 6:338-343; J. Barton Payne, “2j5J7,” TWOT, 2:691-692; B. Margalit, “Lexicographical Notes on
the Aqht Epic (Part I: KTU, 1.17-18),” U F15 (1983): 95-96; T. McComiskey, “Hosea,” in The Minor
Prophets: An Exegeticai and Expository Commentary (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1992), 1:1-237; Ross,
Creation and Blessing; and Eliezer Ben-Yehuda, Dictionary and Thesaurus o f the Hebrew Language
(New York: T. Yoseloff, 1959), 5:4665-4669.
2BDB (1996), s.v. Luc explains its uses in the following verses: In Josh 8:13, the word
could have the meaning of “ambush”: “a deceitful ploy from behind (as the imagery would indicate) to
trick Ai” (“3pl7,” 506-507). In Job 18:9, Bildad uses the word for a wicked person “caught by the heel in
a trap, i.e., he has been attacked from behind, deceitfully” (ibid., 504). In Ps 41:9{ 10}, “to lift the heel
against someone was a symbol and an act of rejection, like turning one’s back” (p. 505). In Jer 13:22 is
literally, “your heels have been treated violently,” referring to Israel’s sin which resulted in “her body
being violently accosted, again from the back” (ibid.).
Jacob was gwen his name at birth because he had grasped his brother Esau’s heel
during delivery (Gen 25:26). “Later events delineate the destiny of Jacob, anticipated by his activity and
naming at birth” (ibid.). The name Jacob 3j5IT later received a negative connotation after his deception
of Esau, his brother: “supplanter, deceiver.” In Gen 49:17 the tribe of Dan is depicted as “a serpent who
strikes at a horse’s hooves, causing its rider to fall backward. In the same manner that a snake can strike
at the legs of a horse and overthrow the stronger animal, Dan, one of the smaller tribes, has the potential
of exerting authority beyond its size” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
180
back.”1 The verb is used five times. “Three of the four passages allude directly or
“rougher than anything, and incurable,” “crafty, deceitful,” and “hard” in Jer 17:9; “a
demarcated region which is arduous and troublesome” in Isa 40:4. In Hos 6:8, this
adjective is used to vividly condemn Gilead as a wicked city that is “stained/tracked with
The derived noun HSpO occurs only once (2 Kgs 10:19) meaning “trickery,
The cognates of the root 3p27 appear in verbs, nouns, and adjectives throughout
the ancient Near East in Ugaritic, Akkadian, Syriac, Arabic, Ethiopic, Tigre, Geez,
Amharic, Jewish Aramaic with various meanings related to “heel.” For instance, the
^ id ., 504-505. Esau laments that Jacob supplanted him twice (Gen 27:36) in taking his
birthright and blessing. ‘The imagery of supplanting or superceding delineated by Jacob’s grabbing of
Esau’s heel at birth here widens to include the deceptive means Jacob used to accomplish his scheme.
The supplanting of Jacob becomes synonymous with the deception of Jacob” (p. 505). Jacob’s supplanting
and deceptive behavior became used as a reference by Israel’s prophets to indict the people in their sins
and social decay (see Hos 12:3[4]; Jer 9:4[3]).
3lbid., 505; and Luc, 507. See W. Holladay, Jeremiah: Spokesman Out o f Time (New York:
Pilgrim, 1974), 100; and A. Schwarzenbach, Die geographische Terminologie im Hebraischen des Alten
Testaments (Leiden: Brill, 1954), 5.
‘Luc, 507. The figurative use of this word reveals a connotation of deception, falsehood, fraud,
guile, iniquity, mischief cheating, crime, betrayal, revolt, rebellion, mockery, and lie. However, its use in
Gen 3:15 is not figurative but literal. Nevertheless, the methods of the deceiver who attacks the heel of
humans may be indirectly included in the connotation of the text.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
181
Ugaritic ‘qb has a meaning including “held back, hinder, rough, hilly.”1
The usage of 2j?2 in Gen 3:15 describes “the archetypal seizing o f the serpent
at the heel of humankind. Here the heel serves as the point of impact for the
manifestation of hostility between the seed of humankind and the serpent. The serpent
strikes at the person’s heel while the person strikes at the serpent with his heel.”2
Head/Heel Dichotomy
A number of scholars posit that neither the serpent nor the woman has the upper
hand in this enmity. Thus, the “head” and “heel” distinction is nothing more than the
natural points of attack by the warring sides and does not suggest human superiority in
the struggle.3 Others recognize a serious distinction whereby the woman’s Seed will
crush the serpent’s head while the serpent can only wound the woman’s Seed in the heel.4
'Ibid. The Ugaritic usage of ‘qb focuses on the supplanting facet of the verb: “hindering,
foiling” as noted by Hamilton, The Book o f Genesis, Chapters 18-50,227, n. 28; and Margalit, 95*96.
Carpenter and Grisanti, 504. They makes the following comparison: “The term 2j?P is more
picturesque than C1"U7 ‘cunning’in depicting a deceitful act because of its close tie to the noun ZpV
which means ‘heel’” (p. 506). “While CHIT not only means ‘cunning’ but also positively ‘prudent/wise’
(mainly in Proverbs), 3pff does not possess such strong positive meaning. In this respect, the narrow
descriptive function of the root 'qb is similar to that of the negative term nkl, ‘be crafty/deceitful’ (Gen
37:18; Num 25:18; Ps 105:25; Mai 1:14)” (p. 507).
3See Driver, Genesis, 48; Fishbane, “Genesis 2.4b-11.32: The Primeval Cycle,” 21; Terence E.
Fretheim, Creation, Fall, and Flood: Studies in Genesis l- l I (Minneapolis: Augsburg, 1969), 88; von
Rad, Genesis, 93; John C. L. Gibson, Genesis, The Daily Study Bible (Edinburgh: Saint Andrew, 1981),
1:135; Ogden, 134; Richardson, 74; and Westermann, Genesis I-II, 259. Walsh argues: “The
identification of 3:15 as promising ultimate victory to the woman’s seed is without adequate foundation in
the text. The same verb is used for the snake’s and the man’s attacks; whatever meaning is attached to it,
it cannot be used to imply victory for one or for the other. The distinction between a deadly attack on the
snake’s head and a merely injurious attack on the man’s heel loses force when we remember that
‘probably. . . all serpents were thought to be poisonous’” (117,175, n. 35). See McCullough, 289.
4See Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:161; Keil and Delitzsch, 3:100-101;
Turner, Announcements o f Plot in Genesis, 45; among many others. Skinner also agrees, though he still
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
182
Keil and Delitzsch correctly explain the victory by the woman’s Seed:
The verb is construed with a double accusative, the second giving greater
precision to the first. The same word is used in connection with both head and
heel, to show that on both sides the intention is to destroy the opponent; at the
same time, the expressions head and heel denote a majus and minus, or as Calvin
says, superius et inferius. This contrast arises from the nature of the foes. The
serpent can only seize the heel of the man, who walks upright; whereas the man
can crush the head o f the serpent, that crawls in the dust. But this difference is
itself the result of the curse pronounced upon the serpent, and its crawling in the
dust is a sign that it will be defeated in its conflict with man. However pernicious
may be the bite o f a serpent in the heel when the poison circulates throughout the
body (49:17), it is not immediately fatal and utterly incurable, like the crushing of
a serpent’s head That the human race should triumph over the serpent, was
a necessary consequence of the original subjection of the animals to man-----
When, therefore, God not merely confines the serpent within the limits assigned
to the animals, but puts enmity between it and the woman, this in itself points to
a higher, spiritual power, which may oppose and attack the human race through
the serpent, but will eventually be overcome. Observe, too, that although in the
first clause the seed of the serpent is opposed to the seed of the woman, in the
second it is not over the seed o f the serpent but over the serpent itself that the
victory is said to be gained Thus the seed of the serpent is hidden behind
the unity of the serpent, or rather of the foe who, through the serpent, has done
such injury to man. This foe is Satan.1
Calvin considers the use of the different body positions “head” and “heel” as the
writer’s way of making a “distinction between the superior and the inferior.” He sees this
as God’s way of allowing “some remains of dominion to man; because he so places the
mutual disposition to injure each other, that yet their condition should not be equal, but
Hengstenberg rightly agrees with Calvin about the intention of the text.
“Head” and “heel” are “a majusi and a minus” signifying victory for humankind;
insists that notwithstanding, neither side will experience outright victory (80).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
183
they “are a second accusative governed by the verb, whereby the place of the
action is more distinctly marked out,” and form a contrast between a part of the
body in which a wound is curable, and a part in which it is not (there is no
allusion to poison in Gen 3:15). Further indications of a victory are: the curse is
strictly on the serpent; if m an ’s ruin were in view, it would also be a curse on him,
but curses affecting him do not begin until vs. 16; the inability to attack a man
anywhere but the heel is part of the serpent’s cursed degradation (v.14)- if he
could still destroy him, then the curse would be of no effect.1
The chiastic structure of Gen 3 centers on the message o f vss. 14 and 15.2 This
is the most important message o f this chapter, and the focal point towards which the
whole of Gen 1-3 advances. The crux of Gen 3:14-15 is the enmity divinely set between
the serpent and the woman which passes on to their seed and reaches a climax in the fatal
clash between the serpent and a specially chosen representative Seed of the woman.
Gen 3:14-15 remains the central message of Gen 3 because syntactical and
literary structural analysis prove it as such. It becomes the watershed message which
supercedes the punishments of the woman (vs. 16) and man (vss. 17-19) that emanate
from it. Syntactically, Gen 3:16-19 seems to be a further expansions of the ramifications
Of these two verses, vs. 15 is most crucial because it enumerates the progression
o f the enmity between the serpent and the woman. It is the programmatic plot for the
2See the discussion of the chiastic structure in the section on Literary Structural Analysis of Gen
3 above.
'See Niccacci, “Analysis of Biblical Narrative,” 194; idem, “Basic Facts and Theory of the
Biblical Hebrew Verb System in Prose,” 177. More detailed discussion is provided above in the section on
the Syntactical Analysis of Gen 3:14-15.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
184
rest of what follows, not only in the book of Genesis, but the rest of the Bible.1
The drama of the enmity prescribed in Gen 3:15 unfolds in stages. On the first
level, the serpent is set against the woman, each being a singular individual This level
at enmity against the seducer. She was not to be disparaged or discounted. Divine grace
uplifts her role in child-bearing because she will bring forth the special Seed who will
deliver the ultimate victory in this long-lasting conflict. The woman was Eve,2 with
'Sailhamer adds: “More is at stake in this brief passage than the reader is first aware. A program
is set forth. A plot is established that will take the author far beyond this or that snake and his ‘seed.1 It
is what the snake and his ‘seed’ represent that lies at the center of the author’s focus. With that ‘one’ lies
the ‘enmity’ that must be crushed” (Pentateuch as Narrative, 107). Sailhamer continues: “In the light of
the fact that such programmatic discourses are strategically important throughout the remainder of the
book, it seems likely that the author intends these words to be read as programmatic and foundational for
the establishment of the plot and characterization of the remainder of the book” (107-108).
2Eve is the first woman, the “mother of all living,” progenitress of mankind, and “Life bearer.”
See among others: von Rad, Genesis, 96; Rosenberg, 14; Wallace, 147-151 passim; Williams,
“Relationship of Gen 3:20,” 357-374; and Young, Genesis 3. 141-143. See more detailed semantical
studies above.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
185
The serpent minimally refers to the natural physical snake that was visible in the
temptation. In this respect, it is compared with other beasts of the field (Gen 3:1,14).
This applies mainly to Gen 3:14. However, it cannot be only the natural physical snake.
The serpent is ultimately the evil one, Satan himself, the enemy of God and humanity.
refer to a sub-human being. As noted earlier in this research, the word “enmity’'
elsewhere in the Hebrew Bible always includes premeditated hatred leading into
murderous action. This means that this verse also most probably has a personal moral
agent in view-Satan, the Deceiver. The scriptural usage of the root S'K is not
applicable to non-morally culpable beasts but only between persons or morally culpable
agents. Hence, this “rules out the idea of mere hostility, which is not enmity, between
man and serpents. The personal tempter emerges ever more distinctly as the verse
progresses.”2
I fully agree with Kaiser that the serpent is more than a mere reptile. This
serpent seems to have more intelligence, knowledge, and divine or supernatural insight
'See Robertson, 97. There is no justification from the text for excluding Eve from the
identification of the woman to whom God's direct speech was partly intended in Gen 3:9-19. It must be
Eve, primarily. The only way that womankind in general is involved is by “the basic principle that
womankind shall have a most significant role in this cosmic struggle” (ibid.). I think that part of their
role is the producing of the successive offspring of humanity that will be included in the second part of
this cosmic struggle.
The woman cannot be exclusively Mary, just because she became the final chosen one to bear the
Messiah in the NT. Other women in the genealogy of Jesus are very important too. I do not subscribe to
the Marioiogical interpretations of this text and all its attendant ramifications and implications.
^Leupold, 1:164-165.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
186
than the human pair. The Hebrew text addresses the serpent as an individual and this
name seems to be a title.1 Moreover, “the serpent of the temptation is the serpent of the
final conflict”2 in the future. Consequently, “the identity of the tempter can be none other
Seed of the Serpent Versus Seed of the Woman: Plural Collective (Vs. 15c)
On the second level, the serpent’s seed is set in antagonism with the woman’s
seed, each side being plural collective. “This enmity between the seeds grows out of the
enmity between Satan and the woman.”4 This level includes this division of the text:
symbolic sense must be employed. The first clue to this exclusive application is the very
word “seed,” which can be taken only figuratively. The literal use of UHT “seed”
Tbid., 39.
'ibid. See also Ronning, 73; referring to the views o f Briggs, Messianic Prophecy, 72-77;
Procksch, 34-35; and Willis, 127.
'Robertson, 98.
SuThe primary meaning comes from the realm of agriculture” (Kaiser, “JHT,” 252). This includes
seedtime or sowing; seed itself which is planted; the seeds of the harvest; and time of harvest. This
“thereby accords well with the Akkadian zeru 'cultivated land Thus the whole agricultural cycle is
practically summed up in the word zera'\ from the act of sowing to the seed planted, to the harvest taken”
(ibid.). The Bible seldom mentions offsprings of animals or even broods of snakes (BDB [1996], s.v.
“jn r.”).
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
187
mean human offspring. Women are represented as possessing “seed” only in Gen 4:25;
16:10; 19:32, 34; 24:60; Lev 12:2; Num 5:28; and Rev 12:17. These all refer to human
offspring or children.
At this point, we must also be dealing, exclusively, with a symbolic serpent, that
is, Satan, the DeviL1 This follows the established belief that an intelligent being lies
behind the figure of the snake. The figurative meaning overshadows the literal
serpent’s seed and the woman’s seed. Hence, we cannot literally wholly equate the
totality of humanity as the woman’s seed. “The ‘seed’ of the woman cannot be identified
simply with all physical descendants of womankind.”3 Likewise, the serpent’s seed
“cannot be identified rather naively with ‘snakes.’ The conflict envisioned describes
The key to identifying the “seed” of the woman in this conflict resides in the God-
originating character of the enmity described. God himself sovereignly sets
enmity within the heart o f the natural descendants of the woman. By the process
o f natural birth, the fallen woman brings within the heart of particular descendants
o f the woman. These individuals may be designated as the woman’s “seed.”5
'Intertextuality is my means of determining that the name of the “Evil one” behind the serpent’s
temptation of Adam and Eve is “Satan” or the “Devil.” See Rev 12:7-9; Rom 16:20; 1 John 3:12; 2 Cor
11:3; I Tim 2:14; Eph 6:12; etc.
2See FG, 123; Delitzsch, Messianic Prophecies, 27-29; Pareus, 102 passim; Briggs, 72 passim;
Young, Genesis 3 ,9-10, 118 passim; Feinberg, 314; Pratt, 42-43; von Rad, Genesis, 92; Driver, Genesis,
44; Fretheim, Creation, 80-81; to mention but a few. See more discussion above in the section on the
classification of the interpretations of the seed.
’Robertson, 98.
4Ibid.
Mbid.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
188
As we have discussed above in our semantic analysis, this means that, definitely,
the collective woman’s seed of Gen 3:15 comprises righteous human beings who have
been set at enmity with Satan and all forms of unrighteousness. They are spiritually
discerned, determined, and delineated. They stand in support o f God and His divine
purposes.
Likewise, the serpent’s seed are spiritually determined. They are the followers
of Satan and the opposers of God, His people, and His purposes. They perhaps include
the fallen angels and demons. “Although not materially descended from the devil, they
may be regarded figuratively as his ‘seed.’”1 Also, all children, physically descended
from human beings, who oppose God, His followers, and His purposes, constitute
“The Bible nowhere suggests that demons can have offspring in the sense of
progeny or posterity. When, nevertheless, the word zera ‘ is used with respect to the
serpent it must, when Satan is in view, have a non-literal meaning.”2 Such figurative or
righteousness (especially in the Psalms: Pss 25:13; 37:25-26; 69:37; 102:29; 112:2; cf.
community of a particular quality. It is used in a good sense (Prov 11:21; Jer 2:21; Mai
"Woudtra, 198.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
189
2:15) or in a bad sense for the “community o f evil-doers” (Isa 1:4; 14:20; 57:3-4).1
Other passages illustrating the use o f “seed” as moral quality include Jer 2:21;
Isa 61:9; 65:9 and 23. I concur with Woudstra’s understanding o f JHT in Gen 3:15 as
not just two offsprings but races or communities o f human beings, each marked by a
It must be noted that the fact that this enmity passes on from the immediate
participants, the serpent and the woman, to their collective posterity anticipates that this
struggle between both sides will be long, spanning the ages of the history of mankind.
The perpetual aspect o f this conflict, lasting for a long time, is strengthened by the word
nZPK “enmity.”3 This solidifies the understanding that this second stage of this verse
encompasses numerous seeds or posterity o f both the serpent and the woman.
Meanwhile, “the serpent and woman are distinct from their offspring yet also one and the
same with them. Here we have the common case where an individual represents many.”4
A collaborating evidence for the representative roles of the mam characters, vis-
a-vis, the snake, the woman, and the man, is the fact that this narrative avoids elaborating
2Woudtra, 198.
’Holter points out that two of the other four places this word is used in the Old Testament, in
addition to Gen 3:15, namely Ezek 25:15 and 35:5, “both use the expression PT K ‘ancient
enmity,' which indicates that the enmity is something old and never-ending” (110). See also Ogden, 134-
136 passim.
4Mathews, 245. “In 1 Tim 2:15 Eve’s role as child-bearer is taken as an archetype in Paul’s
reference to the Christian women at Ephesus” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
190
their individual thoughts or “their plights as individuals.”' They are not merely “depicted
as individuals involved in a personal crisis; rather, they are representatives.”2 They are
the “heads o f their race.”3 The snake is on one side while Adam and Eve together head
the other side. In line with this enmity, a parallel group of righteous seed advanced side-
On the third level of this verse, the plural collective woman’s seed is now
movement is obviously signified by the masculine singular personal pronoun K17T “He,”4
the imperfect verb with the third-person singular subject (Gen 3:15d), and the
imperfect verb 139^11 with a third-person singular pronominal suffix (Gen 3:lSe); all
This movement occurs in parallelism with the collective seed of the serpent
which clearly narrows to the serpent (singular). This points to a singular unity of the
collective seed mentioned in the second stage of this ensuing drama. This is extremely
“Within the circle o f the broadest possible meaning o f zera ‘ must be drawn a
"Ibid.
}Ibid.
4From the context of this verse, it cannot be translated with the neutral “it” because this is a
personal pronoun which refers back to the posterity of the woman that has already been identified, first
and foremost, as the Eve in the story.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
191
circle quite a bit smaller. These represent the true seed o f the woman.”1 The collective
seed o f the woman “find their cause represented most sturdily by and embodied in an
individual in whom the idea ‘seed o f the woman' finds most perfect expression. He is the
very center o f the circle.”2 Thus, the term “seed of the woman” sees in it “perfectly
natural concentric circles o f meaning.”3 This is similar to the usage of the term “servant
o f Yahweh” in the book o f Isaiah. “Israel as a whole bears that name; also the godly in
Israel; Cyprus is honored by it; but in Isaiah 53 and elsewhere it is pre-eminently the
advocated by various scholars. Also, the seed is not exclusively literal or figurative.
There is a possible and minimal application to the literal snake, and then a fully figurative
'Leupold, 1:166.
JIbid.
3Ibid., 1:167.
4Ibid., 1:167-168.
5See FG 107. Cf. Hengstenberg, Christology o f the Old Testament and a Commentary on the
Messianic Predictions, 1:27-30; Schurb, 32 passim; etc.
‘See Feinberg, 322-324 passim; Luther, Lectures on Genesis Chapters 1-5,5,24,41, 58, 178-
200,319; Pink, Gleanings in Genesis, 42 passim; Schurb, 28,38; etc.
7Keil and Delitzsch differentiated between the natural serpent (snake) and the spiritual serpent
(Satan); and between the woman’s natural seed (“the natural development of the human race”) and the
woman’s “spiritual seed.” They expatiate: “Against the natural serpent the conflict may be carried on by
the whole human race, by all who are bom of woman, but not against Satan. As he is a foe who can only
be met with spiritual weapons, none can encounter him successfully but such as possess and make use of
spiritual arms. Hence, the idea of the ’seed’ is modified by the nature of the foe.. . . The ’seed,’ to which
the victory over Satan was promised, was spiritually or ethically determined, and ceased to be co-extensive
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
192
aetiological at all. Consequently, there is a movement from the collective figurative seed
all the instances where IHT seed uses singular or plural verb inflections, singular or plural
adjectives, participles, and where either singular or plural independent or object pronouns
and suffixes refer to IHT seed. A pattern o f usage emerges which shows whether the
JHT seed, meaning “offspring,” is collective or singular in these cases. This is very
important and relevant because the noun ? itself “does not have distinctive singular
and plural forms; the singular form JJH? also functions as a collective noun.”1
My own analysis confirms Jack Collins’s conclusion, and furthermore shows that
when inT “seed” refers to the collective for “offsprings in general, posterity,” its related
pronouns are always plural, whether they are independent pronouns, object pronouns, or
pronominal suffixes. It also generally employs plural verb inflections, plural adjectives,
and plural participle pronouns and suffixes.2 Similarly, when 17HT “seed” refers to a
with physical descent. This spiritual seed culminated in Christ” (3:100-101). See also Briggs, 72; Calvin,
Commentaries on the First Book o f Moses, 170-171; Delitzsch, Messianic Prophecies, 27-29; Driver,
Genesis, 44; Fretheim, Creation, 80-81; Pratt, 42-43; von Rad, Genesis, 92; Schurb, 33; Westermann,
Genesis 1-11 ,237; Young, Genesis 3 ,95-96; among others.
'T. Desmond Alexander, “Further Observations on the Term ‘Seed’ in Genesis,” Tyndale
Bulletin 4S (199T): 363.
^My analysis yielded the following examples: Gen 15:13b-14; 17:7, 8,9, 10; Exod 30:21; 32:13;
Lev 21:17; Deut 10:15b-19; Ezra 2:59; 9:2; Neh 7:61; 9:2; 2 Kgs 17:20; 1 Chr 16:13; 2 Chr 20:7; Pss
21:10-13; 22:23 (Heb 24); 69:36 (MT 37); 105:6; 106:27; Isa 44:3-4; 45:19,25; 57:4; 61:9; 65:23; Jer
23:8; 30:10; 31:36,37; 33:26; 46:27; Ezek 20:5; and Dan 2:43.
Jack Collins confirms: “When zero* denotes ‘posterity’ the pronouns (independent pronouns,
object pronouns, and suffixes) are always plural” (“A Syntactical Note [Genesis 3:15]: Is the Woman's
Seed Singular or Plural?” Tyndale Bulletin 48 [1997]: 143). Collins cites the following as fitting
examples: Gen 17:7-10; 15:13; 48:11-12; Exod 30:21; Lev 21:17; Deut 10:15; 2 Kgs 17:20; Isa 61:9b;
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
193
specific descendant, its referents are always singular verb inflections, singular adjectives,
Collins reports that the Greek translations of the passages he cites follow the
same pattern as the Hebrew. “When the ‘seed’ is an individual, the pronoun will be
masculine (or at least, not clearly neuter), even though the Greek word otrep^xa is
neuter.”2 He mentions 1 Sam 1:11 and 2 Sam 7:12-14 as some o f the clearest examples
here.3
consistent, and sufficiently attested” data presented above which beg for “meaningful
generalizations.”4 At this third level o f movement in Gen 3:15, an individual Seed o f the
65:23; Jer 23:8; 30:10 (= 46:27); 33:26; Ezek 20:5; Ps 106:27; Ezra 2:59 (= Neh 7:61) (ibid.).
The only possible exception that 1discovered is Job 21:8 which appears to refer to collective seed
but has a singular verb inflection in vs. 8, |13J, Nifal participle masculine singular. This does not follow
the observation above. A possible explanation may be because this is a poetic passage, or the singular
participle may indeed have in view the seed of the wicked considered individually as are their houses and
livestock in vss. 8-9.
'My analysis yielded the following examples: Gen 3:15; 4:25; 13:15-16; 15:3-5, 13a; 16:10;
21:12, 13; 22:17; 24:60b; 28:14; 38:9; 48:19; Lev 21:17; Num 14:24; 1 Sam 1:11; 2 Sam 7:12-15; 1 Chr
17:11-13; Pss 22:30 (Heb 31); 25:13; 37:25; Prov 1121; Isa 41:8; 48:19; 54:3. Collins provides the
following categories as vivid examples: for adjectives, Gen 4:25; for pronoun(s), Gen 21:13; 1 Sam 1:11;
Isa 41:8; for verb, Gen 38:9a; and for both pronouns and verbs, 2 Sam 7:12-15 (= 1 Chr 17:11-13) (144).
Cf. Friedbert Ninow, “Indicators of Typology within the Old Testament: The Exodus Motif (Ph.D.
dissertation, Andrews University, 1999), 119.
Collins, 144.
'Ibid. However, he vouches especially for the Greek translations of the “Pentateuch and Former
Prophets, where the translation is generally of higher quality, and to the extent it is possible to see a
distinction” (119).
4Ibid., 145. “The clearest syntactical parallel to our verse is 2 Sam 7:13, which is a promise to
David of an offspring” (“he will build a house for my name”) (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
194
woman is brought to the fore. To indicate this narrowing to an individual Seed, the
passage employs the masculine singular third person pronoun K17T, the third person
singular subject o f the verb o f action and also the third person singular
On the syntactical level, the singular pronoun hu' in Gen 3:15 is quite consistent
with the pattern where a single individual is in view. In fact, since the subject
pronouns are not normally necessary for the meaning, we might wonder if the
singular ku'in Genesis 3:15 is used precisely in order to make it plain that an
individual is being promised. The evidence of the Greek translators makes it
beyond question that the translator o f Genesis 3:15 meant to convey that an
individual was promised;. . . his interpretation is consistent with Hebrew syntax
elsewhere in the Bible.1
The movement from the collective plural seed to the singular individual
representative Seed seems to be intentionally marked by the athnach under the last
fiSHT in the later part o f Gen 3:15 in the Hebrew text.2 It is possible to regard the
'Ibid. 1endeavored to address part of my study to the challenge that Collins threw down as
follows: “It would be helpful to have a further study to relate this feature to the larger context of how
nouns that can designate both individuals and collectives use pronouns” (ibid., n. 18). Below, I
summarize the results of my investigation of how selected nouns that can designate both a single
individual and the collective use verbs, pronouns, and participles. Examples include: Cattle,
Collective: 1 Chr 27:29 (plural verb); Num 7:6 (plural verb); 2 Sam 6:6 (plural verb [same as 1 Chr
13:9]); 1 Kgs 19:21 (plural pronoun); 1 Chr 27:29 (plural verb); 2 Chr 4:3 (plural masculine participle);
Job 1:14 (plural verb/feminine/participle). The singular cattle is qualified as “son of cattle” or “one of
cattle” (e.g., Gen 18:7), identified as a part of the cattle group.
Flying Creatures/Birds/Fowls/Insects/Winged Insects, r|iI7: Whenever the idea of plural is
intended, a plural verb is used instead of singular: 1 Kgs 14:11 (plural verb); 1 Kgs 16:4 (plural verb);
1 Kgs 21:24 (plural verb); Ps 104:12 (plural verb); Jer 4:25 (plural verb, uses “all” in the sense of
totality); Ezek 31:6 (plural verb); Ezek 31:13 (plural verb); and Ezek 32:4 (plural verb).
Tears, HSQl, is used as collective in Jer 14:17 (plural verb, may also refer to dual eyes). I
conclude that at least some of the Hebrew nouns in the OT that may denote both individuals and collective
follow the same pattern as IHT. Further study is needed to determine the extent of this pattern in the
Hebrew Bible.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
195
standing in opposition to the singular Seed o f the woman is not another seed, as in the
There is strong textual support for this narrowing down from the collective
plural to the singular individual Seed. The Hebrew text itself has been mentioned above.
While JHT may be singular or collective, it seems most likely collective in the context of
the earlier part o f the verse because numerous offspring are intended for both the woman
and the serpent over time as the enmity between them grows into successive generations.
The sudden shift into the masculine singular personal pronoun K ill “he” and the
subsequent following uses o f singular suffixes and subjects for the verbs o f action
between both opposing groups determine that there is a shift into the singular on both
sides.
Syntactically, it can be said that the MT signals this shift from a collective to a
singular with an athnach under the last njHT here. Immediately following this is the
abrupt and sudden use o f the emphatic masculine independent third-person pronoun Kill
“he.” This also serves to demarcate the intended shift from the collective to the singular.
Lastly, on this syntactical level, the wow-consecutive 1 which precedes the masculine
independent second-person pronoun HflK “you” helps to signal the fact that the
syntactical arrangement calls for an understanding o f the shift from the collective to the
singular individual This is a disjunctive syntax. This pronoun HPIK refers to the serpent,
a singular individual. These three syntactical facts pinpoint and underscore the shift from
‘Ibid., 36. “The word conterereor, more generally, the idea of the fight and the mode of victory
suggested a single entity” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
196
Perhaps the most powerful textual support is rendered by the LXX by slavishly
following the Hebrew text in this verse. In the case o f the translation o f the masculine
singular personal pronoun KITT “he,” the LXX intentionally violates the Greek
grammatical word order in its rendering o f this pronoun, in order to make a point in favor
In vs. 15, LXX uses a neuter singular or collective noun oireppa (spermatos) in
place o f a masculine singular or collective noun IH? . This further suports the view o f a
stereotypical rendering o f the Hebrew text by the LXX translator. The pronoun which
refers back to the in ? and the otrcppa (spermatos) happens to be masculine singular in
both cases.1 This is grammatically correct in the Hebrew, but an obvious syntactical
violation in the Greek. The Greek antecedent otrcppa (spermatos) is neuter and
definitely requires the neuter pronoun aired rather than a masculine pronoun autog.2
“One might suggest the final sigma o f autoq to be dittography of the initial
sigma o f the following oou, but the textual tradition is unanimous in reading the
masculine form.”3 The suggestion that Christians corrupted the Greek manuscript
somewhere along the line because o f their use o f the verse is weakened by the fact that
'Martin hints: “Grammatically UTT is masculine, but actually it is a collective noun of which the
natural gender is neuter” (42S).
This has been observed by numerous scholars perusing this text Among them is Kaiser, Toward
an Old Testament Theology, 36. Lewis wonders if this was a result of oversight on the part of the
translator (“The Woman’s Seed,” 300).
3Martin, 427, n. 6. C f Alan E. Brooke and Norman McLean, eds., The Old Testament in Greek,
vol. 1, The Octateuch, part 1, Genesis (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1906), 7. There is no
textual evidence to prove a case of dittography here.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
197
Citing the grammatical problem of “anacoluthon,” some scholars posit that the
translator slavishly violated the proper rule of Greek grammar to stereotype the Hebrew
text more literally, as usual. This seems plausible, at first sight, as a literalistic rendering
o f the Hebrew masculine pronoun of the MT.2 In the same vein, other scholars gave a
spiritualized.3
effectively disproved by Martin, who sees the translator as not simply literalistic but very
intentional and deliberate in his choice of pronouns. Studying all the translator’s
with 103 occurrences. Fifty-seven (i.e., 55%) o f these yield LXX translations with the
masculine pronoun autot;. “Since in all these instances the Hebrew and Greek idioms
correspond as far as gender is concerned, the literal translation o f the Hebrew text by the
'Andrews, 46.
■Ibid. See also Martin, 426; and ROger, 107. Harl charges the translator with extreme literalism
in this instance (109).
3Andrews, 47. Vawter stipulates: T h e translation is justifiable for it seeks merely to enter into
the spirit of the figure involved by personifying the offspring of the woman as the human race, mankind;
and that is all that the Septuagint had intended by its rendering” (On Genesis, 83). See also Michl,
371-401,476-505; Skinner, 80-81; Westermann, Genesis /- / /, 1-11.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
198
indicative form of the Greek copula eifii as a substitute for the personal pronoun used in
a nominal sentence in Hebrew.2 Six times, the LXX lacks an equivalent for the Hebrew
pronoun.3 In two instances, Gen 6:3 and 36:19, the LXX uses a plural masculine
pronoun in place of the Hebrew pronoun. Similarly, four times (Gen 25:29; 37:2; 41:31;
44:14) a masculine singular participle is used in place of the Hebrew pronoun. In all
these instances both Hebrew and Greek coincide in requiring the masculine gender.4
“It is especially significant, however, that eight (8) times the LXX has changed
the gender in translating, due to the requirements of the Greek idiom.”5 The feminine
pronoun is used five times (Gen 14:3; 18:10; 19:33; 30:16; 32:23[22]), and neuter
pronoun three times (Gen 2:19; 14:17; 42:14) to represent the Hebrew masculine
pronoun due to the requirements o f the Greek idiom.6 In none o f these instances does
times (2:11, 13, 14; 4:20,21; 10:8,9; 15:2,4; 16:12; 19:37,38; 36:24,43; 38:11; 42:62; 48:19); by
auTOC ifv once (34:19); by ofrcoc once (48:14); by au to v once (24:15); by autoO once
(18:1); ad by CtUTtp once (10:21) (p. 426).
'Martin, 426.
nbid. These include the following: Gen 9:3, 18; 14:12,18; 17:12; 20:5, 7, 13, 16; 21:13; 24:65;
29:12; 30:33; 31:16,43; 37:3,27; 41:25,26,28; 42:6,27; 43:12; 44:10; 45:20.
JIbid. Five out of these omissions result in a better Greek style than literal translation would
have produced (3:6; 4:26; 27:33; 3 1:20; 39:3); and for the sixth instance (39:22), the LXX lacks the entire
phrase containing the pronoun in Hebrew.
Mbid.
Tbid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
199
the LXX violate the grammatical requirement o f making the pronoun agree with its
antecedent.
However, once, and so uniquely so, the LXX of Gen 3:15 “literalistically
translates the Hebrew masculine pronoun with the masculine Greek pronoun autO(,
although the Greek idiom would require the neuter pronoun au td .”1 This cannot be
clear that the LXX translator will rather freely translate the Hebrew masculine pronoun
KIH, omit, use plural masculine pronoun, or singular participle, or even change to a
required feminine or neuter pronoun, than violate the agreement in Greek between the
pronoun and its referent in the desire for the literalness of the translation.2
The LXX translator never does violence to agreement in Greek between the
pronoun and its referent except in Gen 3:15. This “certainly highlights the grammatical
uniqueness of Genesis 3:15.”3 “The most likely explanation for the use o f autoq in Gen
3:15 to refer back to oircpiia is that the translator has in this way indicated his messianic
'Ibid., 427.
quality of the Greek translation of the Pentateuch is accepted as higher than other parts of
the OT. Martin remarks: “In this connection, it may be noted that the translator of Genesis has never
employed the crude Hebraism of using OtUTOS as a copula, although this literalism occurs elsewhere in the
LXX” (ibid.). Cf. Frederick C. Conybeare and St. George Stock, Selections from the Septuagint
According to the Text ofSwete (Boston: Ginn & Co., 1905), 139; also H. S. Gehman, “The Hebraic
Character of Septuagint Greek,” VT1 (1951): 83.
"Andrews, 48.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
200
want o f “a true contextual parallel to Genesis 3:15” among the eight passages Martin
noted where the LXX changed the gender in translating the Hebrew masculine pronoun
KIH.2 He continues:
There is no reason why one should have expected the translator to render his
Greek any differently than he did in these other instances because the subject of
his translation was not as susceptible to different connotations as ott€p|ia. What
is needed as support o f Martin’s thesis is an example where otreppa, or indeed
any other ambiguous word, is rendered in a grammatically accurate sense when a
grammatically different subject is clearly in view. Then Martin could say
something like, “Elsewhere the translator is so concerned to be faithful to
grammar that he employs au td when, clearly, carrot; is meant.”3
Andrews’s suggestion does not invalidate Martin’s claim. The issue is one of the
LXX recognizing that an individual (male) is clearly in view rather than a ’Thing”
requiring the pronoun “it.” In faithfulness to the Hebrew, which realizes that an
individual “He” was in view, the LXX translator was correct in his choice o f masculine
pronoun referring back to the neuter oireppa where it refers to a human being.4 What
'Martin, 427. Lewis adds: “Sperma is a neuter noun in Greek and would have taken a neuter
pronoun had the translators not thought of an individual It is possible that the translator reveals a
messianic understanding” (“The Woman’s Seed,” 300).
:Andrews, 48.
}Ibid.
4Wevers agrees as far as saying that: “What the translator has done is to personalize the seed, i.e.
the aUTOC is an ad sensum reference to the seed, not as a collective but as individual offspring of the
woman” (Notes on the Greek Text o f Genesis, 44). He, however, defers from LXX in suggesting that:
“The sense of the Greek would be better conveyed by the plural: ‘they shall carefully watch your head’”
(ibid.). Andrews himself verifies: “The use of auTOC surely suggests an individual interpretation
(whether messianic or not)” (Andrews, 49).
Woudstra suspects that the LXX translator apparently “felt the personal reference at this point to
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
201
might have been the translator’s alternative was to find a masculine synonym o f otrep^ia
Martin’s statistical comparison is not minimized by the fact that the subject o f the
other eight instances is not ambiguous like oircppa as claimed by Andrews. The
argument does not concern the nature of the subject in each case. To the contrary, the
argument is that the translator was always consistent in making the pronoun and its
antecedents agree grammatically except in Gen 3:15. This underscores the intention of
the translator here to make an emphasis through deviation from an established pattern.1
In the light o f Emmanuel Tov’s observation that the translation into the LXX
included both linguistic and contextual exegesis to varying degrees, one may see how this
operates in Gen 3:15.2 From evidence for a narrowing to a masculine singular individual
be strong enough to choose aiJTOC instead. And, indeed, something of the personal next to the collective
does play a role in this passage” (199). Kaiser consents that the LXX may be showing that “the divine
intention deliberately wished to designate the collective notion which included a personal unity in a single
person who was to obtain victory for the whole group he represented” {Towardan Old Testament
Theology, 36).
This is another proof of the fact that semantics and grammar alone are not enough to determine
the true meaning of a word. The context, function, and the writer’s intention are important also.
Niccacci appeals: “The criterion should always be the function first, the tense of translation
afterwards.. . . It is possible that an author may choose to change the order of events for his own
reasons The author is free and sovereign over his information. We interpreters should try to
understand and respect the author’s choice, whatever the logic and strategy may be” (“Analysis of Biblical
Narrative,” 182).
'Of interest is the subject of stereotyping in the Septuagint. See J. Heller, “Grenzen,”
Mitteilungen des Institutsfir Orientforschung IS (1969): 234*248; and Tov, “The Septuagint,” 161-188;
idem, “Three Dimensions,” RB 83 (1976): 529-574.
Tov points out that “every translation reflects linguistic exegesis, which is an integral part of the
act of translation. Linguistic exegesis involves the grammatical identification of all words (especially
forms of verbs and nouns) in the source language as well as their semantic interpretation” (“The
Septuagint,” 173).
“The translator’s concept o f’context’ was wider than ours. They referred to the relationship
between the words not only in their immediate, but also in remote contexts The translation might
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
202
in Gen 3:15, and from the general context of the book o f Genesis, and the Old Testament
as a whole, the Greek translator must have been aware o f the messianic importance of
Gen 3:15 and o f some other clearly messianic texts such as Gen 49:8-10, especially vs.
10. Similarly, 2 Sam 7:12 (also 1 Chr 17:11) evidences another use o f the masculine
pronoun to modify the neuter noun “seed,” while signaling a messianic interpretation.1 It
might be in order to label this intentional use of the masculine pronoun as referring to the
translation o f the Hebrew into the Aramaic, translates Gen 3:15 faithfully. Targum
Onqelos “uses defective plural forms of ben for zera ‘ and singular masculine pronouns.”3
This singular pronoun K1H “he” and the prepositional phrase IT4? “to him,” which
appear in the Targum Onqelos, both agree with the singular renderings in the MT. My
contain any idea the source text called to mind” (ibid.). Tov describes that this encompasses “the
immediate context and the conceptual world of the translators” (p. 174).
They sometimes employ ‘Unusual equivalents, in the connection made between words, and in the
adaptation of Hebrew to Greek diction” (ibid.). They may choose to add elements to “improve the
readability from a linguistic and contextual point of view, clarifying Hebrew or Greek words and
explaining their content” or omitting various elements “they considered superfluous” (ibid.).
Furthermore, the translators felt free to make certain adjustments in small details which belong to the
precise wording of the translation This applies to contextual adjustments between the plural and
singular forms of the verbs and nouns, between different pronouns and nouns” (ibid).
'Both Gen 49:8-10 and 2 Sam 7:12 will be treated in detail below in chapters 2 and 3
respectively. It should be noted at this juncture, however, that Wevers sees in Gen 49:10 a reference to the
Messiah: “The Greek interprets the passage in the sense of a messianic hope to be rooted in the tribe of
Judah” (Notes on the Greek Text o f Genesis, 826). This is what 2 Sam 7 picks up on in the time of David.
See also Eugen HQhn, Die messianischen Weissagungen des israelitisch-judischen Volkes bis zu den
Targumim (Freiburg: Mohr, 1899), 1:139.
^ g e r , 107. He also agreed that this is what “helped to induce the christological interpretation
which was to be given by some of the Church Fathers” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
203
tra n sla tio n o f the last part of Gen 3 :15 is .. he will remember what you did to him in
ancient times, and you will preserve (your hatred) for him to the end (of time).”1 In spite
o f the paraphrasing done here by the Targum Onqelos, it still thought fit to maintain the
n arro w in g from the collective plural seed to the singular individual Seed. This too is a
Likewise, the Targum Neofiti, the most literal o f the Palestinian Targums,
translated the first half o f Gen 3 :15 quite literally (bnh may be singular or plural), but,
“the last six words have generated may lines of midrashic text.”2 !TrT, “him,” in vs. 15
underlying Hebrew text, or he may have taken 'sons’ as a collectivity.”3 This abrupt and
intentional shift to the third-person singular should also be taken as a messianic undertone
1Aberbach and Grossfeld renders the English translation of the TO’s singular pronoun. Kin,
“he” and prepositional phrase IV1?, “to him,” by using the plural collective pronouns, intending
“mankind” as follows: “They will remember what you did to them in ancient times, and you will preserve
(your hatred) for them to the end of time” (36). I think Aberbach and Grossfeld grossly miss the point by
so doing, and they mutilate the intended messianic understanding purportedly preserved by the TO.
*Levy, 1:%. Levy puts the Tg. Neo. side-by-side with the MT and demonstrated that:
“Notwithstanding the departure from the literal translation in the second half of the verse, there are clear
references in the midrashic passage to the original Hebrew” (95-97). He admits: “Since the curse applies
to the descendants of the women, not just to her, the midrash in effect updates the text to apply to the
listeners as current doctrine” (96).
]McNamara, New Testament and the Palestinian Targum, 219. His translation of Gen 3:15 is as
follows: “And I will put enmity between you and the woman, and between your sons and her sons. And it
shall come to pass that when her sons keep the Law and do the precept they shall aim at you and smite
you on the head and kill you. And when they forsake the precepts of the Law you shall aim at and bite
him in the heel and wound him. For her sons, however, there shall be a remedy, and for you, serpent,
there shall be no remedy; for they are to make cure for the heel in the days of the King Messiah” (ibid.).
Some describe this shift as due to scribal error, or that it is a collective singular. “Son” also
becomes “they” later on in this verse. See Fernandez, 43. Levey declares that “Neophyti 1 has a
confusion of person, reading ‘you will aim and wound him,’ etc.” (148). Rather than discounting this
phenomenon, I believe that this Targumist obeys the narrowing of the plural collective seed into the
singular individual Seed.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
204
In addition, the Syriac Peshitta, which appears to literally render the MT o f Gen
3:14-15, also agrees with the LXX in retaining the masculine singular pronoun “he” in
place o f the plural collective antecedent “seed.” It translates Gen 3:15 as: “And I will
put enmity between you and the woman, and between your offspring and her offspring.
He shall trample your head, and you shall strike his heel.”3 This supports a messianic
reading, following the MT, LXX, Targum Onqelos, and the Targum Neofiti l.3
Finally, the Old Latin manuscripts from the European text type (E) and the North
African text type use a masculine intensive pronoun, ipse, following the MT, LXX,
Targum Onqelos, Targum Neofiti, and the Syriac Peshitta. Jerome seems to have also
followed the Hebrew masculine pronoun by retaining the masculine pronoun as ipse.4
This maintains the narrowing o f the plural seed to the singular Seed. I perceive that even
some o f the OL manuscripts, like Fischer’s edition and the Vulgate, which use the
feminine singular pronouns ipsa and eius with the woman as the antecedent, also
'I see a link with the LXX and TO, in support of the MT, in seeing a narrowing from the plural
to the singular, signifying a messianic understanding.
3Ephraem makes a Christological comment on the verse: “The blessed Infant crushed the head of
the serpent that bruised [Eve].” See De Nativitate 13.2; 22.31.3; 26.8.5-8; De Virginitate 37.1.5-7. See
further, Kronholm, Motifsfrom Genesis l- l I in the Genuine Hymns o f Ephrem the Syrian.
4See the discussions above on the LXX, Targums Onqelos, Neofiti 1, Peshitta. Jerome’s
Hebraicae Quaestiones in Genesim has Gen 3:15c as “melius habet in hebraeo ipse conteret caput tuum,
et tu conteres eius calcaneum” (emphasis mine).
5The dear intention is to make the “her Seed” refer exclusively to Christ, the son of Mary.
Skinner suggests that the use of the feminine pronoun “may have been prompted by a feeling that the
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
205
All these textual evidences above confirm the idea o f a narrowing from collective
to the singular within Gen 3:15. It also seems to show that this passage may be a stylistic
paradigm for other seed texts in the Hebrew' Bible which evidence narrowing from plural
collective seed to singular individual Seed and that these later passages are to be regarded
Joiion-Muraoka provides some syntactical support for the narrowing in Gen 3:15
with his comment on the Hebrew text o f this verse. He comments: “Since a finite verbal
form in itself indicates the person, it can be said that, whenever a verb occurs with a
pronoun, some nuance is intended.”2 Thus, the addition o f the pronoun K1H to the
verbal form and HPIX to the verbal form PI gives “some special
prominence to the person or persons indicated by it, comparable to the close-up focus in
This narrowing is well demonstrated on the side o f the serpent. Those who
proper antithesis to the serpent is the woman herself” (80). However, it is possible that the Latin
translators and their later re-editing and transmissions inched closer and closer to harmonizing the
passage with early Christian christological understanding and teaching.
Robertson rightly objects to the Vulgate’s alteration of the Hebrew pronoun from “he” to “she.”
He said: “While Mary the mother of Jesus may be regarded as playing a significant role in this struggle,
she should not be regarded as the specific object of the pronoun under consideration” (100). He argues
that consistency with the text would require further alterations of “he will bruise you” to “she will bruise
you,” and of “you will bruise him” to “you will bruise her” (ibid, n. 9).
'This will be traced below, in the exegesis of such texts as Gen 22:17-18; 24:60; and 2 Sam 7:12
13.
’Ibid, 540.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
206
constitute the collective seed o f the serpent find “their cause represented most sturdily by
and embodied” in the serpent, an individual1 The verse started with the individual
serpent which broadened to the serpent’s collective plural seed. Then it suddenly
narrows down, here, and returns, not to a singular “seed” of the serpent (as in the case of
the woman), but instead, to the singular serpent with whom the verse began.
God addresses the serpent at this point as before as HPIX “you.” This is an
emphatic and contrastive “you” because o f the conjunction before it and also because it
strengthens the second-person singular subject already included in the succeeding verb.
representative Seed, the serpent’s collective seed narrows down back to the serpent itself,
both in the future. That this narrowing down of both the concept o f woman’s seed and
the serpent’s seed happens in the distant future shows the prophetic nature of this verse.
Moreover, the serpent o f the garden of Eden, the tempter o f Adam and Eve, is
also the serpent of the distant future at the point of the narrowing down on both sides o f
'Leupoid, 1:166-168.
2Robertson, 99-100.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
207
this enmity. Since the same literal animal, the snake, could not be expected to be literally
alive in such a distant future, what does this tell us o f the identity of the serpent of the
temptation and the future narrowing? Definitely, the serpent must have a symbolic
meaning.1 This makes the identification of the serpent as Satan very plausible as later
Clash Between the Serpent and the Singular Seed o f the Woman (Vs. lSd, e)
In the fourth level o f movement within Gen 3:15, the enmity is decisively
climaxed in a clash between the K in (singular representative individual Seed) and the
serpent HPIK (singular representative individual). The text of Gen 3:15 is arranged to
o f antagonism and opposition to each other. K i n parallels and opposes nPIK ; <7|S l t f a'
matched with another singular individual. The suffixes and subjects for the verbs o f the
actions performed by both figures in this climax battle are each definitely masculine
'Sailhamer elaborates: “It appears as if the author is intent on treating the snake and his ‘seed’
together, as one. What happens to his ‘seed’ in the distant future can be said to happen to the snake as
well. This identification suggests that the author views that snake in terms that extend beyond this
particular snake of the Garden. The snake, fix the author, is representative of someone or something else,
and is represented by his ‘seed.’ When that ‘seed’ is crushed, the head of the snake is crushed”
(Pentateuch as Narrative, 107).
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
208
singular, thus pointing to a singular unity o f the collective seed on either side. These
singular suffixes and subjects provide persuasive evidence for the position that there is a
narrowing from the plural to the singular at this point, for both sides o f the duel.1
Andersen observed the syntactical functions within this last portion of Gen 3:15.
He noted that although these two phrases “He (on the one hand) will crush you head; and
You (on the other hand) will crush him heel” are set in contrast to each other, with
“head” and “heel” being contrastive, “neither o f these pairs is brought into prominence.
The contrast is between ‘he’ and ‘you.’” The participants in this contrast have been
positions. The use of explicit pronominal subjects here is the common way o f achieving
this.”2 Thus, the conflict between the narrowed down “he” and “you” is the climax of the
The representative seed of the serpent equals Satan within the serpent. In order
to parallel and match this supernatural evil figure, the representative Seed of the woman
must also equal the divine God/Christ working in place of the woman. This seems to hint
The “Seed” o f the woman (“He”) will crush the head o f the serpent (“your
head”). “As representatives, the snake and the woman embody the fate o f their seed, and
that fate is their fate as well The author has brought about this ‘headship’ o f the snake
'Cf. Delitzsch, OT History o f Redemption, 26; idem, Messianic Prophecies, 27-29; Kline,
Kingdom Prologue, 82-89; Keil and Delitzsch, 3:100-101; Pareus; Robertson, 99-100; Schurb, 35; and
Young, Genesis 3 ,118-120.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
209
and the woman by means of a careful but consistent identification o f the snake and his
‘seed.’”'
This last stage of the conflict is distinguished from the previous one pitching
“seed” against “seed.” “Satan himself as an individual has been reintroduced into the
conflict. As the prince of his people, he stands as representative of their cause.”2 The
corresponding narrowing of the woman’s seed to a singular “He” also features One who
will “champion the cause of God’s enmity against Satan.”3 He is a single representative
either side cannot be “one solitary person, one individual only.”5 Each is not isolated
from and unrelated to the remaining seed group which he represents. The representative
Seed o f the woman is the center o f the collective “He,” the individualization of the human
There is a certain solidarity in the kingdom of evil, and that solidarity appears in
that the kingdom of evil is here hidden, as it were, behind its head. In the ensuing
enmity and conflict, it is not merely the seed o f the serpent which will be
wounded, nor is it merely from that kingdom that a bruise will be inflicted upon
the seed o f the woman. Rather, it is the head of that kingdom himself who is
2Robertson, 99.
3Ibid.
4lbid.
‘Ibid.; and idem, Messianic Prophecies, 27*9. Robertson verifies: “The pronoun ‘he’ may
involve the whole of the woman’s seed. But involvement shall be by the representative principle”
(Robertson, 100).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
210
brought to the fore and the kingdom is as it were hidden behind him. Here is to
be a decisive victory. Not merely will the kingdom over which the evil one rules
be defeated, but the very head of that kingdom will receive the capital blow.1
The collective woman’s “seed” “lies the same temporal distance from the woman
as the ‘seed’ o f the snake itself.”2 Evidently, “the goal o f the final crushing blow is not
the ‘seed’ of the snake but rather the snake itself; his head will be crushed.”3
The serpent and his “seed” are treated together as one. “What happens to the
snake’s ‘seed’ in the distant future can be said to happen to the snake as well. This
suggests that the passage views the snake in terms that extend beyond this particular
snake o f the garden.”4 This strongly suggests that the snake “is representative of
someone or something else.”3 There is more at stake here, and “a program is set forth.
A plot is established that will take the passage for beyond this or that snake and his
‘seed.’”6
power than the snake prompting it to action. As argued above, this makes very plausible
the later biblical reference to the Satan as the serpent o f Eden. Even though the verse
records only God’s words to a snake, it is “unlikely that at such a pivotal point in the
3Ibid.
4lbid.
5Ibid.
“Ibid-
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
211
narrative the author would intend no more than a mere reference to snakes and their
Sailhamer’s view about Gen 3:15 is that it “contains a puzzling yet important
ambiguity” about the identity of the “seed” of the woman. He wonders: “It seems
obvious that the purpose o f this verse has not been to answer that question but rather to
raise it. The remainder o f the book is the author's answer.”2 While I partially agree with
Sailhamer, on the basis of the analysis above, I believe that more is already revealed in
The answer to the question of the identity of the seed o f the woman is
encapsulated in Gen 3:15. First and foremost, the collective seed o f the woman is more
symbolic than literal because rather than encompassing all humanity, it is delineated by
the spiritual condition of each individual human being. The righteous who follow God’s
instruction and engage in enmity against Satan are the true seed o f woman in the
collective sense. Similarly, the collective seed of the serpent are the followers of Satan
amongst humanity who frustrate God’s purposes and God’s people and entertain enmity
against them.
The collective seed o f Satan and Satan himself are identical and represented in
each other, with Satan himself being singular, and standing in opposition to the
representative Seed o f the woman, He also being definitely singular. Since Satan is the
'Ibid., 56. “Much more seems to lie in these words. In the light of the fact that such
programmatic discourses are strategically important throughout the remainder of the book, it seems likely
that the author intended these words to be read as programmatic and foundational for the establishment of
the plot and characterization of the remainder of the book” (ibid.).
2Ibid.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
212
supernatural power behind the physical snake, to whom the text applies in verity, so also,
The last portion o f Gen 3:15 vividly shows that this Special Seed of the woman
is victorious over Satan, representing the seed o f the serpent. The Special Seed o f the
vicarious because He stands on behalf of the many to oppose a deadening and maddening
rage of the representative Satan against himself and the collective seed of the woman. It
is in this regard that the Special Seed of the woman is also a servant-like Redeemer and
Savior. This is Messianic. It is the Gospel indeed, containing the good news that sinful,
This Special Seed o f the woman is the specially Chosen One to bear the sins and
sufferings o f many. This is eschatological because it occurs later on in the human history
as the prediction o f future posterity shows in this verse. He is also the High Priest
because he was offering his life as a sacrifice and not someone else’s. Satan’s attack on
Doukhan rightly observes that both attacks were simultaneous and intended to
cause the deaths o f both sides. As the Seed o f the woman fatally wounds the serpent, he
The fetal wounding o f the serpent results in the salvation o f man. But this act of
redemption could not take place without a risk. The passage also tells us that in
the course of this conflict the posterity o f the woman likewise would be wounded
to death.. . . The two deaths were to be simultaneous, as is evident from the
Genesis text. The heel would be struck by the venomous bite o f the serpent
simply because it is the foot o f the woman’s posterity that would crush the head
o f the serpent. Moreover, the play on words in using the same verb shuf to
characterize both attacks tends to substantiate this explanation. It is suggested,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
213
then, that these two actions, though one was a “bite” and the other was a “bruise”
or “crushing,” would come as the result of one act. In killing the serpent the
posterity of the woman would run the risk o f death. The act would be a
sacrifice The Messiah and the serpent locked in conflict finally merge in a
sim u ltan e o u s death. Thus, man’s first despair was met with God’s first
promise-a promise o f the Messiah’s intervention, whose redemptive mission
was set against a background of suffering and death wrapped in sacrifice.1
The baring of his heel and then using it to step on the snake’s head points to the
voluntary, vicarious, and sacrificial action o f the representative Seed o f the woman. This
is uniquely substitutionary!
The representative Seed was, o f course, royal because the first human pair were
royal and he was their seed. The seed always resembles its progenitor. He is therefore a
The future victory of the representative Seed o f the woman over the forces of
'Jacques Doukhan, Drinking at the Sources: An Appeal to the Jew and the Christian to Note
Their Common Beginnings, trans. Walter R. Beach and Robert M. Johnston (Mountain View, CA: Pacific
Press Publishing Association, 1981), 47-48. Rabbi Rashi translates: “Thou shalt bite the woman's heel,
and by that shall she die” (Pentateuch with Targum Onkelos, Haphtaroth and Prayersfor Sabbath and
Rashi's Commentary, trans. into English and annotated by Rev. M. Rosenbaum and Dr. A. M. Silbermann
in Collaboration with A. Blashki and L. Joseph [London: Shapiro, Vallentine, 1946], IS). Robertson
adds: “The context would suggest that a fetal wound seems clearly intended. Each antagonist attacks with
the same determination of purpose. One strikes at the head, the other strikes at the heel, but each has the
settled purpose to destroy” (Robertson, 100).
2T. D. Alexander explains: “Whereas the writer of Genesis portrays the serpent and his
unrighteous seed as bringing God’s curse upon humanity, this righteous line of seed is presented as
mediating God’s blessing to those who favour and support it Thus, 3:15 anticipates the creation of a
royal line through which the terrible consequences of the disobedience of the man and the woman in the
Garden of Eden will be reversed” (“Messianic Ideology in the Book of Genesis,” in The Lord’s Anointed:
Interpretation o f Old Testament Messianic Texts, ed. P. E. Satterthwaite, R. S. Hess, and G. J. Wenham
[Grand Rapids: Baker, 1995], 31).
'Alexander enumerates three factors which suggest the longevity of this conflict as follows:
(a) “The term ilT K ’enmity’ in 3:15 denotes a lengthy hostility (c£ Num 35:21-22; Ezek 25:15; 35:5);
(b) the reference to the ’seed’ of both the serpent and the woman suggests that the conflict will continue
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
214
he wrote:
Robertson regarded the heel as the “object of subversive attack and partial
wound (despite a fatal intention),”2 while the head signifies the “object o f open attack and
mortal wound.”3 With the Seed of the woman crushing the serpent’s head, “Satan shall
The principle that emanates from this verse is that God’s enemies must be
vanquished in order for His people and His righteous purposes to triumph. The
deliverance and salvation o f God’s people come from God “through the destruction of
God’s enemies.”5 This verse envelopes the serpent “under the condemning curse of
God,”6 without any word o f blessing for him and his followers. “Yet blessing is inherent
for generations; (c) the verb ‘strike at’ is used in the imperfect form with an iterative sense
indicating repeated actions. Thus, the forces of evil, as symbolized by the serpent, will only be defeated
after a lengthy conflict between the ‘seed of the woman’ and the ‘seed of the serpent’” (ibid., 30-31). Cf.
Wenham, Genesis 1-15, 79-80; and Westennann, Genesis l-1 1 ,259.
’Robertson, 101. See Ps 56:6(7) where the enemy watches for the “heels” of the psalmist.
3lbid.
‘•Ibid.
%id„ 102. See Josh 10:22-25; Pss 91:11-13; 110:6; Rom 9:22; and Col 2:14-15.
•Ibid., 103.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
215
in these words for the seed o f the woman. An ultimate victory over the Wicked One shall
be achieved.”1
Summary
I have treated Gen 3:15 in its final form within its context, using the MT as the
primary source. The textual evidence supports a relatively problem-free Hebrew text.
The Hebrew text tradition underlying the MT seems to have influenced all the other
comparative biblical textual versions, including the LXX, Peshitta, Latin, Vulgate,
Jerome, and Targums o f Palestinian origin. The Qumran agrees considerably with our
text also.
The narrative genre o f the book is in a manner like a record o f literal events of
history. The genealogical or historical records are called D ilS in for both the stories of
the origin o f the cosmos (Gen 1-11) and the patriarchal stories (Gen 12-50). This makes
our passage within the garden o f Eden narrative (Gen 2-3) to be as much history as the
rest o f the book of Genesis. Moreover, the word IHT “seed” is programmatic in the
book o f Genesis, combining with the key word in order to yield the central
Gen 3:15 moved from the macro to the micro. This analysis confirms the unity o f the
text o f Genesis. Gen 3:15 was located within this framework as central to the message of
the book of Genesis. From the syntactical analysis, Gen 3:15 emerges as the peak o f the
■Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
216
The morphological and semantic studies clarified that Gen 3:15 is about a real
natural snake with a literal belly and head. This text gives enough hints about the
figurative application o f some o f the expressions used. This points to the fact that a
supernatural power lies behind the serpent, sharing in the punishment it received. The
same serpent is referenced as engaging the posterity o f the woman in the future, a signal
that this portion refers only to this power behind the literal snake o f the story.
The seed o f the serpent is not a brood o f snakes, but a moral group of
disobedient humans following after the evil power which inspired this literal snake. This
collective seed o f the serpent engages the collective seed of the woman, perpetuating the
divinely instigated hostility already instituted between the serpent and the woman.
The woman is definitely Eve, the mother o f all humans. She embodied
womanhood down the ages. What is addressed to her actually involves both Adam and
Eve and all humanity. Her collective seed is figurative, representing a moral group o f
righteous human beings. The Seed o f the woman is victorious over the serpent.
The collective seed o f the serpent parallels the collective seed o f the woman
down the ages, as two opposing moral groups constituting humanity. This began with
Cain opposing Abel (Gen 4:1-9); continued in the genealogy o f rebellious Cain, all of
whom set God aside (Gen 4:16-24), versus the genealogy o f believing Seth, all o f whom
“call on the name o f the Lord” (Gen 4:25-5:32); and the “daughters o f men” (Gen 6:1-4),
Several movements are evident within Gen 3:14-15. God addressed a literal
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
217
snake and Eve, together with Adam, using both literal and figurative language in vs. 14
and employing mostly figurative expressions in vs. 15. God’s attention quickly shifts
from the literal snake to the symbolic serpent, the evil force called Satan, who used the
physical snake as a medium. Moreover, the word “seed” has figurative nuances in Gen
The most significant movement in Gen 3:15 is from the collective figurative seed
(vs. 15c) to the singular representative Seed (vs. 15d, e). Overall, a progression of
parallelism emerges as this verse shifts focus from the singular (vs. 15b-serpent [“you]
versus woman); to the collective (vs. 15c-seed of the serpent versus the seed of the
woman); and back to the singular (vs. 15d, e-serpent [“you”/ “your head”] versus special
Seed [“He”/ “his heel”]). This narrowing is signified by the use of the singular masculine
personal pronoun K1H to refer back to the immediately preceding IHT “seed” of the
woman.
I observed the constant pattern and rule throughout the Hebrew Bible that
whenever SHT “seed” refers to the collective for “offsprings in general, posterity,” its
related pronouns are always plural, whether they are independent pronouns, object
singular descendant, its related pronouns are always singular independent pronouns,
vividly and intentionally agree with the MT to show that the singular pronoun K1H is the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
218
MT signals this shift from a collective to a singular with an athnach under the last HJpT.
This is followed by the abrupt and sudden use o f the emphatic masculine independent
third-person pronoun R1H “he” intended to demarcate the intended shift from the
collective to the singular. Moreover, the vav-consecutive 1 which precedes the masculine
serpent, also signals the fact that the syntactical arrangement calls for an understanding of
personal pronoun K1H “He,”1the imperfect verb with the third-person singular
subject (Gen 3:15d), and the imperfect verb 1331 R with a third-person singular
pronominal suffix (Gen 3:15e); all clearly referring to the very same collective IHT (Gen
3:15c).
The most powerful textual support is rendered by the LXX which slavishly
follows the Hebrew text in Gen 3:15. LXX intentionally violates the Greek grammatical
word order in its rendering o f the masculine singular personal pronoun K1H “he” in
order to make a point in favor of a messianic reading of this text. Here, LXX uses a
or collective noun JHT. The pronoun which refers back to the JHT and the O T T €p (ia
'From the context of this verse, it cannot be translated with the neutral “it” because this is a
personal pronoun which refers back to the posterity of the woman that has already been identified, first
and foremost, as the Eve in the story.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
219
correct in the Hebrew, but an obvious syntactical violation in the Greek. The Greek
antecedent ouep^ia (spermatos) is neuter and definitely requires the neuter pronoun
au td rather than a masculine pronoun auto;. Such a grammatical violation with the
translation of K1H is not rivaled thus underscoring this fact that this rendering cannot be
translation of the Hebrew into the Aramaic, recognizes the narrowing in the Hebrew text
of Gen 3:15 by using the singular pronoun K1H “he” and the prepositional phrase IT1?
“to him.” This sustained narrowing from the collective plural seed to the singular
Likewise, the Targum Neofiti, the most literal of the Palestinian Targums,
translated the first half of Gen 3:15 quite literally {bnh may be singular or plural), and
retains 7TTP “him” which is certainly a third-person singular pronoun. This abrupt and
intentional shift to the third-person singular reflects its messianic undertone. In addition,
the Syriac Peshitta, which appears to literally render the MT of Gen 3:14-15, follows this
Finally, the Old Latin manuscripts from the European text type (E) and the North
African one use the masculine intensive pronoun, ipse. Jerome seems to have also
followed the Hebrew masculine pronoun by retaining the masculine pronoun as ipse.
These also m ain tain s the Messianic narrowing of the plural seed to the singular Seed.
Seemingly, even some of the OL manuscripts, like Fischer’s edition, and the Vulgate
which use the feminine singular pronouns ipsa and eius with the woman as the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
220
antecedent, also inadvertently recognize the narrowing from the plural to the singular.
All these lines o f textual evidence within the Hebrew o f Gen 3:15 and the early
translations o f this Hebrew text confirm the idea of a narrowing from the collective to the
singular. It also suggests that this may be stylistic for other seed texts which evidence
n arro w in g from plural collective seed to singular individual Seed to be most likely
Messianic in intention.
This narrowing down of both the concept of woman’s seed and the serpent’s
seed happens in the distant future shows the prophetic, predictive, and eschatological
nature of Gen 3:15. Hence, in the fourth level of the text (Gen 3:15[d] and [e]),
c o n taining two expressions each having three words which are parallel and antagonist to
each other, the enmity is climaxed in a clash between the serpent HflK “you” (singular
The narrowing on the side of the woman’s seed matches the evident narrowing
on the side of the serpent. The enmity, which originates with the serpent, transfers to his
collective seed, and narrows back to the singular serpent himself again. This is the crux
of the Messianic interpretation of Gen 3:15! Satan is the power masquerading as the
serpent. On the other hand, Christ is the special singular representative Seed of the
woman. This long-drawn enmity culminates in the fatal clash between Satan and Christ.
Intratextualhy o f the “seed” of Gen 3:15 within the context of Gen 1-4 and the
rest of the book of Genesis is important for demonstrating how the “seed” o f Gen 3:15
has been consistently understood and applied in Genesis. This is the task of chapter 2.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
CHAPTER TWO
Chapter 2 examines the immediate context of Gen 3:15 to observe the use of the
word “seed” and its related pronouns. Beginning with Gen 1-3,1 explore various matters
relating to the understanding of the seed of Gen 3:15. The kind of movement within the
characters and events of Gen 3:15 will be observed in other surrounding “seed” passages
The remaining part of this chapter examines key “seed” passages in the book of
Genesis that evidence the same understanding of and build on the meaning of “seed” Gen
3:15. This demonstration of similar usages is what I have called “Intratextuality” here,
This treatment does not pretend to be exhaustive and treat all fifty-nine (59)
occurrences of BIT within the book of Genesis. This study will be representative,
focusing on the allusions to the “seed” in each chosen text, rather than all other
221
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
222
The first stories o f the Bible constitute the first window into the Canon. One
sees several vivid connections as mentioned above in the section on literary and
terminological links. Here, focus will be given to the use o f and relation to “seed” in
A very clear distinction is made between the seed of the woman versus those of
the serpent in Gen 3:15. This conforms with the trend of separation already evident in
the creation story. There is the separation between night and day, land and water, light
and darkness, evening and morning, separate kinds of plants and animals, sun and moon,
and so forth.
In Gen 2, the seventh-day Sabbath is delineated from the rest of the days of the
week as a special day of rest. The Garden of Eden is specially created as an abode or
sanctuary for the human pair as their meeting place with God. In the midst of the
Garden, two particular trees are separated from the rest as ones forbidden. Finally, the
woman is singled out for the man as the partner for him from among the host of God’s
creation.
God had made water and land creatures “after their kinds” (Gen 1:20-22, 24-25). He
later commanded all the living creatures to reproduce and produce seed in vss. 29-30.
The first hint of producing seed comes in Gen 1:20-22 where water creatures and fowls,
“after their kind,”were “blessed” to be “fruitful and multiply,” and to “fill” the waters and
the earth. “The fecundity of the fish, which is so great as to have become proverbial, is
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
223
indicative of the special blessing that was bestowed on them at the time of their creation.
The blessing mentioned in this verse is purely one of fertility and increase.”1
The use of such expressions as “bring forth,” “after their kind,” “multiply,” “fill,”
and “be fruitful” all echo the same idea as the word “seed.” Another phrase with such
connotation is “in our image” or “after our likeness.” In these creation chapters, God’s
The making of human beings in the “image of God” is mentioned four times,
namely, Gen 1:26,27 (twice); and 9:6. Related to these passages is Gen 5:3 where Adam
In the ancient Near East, it is only royal figures and high-ranking officials who
receive the designation of “image o f God.” However, with a dramatically different twist,
the biblical creation narrative uses royal language to describe humanity in general. “In
God’s eyes all of mankind is royal All of humanity is related to God, not just the king.
Specifically, the Bible democratizes the royalistic and exclusivistic concepts of the nations
This is the first clue that Adam and Eve are royal beings. Hence, the Seed that
proceeds from them must be royal too. This gives the basis for the expectation that the
'Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:51-52. “Also the blessing bestowed upon
man on the sixth day (vs. 28) is couched in similar terms, as though to say: Be fruitful and multiply like
the fish. Many more expressions of benison, linked with the idea of fecundity, occur in the book of
Genesis” (ibid., 52). See Gen 9:1; 17:16,20; 22:17; 24:60; 26:3-4,24; 28:3; 35:9-11; 48:3-4; 49:25;
compare 48:15-16.
3Ibid., 135. In ANE, common man was never regarded as “image of God.”
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
224
Seed o f the woman, pitched against the Serpent, in the great controversy, must be a
special royal figure. This also gives a hint o f the possibility of divine involvement o f in
Similar to and yet more fully than the water creatures and fowls of Gen 1:20-22,
human beings were blessed and commanded to “be fruitful and multiply” in vss. 26-28.
These verses have been called “the divine plan for humankind- the divinely-appointed
The fullest form of God’s pronouncements of blessing and the creation mandate
to humanity is the one expressed in Gen 1:28. The significance of Gen 1:28 for the
Norbert Lohfink declares that Gen 1:28 functions as a blessing rather than a
command.4 However, Turner’s rejoinder is that “the ‘blessing’ God delivers contains five
'Briggs, 717.
nbid.
'Walter Brueggemann states unequivocally. “We suggest that the formidable blessing declaration
of Gen 1:28 provides a focus for understanding the kerygma of the entire tradition These five verbs, I
suggest, are the central thrust of the faith of the priestly circle” (“The Kerygma of the Priestly Writers.”
ZAW 84 [1972]: 397-414, esp. 400). Gary V. Smith says that Gen 1:28 “has an overpowering theological
emphasis It is the key theological focal point in the two parallel sections of Genesis 1-11” (“Structure
and Purpose in Genesis 1-11,” JETS 20 [1977]: 311). Labuschagne describes the significance of Gen 1:28
in terms of its composition of exactly 22 (= 2 x 11) words and 88 (= 3 x 11) letters in the Hebrew text
(70). See also David J. A. Clines, What Does Eve Do to Help? And Other Readerly Questions to the Old
Testament, JSOT 94 (Sheffield: JSOT, 1990), 49-66; Turner, Announcements o f Plot in Genesis, 21-49;
idem, “Lot as Jekyil and Hyde,” in The Bible in Three Dimensions: Essays in Celebration o f Forty Years
o f Biblical Studies in the University o f Sheffield, ed. David J. A. Clines, Stephen E. Fowl, and Stanley E.
Porter, JSOTSup, 87 (Sheffield: JSOT, 1990), 85-98; and Westermann, Genesis l-II, 143.
‘Norbert Lohfink, “‘Seid fruchtbar und filllt die Erde an,’” Bibel und Kirche 30 (1975): 80. See
also Maurice Gilbert, ‘“ Soyez feconds et multipliez (Gen 1,28)’,” Nouvelle Revue Theologique % (1974):
741.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
225
imperatives. The announcement is both blessing and command: the capacity to be able to
perform these functions is indeed a blessing, but the imperative form underlines the
necessity of so doing.”1
Gen 1:28 is a “coherent entity.”3 The structure of this verse is such that the
word “subdue” belongs to the first half of the verse. Hence, the syntax of the verse
“militates against a neat division between the instructions to procreate and those to
rule.”4 However, the “weight of the verse does foil on its opening imperatives,
highlighting the call for human reproduction more than the call for mastery over other
creatures, and affording some justification to the prevalent tendency to consider them
‘Jeremy Cohen, Be Fertile and Increase, Fill the Earth and Master It: The Ancient and Medieval
Career o f a Biblical Text (London: Cornell University Press, 1989), 13.
^Ibid-
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
226
seriatim.”1
The full form of the blessing is found in Gen 1:28, but is found in part in 8:17;
9:1 and 7 (Noah). Being “fruitful and multiply” is also found in Gen 17:2, 20 (Abraham,
and in anticipation to Isaac); 28:1-4; and 35:11 (Jacob); 47:27; and 48:3-4 (Joseph) and
probably in Exodus 1 (the generation of Moses). Multiplying in the land is found in Deut
The command to “subdue” in Gen 1:28 already anticipates the potential of a foil
and its consequences on the created order of things. God foresaw and even herein pre
empted the likely rebellion or insubordination o f the earth as an aftermath of sin on earth.
The promise of Gen 1:28 was preventive, prophetic, and proleptic. In the light of this, the
Seed of the woman in Gen 3:15 is the one to folly and finally subdue to Serpent, and
announcement of 1:28, modifying the blessing and each of the injunctions. Turner has
summarized it well:
The dominion which humans should have exercised over the whole animal
creation is now qualified by the ongoing struggle between the seed of the serpent
and the Woman (3.14-15). The command to humans to subdue the earth is made
'Ibid., 14. Cohen continues: “Although many modern-day readers harp on its conferral of
dominion, which they construe as a wantonly anti-ecological statement, the verse comprises a coherent
entity, not readily susceptible to dissection based upon ideas external to it” (ibid.).
^rueggemann, “Kerygma of the Priestly Writers,” 402-407. Brueggemann adds: “The formula
is clearly related to land theology. This is indicated in a) the fact that the formula is characteristically
combined with the land promise, and b) the vocabulary of the formula speaks about blessing in and
control of the land: ‘fruitful and multiply’: refers to fertility and reproduction not only of man, but also of
land and animals; ‘subdue, have dominion’: refers to having control over the land, of power to impose
one’s will on the territory; ‘fill’: again refers to prosperity” (p. 408).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
227
much more difficult to fulfil through the cursing o f the ground, its producing
thorns and thistles, which will result in toil and sweat for humans engaged in
agriculture (3.17-19) Childbirth is the means by which the imperative to
multiply will be fulfilled, but here it is made into a painful and troublesome
affair The future o f the imperative to multiply is guaranteed although it will
become a painful experience for the women who carry it out (3:16).'
This means that upon the entry of sin, each of them most painfully continues
their primary tasks inevitably: man’s labor on the farm and woman’s labor of
childbearing. God’s address to each of them touches on their inescapable tasks (Gen
3:16-19). This makes the name that Adam gave to Eve most fitting “because she was the
mother of all living” (Gen 3:20). This is what she will do to help even though she has
had no child up till now.2 This further explains her own exuberant exclamation upon the
birth o f Cain, “I have a man child, the Lord!” (Gen 4:1 ).3
These statements are made within the context of creation which already demonstrate
God's “dominion” over the earth He has “filled” with “fruitful” creatures. “The human
^Clines, What Does Eve Do, 36. Turner points out the irony in the punishment fix’the woman
(3:16): “In i :28 humans had been commanded to ‘multiply’ (r*&<2); in 3:16 what actually multiplies
(harbd ’arbeh) is ‘your pain in childbirth.’ In other words, ‘In multiplying, your pain will be multiplied
by me’” (Announcements o f Plot in Genesis, 24). Turner also suspects an hendiadys in 3:16a: “I will
greatly multiply your pain and your childbearing” (Announcements o f Plot in Genesis, 24, n. I). See
Westermann, Genesis 1-11,262; and Wenham, Genesis 1-15,81.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
228
task must be seen as somewhat analogous to God’s actions in the days of creation,
especially when we remember that humans were created in the image of God (1:26-27).”*
In the expression “Be fruitful and multiply” in Gen 1:22, 28, it may be better to
take the two verbs as illustrative of hendiadys in conjunctive sentences. Thus “be fruitful
This portion of the injunction is not unique to humanity, having been earlier
given to sea creatures (Gen 1:22b) and the creatures of the air (Gen 1:22c) and implied
for land animals (Gen 1:24-25); all of which were also blessed with fertility and
multiplication. Both animals and humans were given the gift of reproduction by God.
“Yet their importance for humans in particular is underlined by the toledOt formulas
which punctuate the book as a whole and give it a ‘reproductive’ framework.” Adam’s
aloneness or singleness has the implication that he could not reproduce. Accordingly,
Gen 2:18 rectifies this in lieu of the multiplication motif of Gen 1:28.3
Adam could never procreate by himself without the help of Eve. This is the true
'Clines, What Does Eve Do, 22. Andersen points out that Gen 1:28 uses five conjoined
imperative clauses: “a definite succession of acts, where you would expect wow-consecutive with suffixed
(perfect) verb clauses to be used” (Sentence in Biblical Hebrew, 108).
2Andersen, Sentence in Biblical Hebrew, 117. Andersen also refers to Gen 9:7; 35:11, etc.
(ibid.).
-'Clines, What Does Eve Do, 22-23. Hamilton verifies: “In view of the feet that, at least in
Mesopotamia and maybe Canaan, creation motifs were often employed in fertility rites, Gen 1 may be
saying that reproduction is a blessing and gift from God, and is in no way dependent upon subsequent
rites or activities” (Genesis 1-17,139). See also Phyllis Bird, “Male and Female He Created Them,” HTR
74(1981): 147.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
229
sense in which she is his “partner.”1 This was why God said that “it is not good for the
man to be alone” not for loneliness, but for procreation (Gen 2:18, 20). When Adam saw
his soul mate in Eve, his way became clear “to filling the earth with progeny.”2 He
exclaims poetically with exuberance and unmistakable relief in Gen 2:23. “This view of
Eve's helpfulness also explains the narrative's emphasis on nakedness, on the man
It should be reiterated that the expansion of the human race was first mandated
and promised in Gen 1:28 (“be fruitful and multiply”), renewed in 3:15 at the Fall and
also after the deluge in Gen 9:1, 7. “The divine view of multiplication in these passages is
at least neutral, and generally positive (1:28; 9:1, 7). The process of beginning earthly
and human life belonged to God, but the task of continuing and expanding earthly life
Childbirth was at the center of the Creator’s blessings to humanity (Gen 1:28).
After the Fall, childbirth was still at the center of the Redeemer’s blessing to humanity
‘I prefer the word “partner” over and above the more commonly used “helper” to describe the
role of the woman. Both man and woman were equal “partners” in carrying out the procreation mandate
ofYahweh.
3Ibid., 34-35. However, I disagree with Clines’s position that Eve’s primary role is that of child
bearing, because this seems to over-extend the point of Scripture. The command to procreate was given
equally to both male and female (Gen 1:27-28).
Bird argues that the sexual distinction in 1:28 relates entirely to procreation: “sexual constitution
is the presupposition of the blessing of increase” (129-159, esp. 147).
4Harold Shank, “The Sin Theology of the Cain and Abel Story: An Analysis of Narrative Themes
Within the Context of Genesis 1-11” (Ph.D. thesis, Marquette University, Milwaukee, Wisconsin, 1988),
138-139.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
230
(Gen 3:15). Now, childbirth became the “means through which the snake would be
In Gen 3:15, God promises that both the woman and the beast (serpent) will
between them, this, however, ensures the continuation of the imperative to multiply in
1:28. The “dark side” of this is that death, through murder or old age, will occur along
side with human and animal procreation in the task of filling the earth.2
The fulfillment of the multiplication or seeding promises of Gen 1:28 and 3:15,
20 was carried out first in 4:1 when Eve bears Cain and Abel, and later Seth (4:25).
“Two genealogies prior to the flood (4:17-24 and 5:1-32) and the Table ofNations (Gen
10) and Shemite genealogy after the flood (11:10-26) testify to the expansion of the
as a witness to the success with which humans are fulfilling the command.”6
'Sailhamer, Pentateuch as Narrative, 108. He continues: “The pain of the birth of every child
was to be a reminder of the hope that lay in God’s promise. Birth pangs are not merely a reminder of the
futility of the Fall; they are as well a sign of an impending joy” (ibid.). See Rom 8:22-24; Matt 24:8.
:See Jack P. Lewis, A Study o f the Interpretation o f Noah and the Flood in Jewish and Christian
Literature (Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1968), 124; Robert B. Robinson, “Literary Functions of the Genealogies of
Genesis,” CBQ 48 (1986): 600, n. 8; and Turner, Announcements o f Plot in Genesis, 26.
3Shank, 138-139.
sIbid.
6Ibid. See Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:275; Childs, Old Testament as
Scripture, 153; Coats, Genesis, 71; Driver, Genesis, 75; Fishbane, “Genesis 2.4b-l 1-32: The Primeval
Cycle,” 17-39; Fretheim, Creation, 103; von Rad, Genesis, 69; Smith, “Structure and Purpose in Genesis
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
231
Gen 1-11 in spite of the significant threats such as the pain of childbirth (3:16); murder
(chap. 4); death (Gen 5,10); human desire to settle in one place (11:1-9); and infertility
(11:30).'
The divine commands of Gen 1:28; 3:15 and 9:1-2, 7 are formalized through
covenants ratified by God separately with Noah, Abraham, and David. Gen 12:1-3
advances the expectation of a “Seed who would subdue the earth by ruling over the
nations cursing Abraham and prospering those blessing him.”2 Likewise, 2 Sam 7:8-17
“anticipates a Davidic Seed who should rule the earth (cf. Pss 72:8-11; 89:25-27) and
The verb “subdue” $ 2 3 occurs here only in the book of Genesis; while being
used in other places with the connotation of sexual degradation (Neh 5:5?), or rape (Esth
7:8) or enslavement of people (Jer 34:11, 16). The context o f Gen 1-11 yields a
1-11,” 311-312; Wenham, Genesis 1-15, 126; Westermann, Genesis l-1 1 ,6, 17; and Robert R. Wilson,
Genealogy and History in the Biblical World, Yale Near Eastern Reseaches, 7 (New Haven: Yale
University Press, 1977), 164.
^age, 29.
3Ibid., 30. He adds: “Each of these covenants, though administratively and typically diverse, is
nevertheless an expression of the same promise that a Seed would come who should subdue the earth.
Each is progressively more particularistic in defining the Seed: the Noahic identifying the Semitic race,
the Abrahamic identifying the Israelite nation, and the Davidic identifying the Israelite nation, and the
Davidic identifying the family of Jesse. Yet each is equally universalistic in scope, encompassing every
creature (Noah), all nations (Abraham), and all the realms (David) These covenants are
republications of the divine command” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
232
particular nuance of meaning of this term in 1:28. However, “its general meaning seems
part with Adam “tilling” and “keeping” the Garden of Eden (2:5, 15).2
reversed,”3 man’s ability to “subdue the earth.” First, the ground was cursed because of
humanity’s disobedience (3:17). Even though subduing of the earth through ’tilling” it
and “keeping” it was not necessarily effortless before sin, now the presence of “thorns
and thistles” has caused considerable “toil” and “sweat.” “From now on, the task of
subduing the earth will be a struggle, because the earth itself has been cursed into
becoming a less tameable environment in which the Man may exercise his sovereignty.”4
The eventual return of man to the dust suggests that, “in the final analysis, it is the earth
'Ibid., 33. Cf. Bernhard W. Anderson, “Creation and Ecology,” in Creation in the Old
Testament, ed. Bernhard. W. Anderson (Philadelphia: Fortress, 1984), 154; Gibson, Genesis, 1.112;
Ludwig Koehler and Walter Baumgartner, Lexicon in Veteris Testamenti Libros (Leiden: E. J. Brill,
1933), 423; Rolf Rendtorff “‘Subdue the Earth’: Man and Nature in the Old Testament,” Theology Digest
27 (1979): 215; and Westermann, Genesis I-I I, 161; Hamilton suggests: “Probably what is designated
here is settlement and agriculture: ‘subdue the land’ in ch. I is a semantic parallel to ‘till and keep the
land’ in 2:5,15” (Genesis 1-17, 139-140). He submits, however, that later uses o f‘subdue’ suggest
violence or a display of force, dictatorship, physical abuse, assault, slavery, devouring etc. as in 2 Chr
28:10; Neh 5:5; Jer 34:11, 16; Esth 7:8; Num 32:22,29; Josh 18:1.
4Ibid.
5Ibid. Turner says emphatically: “Yahweh’s curse has rendered it an impossible task” (p. 41).
Kidner also says that “man in his own disorder would never now ‘subdue’ the earth” (Genesis, 72).
Daniel Patte and Judson F. Parker explain that the curses of 3:16-19 entail the woman being dominated by
man and man by the ground, each from what/who they were initially created (74). Cf. Bruce P. Naidoff
“A Man to Work the Soil: A New Interpretation of Genesis 2-3,” JSOT 5 (1978): 10.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
233
The word “dominion” is used only two times in Genesis and both occur in 1:26
(imperfect/plural/masc.) and 1:28 (plural/imperative). The verb TTH means “to rule,
have dominion, dominate, tread down, subjugate, scrape, or scrape out.”1 Its usual
officer-laborer relationship which seems to give unlimited power to the one who has the
upper hand.2
Nonetheless, at this stage in human history, before sin entered the world, the
connotation of the word “dominion” is very different from its later, post-Fail meaning in
the Old Testament. Here, it is more restricted and limited. Notably, both humans and
:Koehler and Baumgartner, 874-875; BDB (1996), s.v. ‘T H T ” Cf. Lev 25:43,46, 53; 26:17;
Num 24:19; 1 Kgs 5:4,30; 9:23; Isa 14:2,6; Ezek 29:15; 34:4; Pss 49:15; 68:28; 110:2; Lam 1:13; Neh
9:28; 2 Chr 8:10. Further discussions: George W. Coats, “The God of Death: Power and Obedience in the
Primeval History,” Interpretation 29 (1975): 229; James Limburg, “What Does It Mean to Have
Dominion Over the Earth?” Dialog 10 (1971): 222; and Westermann, Genesis l-l 1 ,158-9. Lynn White
sees Gen I as God's permission for the current raping of our environment which led to man’s arrogance
and exploitation towards nature (“The Historical Roots of Our Ecological Crisis,” Science 155 [March
1967]: 1203-1207).
’Turner, Announcements o f Plot in Genesis, 42. See Bernhard W. Anderson, “Human Dominion
over Nature,” in Biblical Studies in Contemporary Thought, ed. M. Ward (Somerville, MA: Greeno.
Hadden & Co., 1975), 27-45; idem, “Creation and Ecology,” 154; Roger Duncan, “Adam and the Ark,”
Encounter 37 (1976): 191; Hamilton, Genesis 1-17,139; Walter Houston, “'And Let Them Have
Dominion . . Biblical Views of Man in Relation to the Environmental Crisis,” in Studia Biblica, 1.
Papers on Old Testament and Related Themes, ed. E. A. Livingstone, JSOTS 11 (Sheffield: JSOT, 1979),
161-184; Limburg, 223; and Westermann, Creation, 50-54. However, adamant that Gen 1 did not forbid
human consumption of meat and that Gen 9:2-3 merely ratifies it are L. Dequeker, “'Green Herbage and
Trees Bearing Fruit’ (Gen 1:28-30; 9:1-3),” Bijdragen 38 (1977): 120 passim; and Wenham, Genesis l-
15, 34.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
234
relationship.”1 That the power of the one who names is definitely not unlimited is made
obvious by the “restraints of vegetarianism”2and the case o f the Man naming the Woman
(3 :2 0 ).3
The exercise o f dominion reflects royal language just like “image.” Evidently.
“Man is created to rule.”4 Adam and Eve are royal in nature. Hence, the Seed of the
The serpent, among the animals Adam named (3:1), showing human superiority
'Assigning names in the Bible often signifies authority over the one who is named as seen in
Num 32:38; 2 Kgs 23:34; 24:17; 2 Chr 36:4; and Dan 1:7. Cf. Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f
Genesis, 1:130.
JIbid., 42-43. See David Tobin Asselin, “The Notion of Dominion in Genesis 1-3,” CBQ 16
(1954): 289; Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:92, 130; Coats, Genesis, 53; Duncan,
192; Fretheim, 78; Gibson, Genesis 1.117; Kidner, Genesis. 65; Naidoff 5; Richardson, 67; Rosenberg, 7;
and Walter Vogels, “L’etre humain appartient au sol: Gn 2,4b-3,24,” Nouvelle Revue Theologique 105
(1983): 527. Contra, man’s naming of the woman is taken as a demonstration of his dominion over her
by: Clines, What Does Eve Do, 37-40; Phyllis Trible, “Eve and Adam: Genesis 2-3 Reread,” in
Womanspirit Rising: A Feminist Reader in Religion, ed. Carol P. Christ and Judith Plaskow (San
Franscisco: Harper & Row, 1979), 81 (concerning 3:20); and Wenham, Genesis 1-15,50,68,70. This
view is rejected by: Boomershine, 119; George W. Ramsey, “Is Name-Giving an Act of Domination in
Genesis 2:23 and Elsewhere?” CBQ 50 (1988): 34-35; and Trible, “Eve and Adam,” 77 (concerning
2:23).
Richard M. Davidson argues that, in Gen 2:23, the name given to the female “is not a personal
name, but only a generic identification” (“Headship, Submission, and Equality in Scripture,” in Women in
Ministry: Biblical and Historical Perspectives, ed. Nancy Vhymeister [Berrien Springs. MI: Andrews
University Press, 1998], 263). Moreover, Doukhan concurs that Gen 2:23 contains a pair of passives
(niphal, puaf) “which conveys the idea of an intervention from outside, hence God” (Genesis Creation
Story, 46-47). This indicates that the designation of “woman” was actually given by God while Adam
only recognized this designation just as he recognized that it was God who took her “out of man.” See
further, Hasel, “Equality from the Start,” 23-24; and Trible, “A Love Story Gone Awry,” 99-100.
4Hamilton, Genesis 1-17,138. von Rad cautions: “This commission to rule is not considered as
belonging to the definition of God’s image; but it is its consequence, i.e., that for which man is capable
because of it” (Genesis, 59).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
235
and dominion over the animal kingdom, through a surprising unexpected twist, uses its
“subtlety.” Hence, the serpent “outwits the human pair and thus exercises some form of
‘dominion’ over them- the very reverse of what the reader was led to expect.”1 The
Woman’s confession in 3:13, that the serpent deceived her, stands in “stark contrast” to
the command in 1:28 for humanity to dominate animals, including of course, this same
serpent who is identified as one of the animal creation (3:1) named by the Man in 2:19-
20. The serpent successfully attempts to “overturn the divinely ordained relationship to
humans.”2
relationship between humans and animals. Hitherto, human domination over animals was
completely devoid of hostility between both parties even with animals being subservient
to humans (Gen 1-2). Gen 3:14-15 indicates that the serpent’s “outwitting of humans
will not continue for ever.”3 Furthermore, this new element of hostility is intended to re
A statement that in their struggles with humans serpents will be their equal
(which is how most scholars read 3:15b), is promotion rather than demotion and
’Ibid.
3Ibid.
4Ibid. Contra Anderson, who maintains that Gen 1-9 indicates that a “paradisaical peace”
continues between humans and beasts with no indication of conflict between both parties (“Creation and
Ecology,” 154).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
236
The human-animal relation began to deteriorate after the Fall.2 First, animal skin
is used for the dress God clothed the human pair with (3:21). “Animals are now seen to
serve humans’ needs, even when this means the death of animals.”3 Second, humans
made a profession from tending animals (4:2, 20) including killing animals for cultic use
(4:4; 8:20).4 Third, the divine statement of 9:2: “the fear of you and the dread of you
shall be upon every beast of the earth. . . ” includes divine permission for killing animals
By the end of the primeval history and beyond, “humans increasingly dominate
the animal creation and eventually rule despotically (an intensification of the original
the serpent, exercise an ongoing dominion over the humans (a reversal of the original
'Turner, Announcements o f Plot in Genesis, 45. Cf. Wenham, Genesis 1-15, 80,89.
4Ibid., 47.
sIbid. Cf. David J. A. Clines, Theology of the Rood Narrative,” Faith and Thought 100 (1972-
73): 138; Driver, Genesis, 95-6; Fretheim, 113; Richardson, 107; Skinner, 169-170; and Westermann,
Genesis l- l 1 ,462. The suggestion has been made that the permission to eat meat might not be an
innovation here (Calvin, Genesis, 1.291; Dequeker, 127; and Kidner, Genesis, 101).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
237
command); i.e., the serpent’s tempting of the first humans to commit the offense affects
Also, the mandate to dominate the earth becomes increasingly difficult, in the
light o f the flood and imminent death of humans. Over all, “God seems more willing to
modify these second and third elements of the Announcement than he is the first-‘be
fruitful, multiply and fill the earth’ This strong focus on multiplication is maintained
connective tissue. The ebb and flow of tension and resolution is almost constantly
centered on this one issue.”3 Promises of multiplication of seeds are renewed with
Abraham from Gen 12:1-3 onwards. Isaac’s blessings include: (1) the power to
multiply-2:2; 13:16; 26:24; 28:14; cf. vs. 3; 35:11; 48:4; (2) numerous progeny; (3)
wealth and prosperity-24:35; 26:12-14; 27:27-28; and (4) power over enemies.4
The “multiplication” motif of the primaeval history (“Be fruitful, multiply, and fill
the earth”) was modified into the progeny/nationhood promise to Abraham (Gen 12:1-3)
'Ibid., 48-49.
2lbid.
3Ibid., 94.
Mohannes Pedersen, Israel: Its Life and Culture (London: Oxford University Press, 1926), 1.204-
20S. “To be blessed and to have a large progeny amounts to the same thing” (ibid., 20S). See Umberto
Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, vol. 2, From Noah to Abraham (Jerusalem: Magnes,
1961), 291. Furthermore, Cassuto itemized the seven expressions ofbiessings that God gave to Abraham
in Gen 12:2-3; seven similar blessings reiterated to Isaac (Gen 26:3-4) and Jacob (Gen 27:28-29)
(Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 2:312-313).
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
238
15; 28:3-4; 35:11-12; and later on, 46:3, 8-27; and 47:27).' This is the only “recurring
element which seems to attract Yahweh’s solicitous attention more than any of the
others Other aspects can be abandoned or modified but Yahweh must keep faith
with this aspect or the Genesis story would end in utter nihilism.”2
human beings from generation to generation. They report the continuity of the
multiplication of the human seed as promised in Gen 1:28 and reinforced in Gen 3:15.
Interestingly, genealogies also maintain the order of creation established in Gen 1. “The
The promise of multiplication of seed for humans, given in Gen 1:26-28, was
‘Pedersen, 177.
Tbid., 181.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
239
renewed in Gen 3:15 after human disobedience, in the context o f enmity with evil forces.
It is however crystalized in a special representative Seed who will deliver humanity after a
fatal struggle with the Devil, culminating in the future. This fact set in motion a program
of events, twists and turns, and an overarching plot, all played out in the rest of Genesis,
The identification of this Special Seed of the woman pre-occupies the writer’s
attention as he traces the chosen family line onward from Adam and Eve. A series of
and over. The narratives show “how human and divine actions figure in the process of
“differentiation” which “elevates one heir,” the “single named bearer of genealogical
prominence.”3
The various genealogies seem to form the pillars around which the narratives of
Genesis weave their fundamental fabric. The genealogies and narratives of Genesis
exhibit a “dynamic of rhythm.”4 Not surprising, the book is named “Genesis,” reflecting
'Hopkins, 28.
:Ibid.,40.
3Ibid. Robinson admits that narrowness and fixity are observable in the genealogical line as the
promised heir(s) is determined from generation to generation (“Literary Functions,” 604).
4Hopkins, 25. He exemplifies this rhythm: “The genealogies create inheritance ambiguities that
the narratives resolve. As soon as Eve gives birth to two sons, ambiguity and the potential for rivalry
arise: who will inherit a place on the genealogical tree? The story of Cain and Adonai takes both
contenders out of the picture. The question of Adam’s successor waits for a resolution in the
announcement of Seth’s birth. Next, the genealogy of Adam through Noah breaks off the moment the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
240
genealogy.”1 Genealogies are the driving force within Genesis. The genealogies are
demarcated as n i l b i n headings.2
birth of Noah’s three, named children is made public. The genealogical ambiguity provides the occasion
for the flood narrative, which, in concluding with the story of Ham’s ‘incest,’ ratifies Shem’s place in the
succession. For ten generations from Shem to Terah, the genealogy of Genesis 11 spills effortlessly until
the report of Terah’s three offspring, and the story begins once more. The entire account of Abraham and
Sarah holds in suspense the genealogical place following Terah until a voice from heaven halts
Abraham’s sacrifice of his designated heir, and the succession is finally secured” (ibid., 27).
3T. David Andersen argues: “The genealogical framework provides the overall structure of the
book. Moreover, Genesis is what drives the whole primary history from Genesis to Kings. The remaining
section of the Hebrew Bible, the Writings, is commonly thought to begin with Psalms. However, in the
Aleppo Codex and the Leningrad Codex, the Writings begin with Chronicles. Chronicles, of course,
begins with a long genealogical section. The New Testament also begins with a genealogy. Hence, it may
be concluded that genealogies are what gives the initializing, organizing principle for the entire Bible”
(“Genealogical Prominence and the Structure of Genesis,” in Biblical Hebrew and Discourse Linguistics,
ed. Robert D. Bergen [Dallas, TX: Summer Institute of Linguistics, 1994], 263).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
241
continuity” from the universal scale to the delimited attention of the chosen race of the
world to bear the chosen Special Representative Seed o f Humanity, vis-a-vis the
Israelites.1
The seed o f Gen 3:15 introduces the interest o f the book of Genesis with
childbearing. This is further developed as the book progresses, and even beyond Genesis,
throughout the Pentateuch. First of all, it shows that it is God who controls the
'See Steinberg, “The Genealogical Framework of the Family Stories in Genesis,” 47. Robinson
agrees that Genesis is a “family history” (“Literary Functions,” 601). “On the broadest plain, the level of
Genesis as a literary whole, all the characters in Genesis are related as members of one extended family.
It should also be borne in mind that the narratives of Genesis are preeminently stories of family relations
and even intrigues” (Robinson, “Literary Functions,” 601).
Furthermore, Alexander observed that although Genesis begins with a “broad picture of
mankind’s history, the focus of attention is gradually and constantly narrowed as we pursue the fortunes
of one particular family. Structurally this is achieved through the use of: (a) idledot formulae (’these are
the generations o f . . . ’) which focus in upon a particular individual and his descendants (e.g., 6:9; 11:27;
25:19; 37:2), and (b) genealogical lists which pass over quickly a number of generations (e.g., 5:1-32,
from Adam to Noah; 11:10-26, from Shem to Terah)” (“From Adam to Judah,” 6-8).
'Ibid., 605-606. Philip E. Satterthwaite points out that “sometimes divergent genealogical lines
seem to be traced in detail to mark a contrast with the line of promise. The lines of both Ishmaei,
Abraham’s son by Hagar, and Esau, Jacob’s twin brother, give the appearance o f’shadow lines of
promise The narrator deliberately traces parallels between the rejected brother and the one who
carries the line of promise, as though to emphasize the theme of God’s sovereign choice by suggesting the
thought ’so near and yet so for’” (“Genealogy in the Old Testament,” NIDOTTE, 4:657).
Satterthwaite elaborates further that the genealogies show the progress of the family line
generation by generation while the narratives portrays the problems and threats facing the family such as
barrenness, famine, and rivalry from generation to generation (ibid., 660).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
242
childbearing process by giving or withholding the ability to bear children. “The central
family line exists due to the gracious activity of God”1who is actively responsible for its
continuation. Gen 3:15 identifies “seed” as an “issue of ongoing tension.”2 “It seems that
the fulfillment of the curse on the serpent is contingent upon God’s continued provision
quarter of all its occurrences in the Hebrew Bible are in Genesis.”4 The word “seed”
occurs as noun fifty-nine (59) times in Genesis; 118 times in the Pentateuch; and 226 in
the whole of the Hebrew Bible.5 The concept of HIT “seed” is frequently used in close
'Alexander, “Genealogies, Seed, and the Compositional Unity of Genesis,” 263. This is evident
in Eve’s gratitude at Seth’s birth (4:25), and in the overcoming of barrenness in the cases of Abraham and
Sarah (11:30; 21:1), Isaac and Rebekah (25:21), and Jacob and Rachel (29:31; 30:22-24).
*Bolger, 278.
3Ibid., 279. Bolger continues: “Childbearing is related elsewhere in the Pentateuch to obedience.
There are stipulations regarding how a childbearing woman can consecrate herself.. . . The relationship
of childbearing to obedience mirrors the Edenic association of pain in childbearing with judgment. That
is, as Eve’s ability to bear children was hindered by her transgression, so Israel’s ability to multiply will
be put in jeopardy if disobedient” (ibid.).
The word “Seed” is used as a noun as follows: OT= 202 verses; 226 times.
Pentateuch = 94 verses i.e., 46.5 % of OT seed verses; 108 times i.e., 47.8 % of
OT times.
OT, Outside Pentateuch = 108 verses i.e., 53.5 % of OT seed verses; 118 times i.e.. 52.2 % of
OT times.
Genesis = 48 verses i.e., 51.1 % of Pentateuch seed verses; 23.8 % ofOT seed
verses.
= 59 times i.e., 54.6 % of Pentateuch times; 26.1 % of OT times.
Pentateuch, after Genesis = 46 verses i.e., 48.9 % of Pentateuch seed verses; 21.7 % of OT seed
verses.
= 49 times i.e., 45.4% of Pentateuch verses with seed; 21.7 % ofOT
seed verses.
In the OT, the noun is used in the following number of times: Genesis (59); Exodus (6); Leviticus
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
243
link with the H ilSiD genealogical structure of Genesis “in order to highlight a single,
by the use of the term “seed” in Genesis. “Taken together these features focus attention
on a unique lineage which begins with Adam and concludes with sons of Israel. This
family line forms the backbone of the book.”2 Moreover, “a thorough investigation
reveals that there is hardly a passage in Genesis which does not relate in one way or
another to the family line which lies at the heart of the book. This unique family line,
The failure to consider Gen 3: IS beyond the immediate context of Gen 3 alone,
rather than in the light o f the whole book of Genesis, has resulted in missing the
significant link that the word JHT “seed” provides throughout the book. The connection
between 3:15 and 4:25 is very significant. “It is through the seed of Seth, and not AbeL,
(21); Numbers (8); Deuteronomy (14); Joshua (1); Ruth (1); I Samuel (6); 2 Samuel (3); 1 Kings (S);
2 Kings (4); 1 Chronicles (2); 2 Chronicles (2); Ezra (2); Nehemiah (3); Esther (S); Job (3); Psalm (18);
Proverbs (I); Ecclesiastes (I); Isaiah (26); Jeremiah (21); Ezekiel (6); Daniel (3, one of which is in
Aramaic [2:43]); Amos (I); Haggai (1); Zechariah (1); and Malachi (2).
The 59 nouns used in the book of Genesis are as follows: 1:11 (2 times), 12 (2 times), 29 (2
times); 3:15 (2 times); 4:25; 7:3; 8:22; 9:9; 12:7; 13:15, 16 (2 times); 15:3,5, 13, 18; 16:10; 17:7 (2
times), 9, 10, 12, 19; 19:32,34; 21:12,13; 22:17 (2 times), 18; 24:7,60; 26:3,4 (3 times), 24; 28:4, 13,
14 (2 times); 32:12 (Heb 13); 35: 12; 38:8,9 (2 times); 46:6,7; 47:19,23,24; 48:4, 11, 19. Of these uses,
only four refer literally to agricultural seeds. This confirms that the characteristic use of “seed” in Genesis
is figurative or metaphorical.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
244
that the divine pronouncement against the serpent will be fulfilled.”1 The confusion over
whether the “seed” of Gen 3:15 is to be taken in its plural or singular connotation is
clarified when one considers Eve’s use o f the term in 4:25 to refer to a singular seed.
Though the first part o f Gen 3:15 clearly has a collective seed in view, a singular seed
Moreover, “the fact that one specific line of descent is carefully traced
throughout the entire book of Genesis suggests that the seed o f 3:15 does not refer to all
mankind, but rather to a specific individual or group.”2 This is further proof that Gen
3:15 “should not be interpreted as merely a general statement about the hostility which
The book of Genesis takes great care to establish the accurate line of descent
because of the promised Seed of Gen 3:15. God is actively orchestrating this process.
Each descendant must be “of his father’s seed”4 and is always “clearly named.”3
Beginning from Adam, the promised line o f descent is traced through Seth, Enosh,
Kenan, Mahalalel, Jared, Enoch, Methuselah, Lamech, to Noah. From Noah it is passed
on to Shem. There are seven more generations before Terah. Abraham inherits the
"Ibid.
3Ibid.
5Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
245
In each generation, up till this point, the chosen seed/child to be the designated
promised line of descent was clearly named as one male child.1 They were clearly marked
as the nation who “would be blessed and grow strong and have Messiah among them.”2
Jacob’s case was different. “All his sons would be part of the Israelite nation. Each son
would represent one tribe. The Abrahamic blessing would, in general, be for all of them,
although certain aspects of the blessings would fall only on selected tribes.”3
Thus, a “new genealogical pattern”4 evolves with Jacob’s family history. “He
does not designate only one of his two wives as the mother of the son who will serve as
his heir.”s Both Leah and Rachel were accepted as mothers of Jacob’s children and all
their twelve sons were accepted as his heirs.6 However, as Genesis comes to an end,
Judah was given the blessing that was tantamount to that belonging to the chosen Seed
designated to bear the promised line of descent of the Messiah (Gen 49:8-12). Thus,
Judah became the ancestor of King David who was the later progenitor of Jesus Christ,
'Alexander continues: “The lineage is always traced through male descendants, and ail are
clearly named” (ibid., 262).
2Jan Age Sigvartsen, “Messiah Son of Joseph: Genesis 49:22-26” (M.A. thesis, Andrews
University, Berrien Springs, Ml, 1998), 74.
}Ibid., 75. For instance, priesthood came through the tribe of Levi, blessing and suffering were
typified in Joseph, while kingship came through the line of Judah. The blessings pronounced on Joseph’s
line also points to the coming of a glorious Messiah.
‘Naomi Steinberg, “Gender Roles in the Rebekah Cycle,” Union Seminary Quarterly Review 39
(1984): 187, n. 13.
%id.
“Ibid. I disagree with her conclusion that this meant that “the prior interest in finding a single
heir is lost” (p. 187). This is not the case as Jacob’s blessing of his 12 sons and Joseph’s two sons shows
in Gen 48-49. He discriminates among them for the purpose of selecting who will bear the Messianic
torch of rulership.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
246
the Son of David. There are “close links between the traditions associated with these
There exists a “close resemblance between the ‘seed’ and that which has
produced it.”2 On the whole, there is always a “special relationship between God and
individual members of the mam family line.”3 Despite their enjoyment o f ‘"God's favour
The divine promises and special blessings given to the main family lineage were
mentioned in connection to “seed” and often particularly tagged to the delineated and
designated “seed.” This began with the special singular “Seed” of the woman who
overcomes the serpent in Gen 3:15. This is further developed as the main family lineage
proceeds from Seth onwards (4:25; 5:1-32 and so on). First, God promises the land of
Canaan to the “seed” o f Abraham (12:7; 13:15; 15:18; 17:8; 22:17) and repeats it to
'Alexander, “From Adam to Judah,” 14, 18. He reveals that in this developing family tree,
sometimes “the younger son often displaces the older as regards the birthright and paternal blessing” (p.
14). Jacob displaces Esau (25:29-34; 27:1-40); Seth chosen over Cain after Abel was murdered by Cain
(4:1-16,25-5:3); Isaac over Ishmael (17:18-21; 21:1-21); and Judah over his older brothers Reuben,
Simeon, and Levi (49:8-12). See ibid., 15.
2Alexander, “Genealogies, Seed, and the Compositional Unity of Genesis,” 260,265-266. “This
is highlighted at the outset in the comment that plants and trees were to produce seeds ‘according to their
various kinds’ (1:11-12)” (ibid., 266). Isaac in 26:1-11 follows Abraham, 12:10-20; 20:1-18. Also
compare 26:17-25 with 21:22-34; and 26:26-31 with 21:22-34. Jacob’s deceitfulness is mirrored in his
children in 27:1-29; 37:12-35. Cain’s murderous acts were repeated and exceeded by Lamech in 4:19-24.
}Ibid., 263-265. Examples include Enoch (5:24), Noah (6:9), and of course Abraham, Isaac and
Jacob whose intimacy with God is revealed in detailed accounts.
4Ibid Noah was drunk (9:20-21), Abraham lied (12:10-13), and Jacob was deceptive (27:1-40).
sIbid., 266-267.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
247
Second, God promised that the “seed” of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob will be
numerous as the “dust of the earth” (13:16; 28:14), “stars of the heavens” (15:5; 22:17;
26:4), and the “sand of the seashore” (22:17; 32:12). “The fulfilment of the promise of
numerous descendants, like that of the land, clearly lies beyond the book of Genesis.”1
This shows the connectedness of the rest of the canon in completing what was begun in
Genesis. Third, all nations of the earth are to be blessed through Abraham and his “seed”
The Seed promise, when individual singular, is always both immediate and
future. All these promises lead to the pen-ultimate representative Seed who will fatally
bruise the serpent’s head. Each and every particular reference to and prophecy about
each of the chosen seed traced from Adam’s Seth are all to be fulfilled in the ultimate
representative Seed.
The kingship and royalty of this family lineage is seen first and foremost in the
mandate given by God to Adam and Eve to “subdue” and have “dominion” over all
creation that God has “given” to their care (Gen 1:26-30; see also Gen 9:1-2). They
were made in the “image of God” (Gen 1:26), thus making them special. “Adam is to be
viewed as the first member of this royal line.”3 Other kingship factors have been
'Ibid., 266.
2Ibid„ 266-267.
3T. Desmond Alexander, From Paradise to the Promised Land: An Introduction to the Main
Themes o f the Pentateuch [Carlisle, Cumbria: Paternoster. 199S], 17-18, n. 9.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
248
Abraham was promised by God saying, “Kings will come from you” (Gen 17:6).
Abraham attains the status of a king without royal title in Gen 14. Abimelech, the king of
Gerar, enters a treaty with Abraham our of fear in Gen 21:22-24, and subsequently with
Isaac also (Gen 26:26-33). The Hittite inhabitants of Hebron called Abraham “a mighty
prince” (literally, “a prince of God”) according to Gen 23:6.1 Later on, Jacob also
received the divine promise saying, “Kings will come from your body” (Gen 35:22).
“Finally, the brief comment in 36:31, ‘These were the kings who reigned in Edom before
any Israelite king reigned,’ indicates that whoever wrote this either anticipated or already
At the end of this family lineage in Genesis, Judah emerges as the “special heir”3
with “superior blessing,”4 which definitely alludes to kingship. “Judah’s brothers will
now bow down to him (49:8) and he will hold the sceptre and ruler’s staff (49:10).”5
While blessing him, “Jacob anticipates that eventually there will come in the royal line of
Judah one to whom the nations will submit in obedience (49:10) and whose reign will be
^Alexander, “Genealogies, Seed, and the Compositional Unity of Genesis,” 267-268. Alexander
reiterates: ‘There are strong indications that the main line of descent in Genesis is viewed as anticipating
a royal lineage” (“Messianic Ideology in Genesis,” 26-27). See Gen 17:6 (Abraham); Gen 17:16 (Sarah);
and Gen 35:11 (Jacob). The patriarchs sometimes enjoyed royal status though not directly called kings:
Gen 14:1-24; 21:22-34 and 23:6 (Abraham); 26:26-31 ( I s a a c ) ; 37:8-11 and 41:39-43 (Joseph).
4Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
249
David is addressed as God’s “anointed” or “messiah” (Ps 89:21, 39; 2 Sam 22:51)
whose “Seed” will endure forever under God’s favor (Ps 89:5, 30,37). As
Yahweh has crushed the ancient serpent “Rahab” (Ps 89:11), so now David and
his sons will crush their enemies in the dust beneath their feet (Ps 89:24; 2 Sam
22:37-43) In Ps 72:9, the foes o f the Davidic king are described as “bowing
down before him” and “licking the dust.” In the familiar “messianic” Psalms, God
is described as having placed “all things under his feet” (Ps 8:6) and will make
“your enemies your footstool” (Ps 110: l).2
The above analysis helps us to make sense of the NT references and allusions to
Genesis in the mention of “Seed of Abraham” (Gal 3:16) and “Seed of David” (Rom 1:3;
2 Rom 2:8).3
Not only was Adam a king, he was also a priest. First, both Adam and Eve were
dressed by God in Gen 3:21. This divine act confers a special status on them.4 It is rare
for God to dress people in the OT. Such act is connected only with the ritual dressing of
the priest, either directly by God Himself (Ps 132:16; 2 Chr 6:41) or through Moses
(Exod 28:41; 29:8; 40; Lev 8:13). Moreover, the technical term for the act of dressing
'Robert A. Oden, Jr., “Grace or Status? Yahweh’s Clothing of the First Humans,” Chap. 3 of The
Bible Without Theology: The Theological Tradition and Alternatives to It (San Francisco: Harper and
Row, 1987), 92-105. Oden explained the key verbs in Gen 3:21 in the context of the Bible and the ancient
Near Eastern literature, confirming that these terms occur in the contexts of status marking.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
250
the priest, the Hiphil form of the verb, is the very same used in Gen 3:21 so that this
The two verbs used by God in Gen 2:15 to describe the work of Adam and Eve
in the garden are 1 2 2 “to work or serve,” and "172© “to keep or guard.” These verbs
are technical terms also used for the work of the priests or Levites at the sanctuary (Num
3:7-8, etc.).2 This qualifies Adam and Eve as the first human priests.
Furthermore, Adam and Eve were clothed with animal skin from the animal used
for the first ever burnt offering. In literature biblical cultic practice, it was stipulated that
the skin of the animal used for the burnt offering should be reserved exclusively for the
priest (Lev 7:8). Thus, Adam and Eve qualify to be referred to as the first human
priests.3
“In the light of this, the concept of priest-king takes on a special significance. In
Genesis we encounter this unusual status in the figure of Melchizedek.”4 Such particular
status is reminiscent only of Adam and Eve before the Fall. “Later, the Israelites are
met perpetually with Adam and Eve. Various positive identifications such as “God
’Ibid., 18, n. 9.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
251
walking,” eastward orientation, Cherubims, precious metals like gold, bdellium, and
onyx, the duty of “work” and “taking care,” the river flowing, and the tree of life, the
three concentric spheres o f space, literary structure, and several verbal parallels make the
garden of Eden (Gen 1-3) a “prototype” of the Tabernacle and the Jerusalem temple.'
Later, direct access to God was limited to once a year by the high priest alone, while
understanding of and treatment of the seed passages and seed echoes proceeding from
the key text of Gen 3:15, it is important to examine several such verses. It is not my
intention to present a detailed exegesis of all the other remaining fifty-eight (58)
occurrences of the noun seed in Genesis in this dissertation. The crucial passages are the
ones that exhibit the peculiar features of my key text, Gen 3:15. The criteria for their
choice include among others, the use of feminine seed, the attachment of the promises of
land and prosperity to that o f posterity, and the movement from the collective plural to
the individual singular. The selected passages exhibit at least one o f the above features.
'See the detailed descriptions in Davidson, “Cosmic Metanarrative for the Coming Millennium,”
108-111. Cf. Alexander, From Paradise to the Promised Land, 21; Bolger, 20S-266; William J.
Dumbrell, The End o f the Beginning: Revelation 21-22 and the Old Testament (Homebush West, New
South Wales: Lancer, 1985), 35-76; Fishbone, Text and Texture, 12-13; Jon D. Levenson, Sinai and Zion:
An Entry into the Jewish Bible (Minneapolis, MN: Winston, 1985), 142-145; Angel Manuel Rodriquez,
“Sanctuary Theology in the Book of Exodus,” AUSS 24 [1986]: 131-137; and Wenham, “Sanctuary
Symbolism,” 19-25.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
252
Gen 4:1-3,25
The premier human fulfillm en t of the mandate to multiply and be fruitful (1:28)
and of the promise of seed to the woman (3:15) is in Gen 4:1, which reads:
to the idea of “seed” which has been the focal point of the evolving narratives of Genesis.
The word “know” refers to Adam knowing his wife carnally. This connotes sexual
intercourse, the means of procreation as known in those days. This was the way of
Eve m n , the “mother of the living,” is the progenitress of all the seed of
humanity. Such a faith had been expressed in Gen 3:20, prior to the conception or birth
of her first seed or child. Its use here, in its first most proper place, definitely recalls the
promised Seed of the woman in Gen 3:15 and the multiplying of conception of seed
The double verbal expressions "iSni ITtri] “conceived and bore” reflect
“conception. . . you will bear. . . ” This evidently echoes “seed” of Gen 3:15 which was
assured the woman and her kind for as long as life persists. It is worthy of note here in
lBDB (1996), s.v. “i n \ ” Man is the subject of IPP here as in Gen 4:17,25; 24:16; 38:26; I
Sam 1:19; Judg 19:25; and 1 Kgs 1:4. Woman is the subject in Gen 19:8; Num 31:17, !8,35;andJudg
11:39. Man is the subject and object in the sodomy described in Gen 19:5 and Judg 19:22.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
253
The verb used by Eve in describing her activity or part in the coming to being of
Cain is greatly debated. The verb TP3j3 is “polysemic.”1 Different renditions include: “I
have gotten” (KJV), “I have acquired” (Old JPS), “I have gained” (New JPSV), and “I
have created.”2 This verb generally means “to acquire,” “to possess,” but could also
mean “to produce” or “to create” (e.g., Gen 4:1; 14:19, 22; Deut 32:6). It could also
The word definitely refers to creation as the activity o f God, and in particular to
the coherence between the creation of God and the procreation of woman. The
connection between Eve’s giving birth and YHWH is rightly expressed. . . the
contribution of woman, Eve, and the contribution of YHWH to the bringing
forth o f life by human beings YHWH gives life to Cain, together with the
mother Eve.4
Sarna speculates that the “usage here is influenced by Adam’s jubilant cry in 2:23
at the creation of woman. Eve now says, in effect: T, woman ( ish(sh)ah), was produced
'liana Pardes, “Beyond Genesis 3: The Politics of Maternal Naming,” in A Feminist Companion
to Genesis, ed. Athaiya Brenner (Sheffield: Sheffield, 1997), 178-179.
Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:198-199. He links this verb with ancient
Canaanite tongue to connote ”1have formed (created), gave birth to.” From the light of the Ugaritic
inscriptions, this signification comes from the Semitic stem ]3p- 'Jp qny-qnw, meaning “form, create,
bear, beget” He related this usage to Deut 32:6; Gen 14:19,22; Pss I IS: 15; 139:13; Prov 8:22. See ibid.,
199-201. Following this archaic usage of the root meaning of the verb, Cassuto postulates that “the first
woman, in her joy at giving birth to her first son, boasts of her generative power, which approximates in
her estimation to the Divine creative power. The Lord formed the first man (ii 7), and I have formed the
second man" (ibid., 200). Literally, “I have created a man with the Lord” i.e., “I stand together (equally)
with Him in the rank of creators” (ibid.).
‘Ellen van Wolde, Words Become Worlds: Semantic Studies o f Genesis I-l I, Biblical
Interpretations 6 (New York: E. J. Brill, 1994), SO.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
254
Eve calls Cain a “man” (Gen 4:1) instead of a “son.” The newly bom is called
ETK “a man.” This word for a newborn boy is “odd.”2 The word “never otherwise refers
to a newborn babe.”3 Eve must have had something greater in mind about her newly
bora child, Cain, as though he would be the man who will crush the head of the serpent.
For this reason she does not simply call him a man, but “the man of the Lord.”4
Luther further points out that when 2TK is “used alone and without the
accompanying word for woman, does not simply designate a male,. . . but an ideal and
outstanding man.”3 Eve's exclamation could thus be construed as: “I have borne a son,
who will develop into a real man, yes, he is the Man, God Himself, who will do it, crush
man (a male child) from (?) the Lord” is very problematic. The prepositional phrase
rnJTTIK “with (help of) the Lord” is the most perplexing part o f Gen 4:1. “God, of
course, is always present in procreation-opening wombs, giving seed But in Gen 4:1
he is scandalously treated as a partner, not quite as the hub around whom everything
'Ibid.
Gardes, 178-179.
3Sama mentions in n. 2: “Job 3:3 and 1 Sam 1:11 are not really analogous” (Genesis, 32).
6Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
255
turns.”1
Various renditions include: “I have gotten a man from the Lord” (KJV); “I have
acquired a man with the help of God” (Old JPS); “I have gained a male child with the
help of the Lord” (New JPSV); “I have created a man [equally/together] with the Lord”2;
and “I have the Man, the Lord.”3 This takes the preposition nN as the direct object
marker. Thus “the Lord” is the co-object of the verb, and explains “a man,” both words
H^assuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, I :I98-199. Sama supports: “The sign of the
accusative often has the sense o f‘together with’ The role of God in human procreation is frequently
acknowledged in the Bible. As Niddah 3 la expresses it, ‘There are three copartners in the production of a
human being: God, lather, and mother’” (Genesis, 32). Cf. Gen 17:16; I Sam 1:11,20. Also, Wolde
agrees that the particle ITK in Gen 4:1 “indicates the sociative, to be translated as ‘together with’”
(Words Become Worlds, SO).
3Luther, “Treatise on the Last Words of David,” 315-319. See also NASB, margin, which also
recognizes the strong possibility of this construction.
‘Westerman oilers various suggestions on the way to take the particle et (Genesis l-l 1, 291
passim). Luther takes it as the sign of the accusative as mentioned above. Johann Mailer argued
extensively that it could not mean “with” in Gen 4:1 because it was used with an active verb, and always
marks the accusative when it stands between two nouns, and since it marks the accusative eight other
times in the context; not to mention the tact that Targum Pseudo-Jonathan took it as accusative.
Additionally, “with the help of” would be expressed with the preposition b. See Gailus, Altlutheranischen
Schriftauslegung, 2:135-136.
Allan Harman observes: “The particle "et is often employed to mark the accusative but only to a
limited extent Its use is further limited in that it is rarely employed in poetry.. . . The presence of
'et-in Gen 4:1 is a crux. It can be taken as marking the object, so that Eve expresses a confidence that the
child she has borne is indeed the Lord, so fulfilling the promise of Gen 3:15. However, most translations
and exegetes assume that the word is a preposition connected with the Akkadian preposition itti, meaning
‘from.’ Hence, many English translations accept this derivation and paraphrase ‘from’ to mean ‘with the
help o f” (“Particles,” NIDOTTE, 4:1033). See also Joshua Blau, “Zum angeblichen Gebrauch von DK
vor dem Nomativ,” VT4 (1954): 7-19; John MacDonald, “The Particle flK in Classical Hebrew: Some
New Data on Its Use with the Nominative,” VT 14 (1964): 264-275; Paul P. Saydon, “Meanings and Uses
of the Particle n ^ ,” IT 14 (1964): 192-210.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
256
Other versions have “Through God” (LXX, Vulgate); “From before the Lord”
(Targum Onkelos); “I have gotten for a husband THE ANGEL OF THE LORD (that is,
gotten a man UNTO THE LORD”(Peshitta); and “Unto the Lord,” that is, “for the
believe that the appositional translation which utilizing HR as the direct object marker
fits best with the context of this passage, in the light of the programmatic promise of the
special “Seed” of the woman in Gen 3:15. The most probable translation of Gen 4:1 is “I
This appositional transition means that “Eve understood that the promised male
descendant of human descent would be, in some way, divine, ‘the Lord.' If so, then
'Cassuto referred to some erroneous textual emendations which some scholars have suggested:
-nntta “from (with) the Lord” or m rrrifc “sign of the Lord” or HIKPIK “I yearn for” (A
Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:199). “Others delete the phrase entirely as a gloss written in the
margin, which was afterwards interpolated by mistake in the wrong place; others think that it is no longer
possible to determine the original version and leave the nature of the correction unresolved” (ibid.). Cf.
Gunkel, Genesis, in the third edition; his first and second editions translate this expression as “I yearn
for.”
2Kaiser, Toward an Old Testament Theology, 37. The New American Standard Bible (NASB)
also uses a similar appositional translation for Gen 4:1.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
257
Eve's instincts about the coming Messiah were correct, but her timing was way off!”1
Though Eve was somehow mistaken, time-wise, this enigmatic phrase, “records her
longings and perhaps hints at the clear understanding she had of Genesis 3:15."2
At the birth o f Cain, Eve seemed to have believed that, being “the first man bom
on earth he would be the foremost, and she assumed that he was to be the Seed of the
woman and that she was to be that woman, or mother.''3 Hence, her exclamation: “I have
gotten the Man, the Lord” (Gen 4:1). Evidently, Gen 4:1 is the first “biblical
commentary” on Gen 3:15! Eve understood the Messianic significance of God’s promise
of the special divine-human “Seed of the woman” coming to crush the head of Satan.
The divine name used in Gen 4:1 is YHWH, even though some scholars have
charged that that name was never known prior to vs. 26. Hence, some ancient versions
read “Elohim” instead of YHWH. Cassuto denies this because the “numerical symmetry
of the Divine names occurring in this chapter confirms the traditional text.”4 Moreover,
Eve’s feeling of the personal nearness of the “Divine Presence to herself’3 and “her
'Kaiser, Messiah in the Old Testament, 42. Gunkei referred to older exegesis which “interpreted
this passage as though Eve, in her first experience of maternal happiness, believed that she already had
the promised redeemer concerning whose dual natures she had pronounced the correct doctrine (he is
and rnrr at the same time)” (Genesis, 3rded., 42). William John Hinke reports that Zwingli referred
to Gen 3:15 as a promise of salvation. He interpreted Gen 4:1 and Gen 5:28-9 as evidence of faith in that
promise, and the erroneous expectation of its imminent fulfillment (Zwingli: On Providence and Other
Essays [Durham, NC: Labyrinth, 1983; originally 1526], 17-8).
5Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
258
partnership with the Lord (Yahweh)”1in this procreation makes the preferred choice of
in tiirn
: •
Kv nil? dr irk i?“ h
• •••
T!j? tin n -a S a n n n n
Thereare strong terminological links between Gen 4:1 and Gen 4:25. First of
all, in O irn K nil? D1K 171*1 “and Adam knew his wife again” (Gen 4:25) is intended
link with the seed theme in Gen 3. The woman was designated as the bearer of children
171T. hi Gen 3:15. In addition, the verb I 1?’ is used with Eve as the subject in both Gen
Furthermore, the strong linkage between Gen 3:15 and Gen 4:25 is established in
that the verb rPOK “I will put” (Gen 3:15) reappears twice in Gen 4:25 in the name
n o “Seth” and in the verb, from which the name is derived, n o “appointed.” Both
passages associate this common root H^O to the important word 171T “seed.”
The fact that the word 1117 “again” is used in this verse has been a matter of
‘Ibid.
JIbid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
259
discussion. Some scholars delete the explicit expressions and phrases which link this
paragraph with the preceding narratives. The words “again” and “another,” along with
the phrase “instead of Abel, for Cain slew him” are thus deleted as “additions made by the
last redactor.”1 Cassuto opposes this first because he considers it “a golden rule of the
torah that the conclusion of a narrative should reflect the opening, and therefore it was to
be expected that our passage should contain something corresponding to the birth of Cain
The name Seth n® may signify “foundation” (see Isa 19:10; Ps 11:3). “God has
appointed”: The verb rPO simply means “to appoint, give” and possibly “set
foundation.”3 Hence, Seth can be understood to mean that “this son was to be the
Several other positions are taken by scholars on the root meaning of the name
'Ibid., 190.
-Ibid., 191. “Furthermore, another rule requires that the stories should have happy endings; it
was fitting, therefore, that we should be told how Adam and Eve found solace after losing their first two
sons in one day, and how they saw. . . the realization of the Divine promise concerning procreation”
(ibid.).
Albertus Frederik J. Klijn notes: “In the LXX the word ‘again’ is omitted in 4,25, which seems to
imply that Adam had no intercourse with Eve before he begot Seth. This seems, however, to be
questionable since nothing was changed in the text of 4,1, which speaks about Adam begetting Cain”
(Seth in Jewish, Christian and Gnostic Literature [Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1977], 4). Philo De Cherub 53 also
omits the word “again.”
4Ibid. Ps. Jonathan represents that Seth and his children are Adam’s only legitimate descendants.
See Bowker, 132.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
260
Seth.1 Among these positions, there is the meaning which comes from the related verb
rPtf “to appoint," both of which have an identical root. This echoes the putting of
“enmity” in Gen 3:15. The God who divinely appointed the enmity between the Serpent
and the Woman also divinely appointed the Seed to carry the enmity to a decisive victory
for humanity.
another seed in place of,” the expression “another seed” conveys the “key idea” of vs. 25.
This clearly indicates that Seth “serves as a substitute or replacement for the line which
Abel might have engendered had he lived.”2 This is one of the most powerful evidences
o f the idea of substitution. Moreover, the Sethite line is intended to “contrast with the
’Hess, 132.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
261
line of Cain.”1
The thematic linkages of Gen 2-3 with Gen 4 in relation to the subject o f the
The intimate relationships between man and woman, and both of them with God
and with nature, broke down in Gen 3. Likewise in Gen 4, Cain’s intimate relationship
with Abel, his brother, deteriorates so completely that he kills Abel.2 The climax of
Adam and Eve's alienation, which was Adam’s response in Gen 3:12, parallels the climax
of Cain and Abel’s alienation which was Cain’s heartless disclaimer in Gen 4:9.3
Cain who was the first “tiller of the ground” was now totally alienated or driven
away from the ground, which will no longer yield its strength to him. The ground which
opened its mouth untimely to receive Abel’s blood that was shed by Cain (4:11) could no
'Ibid. Hess continues: “Seth becomes a replacement for Abel. On the other hand, his line,
. . . provides a greater thematic focus in comparison with that of Cain The culmination of the line in
Noah, the divinely favored one, suggests we may find here the ‘placing’ or setting forth of a line which
contrasts with Genesis 4:17-24” (ibid.). Hess elaborates: “The *l1l? ‘again’ at the beginning of the verse
also serves to emphasize the replacement for Abel which this text describes. Abel (not Cain) is the last
son bom to Adam and Eve before the birth of Seth” (ibid., n. 317).
Cassuto supports: “Seth, who continues the line of promise, was indeed a gift of the God of
promise. But the fact that Eve here calls God B 'h S k , shows that the idea preponderant in her
consciousness was that of the creative power, which had renewed the hope that had blossomed in Abel and
been destroyed by Cain: Abel had died childless, but in Seth the line of promise, from which Cain had
wilfully broken off is actually continued” (A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:202).
Tiauser emphasizes how the writer very well underscored the violent and heinous nature of
Cain’s act by stressing that Abel was Cain’s brother, not a foe, stranger, or friend, but his own flesh and
blood. In vss. 1-16, “brother” is used seven times (Hauser, 300).
]Ibid., 301.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
262
longer return its strength to this murderer (4:12). Cain’s deed was associated with the
The writer deliberately reminds the reader of the previous pattern of alienation in
Gen 2-3, “thereby showing that the alienation of Cain from his brother is a continuation
and consequence of what has gone before Just as in Gen 2-3, the effect of alienation
brought by Abel, his brother.2 This is reminiscent of the “fruit” that symbolizes both the
graciously forewarned and counseled him to watch his way. “Sin-offering lies down at
the door” (Gen 4:6-7).4 Cain’s unbridled wrath expressed his inability to deal with God’s
warning and eventually led to the act o f murder (Gen 4:8). Adam and Eve also
committed the offense against God (Gen 3:6) despite the warning not to eat of the tree of
•Ibid., 301-302.
:Hauscr observes that “the text offers no explicit reason why God looked with favor on the
offering of Abel but did not look with favor on the offering of Cain. This is because the writer is not
concerned with Yahweh’s action but rather with Cain’s response, as w 5-6 clearly show” (ibid., 300).
Cain was unable to deal with God’s rebuff
JIbid.
Tor an explanation of Gen 4:7, see Joaquim Azevedo, “At the Door of Paradise: A Contextual
Interpretation of Gen 4:7,” BN 100 (1999): 45-59.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
263
The word for “sin” or “punishment for sin” was specifically used to describe
Cain’s action by God Himself (Gen 4:7). The death and the curse are realities of the fall
o f humanity into a sinful state (Gen 4:8, 11). This clearly explains that “sin” actually
3. Covenant.
The ordinances of marriage and labor, and supposedly that of the Sabbath, which
were established along with God’s covenant with humanity all continue in this chapter.2
The blessings of procreation last as the primal couple begin to be “fruitful and multiply”
(Gen 4:1-2, 17-26). The sacrifices and offerings unto God are part of man’s part in the
covenant relationship.
God fulfilled His promise of blessings to Adam and Eve by giving them children,
blessing their anim als and farm produce. The acceptance of man’s offering is also God’s
favor upon His children. God graciously came down to warn Cain in his temptation.
God proves Himself as the defender of the weak and oppressed by speaking on
'These scholars argue that the absence of the words “sin,” “guilt,” “punishment,” “shame,”
“disobedience,” or “transgression” in Gen 1-3 means that these chapters have nothing to do with the
origin of sin. The Eden Fall is called a biological metaphor by Carl Sagan, The Dragons o f Eden:
Speculations on the Evolution o f Human Intelligence (New York: Random, 1977), 95-96. Gen 2-3 is
called a story of the liberation of mankind from the cage of their creator by Sam Dragga, “Genesis 2-3: A
Story of Liberation,” JSOT55 (1992): 3. The story portrays an “awakening” and “freedom” necessary for
man’s full development according to John Baker, “The Myth of Man’s ‘Fall’-A Reappraisal,” The
Expository Times 92 (1981): 235-237. it is seen as a political allegory in Meir Sternberg, The Poetics o f
Biblical Narrative: Ideological Literature and the Drama o f Reading (Bloomington, IN: Indiana
University Press, 1987), 35-37.
2See Robertson, 67-87. Cf. Roy Gane, Syllabus for GSEM 538: Covenant-Law-Sabbath,
Andrews University Theological Seminary, 1997.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
264
behalf of the slain brother. God confronted Cain with his sin, giving him a last chance to
confess and repent. Even after God pronounced His judgment upon Cain, He still gave
him a certain divine mark of protection. No one was to kill Cain and anyone who would
take vengeance on him was threatened by God with sevenfold vengeance on himself (Gen
4:IS). Cain and his descendants build cities, a civilization, and technological, agricultural,
3:15 in the mind of Adam and Eve become evident in their expression “I have gotten the
Man, the Lord” (Gen 4:1 ).2 This shows that they were anxiously expecting the coming
More specifically, they must have felt that Abel was the special Savior Seed.
When another was bom in place of Abel who was murdered by his brother, they named
him “Seth.” Seth means the “appointed seed”3 and they referred to him as “another seed”
(Gen 4:25). They most likely understood the promise of Gen 3:15 as the gospel of
'Hauser explains: “Just as Yahweh tolerates Adam and Eve, allowing them to continue living
rather than destroying them immediately as a punishment for their offense, so Yahweh tolerates Cain.
Not that Cain goes unpunished: His punishment is severe.. . . Yahweh’s placing the mark on Cain
symbolizes his realization that the murder of Abel will not be unique but will be only the first instance of a
deed all too common to fallen man. Just as Yahweh provides clothes for Adam and Eve, thereby helping
them cover up and thus cope with the alienation they have caused, so he provides a mark for Cain to help
him survive the violence he himself has unleashed” (Hauser, 303-304).
This is how KJV puts it The Old JPS: T have acquired a man with the help of the Lord.” The
New JPSV: I have gained a male child with the help of the Lord.” The various reactions and suggestions
will be discussed below in chapter 2.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
265
God’s character of love shines through this whole story. God’s law and plan
could not be changed to suit man’s thwarted actions and disobedience. God’s
righteousness and holiness could not permit Him to shun man’s sin and disobedience
without dealing with it. His holiness cannot be compromised. His divine plan of saving
7. Creation.
The birth of children through the first human couple is part of the sharing of
creative power with humanity by the Creator God. Hence, Gen 3:15-16 and 4:1-2, 17-
18,20-22, 25-26 all show man participating with God in creation and procreation. The
creation mandate of Gen 1:28 was fulfilled in the woman’s seed o f Gen 3:15 and in the
The separation of the two seeds alludes to the separation theme of Gen 1 where
light was distinguished from darkness, and the dry land from the seas. Therefore, both
The first display o f the enmity between the “seed of the serpent” and the “seed of
the woman” predicted in Gen 3:15 was vividly demonstrated in the lives o f Cain and
Abel. God “set” this enmity. Abel and Seth are both identified as the seed of the woman
in Gen 4:25. Cain is the seed of the serpent because he followed Satan’s step in lying,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
266
The character and law of God are also central to this conflict as seen in Gen 2-3.
The people of God are set at war with the followers of Satan. The battle of life rages on:
9. Eschatology.
The figurative implication o f Abel’s blood crying unto God from the ground
(Gen 4:10) could foreshadow the hope of future resurrection and vindication of Abel and
all the martyred. Moreover, we see that Abel, the righteous seed, was cut off abruptly
and in an untimely way, while Cain, the wicked, and his descendants seem to prosper on
earth. This does not follow the expectation engendered by the promised victory of the
woman’s seed over the seed of the serpent. This suggests the eschatological nature of
The ultimate and later victory is the best and final one. The battle still rages on.
The final resurrection of the just and utter destruction of the wicked is envisioned. The
'Ronning, 143*144. “Identifying the enmity which occurs in Genesis 4 as the enmity predicted in
Gen 3:15 is the key to identifying the two seeds which are at enmity.. . . The two seeds therefore are not
snakes and humans, but two kinds of humans One kind is approved by God, righteous; the other
disapproved, wicked" (p. 134). This eliminates the proposition that Gen 3:15 only has a naturalistic or
only an individualistic interpretation. Its interpretation is surely spiritual and symbolic, not allegorical. It
has both collective and individual application of the “seed.” Rosenbaum insists that “by robbing Adam
and Eve of immortality the snake and its descendants are the murderers of our ancestors, and, by
extension, of ourselves as well. Any human death, whatever the apparent cause, is another crime to be
laid at the den of the serpent” (“Israelite Homicide Law and the Term ‘Enmity’ in Genesis 3:15,” 150).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
267
Gen 12:7
God both appeared and spoke the words of Gen 3:15 which turned out to be a
promise of deliverance for Adam and Eve and their descendants, but a word of
punishment and future annihilation of Satan and his followers. When God renewed this
promise to Abraham through his call in Gen 12:1-3, it was by audition alone, “Yahweh
said to Abraham.”
appeared to Abram. The shift is not incidental.”1 This shows that both incidences are
connected.2 This mode of appearance reminds one of when God appeared in the garden
of Eden to make the pronouncements of which Gen 3:15 was central. The Lord's
appearance to Abraham in 12:7 is the first recorded appearance of the Lord to a patriarch
(cf. 17:1; 18:1; 26:2,24; 35:9; 48:3), “which in turn foreshadows his appearances at Sinai
*Gen 12:1-9 has been charged with disunity for several reasons by scholars. Some scholars
relegate Gen 12:4b-5 as intrusive or extraneous to Gen 12:1-9 (Von Rad, Genesis, 156; and Speiser,
Genesis, 88). Gunkel takes vs. 9 as the work of a redactor and allots it to the following episode (Genesis,
168-9). von Rad places vss. 1-3 as the conclusion of the primaeval history (Genesis, 151-156). However,
a “coherent integral relationship” has been demonstrated by means of rhetorical criticism by Isaac
Kikawada (“The Unity of Genesis 12:1-9,” in Proceedings o f the Sixth World Congress ofJewish Studies.
ed. Avigdor Shinan [Jerusalem: World Union of Jewish Studies, 1977], 1:229-235). Claus Westermann
joins the verse together: “The two episodes in vss. 7 ,8c indicate that Abraham’s relationship with God is
intimately linked with this journey and cannot be detached from it” (Genesis 12-36: A Commentary, trans.
John Scullion [Minneapolis: Augsburg, 1985], 145).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
268
God made the promise of land to Abram’s descendants, rather than to Abram
himself. This is the first “explicit promise of land and descendants, promises certainly
implied in 12:1-2, but not spelled out.”1 “This promise clearly eliminates Lot as the
presumptive heir. The heir will be Abram’s own seed.. . . Promise of land to Abram’s
“The promise that Yahweh made to Abraham in 12:7 is one of the most
frequently repeated formulas in the Old Testament.”3 The phrases used in 12:7 and 24:7
are identical, and are the “simplest and the only phrase to be repeated exactly.”4
Conclusively, Gen 12:7 adds more information to the scanty information of the
“Seed” promised to humanity in Gen 3:15. This seed will possess land which also
connotes prosperity and authority. More pieces of the puzzle are beginning to fit into the
Gen 15:13
This passage reiterates the divine promise of land for Abraham’s descendants.
'Ibid.
:Hamilton, Genesis I-I7 ,377. He observes in n. 23, that the land promises given in Genesis
“takes four forms: (1) ‘I will give it to your seed; (12:7; 15:8; 24:7); (2) ‘I will give it to you’ (13:7); (3)
‘to you I will give it and to your seed’ (13:15); (4) ‘I will give it to you and to your seed’ (26:3)” (ibid.).
Meanwhile, Rolf Rendtorff gives these phrases a historical sequence, whereby Abram first receives the
promise before his “seed” was added, then his “seed” replaced him (“The ‘Yahwist’ as Theologian? The
Dilemna of Pentateuchal Criticism,” JSOT3 [1977]: 8). Cf. S. Loewenstamm, “The Divine Grants of
Land to the Patriarchs ” JAOS 91 (1971): 509-510.
'David Llovd Mattson, “The Blessing Themes in the Abraham Story and Their Implications for
the Date and Purpose of the Story” (Phi), dissertation, The University of Michigan, 1983), 202.
Ibid., 203.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
269
Vss. 13-16 prophesy their Egyptian bondage and their subsequent exodus leading to their
possession of the promised land. This builds on similar promises in Gen 12:1 -3, 7.
The connection with Gen 3:15 is not only in terms of the enmity that also
involves the suffering here intimated in the hands of the enemies of the collective seed of
the woman. These enemies must be understood as belonging to the seed of Satan by
Another connection of this text with Gen 3:15 is the movement in the number of
the “seed” promised to Abraham from the singular individual to the collective plural. Just
like the seed of Adam and Eve began with one chosen child, Seth, and multiplied into
many, so will Abraham produce one chosen child, Isaac, who will be the father of the
chosen nation of multitudes. This reflects only the second stage in the development of
the seed encapsulated in Gen 3:15, to the exclusion of the narrowing from the collective
The movement from the singular seed to the collective plural is seen in the verbs
and pronouns used along with the noun E1T in Gen 15:13-16. Vs. 13 is as follows:
masculine singular noun object, “stranger” 13 which describes “your seed” ^21T. So
also, the verb H IT contains the third-person masculine singular. This proves that the
The movement from the singular to the plural collective begins in the second part
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
270
of vs. 13. There are two plural masculine pronouns and a masculine plural verb in the
related unit of vss. 13b-l6. Vs. 14 has two plural verbs: VISIT “they shall serve” IKS'
“they shall come out.” Finally, vs. 16 has one plural verb: 1210’ “they shall return.”
It is notable that Gen 15:13 exemplifies both singular and collective “seed” in
similar ways with Gen 3:15. This further illuminates our understanding and interpretation
Gen 16:10
This verse expresses a divine promise of seed in lieu o f a divine command for
Hagar to return and be submissive to Sarah, her mistress. It is in this way connected to
the promise of Gen 12:7 which was a sequel to Abraham's obedience of the divine
Hagar was pregnant with only one child at this instance. The child came to be
called Ishmael. He was the singular individual child referred to as her seed in Gen 16:10.
This is supported by the use of a singular third-person masculine Nifal imperfect verb
TDD’ “he shall not be numbered.” “This promise is very dramatic, for the angel
announces to Hagar that she will have many offspring even before she has one child!”1
This is the second time, following only Gen 3:15, that a woman is promised seed
instead of the man. Since Hagar was definitely not a virgin even after impregnation, it
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
271
confirms my position that a woman possessing seed does not indicate virgin birth in Gen
3:15. See also Gen 4:25, where Eve exclaims that seed had “another seed.” She was
definitely not still a virgin when she bore Seth, her third-bom son!
“There are many instances in the patriarchal stories where the man is promised a
child(ren)/descendants (Abraham in Gen 12:2; 13:13-16; 15:5 17:8; 18:14; 22:17; Isaac
in 26:4; Jacob in 28:3,4).”1 Woman are rarely given this promise by divine revelation as
it was for Eve (Gen 3:15) and Hagar (Gen 16:10). “This sets her apart from the
matriarchs of Israel The promise of God guarantees a future beyond the present.”2
Evidently, Gen 16:10 also puts another piece of the puzzle of our understanding
of the seed of Gen 3:15 in place. It evidences the only other divine revelation of a
feminine seed. It also follows the established convention that singular individual seed
Gen 22:15-18
The content of the second address of the angel of YHWH in Gen 22:15-18
'Ibid., 453.
"Ibid. However, I strongly disagree with Hamilton’s statement that “Hagar is the only woman in
Genesis who is honored with such a revelation” (ibid.). Eve was the first woman to receive such a divine
revelation, and that, visibly from Yahweh Himself in the garden of Eden (Gen 3:9-19).
3Mattson, 289. Forfeiting to understand the promises in their immediate or wider context, some
scholars suffice in merely attempting to contextualize them within their supposed historical setting. Van
Seters considers them as assurances to the Israelite nation in the 6* century exile (Abraham in History and
Tradition, 310-311). John A. Emerton links them with the confidence generated by Josiah’s reform (“The
Origin of the Promises to the Patriarchs in the Older Sources of the Book of Genesis,” VT 32 [1982]: 31).
Erhard Blum traces them to a Deuteronomic reworking of patriarchal traditions (Die /'Composition der
Vdtergeschichte [Neukirchen-Vluyn: Neukirchener Verlag, 1984], 363-365). von Rad links them to the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
272
story from vss. 1-14. Vss. 15-18 relate to Abraham’s obedience which is the central
Many scholars generally ignore vss. 15-18 in their interpretations of Gen 22.
They wrongly reason that since “the climax has been reached and the main issues of the
story resolved by 22:14,”2 it would not matter to end the story at 22:14. They posit that
“simply being rounded off by 22:19, many might not notice the loss of 22:15-18.”3 Many
major works on Gen 22 completely omit, briefly gloss over, or argue for vss. 15-18 as
being a late secondary editorial addition.4 This is quite unfortunate because they miss a
supposed Solomonic enlightenment (“The Beginnings of Historical Writing in Ancient Israel,” 166-204).
'R. W. L. Moberly, “The Earliest Commentary on the Akedah,” 1T38 (1988): 313-314. H. G.
Reventlow explicitly recognized Gen 22:15-18 as a commentary, “eine Art kommentar,” but did not fully
develop this point (Opfere deinen Sohn [Neukirchen-Vluyn: Neukirchener, 1968], 73-74). Fishbane, on a
general basis, demonstrates the inner-biblical commentary within the Old Testament (Biblical
Interpretation in Ancient Israel).
Moberly, however, gives room for other further applications of this multi-functional story beyond
the initial commentary the OT itself offers within the passage. See, for example, the Jewish interpretation
represented by Shalom Spiegel, The Last Trial: On the Legends and Lore o f the Command to Abraham to
Offer Isaac as a Sacrifice: The Akedah, trans. from the Hebrew, with an Introduction, by Judah Goldin
(New York: Pantheon Books, 1967).
3Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
273
modem practice of expunging these verses from the rest of the chapter as “a later
editorial addition” to the original story comprising of vss. 1-14,19. Some reasons are
usually tendered for detaching vss. 15-18. First, the structure and content of vss. 1-14
showing that the story is complete in vs. 14.1 Second, the style of vss. 15-18 differs from
that of vss. 1-14.2 Third, the vocabulary of vss. 15-18 is in some ways distinctive.3
These reasons are foil to recognize for the connections in the whole passage.
the main narrative, somewhat artificially joined to it by claiming that the angel of the LORD spoke to
Abraham a second time (vs. 15)” (ibid.). Emerton calls vss. 15-18 a “clumsy addition . . . after the climax
of what is otherwise a beautifully written story” (18). Also, Gunkel states: “Vss. 15-18 clearly betray itself
as a supplement. . . Abraham’s reward was the fact that he could keep Isaac” (Genesis, 236).
'Moberly explains: (1). The overarching concern of the story is God’s test of Abraham (vs. 1)
which is completely resolved by his obedience in vs. 12; (2). God’s sovereign right to the first and best of
human life, which remains at the background of the story, is met with the mercy of God by which God
forfeits this right; (3). The story’s concern of God “seeing” and “providing” (vs. 8) is resolved in vs. 13
(“Commentary on Akedah,” 304-307).
:Ibid., 307-308. “The story is noted for its taut and economic style of telling, heavy with
suggestion of background context and meaning which is passed over in silence. By contrast, the style of
vss. 15-18 is repetitive and cumulative, with use of synonyms and similes. It is a long address with no
reference to any response by Abraham, unlike the short addresses to which Abraham responds in the
preceding narrative” (ibid., 308).
'Ibid., 308. “While for the most part it is composed of phrases which are common elsewhere in
the patriarchal narratives, it also contains two phrases which are otherwise unparalleled in Genesis but are
common in prophetic literature” (ibid.). These phrases are in 22:16a: TU73d3 'S an d nirP~CK3
Moberly rebuffs: “The criterion of usage of divine names, which has often been appealed to in
this context, is problematic. Gen xxii 1-14 does not in general use elohim, while vss. 15,16 both contain
yhwh. But xxii 1-14 is not in fact consistent, as yhwh is used twice in vs. 14, and the angel in vs. 11 is the
angel of yhwh The usage of divine names in Gen xxii 1-19 is not therefore of such a nature as to
allow source-critical inferences to be drawn” (ibid., n. 26).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
274
analysis that Gen 22 is a “continuous narrative” from vss. 1-19. “A comparison of 22:1-
rejects as unjustified and “implicitly pejorative” the value judgment many scholars have
placed on these verses with such tags as “secondary,” “addition,” “supplement,” and
“appendix.”3 He maintains:
These extra verses add an important dimension to the story. The angel renews
God’s promise of descendants to Abraham, formulating the promise with unique
emphasis and relating it specifically to Abraham’s obedience in a way that is
otherwise unprecedented. Hitherto, the promise has been a wholly gratuitous
offer by God; now it is given to Abraham because he has been obedient
(22:16b, 18b).4
More proof for vss. 15-18 being “an integral part of the narration developing
from the test”5 is found in the structure of the chapter. With Abraham’s obedience being
'Cornelius B. Houk. “A Syllable-Word Structure Analysis of Genesis 12-23,” in The Word o f the
Lord Shall Go Forth: Essays in Honor o f David Noel Freedman in Celebration o f His Sixtieth Birthday,
ed. Carol L. Meyers and M. O’Connor, ASOR I (Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns, 1983), 191-201.
2Ibid., 196. Houk also admits that vss. 20-24 show “a significant difference” from vss. 1-19
(ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
275
the m a i n focus of the story, the references to this in vss. la and 18b form a framework for
the story. Moreover, the recurring motif of the “only son” is found in vss. 2,12, and 16.1
This is “intended as a poignant way of unifying the story. The same son who was the
object of the command was the object of the deliverance and the object of the promise.”2
Other supports have been advanced for accepting vss. 15-18 a bonafide part of Gen 22/
mechanism of its deep structure” (“The Center of the Aqedah: A Study of the Literary Structure of
Genesis 22:1-19,” /IUSS 31 [1993]: 17-28).
Cassuto recognized a basic chiastic structure for the Abraham cycle 12:1-22:24 (A Commentary
on the Book o f Genesis, 2:294-297). Rendsburg subsequently developed the ten levels of the Abraham
cycle as duplicates of one another (The Redaction o f Genesis, 27-52). Several scholars see at least the
obvious connection between Abraham’s call (Gen 12:1-9) and the sacrifice of Isaac (Gen 12:1-19). See
Davidson, Genesis 12-50,94; Ginzberg, The Legends o f the Jews, 5:218; Jacob, Das erste Buch der Tora,
493; and Morgenstem. The Book o f Genesis, 188. Similarly, Nahum M. Sama used the term “spiritual
odyssey” (Understanding Genesis, The Heritage of Biblical Israel [New York: Schocken Books, 1970],
160-161). This idea was fully developed in Rendsburg, The Redaction o f Genesis, 31-35.
:Mattson, 291.
]T. Desmond Alexander postulates that the divine oath of vss. 15-18 is God’s reward for
Abraham’s obedience intended to ratify the covenant of circumcision promised without ratification in
chapter 17. He sees a similarity in this pattern of divine promise and human response in God’s covenant
with Noah in Gen 6-9 (“Genesis 22 and the Covenant of Circumcision,” JSOT 25 [1983]: 17-21). See
also idem, Abraham in the Negev: A Source-Critical Investigation o f Genesis 20:1-22:19 (Carlisle,
Cumbria: Paternoster, 1997), 83-9, 109-110.
Van Seters also finds it an integral part of the narrative, without which the story comes to no real
consequence. The ultimate goal of Abraham’s test is to reward his obedience with the promise of his
children being blessed (Abraham in History and Tradition [New Haven: Yale University Press, 1975],
239).
Wenham posits: “Vss. 15-18 cohere well with the literary structures that undergird the narrative.
They complete the palistrophe and constitute the fourth and final panel of dialogues. What is more, they
are the last and most emphatic statement of the promises given to Abraham. Without these verses, the last
time in the Abraham cycle that God affirms his promise is to Hagar in 21:18 and that concerns Ishmael
rather than Isaac. For all these reasons, vss. 15-18 should be regarded as integral and indeed central to
his narrative in particular and to the Abraham cycle in general” (Genesis 16-50, Word Biblical
Commentary, 2 [Dallas, TX: Word, 1994], 111).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
276
However, Moberly rates all the defenses offered by others as insufficient.1 Also
unconvincing are the traditional Jewish interpretations of Gen 22 which were interested in
one element of vss. 15-18, that is, merit, without any concern for establishing these
verses “as a significant unit in itself’ within Gen 22.2 His position is that vss. 15-18 serve
In vs. 15, it is said that the “Angel of the Lord” spoke to Abraham. Hitherto, it
is God who has spoken all the similar promises to the patriarchs. “It may be that this is
xi, some of which are major theological statements about the purposes of God.”5
2One such Jewish interpretation is R. J. Daly, “The Soterioiogical Significance of the Sacrifice of
Isaac,” CBQ 39 (1977): 47. Daly states: “Of the several texts which mention the blessings promised to
Abraham and his descendants, this is the only one in which these blessings are explicitly presented as a
reward of a particular virtuous act on the part of Abraham. No great imagination is needed to see how
important such a text would be fiir a theology whose basic soterioiogical theory centered around the idea
ofjustification by works of obedience to the Law” (ibid.).
3Moberly, “Commentary on Akedah,” 313-314. Moberly defends that Gen 22:15-18 is the “last
of the divine promises to Abraham within Gen xii-xxv, and as such makes a fitting conclusion. Indeed
xxii 15-18 are the final words of any sort exchanged between God and Abraham in the Abrahamic cycle.
. . . Whether or not Gen. xxii 15-18 was deliberately intended to be the final communication between God
and Abraham is difficult to judge. But the recognition that it is so cannot but enhance the reader’s
appreciation of its significance.. . . It becomes peculiarly appropriate that this earliest, and canonically
recognized, commentary should be given a position of climactic significance within the Abraham cycle as
a whole” (ibid., 322-323).
4Ibid., 314.
sIbicL, 314-315. Moberly further discusses the significance of the divine soliloquies of Gen 6:5-8
and 8:21 (At the Mountain o f God [Sheffield: Sheffield, 1983], 91-93).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
277
made to God swearing an oath three times in Genesis (24:7; 26:3; 50:24), each one
referring to the promise o f land for Abraham’s descendants. “Swearing to give land” is a
regular Pentateuchal formula as seen in Exod 13: 5,11; 33:1; Num 11:12; 14:16,23;
32:11; Deut 1:8,35ff. God’s swearing an oath in Gen 22:16 is unique, and therefore
The idiom, “by m yself.. . ” is “unique in the Pentateuch, with the exception of
Exod xxxii 13 which is a generalized reference back to Gen xxii and other promises in
Genesis.”2 It gives “unusual emphasis”3 and lays “as great emphasis as possible upon the
divine saying in question.”4 Hence, the use of this unique idiom in Gen 22:16. along with
the unusual usage of an oath for promise of descendants, must indicate a special emphasis
in this text!
The dependability and emphasis of God’s seed promise is here underscored with
the accumulation of several words and phrases. The phrase “declares the Lord”
rnrr-QK: “occurs three hundred and sixty-four (364) times in the OT, mostly in the
'Moberly, “Commentary on Akedah,” 315. The word neum, “declaration, oracle,” is used in the
poetry ofNum 24:3,4,15,16 (all referring to human oracle); and Ps 110:1. Jacob adds: “The oath
summarizes all former promises in the most emphatic form” (The First Book o f the Bible: Genesis, trans.
E. I. and W. Jacob, abridged ed. [New York: Ktav, 1974), 147).
3Ibid.
4lbid. Appearing sometimes as slightly formulaic, it is found in identical form in Isa 45:23; Jer
22:5; 49:13; and in related form in Jer 51:14; Amos 6:8; 4:2; Pss 89:36 (Eng. 35); and 89:50 (Eng. 49).
A strong connection is thus made in Heb 6:13-18. See also Isa 44:26. Wenham accepts that “by myself
gives the oath a “special solemnity and weight” (Genesis 16-50, 111).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
278
prophets but only in one other place in the Pentateuch (Num 14:28).”' This underscores
God’s dependability.
past as soon as spoken.”2 More effect is seen in the phrase "ICR ]5T '3
“(for) because” (Gen 22:16). This “appears to pile up words to introduce the causal
clause.”3 Gen 22:16 is the only place in the Old Testament where *3 and 10K ]2T are
emphasized.”4
:rT K HR ©Tl
“For 1 will surely bless you and greatly muhiply your seed abundantly, like the stars for
the heavens and the sand on the seashore. And your seed will possess the gate of his
enemies.”
JMattson, “290. Ewald observes that this '3 is introduced after actual adjurations (Syntax o f the
Hebrew Language, 206). See also Gen 22:17; 1 Sam 20:3; 1 Kgs 1:29-30; 2:23-24; 2 Kgs 3:14. Wenham
mentions that "1©K ]IF occurs only here in Genesis (Genesis 16-50, 111). Wenham calls “an
emphatic causal conjunction. Causal clause as here usually precedes main clause” (Genesis 16-50,99).
See Jouon and Muraoka, 2:638-640, 170f-n. Wenham also points out here that at the end of this
verse, Samaritan Pentateuch, LXX, and Syriac text add “from/because of me” as a way of assimilating to
vs. 12.
‘Mattson, 290.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
279
The preposition'3 here ‘introduces direct speech (the substance of the divine
oath) with a secondary idea as particle o f asseveration.”' The divine words have already
been introduced with 'S in vs. 16. “So although the usage in vs. 17a could be simply
resumptive with no further significance, it is perhaps more likely that the ki has
common 'S that governs the two clauses in this conjunctive sentence.3
Piei, plus imperfect Piel of the same verb plus the second-person masculine singular
suffix. It is translated as “I will assuredly bless you.” Divine promises of blessing are
spoken or referred to in Genl2:2; 17:16, 20; 24:1,35; 25:11; 26:3,12,24; 28:3; 32:30;
35:9; and 48:3, but nowhere in Genesis, other than 22:17, is this emphatic verbal form
used. Elsewhere in Genesis, the promise of blessing is only strengthened with the
twice in Gen 16:10 (Hagar’s promised descendants) and Gen 22:17 (only instance used
for the promised seed of Abraham, through Isaac). This usage also underscores the
'Snaith, Notes on the Hebrew Text o f Genesis XXII-XXV & XXVII, 24. See Davidson, Hebrew
Syntax, 165; and GKC §157b.
‘Moberly, “Commentary on Akedah,” 316. Such usage is found outside Genesis in Num 23:11,
25 and 24:10 and Josh 24:10 (All about Balaam’s blessing oflsrael); Deut 15:4 (ref. to God’s promised
blessings); 1 Chr 4:10 (Jabez’s request); Ps 132:15 (ref to David and Zion).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
280
o f heaven and like the sand on the seashore.” This combination o f these two similes is
unique, occurring only once in Genesis. This “further highlights the unusually emphatic
The phrase “like the stars o f heaven” is “always used in connection with the
growth of the people of Israel.” Gen 22:17; 26:4 and Exod 32:13 consider the blessing
o f the growth of the people as part of an oath.3 On the other hand, the phrase “like the
sand on the seashore” has a “wider usage” in the OT, though found only twice in the
patriarchal stories, Gen 22:17 and 32:13/ Both phrases illuminate the collective use of
In the last part of vs. 17, a new element is added to this promise which “is not in
2Moberly, “Commentary on Akedah,” 317. Each of them is used singly elsewhere in divine
promises in Genesis (never combined): Stars in 15:5; 24:4 (cf. Exod 32:13); while Sand in 32:12 (Heb
13). Mattson mentions two Ugaritic parallels, though the first refers only to birds of the heavens and fish
of the sea, while the second “appears to use the words ‘heavens’ and ‘seas’ alone as a pair apparently
expressing totality” (294, referring to 23.62-63 and 1003.6-7 in Loren A. Fisher, ed., Ras Shamra
Parallels, vol. 1 Analecta Orientalia, 49 [Rome: Pontificium Institution Biblicum, 1972], 356ff., no. II.
555).
'Mattson, 294.
‘Ibid., 295. The full expression is found in Gen 32:13: “And I will make your offspring like the
sand of the sea which cannot be counted for multitude.”
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
281
some way paralleled in other divine promises in Genesis. Its sole other occurrence is in
Gen xxiv 60, the blessing pronounced on Rebekah and her offspring by her family.”1
This closing clause is 1'2'K 1170 HK ^[171T t i l l “And your seed shall possess the
This expression is intended to “make explicit the enviable condition which the
numerous descendants of Abraham will enjoy; their lot will not be the misery of the
downtrodden, but rather the joy and prosperity o f the victorious.”2 It could also be
This clause begins with the third-person masculine singular Qal imperfect verb
tiT.1- A “striking feature” here is that this clause “does not begin with a vav-
converting I.”4 Syntactically, this arrangement “leaves open the possibility that the 171T
2Ibid.
Tor example, Clines, Theme o f the Pentateuch, 36; and Jacob, Das erste Buch der Tora, 503.
Wenham takes the phrase, “possess the gate of your enemies,” as “conquer your enemies’ cities” (Genesis
16-50, 112). See Gen 24:60. Wenham continues: “This again is a novelty, a more realistic formulation of
the promise ofthe land than earlier promises (cf. 12:1,7; 13:15-17; 15:7-8; 17:8), doubtless implying that
its fulfillment is now closer than when it was first enunciated” (ibid.). Speiser verifies that this phrase
“refers to capture of the opponent’s administrative and military centers. Analogously, in Akkadian omen
literature, favorable signs promise the conquest of enemy territory, while unfavorable signs indicate
surrender to the enemy” (Genesis, 164).
‘Alexander, “Further Observations on the Term ‘Seed’ in Genesis,” 365. Snaith comments on
how the RV takes this verb as ordinary-wow (“and thy seed shall possess”). He posits that it could also be
simple-how with jussive (“in order that. . . ”) (Notes on the Hebrew Text o f Genesis XXll-XXV & XXVII,
25). Looking at the whole vs. 17, Andersen declares that the first two clauses are conjoined, “and then
one subordinating conjunction governs the conjunctive sentence as a whole” (Sentence in Biblical
Hebrew, 116).
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
282
referred to in the final clause differs from that mentioned in the first part of the verse.”1
The first J71T in vs. 17 clearly refers to numerous descendants as it is used in the
context of “the stars of heaven” and “the sand on the seashore.” However, the second
SIT employs a third-person singular masculine verb inflection T.1 aiK* also a third-
person singular masculine pronominal suffix with the second SIT as its antecedent in
TZFK “his enemies.”2 This definitely means that the second 271T denotes a singular
This clearly signals a nanowing from the plural collective seed to the singular
individual representative Seed. Since we are here dealing with the chosen descent o f the
seed o f the woman who will crush the head o f Satan (Gen 3:15), a pattern of narrowing
becomes the key signal o f this Messianic interpretation o f these verses. From the many
chosen seeds/offsprings, one Special representative singular Seed rises up to deliver the
2It is does serious violence to the Hebrew text to translate this into "their enemies” as most
translations do (emphasis mine). A major meaning is thus lost completely. We must allow the te a to
speak to us, faithfully respecting syntactical functions of all verb forms.
Niccacci appeals: “Syntactic analysis should never follow the lead of interpretation and
semantics,” but rather precede them (“Analysis of Biblical Narrative,” 182). He insists: “One should not
begin with semantics or interpretation but with morphology and function. Semantics is important but
subservient to morphology and function (syntax)” (ibid., 168). He also supports: “Syntax assists
interpretation By means of the syntactic devices of Biblical Hebrew the biblical authors presented
their information in a structured form. Our interpretation must be based on them, not on our modem
understanding or taste” (ibid., 177-178). See also idem, Syntax o f the Verb in Classical Hebrew Prose.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
283
Thus, Gen 22:17 is the best parallel to our text o f Gen 3:15 in the book o f
Genesis. This confirms that Genesis is consistent in its treatment of the “seed” of the
woman. This nanowing phenomenon may very well be the strongest Messianic feature
of Gen 22 beyond the idea of the substitutionary sacrifice portrayed by the “ram caught in
a thicket by his horns” (Gen 22:13). This is supportive o f my thesis for calling Gen 3:15
Messianic!
Moreover, the combination o f the fertility and dominion motifs of Gen 1:28 is
reiterated both in Gen 3:15 and in the promise to Abraham in Gen 22:17. In 22:17 as
well as 24:60, the “promise o f posterity” is expressed in terms of fertility, while the
This understanding of Gen 22:17 as moving from the plural collective seed (17a)
to the singular individual Seed (17b) also has implications for Gen 22:18a which
immediately follows it: ^12 S i ^|27"1TZ1 121211111 “And in your Seed shall
'W. Malcotn Clark, “The Animal Series in the Primaeval History,” VT18 (1968): 436.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
284
the name o f Abraham’s descendants who will become proverbial for prosperity.”1
Similar promises o f blessing the nations found in Gen 12:3 and 18:18 were to be through
Abraham himself while this occurrence and those o f 26:4b; 28:14 are to be through
Abraham’s descendant(s).2
shall all nations be blessed.” This connects the Davidic monarchy with the Abrahamic
blessing. “The closest parallel to the patriarchal blessing is found in Psalm 72.”3 The
prayer of this Psalm refers to a singular individual royal figure.4 This striking similarity
supports “the idea that the 'seed’ mentioned in Genesis 22:17b-18a does not refer to all
'Snaith clarifies: “The vowel under the resh varies even in the best MS; it is wrong to insist
always on shewa or always on chateph-pathach. The chateph-.pathach is better anested in this particular
instance” (Notes on the Hebrew Text o f Genesis XXI1-XXV & XXVII, 25). Mattson observes that the use
of Hitpael and Niphal forms of brk is “very uncommon in the Old Testament” (1%, n. 28). The Niphal is
used only three times, Gen 12:3; 18:18; and 28:14, always in connection with the same blessing formula.
The Hitpael form is attested only twice, Gen 22:18 and 26:4-5 (ibid.,).
Hite content of the “blessing” promised in Gen 12:3; 18:18; 22:18; 26:4; 28:14 “was never
specified.” Robert A. Pyre argues: “That may be the one reason why some commentators have favored a
reflexive meaning of the verb (i.e., ‘shall bless themselves’), an interpretation that seems unnecessary in
light of the Septuagint translation and a number of rabbinic commentators, who debated the nature of the
blessing the Gentiles would receive through Abraham. For example some saw the blessing as a promise
of health and fruitfulness, while others viewed it as a triumph of God’s grace over His judgment on the
basis of Abraham’s merit or intercession (as may be illustrated in Gen 18)” (“The Seed, the Spirit, and
the Blessing of Abraham,” BSac 152 [1995]: 212).
The passive rendering “shall be blessed” is defended by Kidner, Genesis, 114. For rabbinic
discussions, see H. L. Strack and P. Billcrbeck, Kommentar sum Neuen Testament aus Talmud und
Midrasch (Munich: Beck, 1926), 3:538-541.
3Mattson, 196, see n. 28. He reiterates that this promise was “explicitly claimed as fulfilled by
the monarchy (Ps 72:17)” (ibid., 298-299). Also, Van Scters notes the connection between Abraham and
the monarchy, citing the “great name” motif in association with Ps 72:17 (Abraham in History and
Tradition, 274 passim).
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
285
Gen 24:60
Gen 24 exhibits “inner unity” in its present state.2 Hence, vss. 55-60 constitute
an integral part o f this chapter. These verses also echo some of the themes and ideas
already encountered in the earlier stories o f the Patriarch, in search o f the chosen line of
in the whole episode involving Abraham’s servant taking her away to become Isaac’s
wife. They gladly pronounced the customary Oriental betrothal blessing to her in vs. 60.
'Alexander, “Further Observations on the Term ‘Seed1 in Genesis,” 365. He indicates that
'While Genesis 22 does not directly indicate that this 'seed’ will be of royal standing, it is noteworthy that
Genesis 17 anticipates that kings will come from Abraham and Sarah through Isaac (Gen 17:6,16). This
divine promise is later repeated to Jacob (Gen 35:11)” (ibid., 365-366).
3Roth sees in Rebekah’s reply, “I will go” (vs. 58), a repetition in words, of “the very response
which Abraham had given more than a generation ago by wordless obedience (12: l-4a)! In other words,
not only is Isaac the child of Abraham’s obedience, also Isaac’s wife-to-be responds to the call 'to go’
from her father’s house to a land not known to her. She 'goes out’ as Abraham had gone out (24:5); only
in this way could she become Isaac’s wife and Israel’s mother” (ibid., 178-179). Both Abraham and
Rebekah left behind: “‘their country’ (12:1/24:4), ‘their kindred’ (12:1/24:4) and 'their father’s house’
(12:1/24:38)” (ibid., 179). Both are being “blessed” (12:2-3 / 24:1,35) and are to “become great” (12:2 /
24:35) (ibid.).
Some similarities have been observed between Gen 24 and the book of Ruth, the court history of
David, and the Joseph story. See Ronald M. Hals, The Theology o f the Book o f Ruth, Facet Book
(Philadelphia: Fortress, 1969); and Roth, 180.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
286
song.”1
Rebekah’s name Hj?21 sounds like a wordplay on the root “to bless” 0 ]1 3 )
and also on the word 1 2T 3T 1: for “multitude, ten thousand.” This also connects with “the
frequent command and promise about multiplying (1 2 1 ; cf. 1:28; 9:1, 7; 17:2; 22:17). It
is through Rebekah that the promise o f a multitude o f descendants for Abraham will
begin to be realized.”2
“The valediction is concerned with progeny and security.”3 This seems to have
coincided, by divine design, with the blessing that God bestowed on Abraham in Gen
22:17. Rebekah’s marriage to Isaac is “an historic, providential event by virtue o f which
the divine promises are to come to fruitioa”4 Rebekah was to become the ’‘mother o f an
and let your seed possess the gate o f his enemies.” This is a combination of Imperative:
'Gunkel, Genesis, 2SS. Gunkel adds: “The blessing at betrothal also occurs in Ruth 4:11-12; Tob
7:12 The statements are very general The young woman in those days preferred to hear nothing
more than this.” Skinner hints: “The blessing on the marriage (cf. Ruth 4:11 ff.), rhythmic in form, is
perhaps an ancient fragment of tribal poetry associated with the name of Rebekah” (Genesis, 347).
2Wenham, Genesis 16-50,151. “Rebekah’s name sounds even more like a play on the root ‘to
bless’ f p a ) than does Abraham’s” (ibid.). See Andrzej Strus, Nomen-omen: la stylistique des noms
propres dans le Pentateuque (Rome: Biblical Institute, 1978), 165. Cf. Gen 49:8.
4Ibid. This is in spite of the feet that Gen 24:60 is not “a divine promise,” as retorted by Von
Rad, Genesis, 242-3.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
287
“be thousands of myriads,” with Jussive: “and let your seed possess his enemies' gate.”1
The purpose o f this first part of the blessing is to signify a collective plural seed
promised to the woman, Rebekah. This fells in line with earlier mentions of feminine
possession o f seed which began in Gen 3:15 and recurred in 4:25 and 16:10. Needed to
be reiterated is the feet that Rebekah did not here receive the blessing o f conceiving while
remaining a virgin! This must finally settle the postulation of the virgin birth merely from
The second and final part of this blessing is verbatim with Gen 22:17a, with only
minor variations: TX3C i r O IlK O T 'l “And your seed shall possess the gate
of his enemies.”4 Similar to Gen 22:17a, this clause does not begin with a vov-
1Andersen, Sentence in Biblical Hebrew, 113. Similar combinations are found in Gen 38:24;
Exod 7:26.
3Snaith notes: “Greek has the plural here. Targum and Syriac have "thousands and ten
thousands’” (Notes on the Hebrew Text o f Genesis XXII-XXV <&XXVII, 70). Ewald adds: “Very high
numbers also readily take up their position after a word put in the construct state In poetic language,
’dS k n lM -l myriads o f thousands, Num 10:36, is used interchangeably with niLZn ’S^K, Gen
24:60, it would appear that the first word stands in the construct state merely fin- the purpose of
connecting the two” (80).
*Snaith explains as a weak-wow plus a third-person masculine singular Qal imperfect verb
which may be jussive: “and may thy seed occupy.” The noun “gate” is a construct singular
masculine noun (Notes on the Hebrew Text o f Genesis XXII-XXV & XXVII, 25,70). “It was ‘in the gate’
that leaders and kings held their courts of justice and gave sentence after victory” (70).
Concerning the similarity between Gen 24:60 and 22:17, Alexander recommends: “The blessing
pronounced on Rebekah has probably been influenced by the divine oath in Genesis 22:17-18 . . . and may
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
288
the number o f offspring wished for Rebekah from the multitude to a singular individual
Seed, who will possess the gate o f his enemies. The undeniable evidence includes the
third-person singular Qal imperfect verb O T ’I “and he shall possess”; and the third-
person singular pronominal suffix attached to the noun VR30 “his enemies.”1
to here. This echoes sim ilar narrowing in the seed o f the woman being traced from Gen
3:15 to Gen 22:17 and repeated in Gen 24:60. This seems to be the book's pattern of
delineating the Special Seed of the woman who will crush the head of Satan in victory.
This phenomenon of narrowing must be quite significant in identifying the Messiah from
The arguments thus presented show that the Messianic hope was alive and well
among the common patriarchal worshipers of Yahweh. The intentional shift to a specific
singular Seed reveals the faith o f the family o f Rebakah in the coming victorious Messiah.
Gen 49:8-10
As mentioned above, Gen 3:15 set out the programmatic plot o f delineating a
be due to Abraham’s servant recounting Yahweh’s oath to Rebekah’s family. Since Rebekah is travelling
to Canaan to marry Isaac, it is quite appropriate that her relatives might send her away with the two-fold
blessing that she should increase greatly and have a descendant who would defeat his enemies. In this
way they acknowledge the importance of the role which Rebekah will play in the fulfillment of God’s
purposes for all humanity” (“Further Observations on the Term ’Seed’ in Genesis,” 366).
'We must recall that the singular individual seed always employs singular verb inflections,
pronouns and adjectives; while the collective plural seed generally employs plural ones. See above
discussions and references.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
289
single male child from each generation of the collective plural seed o f the woman, that is,
those righteous among humanity. This trail began with Seth, the surviving chosen seed
out of the offspring of Adam and Eve. The process o f elimination seemed easily defined
from then on. The book of Genesis expresses God’s chosen seed from time to time, even
when multiple offspring seem to compete for this first-place designation which often by
Abraham’s chosen seed, Isaac, was clearly named. So also, Isaac’s chosen seed,
Jacob, was clearly distinguished even from the womb. However, of Jacob’s twelve sons,
none was clearly named as the bearer of the chosen Seed o f the woman. Hence, all the
tribes constitute the chosen nation of God. Nonetheless, only one tribe will yield the
Messianic Seed. This remained rather ambiguous or suspensive throughout the stories of
Jacob and his children until the last chapter o f his life when he pronounced blessings on
Judah, the fourth son, was the one who received the special royal blessing and
commission, and the designation as firstborn of Jacob’s sons with the “rights of
Over all, “Judah was promised: (1) the praise of his brothers, (2) the
'Gerard Van Groningen, Messianic Revelation in the Old Testament (Grand Rapids: Baker,
1990), 167.
2Ibid., 168. “Joseph received recognition as the prince and an abundant bestowal of blessings.
But he was not designated to be the firstborn of Jacob’s sons Nor did Reuben, the very first son bom
of Jacob and Leah True, Joseph had been given royal authority and power to serve as an agent of
redemption; herein he was a type of Christ” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
290
preeminence in Israel, (3) victories over his enemies, (4) the obedience of the nations, and
In vs. 8, “hands on the neck of enemies” signifies “victory, after struggle and
pursuit.”2 The brothers bowing down to Judah indicates “submission to a ruling person,
a monarch.”3 Victory over enemies and every one bowing to him, and the scepter not
departing from Judah, make him echo the special blessing to the special Seed, traced from
Adam to Abraham to Jacob as royal. Its royal aspect is well emphasized here.
From vss. 8-9a, Jacob begins by addressing Judah in the presence o f his brothers
in terms of the second-person singular, “you.” Since Jacob intends to speak to Judah also
as a tribe, these statement have a collective meaning up to this point. However, as Jacob
proceeds, in this same setting, he suddenly shifts to the third-person singular “he, him”
from vs. 9b to the end o f his pronouncements to Judah in vs. 12. This narrowing from
the collective tribe, embodied in and led by Judah, to the singular royal person from
among the tribe o f Judah is significant in the light of our previous considerations of how
the book of Genesis has repeatedly employed this unique phenomenon to underscore the
Gen 49:8-12 “holds before us the collective and the single idea of royalty. Judah
was to be one tribe, but from that collective whole a single royal one was to emerge and
'Kaiser, Messiah in the Old Testament, SI. Further explanations of “Shiloh” and “Scepter” are
found in David Baron, Rays o f Messiah's Glory: Christ in the Old Testament (Grand Rapids: Zondervan,
1955; reprint of 1886), 258-262; Kaiser, Messiah in the Old Testament, 51-53; W. L. Moran, “Genesis
49:10 and Its Use in Ezekiel 21:32,” Biblica 39 (1958): 402-425.
Groningen, 171.
3lbid.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
291
thus the preeminent One was singled out.”1 This is a predictive prophecy concerning the
The personal king to come is set forth in a climactic manner in this prophecy.
Judah was addressed as the preeminent one. But, as Jacob proceeded, he used
the third person. Still speaking to Judah in the presence o f his brothers, Jacob
spoke o f another one, who, inseparable from Judah and the community over
which he was to rule, was, nevertheless, distinctly discernible. Judah the man
was important, but Judah the tribe no less; the truly preeminent one was the
coming royal one, who was to the ruler, the victor, the prosperous performer.
He it was who was to receive obeisance, praise, and honor.2
The future king arising from the Judahic tribe is “clearly linked to the line o f
‘seed' that is traced throughout the book of Genesis.”3 God’s blessing will flow through
this king to all those nations who accept his authority, causing them to “experience a new
age of prosperity with the reversal o f the divine curse which caused the earth to become
less fertile as a consequence o f human sin.”4 The emphasis on the victory that he will
bring over all enemies echoes: “(a) the promise in 3:15 that the ‘Seed o f the woman’ shall
overcome the powers o f evil, and (b) the divine oath to Abraham in 22:17: ‘Your seed
In vs. 9, the three terms referring to the lion present a “vivid picture of the
growth o f power, prowess, and preeminence. The lioness is a poetic, picturesque, and
'Ibid., 178.
Hbid., 178-179.
-Ibid.
sIbid. Groningen believes: “The battle that was to be waged by the seed of Jacob, Abraham, and
Adam would have to be thought of in terms of the irrevocable hostility the Lord had pronounced and
placed between the seed of the woman and the seed of the serpent” (178).
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
292
powerful expression o f Judah’s development and the final issue of his royal rule and
victory.”1
In vs. 10, Shiloh2 is a ruler, “coming from and following Judah,”3 who will have
the “willful and cheerful obedience”4 o f peoples o f the earth. “Judah will exercise royal
prerogatives until his ruler comes to wield it himself.”5 Moreover, Judah will fulfill the
“mediatorial role”6 to “represent the Lord to the community and the people, in turn, to
the Lord”7just as A brah a m was to serve between the Lord and the nations (Gen 12:3).
In vss. 11 and 12, prosperity, good health, and general well-being are prefigured
'Groningen, 171.
2Richard M. Davidson notes: “The appellation Shiloh, probably coming from the Hebrew sih, ‘to
be at ease, quiet, tranquil, to prosper,' in contrast points to a future royal messianic figure who would
usher in an age of peace and prosperity and obedience to his rule. The picture of the Messiah is
highlighted in the preceding verses (w. 8-9), with the imagery of a warrior victorious over his enemies,
and a lion resting after taking his prey. It is further developed in the succeeding verses (w. 11-12) with
the imagery of an exuberant, invigorating, abundant Golden Age.” (“The Eschatological Literary
Structure of the Old Testament,” in Creation, Life, and Hope: Essays in Honor o f Jacques B. Doukhan,
ed. Jiff Moskala (Berrien Springs, MI: Old Testament Department of Seventh-day Adventist Theological
Seminary, Andrews University, 2000), 3S3-3S4. See Jerusalem Talmud Sanhendrin 98b; and Kiel and
Delitzsch, 1:393-401.
’Groningen, 175.
"Ibid.
sIbid. Groningen explains that a shepherd’s staff or rod was used to “redirect, chastise, smite, or
slay”; or as a scepter in a ruler’s hand, “a symbol of power and authority” (ibid., 175). He was also the
“lawgiver” (ibid.). See von Rad, Genesis, 419.
"Groningen, 177.
7Ibid.
‘Ibid., 178.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
293
for Judah the royal one and his successor and all their subjects. “But struggle, pain, and
The journey that traces the Special Seed of the woman from Gen 3:15 ends very
hopefully in Gen 49:8-12 with the last identified chosen progenitor in the book of
Genesis, Judah. It is a key link to the chain that connects the singular “Seed o f the
woman” to the singular “Seed of Abraham,” the singular royal “Seed of David,” and
Summary
Echoes of the “seed” o f Gen 3:15 began in Gen 1:28 with God’s mandate for
humanity to be fruitful and multiply, filling and subduing the earth, and exercising
dominion over all creation. Procreation entails multiplication o f “seed.” Posterity was
assured to the human race in the promise o f the woman’s seed in Gen 3:15.
crushing of the serpent’s head by the representative Seed o f the woman. Although
human dominion over animals was completely devoid of hostility between both parties in
Gen 1-2, the entrance o f sin through the snake changed the status quo.
It is the identification of this special redeemer Seed who will champion the cause
o f humanity against Satan that is the major pre-occupation o f the rest o f the book of
Genesis. This programmatic “Seed” couples with the H V lbin headings to form the
organizing fabric o f the entire book, with a view to delineating the special line o f descent
■Ibid., 176.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
294
narrowed down through the twists and turns o f the narratives in the book of Genesis.
First, Seth is singled out from his generation to be the “appointed seed” (Gen 4:25).
Seth's genealogy in Gen 5 itemizes the chosen progenitors until Noah “found favor in the
sight o f the Lord” (Gen 6:8). This process continues until God selects Abraham and
elaborates the promise of Gen 3:15 to him and his seed. From here onwards, the “Seed
Messiah as is made evident by her profound exclamation at the birth of Cain, “I have got
the Man, the Lord!” (Gen 4:1). This is the first biblical commentary to Gen 3:15!
Likewise, the other major seed passages studied above, because of their intratextual
allusions to the seed and its related pronouns in Gen 3:15, show a similar and consistent
pattern o f understanding of the Messianic implication ofthe Seed. These passages supply
the needed illuminations to the cogent, poignant, and programmatic statements in Gen
3:15. Gen 22:17-18 and 24:60 similarly exhibit the structural movements and narrowing
phenomenon from the collective plural to the individual singular. This is the major signal
The Seed o f the woman (Gen 3:15) becomes identical to the Seed of Abraham
(Gen 22:17-18, etc.) and the kingly Judah at the end ofthe book o f Genesis (49:8-10).
The book is very consistent in its treatment of the Seed. The understanding o f the “seed”
was intended to set a pace for and to have great implications for the whole book of
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
295
of Gen 3:15 elsewhere in the Old and New Testaments in order to discover if there is
similar and consistent understanding o f the “seed.” It is important to see how the New
Testament uses the Old in relation to the seed, paying particular attention to the
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
CHAPTER THREE
The text o f Gen 3:15 is a watershed and programmatic passage that sets the
stage for the rest o f the Bible. So much is already encapsulated in Gen 3:15 that the rest
o f Scripture elaborates more and more progressively on the themes raised in Gen 3:15.
Since the “Seed” is the central figure in this verse, his identification and references
continue beyond the book of Genesis into the rest o f the Old and New Testament until a
illuminate the “seed” o f Gen 3:15, that the book is consistent in its understanding and
treatment of the “seed,” following the pattern established in Gen 3:15. In this chapter, I
explore various intertextual allusions to the “Seed” o f Gen 3:15, first o f all in the Old and
then on to the New Testament, in order to discover to what extent the understanding of
the “Seed” established in Gen 3:15 influenced later revelations in the Canon, and to what
extent later writers remained consistent with the meaning o f the “Seed” already set forth
in Gen 3:15.
296
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
297
Intertextuality Defined
Intertextuality1may be defined as “the study of all features that bring a text into
types o f relationships between texts.”2 This calls all previously encountered texts to
“Intertextuality lies at the very heart o f the writing and reading of texts.” Both readers
and writers perceive that the process o f their reading and writing is “due to the cross
fertilization” of what they have read or known before.3 “Texts are not autonomous
Some scholars wrongly posit that Gen 3 is largely or wholly absent from the rest
o f the OT tradition. They argue that “no prophet, psalm, or narrator makes any
'A bibliography of Intertextuality, including its histories, theories and practices include samong
many: T. Beal, “Ideology and Intertextuality,” in Literary Currents in Biblical Interpretation, ed. D.
Fewell (Louisville: Westminster/John Knox, 1992), 27-39; idem, “Glossary,” in Literary Currents in
Biblical Interpretation, ed. D. Fewell (Louisville: Westminster/John Knox, 1992), 21-24; Jonathan Culler,
The Pursuit o f Signs: Semiotics, Literature, Deconstruction (London: Routledgeand Kegan Paul, 1981);
Gerard Genette, Palimpseste: Die Literatur aufzweiter Stufe (Frankfurt: Suhrkamp, 1993), 9-21; S. J.
Greenblatt, Shakespearean Negotiations: The Circulation o f Social Energy in Renaissance England
(Oxford: Clarendon, 1988), esp. 5-8; Ellen van Wolde, “Trendy Intertextuality?” in Intertextuality in
Biblical Writings, ed. S. Draisma (Kampen: Kok, 1989), 43-9; and M. Worton and J. Still, eds.,
Intertextuality: Theories and Practices (Manchester: Manchester University Press, 1990).
HCnut Heim, “The Perfect King of Psalm 72: An Intertextual Enquiry,” in The Lord’s Annointed:
Interpretation o f Old Testament Messianic Texts, ed. Philip E. Satterhwaite, Richard S. Hess, and Gordon
J. Wenham (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1995), 231. Heim follows the definitions and discussions of Genette,
9.
‘Heim, 233.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
298
recognizable reference to the story of the Fall.”1 Some fail to see any trace of any
tradition o f the narrative o f Gen 2-3 throughout the whole o f the Old Testament, saying:
“It is not quoted and is never mentioned. It is never included in the syntheses o f the acts
o f God (Credo).”2
that an author had Genesis 3 in mind while expounding on another text, there is bound to
be a thematic similarity.”3
presented below in the brief examination o f major passages beyond Genesis in the biblical
canon. This treatment does not pretend to be exhaustive, but representative. Care is
taken to remain focused on the allusions to the “Seed” rather than other numerous
Within the larger scope o f the Pentateuch, the “Seed” o f Gen 3:15 remains a
discourses in the Pentateuch. Beginning with the first few verses in the book of Exodus,
:Westermann, Genesis /- //, 276. Westermann explains: “The reason for this is that Israel never
considered it to be a historical incident side-by-side with other historical incidents It was only in late
Judaism, when the perception of the difference between historical reality and primeval reality was lost,
that the “fell” of humanity was leveled off to a historical or quasi-historical incident” (ibid.).
"Andrews, 96. “The very act of associating one text with another must be regarded in some sense
as interpretation” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
299
preoccupied with the preservation o f seed for the chosen people o f Israel through whom
the special Seed promised in Gen 3:15 will come. The Egyptian slavery could not
prevent the children of Israel from being fruitful, increasing abundantly, multiplying,
waxing exceedingly mighty, and filling the land (Exod 1:7). This echoes the seed promise
Several hints are given in some o f these Pentateuchal allusions which vividly
point to the fact that the fulfillment o f this promise goes beyond the scope o f the
Pentateuch to a distant future. “The Pentateuch as a whole is not merely concerned with
God’s work in the past but is also interested in the work of God that lies in the future.”1
It must be seen as transcending the initial successes o f the nation and pointing to the
Numerous instances in the Pentateuch “associate God’s earlier acts in the Garden
with the covenant He made with Israel.”2 Below are some select representative passages
that elucidate the deep connections o f the seed o f Gen 3:15 to the prophetic salvific hope
Exod 11:1-10
The death o f the firstborn o f every human and beast in Egypt and the
simultaneous deliverance o f the children o f Israel from death in the last plague ended their
Tbid.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
300
Egyptian slavery. This typifies “redemption from sin and death.”1 In the contention
between the seed of the Egyptians and the seed o f the Israelites, the seed o f the Israelites
were spared from death and destruction. Similar to the judgment o f death in Gen 3:15,
Exod 15:1-21
The occasion for this Song o f Moses was God’s defeat of the Egyptian army at
the deliverance of the Israelites in their crossing the Red Sea. These words are clearly
prophetic as evidenced by vss. 17 and 18. This casts Moses into prophetic roles, his
concern being “the future King who will reign over God’s eternal kingdom.”3 This claim
“The poetic imagery that dominates the song is that of the Lord as mighty
warrior”4 (Exod 15:3). These images are “reminiscent o f the struggle portrayed in
Genesis 3:15.”5 The Lord ^171 “shattered” the enemy (Exod 15:6), just as the special
In Gen 3:15, we have discovered that the special Seed is not merely human but
supernatural. Only a supernatural power could match and overcome the power of the
tempter, Satan, represented by the serpent. Indeed, it was the Lord who triumphed over
'Ibid., 258.
2Ibid.
3Ibid., 271.
4Ibid.
5Ibid.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
301
the “serpent” enemy o f Gen 3:15 just as He triumphed over the “Egyptian” enemy in
Exod 15:1-21.
Lev 12:1-8
It has been rightly observed and acknowledged that “this section o f Leviticus
therefore remarkable that the word used in Lev 12:2 to describe the woman “becoming
pregnant” deviates from the usual verb rn r t. Rather, the verb JHT “to sow seed” or
“to produce seed” is used. This appears to be an intentional verbal link with Gen 1:11-
The use o f “seed” in Lev 12:2 also alludes to Gen 1:28 concerning human
childbirth and procreation, which is the background of the Seed promise of Gen 3:15.
This also adds to the understanding of Gen 3:16 concerning the woman’s pains in
childbearing. These connections further underscore the feet that “divine blessing for
humankind is centered on the woman’s role in childbirth.”2 Indeed, the promised Seed of
Gen 3:15 “lies at the center of the hope o f blessing (e.g., Gen 12:l-3).”3
Childbirth lies at the root o f the hope o f God’s fulfilling His promise of blessing.
'Ibid., 335. Just as God distinguishes the “good” in each creative act in Gen 1, God also, here in
Leviticus, distinguishes the “dean” from the “unclean” for human consumption within the covenant
framework. Sailhamer mentions further: “The order God follows in creation—dealing first with the
animals, birds, and sea creatures, and then with humanity—is the same order he follows here—dealing
first with the animals, birds, and sea creatures, and then with humanity (Lev 11-12). The author is clearly
intent on our seeing a similar pattern in God’s overall purpose and work” (ibid.). Cf. Rabbi Rashi,
Commentary on the Torah (Hebrew), ed. Chaim Dov Shual (Jerusalem: Mossad Harav Kook, 1988).
Tbid.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
302
Hence, the preservation o f Moses at birth was spectacular because his survival at the time
ensured the fulfillment o f the hope o f Israel’s deliverance and salvation from slavery.
God’s provision o f blessing for Israel in the covenant at Sinai also contains an
echo of the hope that is centered in childbirth. In the later biblical narratives as
well as in Prophetic Books, the future fulfillment of God’s promised blessing
continues to be centered in the joy and expectation of childbirth (e.g., Isa 7:14; Mic
5:1-2).'
The reference to a woman producing “seed” in Lev 12:2 is as unusual as its first
reference in Gen 3:15. Production of seed is expected to be associated only with males,
not females. Other sim ilar references to females producing or possessing seed, as earlier
mentioned above, are found in Gen 4:25; 16:10; 19:32, 34; 24:60; Num 5:28; and Rev
12:17.2
Num 23-24
The record of Gen 1 suggest that “at the center of God’s purpose in creating
humankind was his desire to bless them.”3 His blessing was immediately pronounced
after creating mankind, saying: “Be fruitful and multiply and fill the land” (Gen 1:28).
This blessing was couched in the promise of procreation and “seed-making.” Even
humanity’s fall into sin did not thwart God’s plan to bless them. God reiterated His
blessing plan in the form o f a promised Seed in Gen 3:15. “God’s original intention for
'Ibid., 335-336.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
303
humanity was blessing and his continual concern for them has been the same.”1
Furthermore, through the promised Seed shall all nations be blessed (Gen 3:15; 12:1-3;
The strong allusions o f Balaam’s prophecy to the promised Seed of Gen 3:15 are
thus clear. Balaam could not curse those whom God has blessed in perpetuity. Balaam’s
three attempts (Num 23:1-12, 13-26; 23:27-24:9) turned into blessings (Num 23:11-12,
25-26; 24:10-11). Consequently, Balaam forcefully reiterated the birth of God’s chosen
deliverer, the “Star” who will arise from Jacob (Num 24:7-9,17-19). This points to a
Balaam gave three oracles, the language o f which evidences a shift from the
plural representation o f Israel in the first two (Num 23:1-12; and 13-26), to a singular
representation in the third (Num 24:1-24). This is reminiscent o f the shift from the plural
to the singular Seed in Gen 3:15. Incidents in Israel’s past mentioned in Num 23 are also
repeated in Num 24, but here it describes the work of a “future King.”
The Hebrew text renders the narrations o f the two oracles in Num 23 plural
forms, but intentionally shifts to the singular forms in the third oracle in Num 24. The
text shifts from a reference to the collective plural seed o f Israel to the individual singular
Seed who is the future prophetic Messianic King (Num 24:7-9,17-19). For instance, in
reference to the great salvific event o f the Exodus o f Israel from Egypt, the text uses the
plural form in Num 23:24: “God brought them Jplural] out of Egypt; he has as it were
the strength o f a unicorn.” The same line is now repeated in Num 24:8, using singular
'Ibid.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
304
forms because Balaam has introduced the King in the preceding verse (Num 24:7). Vs. 8
reads: “God brought him [singular] out o f Egypt; he has as it were the strength of a
unicorn.”
The passage casts the future King in the language used to express “God's great
acts o f salvation in the past What God did for Israel in the past is seen as a type of
what he will do for them in the future when he sends his promised king.”1 The Messianic
King was to experience an eschatological Exodus, thereby “recapitulating in his life the
events o f historical Israel in their Exodus from Egypt and conquest of their enemies.”2
Balaam draws heavily on God's words of promise and judgment used in Gen
3:15. In the duel involving the special Seed of the woman, He will crush the head of His
enemy, Satan. Balaam insists that this coming King will “crush [ }TTI2 ] the foreheads of
Moab and the skulls of all the sons o f Sheth” (Num 24:17). This further alludes to all the
Furthermore, a solid link with the previous seed passages is seen in the fact that
Balaam quotes, verbatim, Jacob’s prophecy of the coming King from the line of Judah in
Gen 49:9. Balaam repeats in Num 24:9a: “Like a lion he [singular] crouches and lies
■Ibid., 408.
TJavidson, “Eschatological Literary Structure of the Old Testament,” 357. See further discussion
of this New Exodus in Ninow, 160-169.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
305
down, like a lioness—who dares to rouse him [singular]T Similarly, the promise of
blessing those who bless him and cursing those who curse him (Gen 12:3; 27:29) is
All these are Messianic evidences. Moreover, Balaam clarifies the expectation as
being futuristic and eschatological, rather than being a sooner fulfillment. Balaam says: “I
see him, but not now; I behold him, but he is not near” (Num 24:17). It was not limited
to king David because Num 24:23-24 extends the oracle of the victory o f this future king
to the defeat o f nations that only arose after the demise o f the historical king David.1
Deut 17:14-20
The office o f kingship was anticipated already in Gen 1-3 as discussed above.
This justifies the understanding o f the special individual singular representative Seed o f
Gen 3:15 as a kingly figure. This is further illuminated with the renewed promises calling
(2 Sam 7:18-24; Ps 78:70) though ft points further to an ultimate ideal future King. This
'Sailhamer explains: “The victory of the future king is extended over the defeat o f‘Asshur and
Eber’ (probably Babylon) at the hands of the Kittim (probably the Romans). Moreover, in the end, even
the Kittim ‘will come to ruin’ (vs. 24) ‘when God does this’ (vs. 23). From the standpoint of later biblical
history, the events alluded to here extend far beyond the reign of the historical David. It is difficult in this
context not to think of texts like Genesis 10:2-4, where the Kittim are associated with nations such as
Magog, Tubal, Media, and Meshech, nations which figure prominently in the later prophetic books (e.g.,
Eze 38:2-3), and of Daniel 11:30, where Kittim are again mentioned in reference to the last great battle.
In any case, this last oracle of Balaam appears to place the scope of his oracle too far in the future to be a
reference to the reign of David” (Pentateuch as Narrative, 409).
There is no basis for relegating this eschatological oracle to the status of a mere “late addition” to
the Pentateuch. This is because we cannot rule out any possibility of true prophecy in the Bible. This is
contrary to the opinion expressed in H. Holzinger, Numeri, Kurzer Hand-Commentar zum Alten
Testament (TQbingen: J. C. B. Mohr [Paul Siebeck], 1903), 125.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
306
underlying prophecy is made stronger by the fact that there were no kings in Israel at this
subsequent authors of the Prophets and Writings. This is not surprising if one believes
that the Torah is the basis and source o f the OT. It has been shown above that the Torah
Below are some select passages which constitute intertextual allusions to the
Seed o f Gen 3:15. I have followed the order o f the Hebrew Bible. This list is not
2 Sam 7:4-19
This chapter, describing king David’s proposal to build a temple for the ark,
shows a logical sequence with 2 Sam 6 which described the bringing o f the ark to Zion.
It is a “coherent account, and is closely integrated into the narrative in which it now
stands, developing themes which run through the preceding narrative. But it also has an
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
307
The message o f 2 Sam 7 reflects Deut 12, esp. vss. 10-11, with David being
settled and having rest from his enemies.1 It records a covenant between God and David
which is comparable to the one set between God and Abraham (cf. Gen 15).2 The two
are similar commitments from God in that “God is bound by an oath and that God made a
“name great, like the names o f the greatest men of the earth” (2 Sam 7:9),4 has not been
made by God to another individual since the days of Abraham (cf. Gen 12:2).
There are several relevant ancient Near Eastern parallels whereby kings devote
“national resources to the enhancement of temples in order to honor their gods and
secure divine blessing for themselves and their kingdoms.”5 Building a temple for a deity
in Ancient Israel: A Study on the Formation and Development o f Royal-Dynastic Ideology, BZAW 142
(Berlin: de Gruyter, 1977), 81-117.
'This does not mean that chap. 7 is out of chronological sequence with chap. 8 which mentions
more wars fought by David.
2See Clements, Abraham and David: Genesis IS and Its Meaningfo r Israelite Tradition', and
Gordon, I and II Samuel, 236.
'Robert D. Bergen, I, 2 Samuel, The New American Commentary, 7 (Broadman & Holman,
1996), 335. Cf. George E. Mendenhall and G. A. Herions also believe that Nathan was hereby “simply
applying the age-old Amorite political theory of Jebus (now Jerusalem) to its new king (and now in the
name of its new king’s God, Yahweh)” (“Covenant,” Anchor Bible Dictionary, 1:1188). Similarly, Frank
Charles Fensham parallels “the eternal throne of David’s descendants” to the promise like “a blessing in
the Hittite vassal treaties, i.e., that the faithful vassal’s sons would reign eternally on his throne”
(“Alliance Covenant,” The Illustrated Bible Dictionary, 1:329).
’Bergen. 339.
sIbid>, 335. C f N. Scheider, Die Zeitbestimmungen der Wirtschaftsurkunden von Ur III (Rome:
Pontifical Biblical Institute, 1936). A. B. Mercer cites an example of an Ur-Nammu period date formula
as: “The year the foundation of the temple of Ningubla was laid”; and a Shuigi period date: “the year the
foundation of the temple of Ninurta was laid” (Sumero-Babylonian Year-Formulae [London: Luzac,
1946]). See further, ANET, 501-502.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
308
is thus associated with special blessing and divine legitimation for the king. Similarly,
One cannot but see a connection between Nathan’s oracle here and the Torah.
These words “constitute the longest recorded monologue attributed to him since the days
o f Moses (197 words).”2 Apart from the connection with the Abrahamic covenant
hundreds of years earlier that the “scepter shall not depart from Judah. . . until Shiloh
comes” (Gen 49:10). David claims this link and thus receives the only divinely instituted
and uniquely favored royal family in perpetuity (QUIETS?, vs.16; cf. vs.13).3 This
immediately connects 2 Sam 7 with the “Seed” o f the woman been traced from Gen 3:15.
“The royal character of the Seed was made more definite than before.”4
Morever, 2 Sam 7:8b mentions how God took David from being a shepherd to
preeminent one or prince over my people Israel.” The term T33, “ruler or preeminent
one or prince,” rather than “king” is used to refer to “David’s place under Yahweh,
'Satterthwaite, “David in the Books of Samuel,” 53-4; and Ishida, The Royal Dynasties, 85-88. I
consider meritorious the positions of D. J. McCarthy, who considers this chapter as an important part of
the “Deuteronomistic history” (“II Samuel 7 and the Structure of the Deuteronomistic History,” JBL 84
[1965]: 131-138); and also W. J. Dumbrell, accepting 2 Sam 6-7 as important in integrating the Davidic
covenant and the Sinai covenant. David and his seed will reflect and defend the Sinai covenant (“The
Davidic Covenant,” RTR 39 [1980]: 40-47). See also W. Brueggemann, First and Second Samuel
(Louisville, KY: Westminster, 1990), 253,259.
^Bergen, 336.
3Ibid., 337.
‘Groningen, 301.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
309
the King o f Israel.” This is a “fulfillm ent o f Jacob’s words that a ruler was to come from
Judah’s tribe (Gen 49:8-10)” which was necessary for what God was about to say later
on in 2 Sam 7:12-16.'
God calls king David “my servant” (2 Sam 7:5), a term used elsewhere in regard
to honor faithful patriarchs such as Abraham (Gen 26:24), Jacob (Ezek 37:25), and
Moses (Num 12:7-8; Josh 1:2, 7); and prophets such as Isaiah (Isa 20:3); Israel (Isa 41:9;
44:1-2, 21; 49:3; Jer 30:10); and the Messiah (Isa 52:13; Zech 3:8).2 This supports the
idea o f the “Seed" of the woman being a servant, king, prophet, leader, priest, and indeed
the Messiah.
God’s initiative is constantly stressed in this chapter, especially in the fact that
God gives David a name (vs. 8) before David’s son builds a temple for God. “David will
not build God a temple (‘Will you build me a FT*2 to dwell in?’ vs. 5); rather, God will
found a dynasty for David (‘. . . YHWH will establish a !T 2 for you,’ vs. 11).”3
Similarly, the enmity between Satan and humanity was divinely initiated in Gen 3:15
where a divine human representative “Seed” was also promised to redeem humanity from
'Ibid., 295.
2Bergen, 338. Heinz Kruse recalls: “The highest title of David, like that of Moses (Num 12:7), is
‘servant ( ebed) of Yahweh,’ and even this is, among the kings, reserved to David” (“David’s Covenant,”
IT 35 [1985]: 152-153). Cf. Ronald de Vaux, “Le roi d’Israel, vassal de Yahve,” Melanges Eugene
Tisserant I (Citta del Vaticano, Rome: Biblioteca Apostolica Vaticana, 1964), 12.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
310
David’s son is also called God’s son in vs. 14.' Adam would be the first being
who could be called God’s son, having being the premier and unique human to come out
o f the Creator’s hands. Adam was royal and kingly. Thus, the special Seed promised for
the redemption o f humanity will thus very likely have similar resemblance to the first
Adam.
The divine promise to David: “I will raise up your seed (after you) to succeed
you” (vs. 12), concerns a royal successor. The Hebrew word used here is D ip, “which
in certain contexts is synonymous with 7TTI, ‘to live’ (Isa 26:14,19).”2 This is translated
as d v a o t r j O C j i ) in the LXX, also meaning “I will resurrect.”3 This has obvious Messianic
implications.
It has also been rightly observed that this reference to “your seed after you” is a
future.” Similar covenantal statements are found in Gen 9:9; 17:7, 8,9, 10, 19; 35:12;
'Ishida discusses the use of an adoption metaphor fix kingship in the Old Testament and the
Ancient Near East. An Israelite king was ritually “adopted” by God upon assumption to the throne (108-
109). P. K. McCarter labels Pss 2:7-8; 89:27-28 [MT 26-27] as the evidence that God ritually adopted
David as His son upon David’s enthronement (// Samuel: A New Translation with Introduction, Notes and
Commentary, Anchor Bible [Garden City, NY: Doubleday, 1984], 207). C£ R. de Vaux, Ancient Israel,
vol. 1, Social Institutions, trans. J. McHugh (New York: McGraw-Hill, 1961), 112-113.
The language that God used here "V ttT P K1ITI 3K*? I^ T P n # "3K “I will be to him a
father and he to me a son,” provides a strong echo of the covenantal language of Sinai seen in Exod 6:7;
Lev 26:12; Jer 7:23; 11:4 30:22; Ezek 36:28; Hos 1:9. For example, Lev 26:12 says, “I will be God to you
and you a people to me” O S * ? 'bl'TIPI D F IK 1 Q ? S ’IT 'rn. In particular, the verbal form,
first-person singular imperfect of ITH, “adverts to the convenantal language of Sinai.” Lyle Eslinger,
House o f God or House o f David: The Rhetoric o f 2 Samuel 7, JSOTSup 164 (Sheffield: JSOT, 1994), 59.
3Ibid. O. Betz gives more details on this and its Messianic implications (“Das messianischen
Bewusstsein Jesu,” NovT 6 [1963]: 20-48).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
311
48:4; Exod 28:43; Num 25:13; Deut 1:8; 4:37; 10:15; 1 Sam24:21.'
David’s royal successor was stipulated as “one who will come from your body”
given to Abraham as “one who will come from your body” ^SJSP K2T 10K (Gen
15:4).2 This also solidifies the link between the Seed or son of David and the Seed of
Abraham, which constitute further descriptions o f the Seed of the woman in Gen 3:15.
Everything that the ultimate Seed/son of David is equals the representative “Seed” o f the
woman!3
The prophetic verb forms (prophetic perfects) used in 2 Sam 7:12-16 “suggest
that the individual who will become David’s royal successor had not yet been bom.”4
First, this fits Solomon’s situation because “he was certainly much younger than any o f
'Eslinger, 45. He thinks it unusual that “the person to whom the promise is announced is himself
excluded (by virtue of mortality) from the experience” (ibid.). The similar statement in Gen 17:19 is part
of other statements there, thus showing that “Abraham is party to the arrangement” (ibid.). However, I
think that David cannot be said to be excluded because it is his seed and not another’s that is in view!
Moreover, God was perhaps here emphasizing the fact the prophecy went beyond the physical immediate
offspring to the eschatological Messiah. Eslinger himself suggests: “The move is another subtle reminder
to David that he has no personal role to play in the new plan that God lays out here” (ibid., 59).
2Ibid., 45. Mattson explains that children are referred to in connection with C'BO, meaning
“bowels, belly, inward parts,” only in Gen 25:23; Ruth 1: 11; 2 Sam 7:12; 16:11; Isa 48:19; and Ps 71:6.
Excepting Ruth 1:11 and Ps 71:6, the O'IJO are “mentioned only in connection with the birth of
eponymous ancestors or members of the royal family” (225-226). Therefore this prophecy given to king
David is most important because it connects IPft and SQQ R2T in a royal context. “Abram, the
ancestor of kings, received the same promise that was later made to David” (ibid., 226).
3For the relationship between the Abrahamic and Davidic covenants, see Clements, Abraham and
David, 47-60; Thomas Edward McComiskey, The Covenants o f Promise: A Theology o f the Old
Testament Covenants (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1985); and N. E. Wagner, “Abraham and David?” in Studies
on the Ancient Palestinian World, ed. J. W. Wevers and D. B. Redford, Toronto Semitic Texts and
Studies, 2 (Toronto: University of Toronto Press, 1972), 117-140.
‘Eslinger, 45.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
312
the sons bom in Hebron and probably was not the first bom to David in Jerusalem.”'
Second, and more importantly and most fittingly, this prophetic statement fits a future
temporal part o f the prophecy to “build a house for” the Lord (2 Sam 7:13) by
constructing a temple for the Lord in Jerusalem between 966 and 959 B.C. (Cf. 1 Kgs
6:1-38; and Acts 7:47). But this must only be a partial and temporal fulfillment o f this
The Lord’s promise to “establish the throne o f his kingdom forever” seems to
vault this portion o f the prophecy beyond the bounds o f Solomon’s reign and give
it eschatological and/or messianic overtones. The throne o f Solomon’s kingdom
was not permanently established; in fret, his kingdom-in the strict sense of the
word-ceased to exist immediately after his death (cf. 1 Kgs 11:31-38).2
Hence, one must understand that the primary, full, and permanent fulfillment of the
Second, this same context of 2 Sam 7 ties into a larger account o f David’s sin
which brought judgment upon his household and disunity in Israel, leading to a curse in
chap. 12. Though the promise of a perpetual Davidic dynasty remained in effect,
“David’s own history as king shows an ominous decline which comes close to calling the
'Ibid., n. 69.
2Ibid., 43. “This incongruity between divine prophecy and human history invited the NT writers
to look to a different son of David for the fulfillment of the word” (ibid.).
'See how the NT reports Jesus’s claims to build a temple (Matt 26:61; 27:40; Mark 14:38; John
2:19-22); possess an eternal throne (Matt 19:28-29); and possess an imperishable kingdom (Luke 22:29-
30; John 18:36).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
313
Awful judgment befell the Davidic dynasty up till the end o f the book o f Kings (2
Kgs 25:27-30), but the nation still held tenaciously to the covenantal promise of
perpetuity. “It is certainly a hope focused on the unforeseen future, a time which is not
this time.”2 It remained a hope in “the King o f the future”3 who cannot be “anything
Collins rightly insists that the “clearest syntactic parallel” to Gen 3:15 is 2 Sam
7:13.6 The passage o f 2 Sam 7:12-15 (= 1 Chr 17:11-11) vividly displays several
masculine singular verb inflections and masculine pronouns as referents to SHT. These
'Satterthwaite, “David in the Books of Samuel,” 64. Bergen notes that the punishment inflicted
on David's family for their disobedience accords well with Torah’s teaching that the disobedience of
covenant people will be punished (Lev 26:25; Deut 28:25,49-52; 1 Kgs 11:14,23-26) (341). “Without
affirming Jesus’ need for punishment due to personal sin, the writer of the Book of Hebrews seems to
suggest that this passage is likewise messianic (cf. Heb 5:8-9)” (ibid.).
2Iain W. Provan, “The Messiah in the Book of Kings,” in The Lord’s Anointed: Interpretation o f
Old Testament Messianic Texts, ed. Philip E. Sanerhwaite, Richard S. Hess, and Gordon J. Wenham
(Grand Rapids: Baker, 1995), 76.
}Ibid.
4Ibid.
5Ibid. Provan continues: “The book of Kings always measures its monarchs in terms of the ideal,
finding almost all of them wanting in serious respects. The least two criticised, Hezekiah and Josiah,
together with the early Solomon (criticised, but nevertheless blessed by God to an unparalleled extent) are
themselves interesting, to the extent that they may be taken as indicating the shape of the ideal towards
which the authors of Kings were looking” (ibid.).
Provan refers to Mowinckel who “distinguishes between an ideal of kingship which belongs to
the present (though also looking towards the future) and an expectation of the Messiah as a purely future,
eschatological figure. Before the ideal of kingship could become the expectation of a future Messiah, he
maintains, it had to be separated from those possibilities which were associated with the next festival and
the next king, yet never realized. The gulf between ideal and reality had to become considerable” (ibid.,
80, referring to Mowinckel, He That Cometh, 123, 157).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
314
include:
kingdom.”
This use o f masculine singular verbs and masculine singular pronouns and
pronominal suffixes has been shown above as indicating that a singular individual Seed is
in view in both Gen 3:15 and supported here in 2 Sam 7:12-15 (= 1 Chr 17:11-13).
Similar to Gen 3:15, there is an emphatic use o f the masculine singular personal pronoun
Kin “he” in its so-called “clearest syntactic parallel,” 2 Sam 7:13 H3y Kin “He, he
wiH build. . . his kingdom.” This is repeated in 2 Sam 7:14 } l b ^ T P IT Kirn “And
Since the subject pronouns are not normally necessary for the meaning, the
Hebrew manuscripts to make it plain that a singular individual is being promised in each
individual, the Messianic “Seed o f the woman” traced from Gen 3:15, all through Genesis
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
315
promise to his household found him sitting before the Lord in exclamatory prayer: “Who
am I, O Adonai Yaweh, and what is my family, that you have brought me this far? And as
if this were not enough in your sight, O Adonai Yahweh, you have spoken about the
future o f the house o f your servant. This is the charter for humanity, O Adonai
David recognizes that the promises God had just given him were identical to the
ancient promises that have formed the foundation of the people’s “hope of salvation and
for the future.”3 That these promises were now being repeated to him and placed in his
Yahweh” five times (2 Sam 7:18,19 [twice], 22, 28,29) has no parallel in the books of
'Bergen traces this Messianic promise into the Prophet writings: “The covenant that the Lord
established with the house of David became the nucleus around which messages of hope proclaimed by
Hebrew prophets of later generations were built (cf. Isa 9:1-7; 11:1-16; 16:5; 55:3; Jer 23:5-6; 30:8;
33:15-26; Ezek 34:23-24; 37:24-25; Hos 3:5; Amos 9:11; Zech 12:7-8). To a people broken and humbled
by invaders sent as agents of divine punishment, the Lord’s promise to David of a kingdom that ‘will
endure forever’ (vs. 16) was the seed of hope that resurrected a nation. The Lord’s promise of an
enduring house for David became Israel’s assurance that God would once again lift the nation up and
cause it to flourish anew” (337).
2I have followed the personal translation offered by Kaiser, The Messiah in the Old Testament,
79. Kaiser argues against mistranslations of vs. 19 in most versions, especially, NTV’s rendering: “Is this
your usual way of dealing with man, O Sovereign Lord?” where the Hebrew reads: C1XH rnlri PKtl.
The word D liP “law, charter” is what NIV erroneously renders as “your usual way of dealing with”
(“The Blessing of David: A Charter for Humanity,” in The Law and the Prophets, ed., John Skilton
[Philadelphia: Presbyterian and Reformed, 1974], 298-318).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
316
Samuel or Chronicles.1 Carlson sees this as a significant link with God’s promise o f a
Seed to Abraham in Gen 15:2,8, because Abraham also addresses God with the same
n am e com binatio n “Adonai Yahweh.”2 This correlation is far from being accidental!
“David wants to show that what God is telling him is indeed part of the same promise-
Kaiser enumerates the implications of this being a charter for all humanity:
What David received is to be conveyed to everyone, including all the Gentiles and
nations of the earth. This is further reinforcement of the gospel motif announced
in Genesis 12:3, that in Abraham’s seed all the nations o f the earth would be
blessed. Rather than viewing the gifts that God has just conferred on him in a
selfish way, David sees them missiologically. The “charter for humanity” is
nothing less than God’s plan for the whole human race. All humanity can profit
from what he has just been told about his house/dynasty, kingdom, and throne.4
Sam 7:10b-14 and Pss 1-2, found in Qumran document called 4QFlorilegium (4QFlor.).
This document sheds light on the Qumran exegesis, post-biblical tradition, and Christian
use o f Nathan’s oracle o f 2 Sam 7. This is clearly taken as “a prediction o f the coming
Messiah at the end o f days,”5 boldly quoting God’s words that call the Messiah His
'Ibid. “The other five instances o f‘Adonai Yahweh’ are Deut 3:24; 9:26; Josh 7:7; Judg 6:22;
16:28. Note the promise content in each prayer. In Kings the double name occurs only in I Kgs 2:26;
8:53, while ‘Adonai’ by itself appears in I Kgs 3:10, 15; 22:6; 2 Kgs 7:6; 19:23” (ibid., n. 17).
Carlson, 127.
4Ibid., 80-81.
sDonald Juel, Messianic Exegesis: Christological Interpretation o f the Old Testament in Early
Christianity (Philadelphia: Fortress, 1988), 62-63. “The midrash offers a striking comparison with the
opening chapter of Hebrews, where both 2 Sam 7:14 and Ps 2:7 are quoted to speak of Jesus the Messiah
as God’s son” (ibid., 63). George J. Brooke notes that its remaining undecipherable fragment seems to
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
317
“Son.”
( 1 :1 ) ... “And his enemies [will not disturb him] any more; neither will a son of
wickedness afflict him anymore as formerly. . . ” (1:7) And that he said to
David, “And I will give you rest from all your enemies,” that means that he will
give rest to them from all the sons o f Belial who cause them to stumble in order to
destroy them [through their errors]. . . (1:10-13) “And the Lord declares to you
that he will build you a house. And I will raise up your seed after you, and I will
establish the throne o f his kingdom for ever. I will be his father, and he will be my
son”: he is the Branch of David who will stand with the Interpreter o f the Law,
who [will rule] in Zion in the latter days as it is written, “And I will raise up the
booth of David which is fallen”: he is the booth [or Branch] o f David which was
fallen, who shall arise to save Israel.1
This part o f the document seems to focus on an eschatological holy house for
God which God actually builds with his hands, God’s promise to “give rest,” and finally
on to describing David’s “Seed” as the coming Messiah, the Branch o f David.2 In order
to achieve this, the commentator seems to have intentionally omitted several lines from
2 Sam 7:10-14 probably for reasons which are to serve the purpose and emphasis of the
commentator. For instance, he omits the phrase “he will build a house for my name”
(2 Sam 7:13) because “this goes against the main intent of the passage which is trying to
include comments on selected verses from Deut 33 and Num 24 (Exegesis at Qumran: 4QFlorilegium in
Its Jewish Context, JSOTSup, 29 [Sheffield: JSOT, 1985], 80-84). Cf. John Allegro, ed.. Discoveries in
the Judean Desert o f Jordan V: Qumran Cave 4 (Oxford: Clarendon, 1998); Yigael Yadin, "A Midrash
on 2 Sam vii and Ps. i-ii (4QFlorilegium),” IEJ 9 (1959): 95-98; John Stragnell, “Notes en marge du
volume V des Discoveries in the Judean Desert of Jordan,” RQ 29 (1970): 163-276; and Geza Vermes,
The Dead Sea Scrolls in English, 2nd ed. (New York: Penguin, 1975).
'Juel, 64. Juel principally follows the English translation from Brooke, Exegesis at Qumran, 91-
92, with emendations from Vermis, Dead Sea Scrolls in English.
2Juel, 65.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
318
suggest that the future house (sanctuary) is not to be made with human hands but to have
This commentator also excludes the phrase “who will come forth from your
body’' (2 Sam 7:12) in order to avoid the “delicate subject o f the origin of the messianic
kingly figure”2 which the Qumran texts typically avoid. Similarly, he omits the phrase
“when your days are fulfilled and you lie down with your father” perhaps because of “its
temporal content.”3 Over all, the commentator wanted to underscore the eschatological
The last comments on lines 10-13 o f fragment 1 of 4QFlor. that are the ones that
the “Branch o f David.” The kingly and Messianic designation “branch” comes from Jer
23:5; 33:15; Zech 3:8; and 6:12, which are usually treated as Messianic texts/
This text boldly speaks o f the Messiah it describes as God’s “son” even though
such imagery for the Messiah was generally avoided in later Targumic and rabbinic
traditions. Even though this document does not explain the title “Son of God” as
messianic, such usage is “surely conceivable.”5 First o f all the text is clearly royal.
^Brooke, 112.
3Ibid.
4Juel, 67. Juel notes such belief in the Qumran and among the Rabbis (Messiah and Temple: The
Trial o f Jesus in the Gospel o f Mark, SBL Dissertation Series, 31 [Missoula, MT: Scholars, 1977], 172-
182).
5Juel, 67.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
319
Second, “the placement of a midrash on Pss 1-2 immediately following the messianic
interpretation of 2 Sam 7:10-14 in 4QFlor lends greater probability to the suggestion that
‘the Son of God’ was understood as royal and messianic language in post-biblical Jewish
circles.”'
The other related title mentioned here is “the Interpreter of the Law.”2 This title
is not clarified here but is mentioned in the Damascus Document (CD), particularly CD
VI, 7 and CD VII, 15-19 with reference to Num 21:18; 24:17-18; Gen 49:10. This
On the whole, 2 Sam 7:4-22 sheds light on the understanding and identification
o f the “Seed” of the woman in Gen 3:15. The intertextual allusions are abundant and
give us leads to other texts both in the Old and New Testaments as seen below.
Isa 53
the Messiah. However, it underscores his triumph and success with a structural pattern
'Ibid., 68. Martin Hengel states that such designation is “not completely alien to Palestinian
Judaism” (The Son o f God: The Origin o f Christology and the History ofJewish-Hellenistic Religion,
trans. J. Bowden [Philadelphia: Fortress, 1976], 45).
2JueI, 68.
3Ibid., 68 passim. See Brooke, 197-205. Reference is made to Deut 33 and Num 24 also featured
in 4QF1or, fragments 5-11; 1QM, 4QpIsa* and 4QpPs*.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
320
Yahweh is the speaker, while the prophet Isaiah is his spokesman. The other
“Servant Songs” (Isa 42:1-4; 49:1-6; 50:4-9) are also related to this final one. This
Servant-Seed will experience both “royal exaltation and extreme degradation and
suffering.”2 This is “an individual Servant who represents the collective servant.”3
This passage is about the one and the same “covenantal Seed, the anointed One
of the Davidic house, called and assigned to be Yahweh’s Servant’'4 who suffered severe
“seed of Judah, o f Abraham, and of the woman (Gen 3:15), is consistently spoken o f as
the suffering one. He is to have his heel bruised; he is typified by sacrificial animals
The fact that this Servant was suffering vicariously is underscored by the sharp
distinction between “us” and “him” in vss. 4-6ff. He served as our substitute. He is
representative o f the collective humanity who have sinned. His “seed,” which he will
'Ibid. “He begins with the words: ‘Behold/See, my servant will have success’ (52:13), and
concludes with the Servant’s receiving a portion with the great ones (53:12) and with his soul’s being
satisfied with what his death and resurrection have accomplished (53:11). In other words, the agony of
this song is bracketed by the news of the Servant’s success and triumph” (ibid.). James Muilenburg
affirms: ’The poem as a whole is one of triumph” (“The Book of Isaiah, Chapter 40-66,” Interpreter's
Bible (New York: Abingdon, 1956], 5:615).
^bid., 629.
3Ibid.
'Groningen, 620.
5Ibid. See Isa 53:1-3; Pss 22:6 [MT 7]; 40:6-8 [MT 7-9]; 69:3 [MT 4]; Isa 49:4; and 50:6.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
321
later see, constitute “those whom He by His vicarious suffering and expiatory sacrifice
has redeemed from guilt and the power of their sins.”1 King David himself spoke of his
own suffering in Pss 22:1-2 [MT 2-3]; 41:5-9 [MT 6-10]; and 69:4 [MT 5]. The idea of
David and his royal descendants are fondly called Yahweh’s servants, or “my
servant.” Though several prophets like Moses also answered “servant,” including even
the Persian Cyrus, they were “servants” only as far as they prefigured the Messiah. These
were Yahweh’s agents who prepared for, pointed to, or prophesied about the coming
Groningen observed that Isaiah had the house o f David in view in his reference
to the Persian king, Cyrus, who was called to be God’s agent because o f the sin and
M ure o f the Davidic house resulting in the suffering o f the descendants o f David (Isa
44:28; 45:1). Isaiah here portrays the royal suffering Servant as taking “upon himself the
As long as this connection of the Davidic house with this suffering Servant is
retained, it becomes easy to see how his identity connects back to the seed being traced
from Gen 3:15. The suffering Servant is also the Seed o f the woman, o f Abraham, of
'Edward J. Young, The Book o f Isaiah (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1978), 3:313.
Hjroningen, 646.
'Scholars who identify the servant as a ‘‘royal servant," linking him with the traditional
Messianic interpretation involving the promised offspring of King David include, among others: W. A. M.
Beuken, “MiSpat'. The First Servant Song and Its Canonical Context,” FT22 (1972): 1-30, esp. 2-4; R. J.
Clifford, "Isaiah 40-66,” Harper's Bible Commentary, ed. J. L. May (San Francisco: Harper & Row,
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
322
One other aspect that connects the suffering Servant with Gen 3: IS is the fact
that the suffering and enmity upon the Servant are God-initiated. The Servant is
vicariously smitten and stricken o f God, though sinless. Isa 53:4-5 uses passive verbs:
God is said to be responsible for these actions only as far as God divinely
instituted the enmity culminating in the fatal clash between the Seed and Satan (Gen
1988), 575; J. A. Motyer, The Prophecy o f Isaiah (Downers Grove, IL: Inter-Varsity, 1993), 13, n. 1; D.
H. Odendaal, The Eschatological Expectation o f Isaiah 40-66 with Special Reference to Israel and the
Nations (Nutley, NJ: Presbyterian and Reformed, 1970), 129-135; Harold Henry Rowley, The Servant o f
the Lord and Other Essays on the Old Testament (London: Lutterworth, 1952), 59-88; P. D. Wegner, An
Examination o f Kingship and Messianic Expectation in Isaiah I-35 (Lewiston, NY: Mellen, 1992), and
Young, The Book o f Isaiah, 3:110, n. 5.
I reject other attempts at identifying the Servant as inconsistent and insufficient, in view of
scriptural parallels that support his positive link with the Davidic house. Some scholars take the servant
figure as a collective referent to “corporate Israel”whether the whole nation of Israel, an ideal Israel, or a
faithful remnant Israel: e.g., K. Jeppesen, “Mother Zion, Father Servant: A Reading of Isaiah 49-55,” in
O f Prophets ’ Visions and the Wisdom o f Sages: Essays in Honour o f R. Norman Whybray on His
Seventieth Birthday, ed. H. A. McKay and D. J. A. Clines, JSOTS 162 (Sheffield: Sheffield, 1993), 109-
125; J. Lindblom, The Servant Songs in Deutero-lsaiah: A New Attempt to Solve an Old Problem (Lund:
C. W. K. Gleerup, 1951), 46-51, 102-4; Muilenburg, “The Book of Isaiah, Chapter 40-66,” 5:406-414; J.
E. Rembaum, “The Development of a Jewish Exegetical Tradition Regarding Isaiah 53,” HTR 75 (1982):
239-311; N. H. Snaith, “Isaiah 40-66: A Study of the Teaching of Second Isaiah and Its Consequences,”
in Studies on the Second Peat o f the Book o f Isaiah, VTS 14 (Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1977) 135-264; and L. E.
Wilshire, “The Servant-City: A New Interpretation of the ‘Servant of the Lord’ in the Servant Songs of
Deutero-lsaiah,” JBL 94 (1975): 356-367. Other scholars identify the servant as “A Prophetic Servant,”
the Deutero-lsaiah himself: e.g., J. Begrich, Studien zu Deuterojesaja, BWANT 4/25 (Stuttgart:
Kohlhammer, 1938); K. Elliger, Deuterojesaja in seinem Verhdltnis zu Tritojesaja, BWANT 63
(Stuttgart: Kohlhammer, 1933); idem, Deuterojesaja. L Teilband: Jesaja 40,1-45,7 (Neukirchen-Vluyn:
Neukirchener, 1978), 198-221; and R. N. Whybray, Isaiah 40-66 (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1975), 71,
171-183.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
323
3:15). God appointed that both will “crush” each other, but the Seed will have the upper
hand because he is crushed at the heel, as opposed to the head o f Satan yielding Satan
utter defeat.
The MT uses “He” for the servant in vs. 10 as can be seen in the third-person
masculine singular verbal suffices, and also the third-person masculine singular suffix
“his” for soul of the servant. However, the LXX changes to second-person singular but
between Isa 53:4ff. and Lev 5:6-8. He then correctly notes the strong intertextual links
between the promise to the servant for offering the sin-offering (Isa 53:10-11) and “the
Lord's promise to Abraham in the LXX o f Gen 22:17-18 that he will multiply his seed
and bless all the nations in his seed in response to his near offering his son.”2
Some linkage is also observable between Abraham’s Seed inheriting the cities of
his enemies (Gen 22:17) and the Servant inheriting many (Isa 53:12). All the above lead
to the conclusion that the Seed of the woman of Gen 3:15 is finally identified as the
'Eugene Robert Ekblad, Jr., Isaiah's Servant Poems According to the Septuagint: An Exegetical
and Theological Study, Contributions to Biblical Exegesis and Theology, 23 (Leuven: Peeters, 1999), 246.
Ekblad notes how the LXX made some word selections different from the MT in verses like Isa 53:4, 6, in
order to “avoid implicating God in the oppression” of the Servant (ibid.). The theological perspective of
the LXX translators) “likely influenced their word choice. Rather than reinforcing an image of God as
one who delights in crushing his servant and people, even if it were a means to some greater end-----
According to the LXX the Lord is disassociated from the persecutors. The Lord is not implicated as
perpetrator of wrongdoing against the persecuted servant, whether that be an individual or the community.
Rather, in the Lord’s desire is to restore his servant, purifying him of the plague” (ibid., 217). He sees the
LXX as emphasizing the solidarity between the Servant and His people.
Tbid., 247. “While this link is also present in the MT, the servant there is identified with
Abraham as the one who will see a descendant” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
324
suffering but victorious Messianic Servant of Isa S3. This suffering comes in spite of the
Ps 2
content of Ps 2 has been described as a royal psalm about the “enthronement” ceremony
of a Judean king.3 In this case, it reflects the ancient practice of ritually adopting the new
king as “son” o f the deity3 as can be seen in vs. 7: “You are my son, this day have I
begotten you.” This bears some resemblance with the Davidic covenant o f 2 Sam 7:14,
and therefore, indirectly echoes the premier Seed o f the woman being traced from Gen
3:15.
It also seems to have been composed during David's time when he was being
challenged by surrounding enemy nations.4 In this respect, this psalm pictures enemies
rising in rebellion and hostility against God and his Anointed One (Ps 2:1-3). This seems
^ f . Hermann Gunkel, Einleitung in die Psalmen, 4th ed. (Gdttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht,
I98S), S. Joachim Schaper refers to a comparatively clear “messianic passage in I Enoch 51,3 where the
Chosen One, seated on his throne, teaches wisdom on the day of Judgment. The Messiah’s teaching of
the ’secrets of wisdom’ is considered as one of the central features of eschatological fulfillment”
(Eschatology in the Greek Psalter [TQbingen: Mohr, 1995], 74). Schaper concludes that “the imagery of
Psalm 2 LXX was conceived of as messianic” (ibid., 76).
3Ishida discusses the use of an adoption metaphor for kingship in the Old Testament and the
Ancient Near East. An Israelite king was ritually “adopted” by God upon assumption to the throne (Royal
Dynasties, 108-9). McCarter labels Pss 2:7-8; 89:27-28 [MT 26-27] as the evidence that God ritually
adopted David as His son upon David’s enthronement (207).
’Kaiser believes that David was the author of both Pss 1-2, as a “double introduction to the whole
Psalter” (Messiah in the Old Testament, 96-97).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
325
to typify the enmity divinely instituted in Gen 3:15 between the seed of the woman and
the seed o f Satan. The two moral classes o f the human race are involved. This battle is
climaxed with God delivering the victory to Himself and His son (Ps 2:8-9). The ultimate
victory o f the representative Seed o f the woman is again assured and explained
eschatologically.
his deliverance from his enemies. At the very end of this series o f thanksgiving, David
exclaims in vs. 50 (Heb 51): “Great deliverance He gives to His king, and shows mercy to
t •
im T ^: i i n* t' ?: irron*?
• : •
t o•.*nv
There is an obvious parallelism between the first and second lines o f this verse.
Moreover, more parallelism is featured in the second part between nttfO , “Messiah,”
and 111, “David,” and JHT “Seed” all o f which are parallel to “King” in the first
If this suggested parallelism is true, one may conclude that the “Seed” is the
“Messiah” because they appear to be parallel to each other. Of the thirty-seven OT uses
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
326
o f ITOT2 “Messiah,”1and the 226 OT uses o f the noun J71T “Seed,”2 these two
im p o rtan t words are used together here only in Ps 18:50 (Heb. 51) and 2 Sam 22:51.
Both Ps 18: 50 (Heb. 51) and 2 Sam 22:51 are identical verses with verbatim expressions
The link of this verse with 2 Sam 7:12-13 makes it abundantly clear that the Seed
o f Gen 3:15 is also the Messiah promised for our salvation. This Seed is still portrayed as
Ps 68
The Hebrew text o f Ps 68 has been fraught with many problems with the
resulting divergence in its interpretations.3 The MT names David as its author, being the
psalm sung upon the return o f the Israelite army from battle, suggested to be after his
victory over the Syro-Ammonite coalition (2 Sam 10). Also, it “undoubtedly was sung at
'The 37 occurrences of the word ITdiS “Messiah” include: Lev 4:3, S, 16; 6:15; 1 Sam 2:10,35;
12:3,5; 16:6; 24:7, 11; 26:9, 11, 16,23; 2 Sam 1:14, 16; 2 Sam 19:22; 22:51; 23:1; 1 Chr 16:22; 2 Chr
6:42; Pss 2:2; 18:51; 20:7; 28:8; 84:10; 89:39,52; 105:15; 132:10, 17; Isa 45:1; Lam 4:20; Dan 9:25,26;
and Hab 3:13.
'See comments in A. A. Anderson, The Book o f the Psalm, NCBC, 1:481; John Baigent and
Leslie C. Allen, “The Psalms,” The International Bible Commentary, ed. F. F. Bruce (Grand Rapids:
Zondervan, 1986), 645; Leupold Sabourin, The Psalm (New York: Alba, 1974), 327-328; and Arthur
Weiser, The Psalm, trans. Herbert Hartwell, OTL (Philadelphia: Westminster, 1962), 481. Marvin E.
Tate mentions that this psalm has been variously tagged “an eschatological hymn,” “a victory song,” “a
processional hymn,” and “liturgy” (Psalm 51-100, WBC, 20 [Dallas: Word, 1990], 173).
'Groningen, 371. Ernst Hengstenberg maintains that David authored this Psalm in celebration of
the return of the ark to Mount Zion after it had been captured (Commentary on the Psalm, trans. John T.
Leith [Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1870], 2:335-336). However, Michael D. Goulder believes that it is the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
327
the interplay o f the “foot” and the “head” in Ps 68:21-23 [MT 22-24]. Interestingly, the
interplay o f the head and the foot in Gen 3:15 is alluded to in Ps 68:21-23 [MT 22-24]
through an inclusio. The “head” is found in the introduction o f this section (Ps 68:21
[MT 22]), while the “foot” is found in the conclusion o f this section (Ps 68:23 [MT 24]).
In Ps 68:21,23 [MT 22,24] God seems to crush His enemies' heads with the
foot. In Gen 3:15, the enemy seems to be crushed on its head by the foot of the Seed,
causing a reciprocal attack on the heel of the Seed. This inseparably binds these two
texts together.
In Ps 68:1, the psalmist wishes that “God would arise, his enemies be scattered.”
This echoes the championing o f the cause o f God's followers against their enemies in the
here and now and in the end times.1 In vs. 21 [MT 22], it is stated that “God shall smash
the head o f his enemies, and the hairy scalp of those who walk in trespasses.”2 Both
passages spell total ultimate victory for God and His people while the wicked are shamed
and destroyed.
God Himself carries out this victorious act over the enemies instead of delegating
“victory hymn of the royalists alter the defeat of Absalom’s rebellion at Zalmon in the forest of Ephraim.
It describes the flight of the kings, and the expropriation or execution of the rebels God’s promise
that David would return from Bashan (the East Bank) is seen as fulfilled” (The Prayers o f David [Psalm
51-72]: Studies in the Psalter, II, JSOTSup 102 [Sheffield: Sheffield, 1990], 191).
'Kaiser, Messiah in the Old Testament, 131.1 accept his translation as more faithful to the
Hebrew text
2Goulder suggests: “The scalp is hairy se'fr, because the rebels also grew their hair long to
consecrate themselves for battle; and the long hair makes them look like demons (sair, a hairy one), and
so suited to extermination for the public good” (206). Tate also includes a possible hint of a demonic
reference (181-182).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
328
it to some other. The victory is God-given, full and final. These verses therefore show a
thematic link with the promises about the Seed of the woman who will “crush the head of
the serpent” (Gen 3:15), the Seed o f Abraham who will prevail over his enemies (Gen
In vs. 22, “God said he would bring David back from Mahanaim in Bashan; no
doubt the royal prophets felt that such a prediction was a corollary of his more general
covenant to David in 2 Sam 7. He would bring him back from the deep places of the
sea.”1 This is another link with the rest o f the Messianic prophecies in 2 Sam 7 which
The main Messianic import o f the Psalm comes from vs. 18, which depicts a
divine person ascending to heaven, taking captives, and receiving and giving gifts. This
may reflect the Messiah’s advent, ascension, and endowing o f His people with gifts which
will enable them to share in His victory over the enemy now and in the final day.2
Ps 72
king of Israel on the occasion o f his enthronement and/or “a reconstructed annual festival
o f the king’s enthronement in Israel.”3 Its “poetic imagery and intertextuality as part o f
'Goulder, 206.
3Heim, “The Perfect King of Psalm 72: An Intertextual Enquiry,” 223. “In the NT, Christ was
identified as the (partial) fulfillment of the psalm’s intercessions and benedictions” (ibid., 224). See Matt
21:4-5; John 12:15-16. Enthronement association of this Psalm is found in Gunkel, 140-171; R. E.
Murphy, A Study o f Psalm 72 (71) (Washington, DC: Catholic University of America Press, 1948);
Weiser, 502; and Tate, 222.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
329
fact Kaiser considers it a “direct messianic prediction because it uses the future tense
throughout and not even Solomon in all his glory could have fulfilled what is said here.”2
This Psalm is self-identified as one of the prayers o f David (vs. 20). It was
specifically “for Solomon” (vs. 1), i.e., for the enthronement o f Solomon, the son o f
David.3 It echoes Nathan's dynastic promise in 2 Sam 7:1-17 and David’s responses in
king’s reign.”4 The verb forms in vss. 2-7 and 9-11 “express future events contingent on
^Kaiser, Messiah in the OT, 133-134. Solomon’s reign merely supplies “the imagery, language,
and line of descent through which the peaceful and prosperous reign is to come” (ibid., 134). Ps 72 has
been treated as Messianic by many scholars like Fishbane, Biblical Interpretation in Ancient Israel, 501-
502; Heim, 223-248; K. Larkin, The Eschatology o f Second Zechariah (Kampen: Pharos, 1994), 75-76;
R. Mason, The Books ofHaggai, Zechariah and Malachi (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press,
1977), 89-90; C. L. Meyers and E. M. Meyers, Zechariah 9-14 (New York: Doubleday, 1993), 172-173;
D. L. Petersen, Zechariah 9-14 and Malachi (London: SCM, 1995), 59-60; Schaper, 26-30,72-126, 138-
164, 174-176; to mention but a few.
However, some wrongly contend that Ps 72, like other royal psalms, was originally only intended
for the reigning kings in Israel, but were later reinvented with Messianic interpretation to express the
expectation of a new and different future king after the termination of the Israelite monarchy. They argue
that this was done because the political reality of the monarchy’s failure did not correlate with Nathan’s
Oracle in 2 Sam 7:1-17, which promised the unlimited continuity of the Davidic dynasty. See Ronald E.
Clements, “The Messianic Hope in the Old Testament,” JSOT43 (1989): 3-19; and Claus Westermann,
The Living Psalms (Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1989), 56-59. In contrast, there are no textual signs of
later additions. Also, the echoes of earlier Messianic promises link this psalm properly with the Messiah.
In fact. Heim demonstrates its intricate structural chiasmus which rather points to its unity (228).
3See N. FQglister, “Die Verwendung und das Versttndnis der psalmen und des Psalters um die
Zeitenwende,” in Beitrage sur Psalmenforschung, ed. J. Schreiner, Forschung zur Bibel 60 (WQrzburg:
Echter, 1988), 374; Goulder, 240-246; and Heim, 235. Weiser sees that the LXX’s use of tiq
M m i u v for Solomon in vs. 1 supports Davidic authorship (502).
4Heim, 226. Cf. Bruce K. Waltke and Michael O’Connor, An Introduction to Biblical Hebrew
Syntax (Winona Lake: Eisenbrauns, 1990), 506-512. More discussions on its structure can be found in
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
330
the fulfillment o f the requests in w . 1 and 8.”1 Vs. 1 requests the Lord to grant the king
perpetuity, occasioned by the positive results of his righteous reign outlined in vss. 2-7.
Vss. 9-11 anticipate the result of this to be that everybody will fear and obey him and
there will be peace. Vss. 15-17 contain a third request for the king’s long life,
I am convinced that only the Messiah could fit into the superlative descriptions
and ideals stipulated in this Psalm, none else, whether in the Davidic dynasty or
peace as he receives the homage o f the nations of the world.”2 With this setting
ascertained, it is striking to see how the Psalm strictly connects to the earlier revelations
about the Special Seed of the woman (Gen 3:15), also the Seed o f Abraham (Gen 12:1-3,
This echos the Edenic pronouncement that the serpent would eat dust: S2KF1 "1231
“And dust shall you eat” (Gen 3:14). The word 1 2 3 “dust” occurs in both places.
Dust is to become an object o f consumption in both cases. This definitely connects with
the context o f the Messianic promise o f the special Seed o f the woman (Gen 3:15).
Heim, 226-229; J. S. Kselman, “Psalm 72: Some Observations on Structure,” Bulletin o f the American
Schools o f Oriental Research 220 (1973): 77-81; and Patrick W. Skefaan, “Strophic Structure in Psalm
72,” Biblica 40, no. 2 (1959): 302-308.
'Heim, 226.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
331
nations shall be blessed in him and they shall call him blessed.” The first part of this verse
is clearly based on the Abrahamic promise o f Gen 12:2 where God had promised
The second part o f Ps 72:17 parallels Gen 12:2-3; 22:18 and 26:4 promising that
in Abraham and Isaac and their seeds shall all nations be blessed. It is very striking that
David uses the same verb form Hithpael o f “to bless" to avoid any doubt that he is
connecting with the earlier related blessing which began with the patriarchs (used only
twice: Gen 22:18 and 26:4-5). The Niphal verb form of “to bless” is also used three
times: Gen 12:3; 18:18; and 28:14, always in connection with the same blessing formula.
Definitely, “the closest parallel to the patriarchal blessing is found in Psalm 72.”'
identification of the Seed o f the woman. It is the same promise and not another that was
repeated and expanded to the patriarchs. “It has not changed in its basic thrust”2 when it
came into effect in David and Solomon’s day. “Its focus and center is on the Anointed
One, the Messiah, who will come in the line o f Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, Judah, and David;
'Mattson, 1%, see n. 28. See also Craig A. Blaising and Darrell L. Rock, Progressive
Dispensationalism (Wheaton, IL: Victor, 1993), 168; Robert A. Payne, “The ‘Seed,’ the Spirit, and the
Blessing of Abraham,” BSac 152 (1995): 213; and Schaper, 93-60. Anderson also suggests that “the
intention may have been to stress the fact that the divine promise to the patriarch has been fulfilled in the
house of David” (526).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
332
but its benefits are to be made available to all the families o f the earth.”1 This is the
gospel “with its call for all to believe in God's Man o f Promise who is to come.”2
Ps 89
This Psalm was written by Ethan, a major player in the worship program of
Solomon’s temple (1 Chr 15:17, 19). It abundantly reflects the terminology of 2 Sam 7
(=1 Chr 17:1-15).3 The tone of this Psalm shows that it was composed at an “unstable
time for the Davidic house and the oracle o f Nathan”4 concerning its perpetuity.
This supplication Psalm is based on the promises made to David in 2 Sam 7:4-
16. The Psalm recollects many aspects o f the Davidic covenant, such as divine assistance
(vs. 21), victory over enemies (vss. 22-24), sonship (vss. 24,26,28), universality (vss.
25, 27), and perpetuity (vss. 29-37). These connections make this Psalm Messianic.5
special Seed o f the woman (Gen 3:15), whose line of descent has been traced through
Abraham to Judah, and finally to David (2 Sam 7:12-16). The word “seed” is repeated in
'Ibid.
2Ibid.
^Several scholars accept the relationship among Ps 89; 2 Sam 7; and 1 Chr 17:1-15, namely:
Groningen, 310; F. W. Grosheide, De Psalmen (Kampen: Kok, 1955); Heim, 240; S. R. Hirsch, The
Psalms (New York: Feldham, 1966); Ishida, 82; Derek Kidner, Psalms 73-150 (London: Inter-Varsity,
1975); J. Ridderbos, De Psalmen (Kampen: Kok, 1958); Nahum M. Sama, “Psalm 89: A Study in Inner
Biblical Exegesis,” Brandeis University (P. W. Lown Instil.) Studies and Texts I (1963): 29-46; and
Matitiahu Tsevat, The Meaning o f the Book ofJob and Other Biblical Studies: Essays on the Literature
and Religion o f the Hebrew Bible (New York: Ktav, 1980), 102.
5Ibi<L, 85-87.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
333
Ps 110
and specific messianic psalm”2 because no human being perfectly fits into every
description found in it. It refers directly only to the future ideal king, the Messiah. David
must have received this description by revelation based upon his knowledge of Messianic
‘See GKC, 419; Kidner, Psalms 73-150,2:391; Waitke and O’Conner, 207, n. 70; and Robert D.
Wilson, “The Headings of the Psalms,” Princeton Theological Review 24 (1926): 32.
’Franz Delitzsch, Biblical Commentary on Psalms (1871; reprint. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans,
1949), 3:186 passim. See Hasel C. Bullock, An Introduction to the Old Testament Poetic Books (Chicago:
Moody, 1979), 141-142; Hengstenberg, Commentary on the Psalms, 3:313-331; Kaiser, Messiah in the
OT, 96; Kidner, Psalms 73-150,391-3%; Dwight Dongwan Kim, “Is Christ Sining on the Davidic
Throne? Peter’s Use of Psalm 110:1 in His Pentecost Speech in Acts 2” (Th.D. dissertation, Dallas
Theological Seminary, 1993), 43-46; Edward J. Kissane, The Book o f Psalms (Westminster: Newman,
1954); J. B. Payne, Encyclopedia o f Biblical Prophecy (New York: Harper and Row, 1973), 259-260; J. J.
Stewart Perowne, The Book o f Psalms (Reprint; Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1976), 2:297 passim; and
Allen Ross, “Psalms,” Bible Knowledge Commentary, ed. John F. Walvoord and Roy B. Zuck, Old
Testament ed. (Wheaton, IL: Victor, 1985), 789-790.
I reject the Cultic interpretation: e.g., Sigmond Mowinckei, The Psalms in Israel's Worship (New
York: Abingdon, 1%7), 1:48; Historical interpretation: e.g., F. L. Horton, The Melchizedek Tradition: A
Critical Examination o f the Sources to the Fifth Century A.D. and in the Epistle to the Hebrews
(Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1976), 34; and the Typological-Prophetic interpretation which
shares the application with Solomon and the ultimate Messianic reign on the Davidic throne: e.g., Darrell
L. Bock, Proclamationfrom Prophecy and Pattern: Lucan Old Testament Christology, JSNTSup Series
12 (Sheffield: JSOT, 1987), 128-130.
>Kim, 43-46. Kim cites the following reasons: (1) The use of the formulaic phrase rnrP
0K3 which is common only in the prophetic books, used only here in the Psalms, always denotes “an
oracle of God.” Usually used at the end of the message, its appearance at the beginning of Ps 110, must
be emphatic. Moreover, David was also a prophet (2) King David could not have addressed any of his
descendants as “my lord.” “It is almost inconceivable in the oriental mind for a father to call his son ’my
lord’” (ibid., 45). (3) No Davidic king was both an eternal priest and king simultaneously like
Melchizedek, a description reserved only for the Messiah. (4) “Jewish tradition supports the messianic
interpretation of this Psalm” (ibid., 46).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
334
The three distinct persons involved in this psalm are “Yahweh, the speaker;
David, the recipient o f the message; and one whom David calls ‘my Lord.'”' The central
figure who is being described is the sovereign entity that David calls “my Lord.” The
descriptions of this central figure are so reminiscent of earlier identifications of the Seed
First, his enemies are to be totally subdued and vanquished. In vs. 1, he is to sit
at the right hand of Yahweh until “I make your enemies a footstool” In vs. 2, he “rules
in the midst of your enemies.” In vs. 5, “he shall strike through (|TtQ) kings,” employing
a verb related in meaning to “to bruise” used in Gen 3:15. Furthermore, the very
words in Ps 110:1: “Till I make your enemies” are a verbal echo of the
first part o f Gen 3:15: rPCK nZPljn “I will put enmity.” The combination of the verb
Both texts also employ the imagery of the enemy and foot to express the same
idea o f victory over the enemy. In Ps 110:1, the enemies are made unto a footstool. In
Gen 3:15, the enemy seems to be crushed on its head by the foot of the Seed, causing a
reciprocal attack on the heel o f the Seed. Interestingly, the interplay o f the head and the
foot in Gen 3:15 is alluded to in Ps 110 through an inclusio. The “feet” is found in the
introduction (Ps 110:1), while the “head” is found in the conclusion (Ps 110:6-7). This
In vs. 6, “he shall judge” and “he shall wound the heads” (OKI |T[?2) o f the
kings of all the nations in the earth. This is a similar construction to the expression in
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
335
Gen 3:15c “he shall fatally bruise your head” (OK"l All these strongly echo
Gen 3:15 where the special singular Seed o f the woman “shall fatally bruise the head” of
Satan, his arch-enemy. The further expatiations in Gen 12:1-3; 22:17; 24:60; 49:8-9;
Num 24:16-19; Ps 72:2,9-11, and others, underscore the fact that this Child of promise
Second, vs. 2 mentions that the “scepter is given to him.” This is a vivid allusion
to the promise made to Judah (Gen 49:10) that the scepter shall never depart from Judah
“until it was given to the one to whom it belonged. That scepter, with the authority it
symbolized, now appears in Psalm 110.”‘ The Seed o f the woman as a representative
figure is definitely a ruler also. It has been shown above that this image remains in the
priesthood like the priest-king of ancient Jerusalem, Melchizedek. This echo is latent in
Gen 3:15 also. The Seed of the woman gives himself sacrificially for his people as he
faced a lethal battle with Satan vicariously. He was not only the priest but also the
sacrificial lamb at the same time. Only the Messiah fits all these descriptions perfectly.
and Eve were pre-Fail priests. Consequently, one may justifiably consider the special
Seed promised to Adam and Eve in Gen 3:15 as qualified to be a supreme Priest, in the
light o f the vicarious and heroic actions that he was to take upon Himself! I find this
view attractive and logical, without extending and generalizing this priesthood in order to
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
336
include all humanity according to natural birth.1 This completes the picture o f the Seed
Thematic and Terminological Links Between the Book o f Job and Gen 1-3
The book o f Job is an integral part of the canon. Interestingly, just as the
opening chapters o f the canon (Gen 1-3) contain several key motifs and themes that run
through the Scriptures, the book of Job re-echoes some o f these same themes. Job 1-2 is
the prologue of Job, like Gen 1-3 constitutes the prologue of Genesis or the whole Bible.
“The correlations between the texts are not accidental but instead result from a conscious
reflections are probably meant to echo directly Gen 3:19 or a similar story, and meted as
the basis for a doctrine o f perpetual plagues for earthbom humans.”4 Meier boldly
'It is not surprising that the Apostle Peter recognizes this fact as obvious in 1 Pet 2:9.
2Sam Meier, “Job 1-2: A Reflection of Genesis 1-3,” IT 39 (1989): 183. There is a relationship
of wisdom to creation tradition. See Donn F. Morgan, Wisdom in the Old Testament Tradition (Atlanta,
GA: John Knox, 1981), 46-47,112-114, for discussion and bibliography.
The Mosaic authorship of the books of Job and Genesis has been suggested by Baba Bathra 14b-
lSa recorded by Seder Nezikin, The Babylonian Talmud, trans. into English with notes, glossary and
indices by Rabbi Dr. I. Epstein (London: Soncino, 193S), 71-74. See also The Talmud o f Babylonia: An
American Translation, vol. 22A, Tractate Baba Bathra Chapters 1-2, trans. Jacob Neusner (Atlanta, GA:
Scholars, 1992), 70-72. Cf. Archer, A Survey o f Old Testament Introduction, 464. The chronological
link of these two books calls for contextual linkage discussion.
’George E. Mendenhall, “The Shady Side of Wisdom: The Date and Purpose of Genesis 3,” in A
Light Unto My Path: Old Testament Studies in Honor o f Jacob M. Myers, ed. Howard N. Bream, Ralph
D. Heim, and Carey A. Moore, Gettysburg Theological Studies, 4 (Philadelphia: Temple University Press,
1974), 38.
‘Norman C. Habel, The Book o f Job: A Commentary, OTL (Philadelphia: Westminster, 1985),
131-132. He sees a direct allusion to Gen 3:17-19 in Job 5:3-7 because they share the following terms:
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
337
asserts that Job is the “second Adam” who “does not succumb to the temptation.”1
Among many other motifs that can be noted between Job and Gen 1-3, the
following are mentioned because o f their direct interference with Gen 3:15:
Job's name is given in Job 1:1 and his unique character as “blameless and
upright, one who feared God, and turned away from evil” (see also 1:8 and 2:3). Like
Adam, Job was a unique human being who was about to be confronted with a test from
God. Therefore, Job echoes the perfect condition o f righteousness, obedience, and
sinlessness o f the first Adam in the garden o f Eden.2 It is the reverse o f Adam's righteous
The imperative command to be fruitful and multiply given in Gen 1:22, 28, and
addressed to both man and animals, is fulfilled in Job’s life in Job 1:2-3, 10. God blessed
Job's work like He blessed everything in Gen 1:22, 28.3 This same command is reflected
in the promise o f continuity in the human generation that is included in the woman’s seed
o f Gen 3:15.
rras, tor, D1K. W. Michel labels Job 5:22-23 as a “reversal of Gen 3:17-19” {Job in the Light o f
Northwest Semitic, vol. I, Biblica et Orientalia 42 [Rome: Biblical Institute, 1987], 128-129). Cf. David
J. A. Clines, Job 1-20, WBC, 17(Dallas: Word, 1989), 141; and Thomas P. McCreesh, Biblical Sound
and Sense: Poetic Sound Patterns in Proverbs 10-29, JSOTSup, 128(Sheffield: Sheffield, 1991), 121.
'Meier, “Job 1-2: A Reflection of Genesis 1-3,” 183, 193. He sees this as the fact “which
motivates the entire prologue of Job and separates it from Gen, i-iii” (ibid., 183). He concludes: “The
verdict pronounced at Eden is reversible” (ibid., 193).
2Ibi<L, 186.
3Ibid. In Job 1:2-3, “The interplay of sevens and threes and three sums of ten marks the scenario
as dynamic perfection” (ibid.). Job fulfilled the imperative by exercising his “dominion over the animals,
for it is in his presence and as his property that the animals fulfill their role in multiplying” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
338
Satan demanded that God should touch Job’s “bone and his flesh” (2:5). On the
literal level, this means Job’s body would undergo significant pain. On another level, like
Just as Adam’s wife was instrumental to his temptation that brought the curse of
death (Gen 3:6-7), also Job’s wife counseled him to “curse God and die” (Job 2:9).
However, Job does not succumb to the temptation like Adam did. Consequently, the
The Great Conflict set forth in Gen 3 is elaborated in the book of Job in a cosmic
setting. It engulfs the whole universe, the “sons o f God,” the inhabitants o f the unfallen
worlds. Similarly, the issue in Job is the character o f God. “Satan insinuates that God is
not trustworthy, that he is arbitrary, and unfair.”3 At the end, God attests that Job has
Just as Gen 3:15 appears at the peak o f the chiastic structure o f Gen 3, giving a
definite hint on the gospel and redemption promise, so also does Job 19:25-29 for the
'Ibid., 189. “Augustine already compared Job’s wife to Eve” (ibid., 190, n. 22). The expression
“bone and flesh” is used elsewhere to refer to relatives as in Gen 29:14 and Judg 9:2.
:Meier proposes: “Although Job is not Everyman, there is nevertheless an affirmation that the
Fall is not the final word on the human condition Everyman can be Job” (ibid., 193). David Clines
argues that Job’s plight is unique and different from every man (“False Naivety in the Prologue of Job,”
Hebrew Annual Review 9 [1985]: 134).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
339
whole of the book.1 Job refers to the coming of a divine Redeemer, Vindicator, and
Savior.
3. Eschatology.
All the events climax in the major reference to an eschatological resurrection and
judgment of the latter days (19:25). This is the final climax on earth which ends all the
evil and vindicates God and His true followers. God's plan of redemption moves toward
Seed echoes are abundant throughout the New Testament. In fact, every NT
verse that relates to Jesus Christ is a potential echo of the seed-motif from the Old
Testament. The OT promises made to Abraham (Gen 12-22) and David (2 Sam 7:4-16)
are applied to the Messiah in the NT. Jesus is identified as the “Son of man” (Matt 9:6;
26:2, 24; Heb 2:6-9), “son of Abraham” (Matt 1:1; Gal 3:16), “son of David”2 (Matt 1:1;
Mark 12:35-37; Acts 13:22-23; Rom 1:3-4; 15:12), and “Son o f God” (Matt 8:29; 14:33;
26:63).
'Ibid. Cf. Gordon Eugene Christo, “The Eschatological Judgment in Job 19:21-29: An
Exegetical Study” (Ph.D. dissertation, Andrews University, Berrien Springs, Michigan, 1992).
^That Jesus possesses a Davidic genealogy is defended by: Oscar Cullman, The Christology o f the
New Testament, trans. S. C. Guthrie and C. A. M. Hall (Philadelphia: Westminster, 1963), 128-130; L. R.
Fisher, “Can This Be the Son of God?” in Jesus and the Historian: Written in Honor o f Ernest Cadman
Colwell, ed. F. T. Trotter (Philadelphia: Westmister, 1968), 82-97; R. Fuller, The Foundations o f the New
Testament Christology (New York: Scribner, 1965), 111, 163; and Ferd Hahn, The Titles o f Jesus in
Christology, trans. H. Knight and G. Ogg (London: Lutterworth, 1969), 240-241.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
340
transcends physical relation to include spiritual descendants. This reflects the collective
aspect o f the Seed of the woman of Gen 3:15 which has been earlier mentioned above as
delineated according to “moral quality.” Hence, the NT uses the “seed of Abraham” not
in the restricted sense of the generic natural-born Israelites but “includes all who possess
the same kind of faith as the patriarch. NT believers are represented as the true seed of
Abraham (Gal 3:29).” This also transcends the “material prosperity of the nation to
include the ultimate spiritual blessing of all who believe, whether Jew or Gentile (Rom
4:16ff).”‘
The directly Messianic Davidic psalm of Ps 110 is echoed in Matt 22:41-46 and
Heb 5:5-11 and 7:11-27. These carry on the seed echoes, giving further explanation to
his identity and activities. Peter’s Pentecost sermon of Acts 2:29-33 and Paul’s Antioch
(Pisidia) sermon of Acts 13:31-37 reflect Pss 16, 89, and 132, and God’s oath to David
concerning his posterity. “Both Peter and Paul see in these broader contexts evidence
that David himself understood the predictive, Messianic character of God’s oath and
promise to him”2
places in Luke-Acts. Angel Gabriel’s words to Mary in Luke 1:30-32 do this as they
echo Nathan’s prophecy to David in 2 Sam 7:I2-16.3 Other such correlations are present
:Davidson, “New Testament Use of the Old Testament,” 27. See also, Walter Kaiser, Jr., The
Uses o f the Old Testament in the New (Chicago: Moody, 1985); and Hans LaRondelle, Deliverance in the
Psalms (Berrien Springs, MI: First Impressions, 1983).
3See Otto Betz, What Do We Know about Jesus? (London: SCM, 1968), 101-102; idem, “The
Kerygma of Luke,” Interpretation 22 (1968): 141-142; and Evald Ldvestam, Son and Saviour: A Study o f
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
341
in Luke 1:51,55,69-73; Acts 3:25 and 13:23. The intention is clearly to connect the
promise of Seed to Abraham together with that made to David, and then to find “their
Angel Gabriel must have intended to appeal to the Abraham narrative in his
closing words to Mary (Luke 1:37) which echo Gen 18:14, “with God nothing shall be
impossible.”2 Similarly, the angel's mention of Jesus being called the “Son of the
Highest” as a Davidic king in Luke 1:32 echoes the “Seed of David motif of 2 Sam 7:12-
16.3
Furthermore, Luke 1:51 echoes Ps 89:10 in terms of the victory over enemies
given to the Seed while Luke 1:55, “and to his seed forever,” connects with the promise
to Abraham in Gen 17:7; 18:18; and 22:17. Also, Acts 3:25 alludes to Gen 12:3 and
22:18, saying “in your seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed.”
The speech of Stephen in Acts 7:2-53 (especially vss. 5,6, and 17) contains
numerous references to the promise of the seed to Abraham, at least seed in the collective
sense. Notably, vss. 45 and 46 seem to link the promises to Abraham and to David (2
Sam 7:12).4
Acts 13,32-37, With an Appendix: “Son o f God” in the Synoptic Gospels, Coniectanea Neotestamentica
18 (Copenhagen: Ejnar Munksgaard, 1961), 12-13.
'Max Wilcox, “The Promise of the ‘Seed’ in the New Testament and the Targumin,” Journalfor
the Study o f the New Testament 15 (1979): 12.
Tbid., 11.
"Wilcox, 13.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
342
Along with these and many other general references to “seed” in the NT, some
select NT passages call for more detailed attention because they employ identical
Rom 16:20a
o 6e 0€cx; tfjc ouvrpiijrei tov Zam vav uto toix; trofiac upGiu kv taxei
“And the God of peace shall bruise Satan under your feet shortly.”
Many scholars actually do not see any strong echo of Gen 3:15 in the NT. Some
allow Rom 16:20 as “one possible allusion to it The wording is not like the LXX
text of Gen 3:15, which uses teresei. The offspring implied here, if the statement reflects
Gen 3:15, would not be an individual but would be the totality of Christians.”2
However, Joseph Fitzmyer, among others, is very definite that Paul here alludes
'On the contrary, Claus Westermann, referring to NT's use/understanding of Gen 3:15 and Isa
7:14, rebuffs: “Plainly, such interpretation based on comparison of isolated texts brings a strong factor of
unreliability into the anempt to determine the Old Testament’s relation to the message about Christ. This
determination depends upon the interpretation of single statements without regard to their context” (The
Old Testament and Jesus Christ, trans. Omar Kaste [Minneapolis, MN: Augsburg, 1970], 11). I totally
oppose this view in the light of abundances of authentic connections between OT and NT, and the
demonstration that the NT does indeed respect the OT contexts of the passages it cites.
Tewis, “The Woman’s Seed,”303. “Paul’s statement, however, may also be influenced by Jesus’
statement about victory over serpents (Luke 10:19) and by the Biblical image of putting enemies under
feet (Josh 10:24; Heb 2:8)” (ibid.). Some scholars who allow far Rom 16:20 being a probable reference to
Gen 3:15 include James D. G. Dunn, Romans 9-16, WBC, 38b (Dallas: Word, 1988), 905. Douglas J.
Moo does not see enough closeness to Gen 3:15 or to the “alleged Jewish parallels to Gen 3:15: Jub.
23:29; T.Mos. 10:1; T. Levi 18:37; T. Sim. 6:22; and also the twelfth benediction in the Shemoneh Esreff
(The Epistle to the Romans, New International Commentary of the New Testament [Grand Rapids:
Eerdmans, 1996], 932). Cf. W. Kramer Schlier, Christ, Lord Son o f God, Studies in Biblical Theology,
50 (London: SCM, 1966), 449-450.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
343
to Gen 3:15. He sees Paul here interpreting the serpent of Genesis “as Satan, the
personification of all evil, disorder, dissension, and scandal in the community.”1 Paul
advocates that God will do away with “dangers that threaten the community.”2
The context of Rom 16:20 is about false teachers who are troubling and causing
divisions among the church (Rom 16:17-20). Paul thus “implies that the false teachers
are under the influence o f Satan, as in 2 Cor 11:14-15.”3 Paul’s promise of victory over
Satan, while including the Roman believers’ victory “over the false teachers of vss. 17-
19, is much broader, extending to the final eschatological victory of God’s people”4 over
Satan.
as victory of the enemy is assured here and now, the ultimate and final victory is reserved
until a later eschatological time when Satan and his followers are destroyed in the “lake
of fire.” In spite of the adverbial phrase ev tctxei which means “without delay,” “at
once” or “speedily,” this verse applies more to the future than the present.
'Joseph A. Fitzmyer, Romans: A New Translation with Introduction and Commentary, The
Anchor Bible (New York: Doubleday, 1993), 746. “The God of peace will soon crush. . . , ” rather than
following some Greek MSS (A, 365,630) as does KJV, for instance, which reads: “May the God of peace
crush. . . ” (ibid.).
:Ibid.
3Ibid., 746-747.
4Moo, 933. This is contrary to the erroneous view that Paul was looking for an immediate victory
over Satanic forces in history, as taught by A. Schmithals, Paul and the Gnostics (Nashville: Abingdon,
1972), 235; G. P. Wiles, Paul's Intercessory Prayers: The Significance o f the Intercessory Prayer
Passages in the Letters o f St. Paul, SNTSMS 24 (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1974), 95, and
others.
5Dunn, 905.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
344
Paul’s prediction that this would happen ev tax€t “quickly” should, therefore,
be understood in the context of the NT concept of imminence. “The parousia was always
imminent-its coming certain, its timing incalculable.”1 The next event in God’s plan for
this world is the second coming of Jesus Christ, and it could happen at any time in Paul’s
generation or ours!2
Indeed, Rom 16:20 must be referring to the collective seed in terms of the
believers in the Church. This brings to bear the second level of Gen 3:15 which includes
the collective seed of the woman at enmity with the collective seed of Satan. More than
this, Rom 16:20 underscores the representative and corporate aspect of the special Seed
of the woman engaged in the final battle with Satan in the last part o f Gen 3:15. The
victory is obtained by Jesus on behalf of all His followers and its effect engulfs them too.
Thus, Christ’s victory is the victory of His believers. They are one and the same in the
victory! This is the good news! In Christ we are victorious now and eschatologically.
'Moo, 822. Moo refers to Henry Alford, saying: “On the certainty o f the event, our faith is
grounded: by the uncertainty o f the time, our hope is stimulated, and our watchfulness aroused" (ibid.,
referring to Henry Alford, The Greek Testament, 4 vols. [1845-1860, reprint; Chicago: Moody, 1958]).
This general perspective is also found in A. L. Moore, The Parousia in the New Testament, Supplements
to Novum Testamentum, 13 (Leiden: Brill, 1966); and Herman Ridderbos, Paul: An Outline o f His
Theology, trans. John Richard De Witt (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1975), 487-497. On the related issue
of apocalyptic and imminence, see William R. Baird, “Pauline Eschatology in Hermeneutical
Perspective,” NTS 17 (1971): 314-327; J. Becker, Paul: Apostle to the Gentiles (Louisville:
Westminster/John Knox, 1993) 176-181; and I. H. Marshall, “Is Apocalyptic the Mother of Christian
Theology?” in Tradition and Interpretation in the New Testament: Essays in Honor o f E. Earl Ellisfor
His 60* Birthday, ed. Gerald Hawthorne and Otto Betz (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans. 1987), 33-42.
-Moo, 822.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
345
Christocentric. “Paul read Scripture as a coded message about Jesus Christ, whose
coining was promised by the Law and the Prophets, whose death and resurrection
The general context including Gal 3:1-29 shows that Paul's preoccupation here
is with proving that “the gift o f God's Spirit, not Torah, is the fulfillment of the solemn
promise God made to Abraham.”3 Paul’s intention is to finally show that all believers in
Christ through His Spirit become Abraham’s seed and heirs of the promise (vss. 26-29).
His first proof was the spiritual experiences of his audience whereby they were
changed and still sustained only by God’s spirit, rather than the Torah (vss. 1-5).
Second, the “blessing of Abraham” becomes the “promise of the Spirit” (vs. 14) mediated
covenant. “Thus the promise made to "the seed’ (emphatic singular with the definite
'Richard B. Hays, Echoes o f Scripture in Paul (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1989), 84.
Cf. Edward Earle Ellis, Paul’s Use o f the Old Testament (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1981), 115-6; and
Richard N. Longenecker, Biblical Exegesis in the Apostolic Period (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1974),
104-5, 205-9.
2Hays, 121.
Tbid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
346
By using the emphatic singular seed with the definite article tcjj oirepiiati “the
seed” (twice in vs. 16) and to oiT€p|ia “the seed” (vs. 19), Paul intends to emphasize
that ‘the Abrahamic blessing (= promise) is realized in and mediated solely through
Christ.”1 Linking these with vs. 29, Paul wants us to know that it is “only through faith
in ‘the seed’ that others may become ‘seed’ of Abraham.” While vss. 16 and 19 insist on
Christ being “the sole heir to the Abrahamic promise,” vs. 29 establishes that Christ has
become “the sole mediator of the promise” enclosing all who choose faith in Christ.2
meticulously in the OT about the seed. Paul's insistence on the grammatically singular
Seed in Gal 3:16, 19 faithfully follows the identical grammatically singular Seed of Gen
3:15 (the Seed of the woman), Gen 13:15; 22:17-18; 24:7,60 (Seed of Abraham), and
‘Ibid.
2Ibid., 336. See also F. F. Bruce, The Epistle to the Galatians, New International Greek
Testament Commentary (Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1982), 172. Hays rightly comments: “Thus, Gal
3:29 finally unlocks the riddle of the relation between Paul’s ecclesiocentric hermeneutic and his
christological convictions. Galatians demonstrates more clearly than any other Pauline letter how these
aspects of Paul’s thought are complementary rather than contradictory. With this Christological warrant
firmly in place, Paul can proceed to read Israel’s Scripture as a mysterious prefiguration of the church, a
story in which Christ’s Gentile adherents can find their own story prewritten” (121).
3This is contrary to the opinions of David Daube, The New Testament and Rabbinic Judaism
(London: Athlone, I96S), 440 passim; Ellis, 70-73; James Patrick, “Seed, Seedtime,” A Dictionary o f the
Bible Dealing with Its Language, Literature, and Contents, ed. James Hastings (New York: Scribner’s,
1911), 4:429; and Strack and Billerbeck, Kommentar sum Neuen Testament aus Talmud und Midrash,
3:553.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
347
2 Sam 7:12-14 (Seed of David), following both the MT and the LXX.1 Hence, Paul
correctly interprets the promise to Abraham’s Seed as “a promise made to the Messiah
The crux of my argument is that Paul was not twisting the text but rather
faithfully following the intended meaning of the seed as used in the book of Genesis.
Paul perfectly understood and followed the narrowing of the seed o f the woman from the
plural collective to the singular individual representative Messianic Seed in Gen 3:15.
This narrowing from collective seed to singular Seed is also followed in the parallel seed
Conclusively, the “context, grammar, and theological patterns support the thesis
that "the seed” in Gal 3:16, 19 is specifically a reference to Jesus Christ and none other.”4
'See D. Moody Smith, “The Pauline Literature,” in It Is Written: Scripture Citing Scripture:
Essays in Honour o f Barnabas Lindars, ed. D. A. Carlson and H. G. M. Williamson (Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 1988), 271.
JHays, 85. Cf. Nils A. Dahl, Studies in Paul: Theologyfor Early Christian Mission
(Minneapolis, MN: Augsburg, 1977), 128, 130; and idem, “The Atonement-An Adequate Reward for the
Akedah? (Rom 8:32),” in Neotestameruica et Semitica: Studies in Honour o f Matthew Black, ed. E. E.
Ellis and M. Wilcox (Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1969), 15-29, esp. 24; Dennis C. Duling, “The Promises
to David and Their Entry into Christianity,” NTS 20 (1973-74): 55-77; Juel, 77-88; and Wilcox, 2-20.
3l have noted above how the “seed” in Gen 22:17a is clearly plural as it is compared to the stars
of the heaven and the sand of the seashore. However, vs. 17b narrows to singular Seed who will “possess
the gates of His [singular] enemies.” See references already mentioned above. See also Jo Ann Davidson,
“Abraham, Akedah, and Atonement,” in Creation, Life, and Hope: Essays in Honor o f Jacques B.
Doukhan, ed. Jiff Moskala (Berrien Springs, MI: Old Testament Dept, of S. D. A. Theological Seminary,
Andrews University, 2001), 49-72; and Richard M. Davidson, “Interpreting Scripture,” 105,112; and
idem, “New Testament Use of the Old Testament,” 30-31.” I should mention the useful comment that
Paul was not simply citing Gen 12 but particularly Gen 22:17-18 as expatiated by Max Wilcox, “‘Upon
the Tree’— Deut 21:22-23 in the New Testament,” JBL 96 (1977): 94-97.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
348
By so doing, Paul was not “twisting the Old Testament to prove a point,”1but rather
faithfully “using the passage in exactly the way it was intended, following its original
Rev 12
It has been suggested that materials from the book o f Genesis have been re
introduced to the visions of John in the book of Revelation.3 Quite strikingly, the overall
scenario of Rev 12 employs the cosmic descriptions from Genesis, “as if a new creation
were being patterned after the first.”4 This immediately sets the stage for the parallels
The woman and the serpent who were prominently featured in Gen 3 also appear
here with the same distinctive elements and characters as before. The enmity that God
divinely instituted between them in Gen 3:15 “provides the backdrop of Revelation 12.”5
The resultant “pain in child-bearing” that became the lot of Eve (Gen 3:16), the “mother
'Dale Mark Wheeler, “Paul's Use of the Old Testament in Galatians 3:16” (Th.D. thesis, Dallas
Theological Seminary, 1987), 332.
2lbid., 333.
'John P. M. Sweet suggests that Gen 3:15-20 dominates the whole of Revelation 12 (Revelation
[Philadelphia: Westminster, 1979], 203). Paul S. Minear builds on this and observes “the multiple ways in
which God’s curses, as described in Genesis 3, are executed and finally reversed in John’s vision” (“Far as
the Curse Is Found: The Point of Revelation 12:15-16,” NovT33 [1991]: 71-77). This is contrary to R. H.
Charles who prematuredly and unbelievably posits: “There are no parallels in the Old Testament or
Judaism” from the book of Revelation (A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on the Revelation o f St.
John, International Critical Commentary [Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1920], 2:331 passim).
4Minear, 71. He enumerates that the woman of Rev 12 is descried in terms of the sun, moon, and
stars of Gen 1:16, and the heavens, earth, and waters assume some roles as in Gen 1:3-10.
5Ibid., 72.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
349
of all living” (Gen 3:20), is echoed in Rev 12:2 as the woman “cried out in the pangs of
The enmity that passed on from the woman and the serpent to their respective
collective seeds narrowed down to the face-up between the singular representative Seed
of the woman and Satan himself (Gen 3: IS) as explained above. It is this final stage of
this enmity that is pictured in Rev 12:4 where the dragon tried “to devour the child when
The mention in Rev 12:5 of the seed of the woman being a universal ruler alludes
to the seed passages in Genesis where the chosen Seed was a conquerer and ruler (Gen
3:15; 12:1-3; 22:17-18; 24:60, etc.), same as the Seed of David (Pss 2; 68; 72; 89; 110; 2
Sam 7:4-16). This also identifies the child of Rev 12 to be the special Seed of the woman
The identity of the serpent of Gen 3 is specifically given as “that serpent of old,
the Devil, and Satan” in Rev 12:9.2 Satan made war with the ‘seed of the woman’ (Rev
12:17) which is to be taken collectively here just as in the Palestinian Targums. That this
seed will “keep the commandments of God” (Revl2:17) is also reflected in the TJI's
paraphrase: “when the children (i.e., the seed) of the Woman keep the commandments of
'George B. Caird posits that the birth of the Messiah referred to the Cross, rather than the
nativity (A Commentary on the Revelation o f St. John the Divine [New York: Harper & Row, 1966], 149).
Minear supports this view (72-73). However, I think that it covers the whole life of the Messiah, from
nativity to His resurrection, throughout which Satan tried to destroy Him.
^ e Apocalypse calls the enemy of the human race several names including: Satan (2:9,13,24;
3:9; 12:9; 20:2,7); the Devil (2:10; 12:9,12,20; 20:10); the Dragon (12:3,4,7,9,13,16,17; 13:2,4,11;
16:13; 20:2); the Ancient Serpent (12:9, 14, IS; 20:2). See McNamara, The New Testament and the
Palestinian Targum to the Pentateuch, 221-2.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
350
the Law."1
Summary
The OT writers clearly had the same understanding of the “seed” of Gen 3:15 as
can be seen from the “seed” passages explained above. Several verbal, linguistic, and
even structural linkages were established with the passage o f Gen 3:15 and its allies in the
book of Genesis (especially, Gen 22:17-18). Many cross-references are evident from the
passages examined above from the Pentateuch, the Prophets, the Writing, and even the
New Testament. The Pentateuch is consistent in its treatment of the seed, and the other
At this juncture in the inspired canon, the writers equated the “Seed o f the
woman” (Gen 3:15) with the “Seed of Abraham” (Gen 12-50), and also “Seed of David”
(2 Sam 7:10-14). It seems that these later writers were intent on creating visual images
that will link their hearers and readers to the promises already made in the book of
Genesis. They continued to make references to the earlier patriarchal promises in order
The most profuse references to the Seed of Gen 3:15 are found in the
intrinsically-Messianic psalms of David. They are based mostly on the Davidic dynasty
promises of 2 Sam 7:10-12 which parallel Gen 22:17-18, both of which exhibit a similar
narrowing from the collective plural to the singular individual referent in consonance with
'McNamara, The New Testament and the Palestinian Targum to the Pentateuch, 221 -222.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
351
Together with the seed echoes in Isa 53, these OT allusions to the Seed of Gen
3:15 give a composite picture of the identity of this special representative Seed of the
woman (Gen 3:15). He is the Messiah, Savior, Redeemer, King, Priest, Prophet, and the
vicarious, suffering, and substitutionary sacrifice for humanity. His victorious reign
engulfs all the earth and heaven in perpetuity. He rules over His enemies and gives peace
The NT recognizes the collective aspect of the seed of the woman of Gen 3:15.
In Rom 16:20a, God promised to bruise Satan under the feet of God’s faithful followers
(collective). Paul also calls believers in Christ, “Abraham's seed, and heirs (collective)
according to the promise” (Gal 3:29). So also, Rev 12:17 calls the Church the remnant
In the same vein, NT recognizes the narrowing of the collective seed to the
singular individual Seed of the woman, in the person and ministry of Jesus Christ. This
is the strength of Paul’s arguments in Gal 3:16, 19. Salvation has been assured to
believing human beings through the vicarious sacrifice of Jesus. It is only Christ and
through Christ that believers are inducted into the status as “seed of the woman.”
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
CHAPTER FOUR
the numerous parallels that can be found in ancient Near Eastern literature. While it
cannot be said that the biblical stories were based on these ANE parallels, the biblical
author or compiler or editor(s) and the audience were surely aware of some of them.
The biblical story has a radically different twist, purpose, and theme when
compared with them.' The biblical account was intended to contradict the work-oriented
emphasis of the neighboring national religions. God is the Creator and demands
obedience and worship, rather than the creature-worship found in those religions. The
purpose of this section is to compare and contrast some aspects of Gen 3:14-15 with
'Soggin affirms that Gen 3 “contains an Israelite attack on syncretism as it existed between
Israelite and Canaanite religion” (“The Fall of Man in the Third Chapter of Genesis,” 88-111, esp. 88,
108). It is “an original Canaanite account disclosing the rite of fertility taken over by Israel and turned
completely around as a direct polemic against those same rites, accusing them of producing not life and
fertility, but death and sterility” (ibid., 88). This view is also shared by F. F. Hvidberg, “The Canaanite
Background of Gen. I-IU,” VT10 (1960): 285-294; and Wyatt who suggests that “it is the cult of El and
Aserah and not that of Ba‘al which is attacked” (“Interpreting the Creation and Fall Story in Genesis 2-
3,” Zeitschriftfiir die altestamentliche Wissemchqft 93 [1981], 19).
352
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
353
most religious systems, whereby “gods and men lived in closer union, and happiness and
The Sumerian paradise myth of “Enki and Ninhursag” is compared to the garden
DQmun is a land that is “pure,” “clean,” and “bright,” a “land of the living” which
knows neither sickness nor death. What is lacking, however, is the fresh water so
essential to animal and plant life. The great Sumerian water-god, Enki, therefore
orders Utu, the sun-god, to fill it with fresh water brought up from the earth.
Dilmun is thus turned into a divine garden, green with fruit-laden fields and
meadows.2
Dilmun, “a land somewhere to the east of Sumer.”3 In like manner, the “fresh water
'Oesterley, 140, referring to John B. Wordsworth, The One Religion: Truth, Holiness, and Peace
Desired by the Nations and Expressed in Jesus Christ (New York: Oxford, Parker and Co., 1881).
Oesterley recalls that “among all races a belief in a happier time long ago has been formulated, differing
in form according to the genius of each race” (142).
JS. N. Kramer, “Enki and Ninhursag: A Paradise Myth,” in ANET, 37, see pp. 37-41; see idem.
The Sumerians: Their History, Culture, and Character (Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1963), 147
passim. For a recent translation, see P. Attinger, “Enki et Ninhursaga,” Zeitschriftfur Assyriologie und
Vorderasiatische 74 (1984): 1-52.
In search of the Garden of Eden, Speiser refers to Dilmun as ‘“the land of living,' which lay near
the head of the Persian Gulf and tries to identify the Pishon and the Gihon with actual rivers not far from
the mouths of the Tigris and the Euphrates” (E. A. Speiser, “The Rivers of Paradise,” in / Studied
Inscriptions From Before the Flood'. Ancient Near Eastern, Literary, and Linguistic Approaches to
Genesis l- l I, ed. Richard S. Hess and David Toshio Tsumura, Sources for Biblical and Theological
Study, vol. 4 [Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns, 1994], 177). Cf. David T. Tsumura, “Genesis and Ancient
Near Eastern Stones of Creation and Flood: An Introduction,” in I Studied Inscriptions From Before the
Flood: Ancient Near Eastern, Literary, and Linguistic Approaches to Genesis l-l I, ed. Richard S. Hess
and David Toshio Tsumura, Sources for Biblical and Theological Study, vol. 4 [Winona Lake, IN:
Eisenbrauns, 1994], 38.
3ANET, 37.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
354
brought up from the earth”' in Dilmun compares with the ed-water in Gen 2:6.
The ancient name of Babylon points to the name Bab-ilu, meaning “the gate of
God.”2 It is also called “the holy mount of cedars, the ‘abode of gods,' where the
Elamite hero Humbaba ‘with stately step walks upon the well-cultivated path/”3 It is
elsewhere called “a garden of the gods, into which men seem to have entrance . . .
situated on a mountain, there are holy trees with delicious fruit; and there is a river with
The garden of Eden also reflects “the old Canaanitic Bama, the sacred grove,
with everything in it: the tree of life, the living water, the guardians at the entrance to the
The Greeks considered the ancients to be “like the gods, and being good by
nature and living a perfect life” filled with leisure, rest, health, and peace.6 The Persians
'Ibid. Kenton L. Sparks agrees: ‘‘Adam’s role in tilling and keeping the Garden of Eden is
reminiscent of the work assigned to humans in the Sumerian and Babylonian creation myths” (“The
Problem of Myth in Ancient Historiography,” in Rethinking the Foundations: Historiography in the
Ancient World and in the Bible: Essays in Honour o f John Van Seters, ed. Steven L. Mckenzie and
Thomas Rdmer [New York: Walter de Gruyter, 2000], 278). This is like the spring of fresh water in the
Akkadian story of Marduk’s creation.
:Ibid., 143.
]Ibid.
4Ibid.
sHvidberg, 286.
*Oesterley, 154-155. Oesterly elaborates that, compared to the men of the present age who are
“debased and degraded,” these ancients had “no living animal slain” (ibid., 155) “All good things were
theirs, and the fruitful earth did of itself bear fruit in great abundance, while they of their own free will
tilled their fields in peace with many blessings Everything grew of its own accord . . . an existence of
leisure without labor or care. . . immunity from sickness. . . neither wars nor factions among them . . . so
that the sum of their life was mere leisure, rest from the stress of life, health, peace and friendship” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
355
spoke of Yima, “the first king of the Iranians. . . whose life, like that of his subjects, was
lived in the midst of the joys of Eden, in the Paradise of Airyana-Vaedja, the abode of
primeval man.”1 They enjoyed a life of bliss for “a thousand years, and it was only
Despite several similarities, the obvious contrast is that the biblical account
describes only two married individuals, Adam and Eve, as the only human beings who
existed in this sinless state where there was absolute perfection. The ANE accounts
evidence some lack in a comparable state of existence, also involving numerous humans.
The multiple deities involved in the ANE accounts are completely absent in the Bible
Talking Animals
Animals are represented as talking to humans in only two stories in the Bible,
namely, Gen 3:1-5 and Num 22:28-30. Similar instances of animals speaking to humans
are found in the Stories o f Anubis and Bata where cattle would tell Bata where the
pasture was more excellent for grazing; and in the second instance, a cow warns Bata of
impending danger.3 Dialogue between animals and humans is also found in Egyptian
■Ibid., 150.
JIbid.
’Victor H. Matthews and Don C. Benjamin cites the Stories o f Anubis and Bata: i:S-lO: “Every
morning, Bata got up, cooked the morning meal for Anubis and his wife, and packed a meal for his
brother to eat at noon. Then Bata drove the cattle out into the pasture to graze. As he walked alongside
the cattle, they would say to him: ‘The grass in this pasture is excellent,’ and Bata would listen to them
and drive them to whatever pasture they wanted to graze, so Anubis cattle became prime livestock, calving
twice as often as the livestock from any other village” (Old Testament Parallels: Laws and Storiesfrom
the Ancient Near East, fully rev. and expanded ed. [New York: Paulist, 1997], 62).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
356
tales like “The Tale of the Shipwrecked Sailor”1and “The Doomed Prince.”2
Animals and trees communicate only with each other rather than humans in the
Babylonian stories o f “The Ox and the Horse,”3 “The Fable of the Willow,”4 “The Date
These ANE examples are mostly superstitious folklore. The instances in the
Bible reflected a divine encounter or supernatural confrontation with the divine. The
Serpent
poetry and bronze castings.”7 Ancient peoples viewed serpents positively and negatively.
Serpents were used from place to place to symbolize positive qualities such as
There is more information from the Stories o f Anubis and Bata: v: 1-5: “Anubis became as
furious as a leopard. He fetched his spear, sharpened it and stood behind the bam door to wait for Bata to
return with the cattle later that evening When the first cow went into the bam, she warned Bata:
‘Your older brother is waiting to kill you with his spear. Run!'” (ibid., 64).
‘Mariam Lichtheim, ed., Ancient Egyptian Literature (Berkeley, CA: University of California
Press, 1973), 1:211-215.
:lbid., 2:156-159.
3W. G. Lambert, ed., Babylonian Wisdom Literature (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1960),
150 passim. The story of the serpent and the lion in the epic of Etana is found in ANET, 114-118.
4Lambert, 150.
sIbid.
6Ibid.
7Stallman, 85.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
357
knowledge, wisdom, as well as negative qualities like evil, enmity, chaos, and death. In
reality, the serpent seems to use its association with life and wisdom to realize his
The Egyptian goddess named Nenet, also called Hemset, is described as ‘The
snake who measured the world, and who in the beginning bore the god Cheper, the great
Deep.”3 The serpent was also considered “a good genius, an agatho-demon. even as he
Phoenician history.4 “Among the Arabs every snake is the abode of a spirit, sometimes
bad and sometimes good In the sphere of religion the serpent was usually worshiped
as a good demon.”5
The serpent motif in Palestine could be seen in the numerous Palestinian pottery
with serpent decorations on the handle.6 Interestingly, the serpent and the woman were
2Oesterley, 67-68.
’William Hayes Ward, “The Serpent Tempter in Oriental Mythology,’' BSae 38 (1881): 210.
5Skinner, 72.
6John J. Scullion refers to Avi-Yonah who mentioned a silver cup found in a tomb (c. 2250-2000
B.C.E.), at Ain Samiya, northest ofRammallah (Genesis: A Commentaryfo r Students, Teachers, and
Preachers, OTS, 6 [Collegeville, MN: Liturgical, 1992], 47, referring to Michael Avi-Yonah, ed.,
Encyclopedia o f Archeological Excavations in the Holy Land [Englewood Cliffs, NJ: Prentice-Hall],
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
358
labeled as “originally identical.”1 This links the serpent deities and the idea of the
Several cultures in the ancient Near East have attributed positive qualities to
serpents. One of the commonest is that of life and immortality. The serpent was
associated with the “animating force of living forms,”3 and sometimes thought of as “their
own human ancestor’'4 in numerous cultures including those of the Sumerians, Egytians,
The primal deity worshiped by the early Sumerians was the serpent Ea and in
ancient Sumer, a number of snakes may have served to inspire the notion of this
spirit entity For the Sumerians, the animating force of the serpent was seen
to be animisticly present in the water, soil, wind, fire, and all formations of
existence. In the sacramental cuneiform tablets, the serpent Ea is referred to as
“Zi-Ki-a,” (Zi = spirit, Ki = earth, a = water) spirit of the earth and water.. . .
2:357-358). “It is decorated in two scenes, with a serpent in each; in the left hand area, an upright snake
faces a janiform figure (i.e., a figure with two faces turned in opposite directions) with a human head and
an ox-shaped body, each hand grasping a plant” (Avi-Yonah, 2:358). Scullion discloses: “From Beth
Shean, just south of the lake of Galilee, some cult stands from the eleventh century with the serpent motif
entwining them. And Hazor, north of the lake, has given up a silver placed cult stand of bronze with two
serpents upright” (Scullion, 47, referring to Avi-Yonah, 2:477).
'Williams, “The Relationship of Genesis 3:20 to the Serpent,” 364; referring to H. Grefimann,
“Mythische Reste in der ParadieserzShlung,” Archiv fu r Religionsmssenschqft 10 (1907): 345-348.
2WH!iams, “The Relationship of Genesis 3:20 to the Serpent,” 364. Other examples of the
association of the Mother Goddess with the serpent are found in W. F. Albright, “The Goddess of Life and
Wisdom,” AJSL 36 (1919-1920): 284-294; Edwin O. James, The Cult o f the Mother Goddess: An
Archaeological and Documentary Study (New York: Bames & Noble, 1959), 115, 119, 129 passim; M.
Jastrow, “Adam and Eve in Babylonian Literature,” AJSL 15 (1898-1899): 209-212; and I. M. Kikavvada,
“Two Notes on Eve,” JBL 91 (1972): 33-37.
'Conklin, 43.
4Ibid.
’Ibid. “In an Ethiopian tradition, the serpent stood at the head of the genealogy of the human
race” (ibid.). See Williams, “The Relationship of Genesis 3:20 to the Serpent,” 362, referring to
Wellhausen, Prolegomena to the History o f Ancient Israel, 308, n. I.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
359
Without the serpent presence of the water within the plant, tree, animal or
human, it would wither away. In this way, the serpent force was immanent
within all living things. The serpent was the visible symbol for an unseen
immanence.1
In the Canaanitic cult, the serpent is the “giver and renewer of life.”2 He is the
restorer.3 The Phoenician serpent was believed to be “a divine animal identified with the
breath of life, the symbol of eternal youth and everlasting life, and it was considered
life immortality in Mesopotamia and Egypt.5 “The serpent cult is the fundamental
expression of the desire, inherent in man, for immortality.”6 The sloughing of the skin is
a symbol of taking on new life as seen in the serpent.7 The sloughing of its skin is
'Conklin, 44-45. Francois Lenormant supports that the spirit was that “. . . which animated
everything, penetrated into everything, and made everthing which existed in the universe live and move’*
{Chaldean Magic [London: Samuel Bagster, 1877], 156). Likewise, H. W. F. Saggs calls Ea “the
immanent aspect of deity” {Everyday Life in Babylonia and Assyria [London: B. T. Batsford], 191).
Mividberg, “287.
Mbid.
4Soggin, 97-98. The possibility of a violent death is perhaps alluded to in Gen 3:15.
Moines, “The Serpent in Gen 3,” 2. “The serpent renews its youth almost indefinitely” (ibid.).
The ancient Egyptians accepted that the sloughing of the skin reflected the “eternal youthfulness of the
serpent” (ibid.).
6V. Lloyd-Russell, “The Serpent as the Prime Symbol of Immortality, Has its Origin in the
Semitic-Sumerian Culture” (Ph.D thesis, The University of Southern California, Los Angeles, 1938). See
J. A. Soggin, “La caduta deU’unomo nel terzo capitolo della Genesi,” Studi e Materiali di Storia Delle
Religiom 33 (1962): 227-256.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
360
the Egyptian ideograph for ‘immortal,’ and the immortality of the pharaoh may be
described as ‘the living years of the uraeus.’”2 The heavenly serpent Bata is “of millions
of years, millions of years in length.”3 “A serpent biting its tail is a common Egyptian
emblem for eternity The Egyptians could symbolize life itself by a rearing serpent.”4
The common Semitic word for the serpent, hawwa, is reported as reflecting the
several terms. “The Canaanitic Baal appears not only in the form o f a man, or a bull, but
'James G. Frazer, Belief in Immortality and the Worship o f the Dead (London: Dawsons, 1968).
1:69-72.
2Joines, “The Serpent in Gen 3,” 3, referring to W. R. Cooper, “Observations on the Serpent
Myths of Ancient Egypt,” Journal o f Transactions o f the Victoria Institute 6 (1873): 339.
‘Ibid. Don C. Benjamin defends: “The serpent swallowing its own tail is Egypt’s official symbol
of immortality, and the coiled serpent represents the ma ’at laws which govern the universe” (“Stories of
Adam and Eve,” in Problems in Biblical Theology: Essays in Honor o f Rolf Knierim, ed. Henry T. C. Sun
et al. [Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1997], SI).
5J. Morgenstem, “On Gilgamesh-Epic XI, 274-320,” Zeitschriftfur Assyriologie 29 (1915): 291.
R. B. Coote believes that despite various speculations to prove a connection between “life” and any term
meaning “serpent," such etymological connection is difficult (“The Serpent and Sacred Marriage in
Northwest Semitic Tradition” [Ph.D. dissertation, Harvard University, Cambridge, Massachusetts, 1972],
128). Williams thinks that one can only at best see “Gen 3:20 as a pun on the name which has
associations with the Hebrew term for life” being a “word-play” (“The Relationship of Genesis 3:20 to the
Serpent,” 369).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
361
also in the form of a serpent,”1stressing the “god’s virility and potency.”2 This serpent is
the “helper of the goddess, by whose aid she fulfils her functions.”3 He is called the
“fertilizer,”4 the “masculine element, which is with the goddess to do her service.”5
fertility, the benign wonder-worker, taught man how to achieve partial and temporary
dominion over nature, an achievement made possible by forces released by the fertility
cult.”6 The serpent is often associated with the “reproductive areas of the body of the
goddess, with water, with the bull, and with the dove.”7
The serpent is also viewed positively as healer and physician. The Canaanite
•Hvidberg, 287.
:Ibid.
3Ibid.
4Ibid.
5Ibid.
“Soggin, “Fall of Man in the Third Chapter of Genesis,” 110. Willis expresses: “Ancient
Egyptian art depicts the naked Canaanite goddess of fertility holding a snake in her hand. Archeologists
have unearthed several serpent figures made of metal in various parts of the ancient world, including a
snake draped around a goddess in Egypt, snakes draped around occult objects in Beth-Shan, and a god
represented in the form of a serpent” (120-121, referring to Pritchard, The Ancient Near East in Pictures,
470-474, S8S, 590,692). “The themes of the naked couple (Gen 2:25; 3:7), childbearing (3:16), and
productive vegetation (3:17-19) are at home in Canaanite fertility cults” (ANET,, 692).
7Joines, “The Serpent in Gen 3,” 3; idem, “The Bronze Serpent in the Israelite Cult,” 245 passim.
Scullion augments: “Hundreds of small (20-30 centimeters, 10-15 inches) clay figurines representing the
fertility goddess, with a serpent around her neck and held by her two hands, have been discovered in
Palestine” (42). Numerous Palestinian pottery has a serpent decoration on the handle.
Benjamin supports: “In Syria-Palestine, serpents-like sexual organs, water, bulls, and
doves-symbolize human fertility” (51).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
362
Baal is also considered a “healer and physician-god.”1 The Phonecian god of medicine,
“‘Esmun’ (later known as ’Adon, i.e., Kupio£), was also represented by a serpent, an
actual C g x t t t o io u i ' god, which passed then to the West in the unmistakable emblems of
Hermes and Asclepius.”2 Likewise, the serpent Ea was given the appellation, “great
physician,”3 associated with healing, oracular ability, and women. In addition, the
Egyptian wadjet or uraeus is “a helper serpent who rides on the forehead of pharaohs,
The serpent was believed to be a positive figure of knowledge and wisdom. The
coffin Texts from Egypt have the primeval serpent saying: “I extended everywhere, in
accordance with what was to come into existence, I know, as the One, alone, majestic,
the indwelling Soul, the most potent of the gods.”5 The Egyptians also believed that “an
The serpent was usually revered for its ability to discover whatever was hidden or
concealed, including knowledge of the past, present, and future. Lidless eyes that
never closed were thought to see in the darkness of the underground. This ability
may have been related to the view that the serpent inspired nighttime dreams and
the prophetic daytime visions of human beings.7
'Hvidberg, 288.
}Conklin, 51.
4Benjamin, 51.
“Ibid., 5. Benjamin agrees: “Ordinary Egyptians carried snakeskin to help them make good
decisions” (51).
7Conklin, 53.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
363
The negative qualities attributed to the serpent in ancient Near Eastern literature
are numerous too. The “Tiamat myth” was known in ancient times, involving a “primeval
cruel monster who was identified with the principle o f ‘evil,’ i.e., harmfiilness.”1 The
original story involved a dragon figure like Tiamat taking vengeance on God by
instigating humans as God’s rivals because God defeated her in the primeval battle. The
Serpent was identical with Tiamat and his purpose was to take vengeance on Jahweh for
his victory in the primeval conflict. Though overcome, he was not annihilated. That he is
“not to be finally destroyed until some time in the distant future permits o f the
supposition that the conflict between him and Jahweh might from time to time have been
renewed.”2
Moreover, the Egyptian belief that a serpent fought the God of light in primeval
Apophis, the adversary o f Ra.”3 The serpent is given the “designation o f aiub ilu, the foe
of God. This name, seemingly given to a monstrous sort of serpent living in the
'Oesteriey, 76.
:Ibid., 78-79. Oesteriey identifies that Tiamat “the embodiment of harmfulness developed into
Satan, the embodiment of the principle of evil” (ibid., 175). The Chaldean believed that Tiamat ruled
over a brood of monsters of the ocean which existed before all things. Marduk was the champion of the
gods. Marduk was victorious over Tiamat in the conflict that ensued between them. Marduk used his
sword to cut Tiamat into two; drawing a bolt before the half which is placed above (ibid.). “This suggests
that in spite of defeat Tiamat was still capable of harm and had to be imprisoned” (ibid., 62).
3Ibid, 67-68.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
364
Assyrian word for serpent, ai-ub-ilu, is from aibu, “enemy” and means “Enemy of God.”1
The form of a snake was attributed to nearly every power which was hostile to
the dead and the living.2 “In an Ugaritic ritual text the man ( 'adm) touches a tree he
should not touch and is subsequently bitten by a poisonous snake.”3 Serpents' hostility to
Serpents are sometimes called gods, or brothers o f the gods, and are usually
considered hostile to man. They are evil, they love darkness, and hate the light.
Even the sun-god Re could be bitten by a serpent. The serpent Apep or Apophis
is the Egyptian figure par excellence of evil and chaos. It embodies the hostile
darkness and the sea which swallow Re at sunset and through which he must
travel at night to rise again in the morning. Apep may be called “the destroyer,”
“the enemy of the gods,” and “the devourer of the souls of men” Serpents on
the earth are feared and revered because they are extensions o f apep, as hostile to
man as Apep is to Re; thus Apep is the embodiment of all evil.4
Temptation and deception are also major negative attributes of the serpent in
some ancient Near Eastern literature. In the Persian Zendavesta the evil god Ahriman in
the form of a serpent induces the first men to rebel against God.s One of the Chaldean
:Joines recalls some Egyptian Pyramid Texts which include “numerous incantations and magical
formulae designed to protect the deceased pharaohs from the evil of the serpents” (ibid., 9, recalling from
ANET, 326).
3See KTU, 1.100 as referred to in Sparks, 278. Joines represented snakes as “biting” (R. Dussan,
“Le Mythe de Ba’al d’apres des documents noveaux,” Revue deVHisloire des Religions 111 [1935]: 62
quoted in Joines, “The Serpent in Gen 3,” 8).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
365
Creation tablets' mentions an asnan tree whose fruit was sinfully eaten, while one called
Merodach came to the rescue. Boscawen saw the asnan tree as being a double parallel
referring to the tree of life and the tree of the knowledge of good and evil while the
Boscawen collaborates his point with a keen reference to '‘the great tablet of the
War in heaven’'3 in which “it is Merodach who slays the serpent and crushes the brain of
On this celebrated cylinder seal a tree is engraved; beneath the boughs of foliage
two bunches of fruit hang from the trunk on long naked stems; on each side of the
tree a being, in form human, is seated facing the tree and extending the hand as
though to grasp the fruit; in the rear of one of the figures, or rather between the
backs of the two (for the engraving encircles the cylinder), a serpent is seen erect
as though standing. The picture at once strikes the beholder as a representation of
'Published in the Babylonian and Oriental Record for October, 1890, and again in the Christian
Commonwealth quoted in John D. Davis, Genesis and Semitic Tradition, Twin Brooks Series (Grand
Rapids: Baker, 1980), 63; first published in 1894 by Charles Scribner’s Sons. The end portion of this
tablet reads as follows:
“The great gods, all of them the foretellers of fate.
Entered and in a deadly manner the god Sar was filled [with anger].
Wickedness one with another in assembly makes.
The word was established in the garden of the gods.
They had eaten the asnan fruit, they had broken___
Its juice they sucked___
The sweet juice which in drinking crushes the body.
Great is their sin . . . in exalting [themselves].
To Merodach their redeemer he has appointed the destiny” (ibid.).
"Ibid., 64.
3Ibid.
4Ibid.
5Ibid., 65.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
366
the temptation.'
It seems more likely that Ea deceived Adapa deliberately rather than unwittingly.
The reason for this deception is not clear. Ea may have been loathe to lose such a
devoted worshiper who provided for him so abundantly. The idea of friction in
the pantheon may also be involved here, since Anu concluded, ‘Of the gods of
heaven and earth, as many as there be, whoever gave such a command [as Ea to
Adapa], so as to make his own c o m m an d exceed the command of Anu?’ If there
is any biblical parallel to Ea’s actions, it would have to be with respect to the
serpent’s, not God’s, activity.2
Numerous contrasts are evident between the way the Bible portrays the serpent
and the way it is revered in the ANE. The Bible does not view the serpent positively,
perhaps because of its first action at the beginning of human history as recorded in the
Bible. Even the wisdom that is attributed to the serpent is not a pure kind of wisdom, but
sneaky and sinful. The Bible distances itself from such positive descriptions as “life,”
erect posture.3 Though fewer in number, certain serpents having a human shape and
'Ibid., 65-66. Ward noted that this Babylonian cylinder is part of the “Steuart collection, now in
the British Museum" (221-222).
'Skinner, 79.
‘William H. Ward, The Seal Cylinders o f Western Asia (Washington, DC: Carnegie Institution of
Washington, 1910), 127-128.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
367
Taking the phrase “crawling on the belly” symbolically, one also finds some
parallels. For instance, a vassal king (of Tyre) writes to his superior (Pharaoh
Akhenaton) that he lies on his belly before him; a bas-relief shows a Syrian crawling on
In the Decree o f Cyrus, one reads of the elders and soldiers of Babylon
surrendering to Cyrus and Cambyses, his son. It states: “Every ruler from the sea above
the earth to the sea below it, rulers who dwell in palaces in the east and rulers who live in
tents in the west came to Babylon to bring me tribute and to kiss my feet.”:
This phrase, “crawling on the belly,” shares very similar meanings in both biblical
and ANE traditions. It signifies humiliation and subjugation. The one who is made to
bow or crawl or be at the other’s feet is made inferior to the one who receives such
obeisance.
Eat/Lick Dust
The Arabs hold that certain types of spirits feed on dust.3 Moreover, eating or
licking dust is used as an expression of humility in the Epic o f Gilgamesh, the Descent o f
Ishtar, and the Pyramid Texts* Lines 1-20 o f Ishtar’s Descent to the Underworld
recalls:
'Lipinski, 42-44.
3Leupold, 1:162.
4Lipinski, 42-44.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
368
Ereshkigal, to the house that none depart, to the road to No return, to the house
in which no light may enter. Where dust and clay are their meal, where they
dwell in darkness. Where, like birds, their garments are exchanged for wings.
Where dust covers every door and bolt. When Ishtar reached the gate o f the
Land of No Return, she challenged the gatekeeper, saying: “Open your gate so I
may enter I will cause the dead to rise and consume like the living. The
living will outnumber the dead!1
cultures and in the biblical tradition. It connotes humiliation and subjugation. It also
raises the thought of death because human beings are believed to have been created by
God from the dust of the ground (Gen 2:7), and returns to the dust at death (Gen 3:19).
Enmity
Horonu is the originator of the forces of evil Man is said to have been bitten by a snake
when he touches a tree he was forbidden to touch. “Although KTU, 1.107 also attributes
the poison to snakebite (lines 10,20, 34f.) it is highly interesting that the ‘snake’ is clearly
demons.”3
In KTU, 1.107, which was a broken text from which de Moor reconstructed
KTU, 1.107:27-4, it is stated as follows: “The premature death of the first man was
eventually prevented by invoking the help of all the great gods against the offspring of the
3J. C. de Moor, “Demons in Canaan,” JEOL 27 (1981-82): 112 passim. Designation of demons
in Aramaic incantation bowls can be found in Charles D. Isbell, Corpus o f Aramaic Incantation Bowls
(Missoula, MT: Society of Biblical Literature, 1975), 133.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
369
god of the serpents, Horonu the Devil. Therefore the latter had to give in, as related in
ATT/, 1.100.”'
Serpents are not thought of as “god” or “demon” in the biblical tradition. The
serpent that tempted humans in the Genesis record is a natural snake, belonging to the
realm of the “beasts of the field” (Gen 3:1, 14). However, that the serpent is opposed to
humans and was used as an agent of the archenemy of humanity is a shared belief within
Another version, the Atrahasis 1:250-300, describes Ea-Enki as the godfather having
intercourse with Nintu-Mami, while she sings. She conceives seven sets of fraternal
'J. C. de Moor, An Anthology o f Religious Textsfrom Ugarit (Leiden: Brill, 1987), 146-156,
contains his full translation of KTU, 1.100. Johannes C. de Moor expresses: “Apparently Horonu only
gives in because he realizes that if all the powerful gods invoked would rush in to help his serpents might
be exterminated It is the sun-goddess Shapshu who is intermediary in warding off the poison” (“East
of Eden,” ZA W 100 [1988]: 108).
de Moor comments further: “The Israelite tradition about the enmity between the seed of man
and the seed of the serpent would have been derived from this myth under abolition of all references to a
divine power next to God” (ibid., 109).
Matthews and Benjamin, 33. “The divine assembly gave Nintu-Mami moisture to thin the clay.
She wet it with saliva from the anunnaki and the iggigi. Nintu-Mami sang The divine assembly
heard the hymn which Nintu-Mami sang. The anunnaki and the iggigi kissed her feet. Yesterday, we
called you ‘Mami.’ Today, you are ‘Mother of the divine assembly’” (ibid., referring to Atrahasis 1:235-
40).
’Matthews and Benjamin, 33-35. “Ea-Enki and Nintu-Mami entered their birthing room, she
summoned her midwife, he worked the clay. She sang the sacred song, he prayed the special prayer-----
The tenth month came, Nintu-Mami went into labor.. . . On the birth stool, Nintu-Mami sang: ‘I have
created life. Let the midwife rejoice in the labor room when a mother gives birth’” (ibid., referring to
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
370
The bilingual Babylonian creation myth, Enuma Elish, stated that “Arum [the
mother goddess], together with him [Marduk] created the seed of mankind.”1 In
Ugaritic, the title of Ashera, the Ugaritic mother goddess: qnyt 'ilm, means “she that
gave birth to the gods,”2 the creatress/bearer of the gods. The gods themselves are called
Eve, the “mother of all living,” was fashioned from the rib of Adam. In the
Sumerian myth of Enki and Ninhursag, “one of Enki’s sick organs is the rib (Sumerian //);
the goddess created for healing his rib was called in Sumerian Nin-ti 'the Lady of the rib.'
But the Sumerian ti also means ‘to make live.' The name Nin-ti may thus mean ‘the Lady
who makes live’ as well as ‘the Lady of the rib.’” This “literary pun” explains Eve’s title
While some similarities exist in the mention of the “rib” in connection with the
creation of the woman, the Bible rejects the idea of the woman being a goddess.
Moreover, there was no sickness connected with the perfect creation of God, both male
Atrahasis 1:250-300).
Kikawada suggests that “behind the character of Eve was probably hidden the figure of the
creatress or the mother-goddess Mami, and that bhawwMt, Eve, was an onomastic form derived from her
title, ’em kol-bay" (“Two Notes on Eve,” 34). Kikawada points out that the creatress Mami shapes a man
out of clay with Enid's help. The word ini, meaning 'with' or ‘together with' is used, which is analogous
to the prepositional sense of the Hebrew ’et (ibid.). See Pardes, 180.
'Skinner, 102-103.
3Ibid.
‘Kramer. The Sumerians: Their History, Culture, and Character, 149. For more recent studies
on Eve see W. G. Lambert, “Babylonien und Israel,’' Theologische R ene 5 (1980): 72-73.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
371
Adam
Several similarities and differences exist between the biblical Adam and Adapa of
the Mesopotamian Story of Adapa.1 There is obvious similarity between the names
The only significant difference occurs in the case of the fourth letter, the last
consonant, p and m respectively. Phonological^ speaking, p and m, along with b
and w, fall into the same category of letters or sounds known as labials.. . . It is
clear from comparative studies of both ancient and modern languages that
phonemes of the same type may interchange between languages and between
dialects of the same language Thus the changes necessary to go to Adapa
from Adam are linguistically well known The following development may be
posited in the case under consideration here: Adam> Adama (>Adaba?) >Adapa.2
Both Adam and Adapa were given clothes.3 Both “underwent a test before the
'The early discoverers and investigators of the Adapa story claimed that it was a true Babylonian
parallel to the biblical Adam. See Albert T. Clay, The Origin o f Biblical Traditions: Hebrew Legends in
Babylonia and Israel, Yale Oriental Series 12 (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1923), 108-116. Later
writers claimed that no parallels exist between them. For example, A. Heidel objects: “The Adapa legend
and the Biblical story (of Adam) are fundamentally as far apart as antipodes” (The Babylonian Genesis,
2nded. [Chicago, 1951], 124). Others see not parallels but merely similar issues between them: e.g., G.
Buccellati, “Adapa, Genesis, and the Notion of Faith,” UFS (1973): 61-6; B. R. Foster, “Wisdom and the
Gods in Ancient Mesopotamia,”^ , n.s., 43 (1974): 352-3; and E. A. Speiser, “Basic Idea of History in Its
Common Near Eastern Setting,” IEJ 7, no. 4 (1957): 201-216. Some show a parallel with due allowance
for functional shifts in the material: Shea, “Adam in Ancient Mesopotamian Traditions,” 27-41.
3Shea, “Adam in Ancient Mesopotamian Traditions,” 38. This phonological interchange is less
likely to have occurred in the opposite direction. Furthermore, the final ending a in Adapa also appears in
the Hebrew form of Adam, meaning “ground, soil.” Finally, Adapa appears without a final vowel as a-
da-ap meaning “man,” in an unpublished syllabary te a (ibid.). Also see S. Moscati, ed.. An Introduction
to the Comparative Grammar o f the Semitic Languages (Weisbaden: Otto Harrassowitz, 1964), 24-26;
and ANET, 101.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
372
deity and the test was based upon something they were to consume."1 Subsequently,
They were both “summoned before the divinity to give account of their actions.”
Adam's offense is clearly that of eating from the prohibited fruit of the tree of the
knowledge of good and evil. Adapa’s offense is not the matter of eating and drinking,
Eridu is the first in the line of the five cities that ruled before the flood. The
names of the two kings who ruled at Eridu appear in order as Alulim and Alalgar.
The names of the wise men associated with Alulim and Alalgar are Adapa and
Uanduga, respectively. This locates Adapa as contemporaneous with the first
king of the first antediluvian city The Sumerians believed that Alulim and
Adapa belonged to the first significant generation of mankind.4
The gatekeeper gods, Tammuz and Gizzida, who admitted Adapa into heaven
are like the angelic cherubim (plural or dual) guarding the gate of the garden o f Eden on
earth (Gen 3:22). “Pairs o f Assyrian karibi were also stationed at gates (of cities or
temples), but Egyptian representations of such beings appear closer in form and function
‘Ibid, 39.
2Ibid.
’Niels-Erik Andreasen, “Adam and Adapa: Two Anthropological Characters,” AUSS 19 (1981):
186.
4Shea, “Adam in Ancient Mesopotamian Traditions,” 36. See also W. W. Hallo, “Antediluvian
Cities,” JCS 23 (1970): 57-8; W. W. Hallo and W. K. Simpson, The Ancient Near East: A History (New
York: Harcourt Brace Jovanovich, 1971), 29-32; Merrill F. Unger, Archaeology and the Old Testament
(Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1960), 42.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
373
Cursing
A story from Egypt in the ninth Dynasty is recounted in ANET 6-7, titled: “The
Repulsing of the Dragon and the Creation.” A snake, called Apophis, known to be a
dragon or demon of the underworld who obstructs the sun-god Re, is cursed as follows:
He is one fallen to the flame, Apophis with a knife on his head. He cannot see,
and his name is no (more) in this land. I have commanded that a curse be cast
upon him; I have consumed his bones; I have annihilated his soul in the course of
the day; I have cut his vertebrae at his neck, severed with a knife which hacked up
his flesh and pierced into his hide I have taken away his heart from its place,
his seat, and his tomb. I have made him nonexistent: his name is not; his children
are not; he is not and his family is not; he is not and his false-door is not; he is not
and his heirs are not. His egg shall not last, nor shall his seed knit together-and
vice versa. His soul, his corpse, his state of glory, his shadow, and his magic are
not. His bones are not, and his skin is not. He is fallen and overthrown.1
This curse upon the snake is reminiscent of that of the biblical account (Gen
3:14-15). However, the biblical account was intended to set forth a program of ultimate
and total annihilation of Satan, thereby giving this curse a universal and eternal
implication.
Enki ate eight plants and incurred a curse for his misdeed. This recalls the
“eating o f the fruit of the tree of knowledge by Adam and Eve and the curses pronounced
against each of them for this sinful action.”2 Similarly, “the birth of the goddesses
without pain or travail illuminates the background of the curse against Eve that it shall be
'Other such texts are found in ANET, 8,9-10,11-12, 14, n. 7,253,263,366,367, and 417.
3Ibid„ 149.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
374
The masculine image that construes the “mother earth” as the container of the
god's semen is also found in some ancient Near Eastern literature.1 In Canaanite
literature, for instance, “a husband was like a farmer who cultivated the soil so that it
yields a harvest. A woman, like a field, needs the seed and cultivation of a husband, if
she is to be fertile.”2
Pazuzu to protect them against the child-robbing demon Lamashtu. The penis of Pazuzu
was a serpent and he was often depicted next to the tree of life, the sacred date-palm.”4
The giving of a serpent as a bridal gift was “an euphemism for the penis.”3 This is made
evident by a “Sumerian text related to the sacred marriage rite: ‘he lifted his penis,
‘Bledstein, 197.
Hlyrus Gordon, “Canaanite Mythology,” Mythologies o f the Ancient World, ed., S. N. Kramer
(Garden City, NY: Doubleday & Co., 1961), 214-215, quoted in Bledstein, 197.
3Etienne Drioton, Pages d ’Egyptologie (Le Caire: Edutions de la Revue du Caire, 1957), 60. See
de Moor, “East of Eden,” 111.
5lbid.
6Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
375
The biblical account is devoid o f the superstitious beliefs and demonology that
surrounded mating and procreation in the ANE cultures. There are no real similarities
The monster “Tehom” was “well able to injure men.”2 The curse on “Tehom”
which included the striking o f his skull is similar to the crushing of Tiamat’s skull in
Enuma elish? In Enuma elish, Marduk tramples Tiamat’s dead body. Elsewhere.
“The crushing of the head is also the image of victory over an enemy from neo-
Sumerian times; an Assyrian text, in particular, says ‘as that of a snake, I have [struck]
Ward refers to a Chaldean seal which “represents a fleeing serpent, with its head
'Ibid., 110-111.
’-Oesteriey, 178.
3Ibid.
‘Ronning uses these as examples proving that “the crushing of the head is either the end of the
fight, or a victory gesture over a dead body.. . . Gen 3:15 is a picture of complete victory, rather than of a
battle” (95). See Haspecker and Lohfink, 371.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
376
turned back toward a deity, who is swiftly pursuing it, and who smites it with a
weapon.”1 In another corresponding cylinder: “The dragon, which corresponds with the
serpent. . . is in the attitude of retreat, and turns its head back toward its pursuer
represented under the feet of Bel. . . very likely an attendant o f the Dragon, or possibly
of Bel.”3 Ward interprets these to mean “the demiurge Bel-Merodach attacks and
One of the arrows which Izdubar shot at some beasts and winged figures
transfixed a serpent. “Indeed, the massive sculpture of Izdubar, which was often
repeated on late palaces, and which was evidently regarded as a chef d ’oeuvre of
Assyrian art, represented Izdubar as grasping a serpent by the neck with his right hand,
Another significant common ground between the biblical and ANE tradition is
the fact that standing upon or even crushing the head of someone or something signifies
the vanquishing and death of such a one. It is a common sign of victory in both cultures.
Savior Myth
2lbid., 225.
3Ibid.
-Ibid., 226.
3Ibid. Izdubar is identical with “Nimrod, really another form of Merodach” (ibid.).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
377
watery monster, and one who also brought temporal blessings to his people. The
Tiamat, before Marduk later forms men out of clay and the blood of gods. He is the
helper of men in distress, healer in diseases, and one who “awakens men from the dead.”2
The Egyptian sun-god Ra who conquered the dragon Apophis “appears in some
legends as a man who lived on earth and gave gifts to his people.”3 However, Osiris
Osiris “instituted laws, taught agriculture, instructed the Egyptians in the ritual of
worship, and won them from 'their destitute and bestial mode of living.' After civilizing
and defeated and crushed Vritra, an earthly being who is half serpent and half man.6
However, there were various Greek savior figures, namely, Dionysus, Prometheus, and
Pythian Apollo. Notably among them was Pythian Apollo, the dragon-slayer, who was
victorious over the monster and benefits humanity in several ways including teaching
them healing arts, showing them how civil constitutions are formed, and protecting flocks
'Oesteriey, 110.
2Ibid., 111-112.
JIbid., 113.
‘Ibid.
5Ibid.
“Ibid., 114.
R eprod u ced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
378
and cattle.1
While giving room for wide divergence in detail, the belief in a Savior for
humanity is common and cuts across many cultures. It is, however, best developed and
advanced in the biblical literature. The divine Savior portrayed in the Bible is a God-man;
and the salvation He brings is not just cultural and temporal, but rather holistic, eternal,
Sibling Rivalry
The twin-motif is prominent in the creation stories of the ancient Near East. The
Egyptians believed that “life and death were present right from the beginning. Twins
came into the world not only bringing twice the life of a single birth, but also the death
This developed into numerous common stories of two brothers, twins or rivals.
In Egypt, their names were “Anubis” and “Bata” or “Seth” and “Horus.” “The stories of
Anubis and Bata tell of two brothers who work together successfully to graze and farm
their land. Their rivalry for children, however, leaves them both infertile.”3
Once, Bata had to run away from Anubi, his brother, who was chasing him with
‘Ibid., 117.
:Ibid., 61.
}Ibid. “Anubis was the older, Bata was the younger: Anubis was a villager, who married and
owned his own house. Bata was under the care of his brother and lived with him like a son Bata was
young, but he was righteous and blameless in his generation, so the divine assembly of Egypt often let him
use their power” (ibid., 62).
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
379
his spear.1 Bata exclaimed: “Why are you hunting me? Why do you want to kill me
You and your wife are like father and mother to me .. .”2
about “Seth who slew Osiris;”3 and a Canaanite story about “Mot, who murdered Baal.”4
The dispute between Dumuzi, the Shepherd-god, and Enkimdu, the Farmer-god,
is illustrated in a group of Sumerian poetic compositions whose plot resembles the Cain-
Abel motif. The two demigods, or two kings, debate each other’s superiority; each one
extolling “his own virtues and achievements and belittling those of his
Dumuzi, the shepherd-god, “having been rejected by the goddess Innana in favor
of the farmer-god,”6 Enkimdu, elaborately enumerates his superior qualities, and picks a
quarrel with his meek and peace-loving rival, Enkimdu. This aggressive attitude seems to
:Ibid.
4Ibid.
'ANET, 41-42.
6Ibid.
7Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
380
Summary
Several comparisons were elucidated from the ancient Near Eastern literature
which tend to illuminate our understanding of the context of Gen 3:14-15. The ANE
helps readers today to understand the imagery that the Bible writers employed to
It is noteworthy that both the biblical and ANE cultures maintain a similar
death.
Many cultures of the world teach of a golden age before now when and where
humanity dwelt in perfect peace of some sort and divinity related well with humanity.
For example, the Sumerian had an equivalent of the garden of Eden supplied with good
nature, fruits, foods, and clean water in abundance. While many of these cultures teach
A few examples of folklores were seen of animals talking with humans and with
nature. These differ from the biblical instances which involve God in the incidences of
talking animals.
Snakes were revered and feared in most ANE cultures. Serpents were regarded
qualities like evil, enmity, chaos, and death. The serpent’s association with life,
immortality, and wisdom mostly resemble its deceptive agenda for destroying mankind as
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
381
Negatively, the serpent was also considered as the principle of evil and
harmfulness in the ANE. It is considered as an enemy of God and good from primeval
times. It is hostile to humanity, dead or living. Its correlation with deception and
temptation in the ANE agrees with the Gen 3 story. Both cultures agree, to some point,
that the serpent was cursed because it has been used as an agent by the enemy of
humanity. The Bible does not elevate the serpent to the status of a god as does the ANE
cultures.
Many ancient cultures recognize the role of some woman as the progenitor of
humanity. She is connected with giving life and given the status of a goddess believed to
have had some interrelationship or intercourse with some male gods. While some
similarities exist in the mention of the ‘‘rib” in connection with the creation of the woman,
the Bible rejects the idea of the woman being a goddess. Moreover, there was no
sickness connected with the perfect creation of God, both male and female, made in
There is similarity between the names of the biblical Adam and Adapa in the
Mesopotamian story of Adapa. Both Adam and Adapa were given clothes and
underwent a test before the deity based upon something they were to consume. These
tests led to certain repercussion which affected all humanity and nature. They were both
summoned before the divinity to give account of their actions and some supernatural
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
382
However, the areas of commonalities found include the understanding of the fallen
condition o f humanity which was preceded by a perfect state of existence. They both
teach the need for a savior of some kind, delivering humanity from its present
predicament.
In the concluding chapter that follows, attention will be given to the theological
implications of the seed of Gen 3:15 as it has been illuminated throughout Scripture.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
CHAPTER FIVE
Several themes result from the literary, structural, and semantic analysis
presented above, in the light of the seed ofGen 3:15. These themes run through Gen 1-
3, the rest of Genesis, and indeed the rest of the canon. Alongside, there are also some
minor motifs worth mentioning. All these have theological implications for our
Major Themes
dominion, future posterity, food); 2:1-3 (Sabbath rest); 2:9-17 (blissful home, sustenance,
dominion); 2:21-24 (happy marriage, cloth of divine glory). Gen 3:14-19 contains God's
reaction to the Serpent, Woman, and Man. Elements of blessings and promise are found
in each address.1
'The curse of the serpent contained the promise of the Savior. Richard M. Davidson says: “God
pronounces that even though the woman would have difficult ‘labor’ in childbirth-an ordeal that would
seem naturally to discourage her from continuing to have relations with her husband-‘yet," God assures
her, ‘your desire shall be for your husband.’ A divinely ordained sexual yearning of wife for husband will
serve to sustain the union that has been threatened in the ruptured relations resulting from sin. Likewise,
the curse of the ground and toil contains a blessing because God still promises that the ground will
383
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
384
“No other theme provides such a comprehensive insight into the plan and
program of our Lord in both testaments as the ‘promise.’ Beginning with the promise of
a victorious ‘Seed’ in Genesis 3:15, the content of this single, all encompassing theme
buflds.”1
The creation covenant included the ordinances of Sabbath, labor, and marriage.
The test of discipline in the prohibition given to Adam and Eve was a focal point
of the covenant. “If Adam succeeded in submitting to God at this point, his blessing
continue to yield its fruit for man to eat” (“The Theology of Sexuality in the Beginning: Genesis 3,” AUSS
26 [1988]: 129). This curse is for man’s benefit “as a needful discipline, part of the divine plan for man's
recovery from the results of sin” (ibid., n. 24). More persuasive evidence for this traditional view which
contrasts the modem critical tendency to see here only an aetiological reference is found in: James B.
Hurley, Man and Woman in Biblical Perspective (Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1981), 216-219; and Kaiser,
Toward an Old Testament Theology, 35-37.
“Blessing and cursing are important concepts in the book of Genesis Normally, in Genesis,
blessing is associated with God’s favour and cursing with his disfavour” (Alexander, From Paradise to
the Promised Land, 43). God’s blessing was promised through Abraham and his descendants to the
whole world. God’s blessing is closely associated with prosperity in the Genesis narratives. It is also
closely associated with fertility as seen in 1:28 and 9:1. Abraham was promised numerous seed (ibid.).
‘Walter C. Kaiser, Jr., “The Promise Theme and the Theology of Rest,” BSac 130 (1973): 135-
136. The frrst element of the promise consists of “a ‘seed’ or a line of heirs culminating in a chief heir
par excellence which is promised to Eve, Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob (Gen 3:15; 12:3,7; 13:14-16; 15:4,
5, 13, 18; 16:10; 17:2,7,9, 19; 21:12; 22:17; 26:24; 27:1,7; 28:14). Several terms are used in the Old
Testament to teach that the promise is God’s “word,” “blessing,” and “oath” to his chosen “seed,” while
the New Testament uses only the term “promise,” epangelia. See idem, “The Eschatoiogical Hermeneutics
o f‘Evangelicalism’: Promise Theology,” JETS 13 (1970): 91-99; idem, “The Old Promise and the New
Covenant; Jeremiah 31:31-34,” JETS 15 (1972): 11-23. Cf. Julius Schniewind and Gerhard Friedrich,
“e7taYYeUco,” TDNT, 2:576-586.
2Robertson, 82.
3Ibid.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
385
under the larger provision of the covenant of creation was assured.”1 Radical obedience
was the key to their full blessing. The relationship between man and his creator may be
described as a “bond of life and death sovereignly administered."2 Curse and blessing, life
and death, are the alternatives man faced under this covenant.
man’s failure under the covenant of creation. “The very words that pronounced the curse
of the covenant of creation also inaugurated the covenant of redemption.”3 In the speech
of God to Satan, the woman, and the man, following the order of their disloyalty to God,
the elements of curse and blessing are found in each address just like the covenant of
creation. In spite of the Fall, humanity must continue with its original responsibilities
Covenant involved the dialogue of God with humanity and its goal is the
Incarnation. God wishes to be united with humanity. In the light of the covenant, sin is
“the rupture of the bond of the covenant, it is the rejection of God who is offering
initiative led to the revelation of the first redemptive covenant (Gen 3:15), couched in
'Ibid., 83.
^bid., 86.
3Ibid.,9l.
■*Albert Geiin, The Concept o f Man in the Bible, trans. David M. Murphy (Staten Island, NY:
Society of S t Paul, 1968), 127.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
386
A strong bond and dependent relationship can be observed between God and
intelligent beings He created in His image. Man’s joy, freedom, security, fulfillment, and
life were intimately anchored in the personal God and His expressed will. When Adam
and Eve sought all of the above in something or someone else or in the autonomous “I”
relationship between God and man. This is rightly called “Sin.” This is evident in the
fact that Adam and Eve hid themselves from the presence of God, whom they had been
Man’s resultant condition can be rightly described as “fallen.” The reversals and
this fact vividly. The fallen man is also alienated from himself. Shame and guilt so
overwhelmed the first couple that they sought to cover their nakedness with fig leaves.
The awareness of their nakedness was another major indication of their fallen humanity.
Hitherto, they must have been covered by the glory of God and completely unaware of
In the same vein, “Adam had been created to rule the earth. Now the earth’s
dust shall rule him.”1 He now engages in life-long unceasing struggle with the soil. “The
ground does not wish to cooperate with the man who is its keeper (2:15), so works to
frustrate him. Only when the man returns to the earth in death will this struggle cease.”2
'Robertson, 105.
’Ogden, 138.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
387
The intimacy and companionship that the first couple enjoyed was now
contrasted by the alienation and divisiveness that sin and disobedience had brought.
Their mutual nakedness signified their intimacy while their rush for clothing showed each
one withdrawing from intimacy and attempting to coverup. Adam had blissfully and
blithely referred to Eve, his wife (Gen 2:23-25), now disparately and dispassionately calls
her “the woman” (Gen 3:12). The re-use of “his wife” in Gen 3:20, 21; 4:1, after the
blaming game and derogatory reference to “the woman” in 3:2, now bears the implication
human expulsion from their Eden home, the world itself became an alien place.
‘Oliver Kang-song Koh, “A Proposed Order of Worship for the Seventh-day Adventist Church
Informed by the Theological Presuppositions Implied in the Genesis Account of the Creation and Fall of
Man and the Covenant Promise of Genesis 3:15” (D.Min. dissertation, Andrews University, Seventh-day
Adventist Theological Seminary, 1982), 13.
Hjod making garments of skin for the two stresses the permanence of the divisiveness which man
and woman have brought upon themselves. More so, it shows that God realizes that the alienation is
unavoidably a part of man’s existence. God does this so that they can cope with the stark reality of their
sinfulness and fallenness.
Ogden objects: “While disobedience alienates mankind from the rest of creation, there is still a
mutuality in the relationship between the man and his wife in which care and protection on his part meet
with her loving response. As the climax to the search for man’s partner which is the theme for the
Yahwist’s story of creation (2:18), this conclusion is entirely fitting” (139). He emphatically states: “The
action of the man and the woman in eating the fruit has drawn them closer to each other (3:7)” (ibid.,
137).
‘Garrett, 233.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
388
“Although of a common family, the human race is divided and scattered. Languages are
divided, people are dispersed, and all bonds of unity are lost.”1 “The great gulf of
alienation can only be bridged through God’s initiative and His grace.”2
Forgiveness.
The character of God is intentionally expressed in the names used for God in
these chapters. As earlier mentioned, Gen 2 uses both Yahweh and Elohim for God.
Yahweh is God’s personal and covenant name, the God who personally cares; the God
who comes down to be with His creatures; a personal God. Elohim shows Him as
equally infinite. Only the true God of the Scripture is both infinite {Elohim) and personal
The character of God is clearly at stake in the story of the Fall recorded in Gen
3. Here also, the names of God Yahweh Elohim are used together nine times in vss. 1, 8,
9, 13, 14, 21, 22,23. Only in the temptation conversation between Eve and the serpent,
in vss. 1, 3, and 5, do they refer to God as Elohim. Hence, the great issue in the
temptation and Fall is the character of God. Satan’s insinuations against God’s claims
and His character were accepted by Eve. She was deceived into doubting God’s word
'Ibid.
JH. H. Rowley, The Faith o f Israel (London: SCM, 1956), 83. Garrett affirms: “The sense of
estrangement and homeiessness is mitigated only by the promises of God. In that, there is hope of finally
finding a home” (235).
3See Doukhan, Genesis Creation Story, 118-134. “The gods of the eastern religions are infinite,
but not personal; the gods of the Greeks in the West are personal, but not infinite. Only the God of the
Scripture is both” (ibid., 133). Cf. Davidson, “Unlocking Old Testament Treasures,” 5.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
389
and character, which opened the floodgates of woe for the whole world.
decisive manner to man’s disobedience to the divine law. The expulsion of man from
Eden and the judgment of death as a result of his sin clearly manifests God as “the arch
enemy of sin.”1 God is holy and His moral purity is absolute. He will not condone any
thought or action that involves mixed loyalty, open or subtle deviance to His holiness and
righteousness. “God’s righteous dealing with sin and sinner is His holiness in action.”2
Gen 3-4 is very basic in establishing the way God responds to human
trial which can be found universally in the institution of courts (discovery of the
God sentences the transgressors in a legal trial context. However, Gen 3:15 combines
judgment and salvation. “God's acts in saving and judging his people belong closely
together.”4
^Koh, 15. “While God’s righteousness and holiness, radiating as they do from His moral purity,
reject, repel, and condemn what is sinful, they also, paradoxically, generate a divine ‘drawingness’-a
belonging unto Himself’ (ibid.). This is indicated in the root meaning of holiness as “setting apart, a
separating,” as a separating or setting apart “unto God alone.” Cf. William Dryness, Themes in the Old
Testament Theology (Downers Grove, IL: Inter-Varsity, 1979), 53; and Norman Snaith, The Distinctive
Ideas o f the Old Testament (London: Epworth, 1944), 21.
3Claus Westermann, What Does the Old Testament Say About God? (Atlanta: John Knox, 1979),
54. C£ Walter Brueggemann and H. W. Wolff, The Vitality o f Old Testament Traditions (Atlanta: John
Knox, 1982), 83-100; Clines, The Theme o f the Pentateuch, 66-70; Von Rad, Genesis, 152-154; Claus
Westermann, “Arten der Erzahlung in der Genesis,” in Forschung am Alten Testament (Munich: Chr.
Kaiser, 1964), 47; and idem, Genesis l-l 1 ,374-380.
’Westermann, What Does the Old Testament Say About God? 56.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
390
His righteousness is seen in His prohibition against eating of the Tree of the Knowledge
of Good and Evil (2:17). His law is the norm for the dynamic relationship between Him
and mankind. The law is a transcript and reflection of God’s holy and righteous
The wise, beautiful, and harmonious organization of the work of creation teaches
the lessons of the law, love, and grace of the Creator-God. “The principle of law
pervades the text.”' He made everything intrinsically and aesthetically good and perfect.
God’s grace and love towards humanity is evident in that He made them in His
image (Gen 1:27). He made them for good (Gen 1:31); showing an affirmation of life
and ideal existence. He allowed them free, unhindered, and unprecedented access to
Himself and intimate communication with God. This is further demonstrated by the
giving o f the Sabbath rest (2:1-3), a beautiful and completely furnished life in the Garden
of Eden, and even His institution ofthe Tree ofKnowledge of Good and Evil (2:16-17).
2Ibid. “The artistic arrangement of the literary structure, the harmonious repetition of the ten
words for God, the rhetorical rhythm of seven and the refrain ‘it was good,’ and the concluding statement
‘it was really good’ (the Hebrew word for good tov means both good and beautiful), express the aesthetic
perfection of creation” (ibid.). On the pattern of seven, see Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f
Genesis, 1:13-14; and Robert Martin-Achard, El Dieu Cree le d el et la Terre (Geneva: Labor et Fides,
1979), 63.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
391
He gave man food and a help-meet (2:9,18,21-24). The gift of marriage is an eternal
loving union.
o f His creative powers in child-bearing even after sin. The image of God was not
obliterated from man outright. “Eve is not by God, separated from Adam, or deprived of
motherhood.”1
God Himself promised to implant enmity between humanity and Satan: “I will
put enmity” (Gen 3:15). Human beings needed to have the divinely instituted “enmity”
against Satan in order for them to have love for God and even adequately respond to
God’s love. God divinely, graciously, and lovingly instituted the enmity (Gen 3:15). Had
God not specially interposed, Satan and human beings would form an alliance against
heaven in opposition to God and all His purposes. Human beings, on their own, could
God’s grace made Him to seek out the fallen and shameful couple from their
hiding place. Evidently, His eyes were upon them all the time. He came to help them out
and to restore and redeem them. He freely offered these guilty rebels full and free
forgiveness, justification, and sonship again. God’s unmerited favor towards mankind is
established indelibly.
“Immediately upon the debacle of our first parent’s deviation, the sunlight of
divine grace and love burst through, for we see the forgiving God in pursuit of guilty
‘Lester Meyer, "Luther in the Garden of Eden: His Commentary on Genesis 1-3,” Word and
World4 (1984): 433; referring to Lectures on Genesis, vol. 1, Luther's Works, 199.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
392
sinners and His provision of clothing through the death of innocent animals."1
The action of God in “setting/putting” the enmity for Satan in the mind of
enacted. God also created a new clothing for mankind in place of their acquired
“nakedness” (3 :2 1 ). God was in the process of re-creating and redeeming the fallen man.
God also promised “seeds” for mankind without revoking their participation in God’s
creative powers in childbearing. Man’s posterity and continuation were assured in spite
of the punishment of death hanging over his head. Fittingly, Adam names his wife “Eve,”
“The garden of Eden story of Gen 2-3 is an expansion of the image of God story
in chapter 1.”2 This concerns human beings, human nature, and their resemblance to
God. God’s image implies physical, spiritual, biological, spiritual, social, and conjugal
dimensions. This concept has an allusion to royal status of the human person. Human
nature and destiny are described in relationship with God. “Humans cannot exist or
'David L. Larsen, The Evangelism Mandate: Recovering the Centrality o f Gospel Preaching
(Wheaton, IL: Crossway, 1992), 47. Larsen notes: “Human history would be essentially inexplicable were
the third chapter of Genesis to be excised. Apart from a historic Garden of Eden, the human predicament
would have to be explained as the result of our being created as finite beings, and thus God would be
ultimately responsible for our plight” (ibid., 46).
JSawyer, 64.
’Doukhan, “The Future Adventist Understanding of Creation,” 16. ANE inscriptions where the
king is described in the image of the deity, shed light on humanity’s royal status. See Hans Wildberger,
“Das Abbild Gottes, Gen 1:26-30,” 7Z21 (1965): 253-255,484-488.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
393
“image of God” (1:26), at the end as “like one of us” (3:22), and in the middle by the
serpent saying “you will become like God (or gods), knowing good and evil” (3:5).'
When human beings sinned, God was willing to safeguard and re-instate His image fully
back to humanity.
This is “Good News” to man from the seeking and forgiving God. This is the
“Gospel.” The good news is forgiveness from sin, acceptance with God, and restoration
o f fellowship or communion with God. A promise of salvation from sin and Satan is
given by the Creator. Ultimate victory over sin and Satan is ascertained.
“God looks for people. The initiative is with God, not with us. God is acting
intentionally as Redeemer and Sustainer hints the gospel presence.”2 What we receive
from God is not based on merit, not even on how faithful we are. It is God's unmerited
Alienated and depraved, man can in no wise attain self-salvation nor can he
himself effect reconciliation with a holy righteous God to Whom sin is most
repugnant. Rather it is only a holy and righteous God Who can approach
reconciliation. Though absolutely irreconcilable with sin, God in His grace and
mercy can take the initiative to reconcile the sinner unto Himself.. . .
Redemption and restoration began with God seeking man. And every possibility
for communion between God and man has as its basis redemption through divine
initiative.3
The name YHWH is used for God throughout His encounter with man in
'Sawyer, 65. The image of God is not totally obliterated from humankind even after the Fall.
Reference is made to it in Gen 5:1 and 9:6.
2Ibid., 107. “Gen 3 affirms that the initiative for an encounter between God and man always rests
with the God of Israel” (Soggin, “The Fall of Man in the Third Chapter of Genesis,” 109).
3Koh, 16.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
394
reconcilable level. God is still as much available to man after sin as He was before. This
them a second chance. He brought them hope in their hopeless state. His word was
liberating from personal and satanic bondage. He breathed new life into their experience
again.
nothingness, and deliverance out of hopelessness.1 From the creation to the Fall to a
redemptive covenant, God is seen acting on behalf of man. “The first lesson which
The Creator God is also regarded as the cosmic Redeemer. That creation is an
As we have earlier noted above, Gen 3:15 is indeed the first encapsulated gospel
pronouncement. Gen 3:15 vividly shows that this Special Seed of the woman is the
promised Messiah who is victorious over Satan and his followers. This singular
‘Doukhan, Genesis Creation Story, 230. “Faith as a basic love relationship is implied in the
relationship of marriage and by extension to all interpersonal relationships that issue from the marriage
institution. Faith as a living and growing relationship, however, must meet the crucible of obedience to
God (Gen 2:17). Instinctively, faith is a compelling force in the face of the Creator God Who is mighty,
good, and compassionate” (Koh, 11).
-’Gage, 17.
'Gerhard von Rad, “The Problem of Creation-Faith in the OT,” in The Problem o f the Hexateuch
and Other Essays, 136-143.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
395
sacrificial, and vicarious. This is Messianic. It is the ultimate good news that sinful
This special Seed ofthe woman is the One to bear the sins and sufferings of
many. As the High Priest, He offered his life as a sacrifice because Satan's attack on Him
was lethal. Both attacks were simultaneous and intended at causing the deaths of both
sides. As the Seed of the woman fatally wounds the serpent, he is at risk of himself being
wounded to death too. The Messiah-Seed bares his heel and uses it to step on the
The representative Seed was, of course, royal because the first human pair were
royal and he was their seed. The seed always resembles its progenitor. He is therefore a
The first level of the enmity that God initiated in the text is between the serpent
and the Woman. The second level of conflict is between the “seed" of Satan and the
“seed” o f the woman. Evidently, there is a shift from the singular to the plural in this
level. The third level shifts back to the singular: the battle between Satan and “He."
At the literal level, one may allow for the natural duel, hatred, and abhorrence
between human beings as snakes. This is only a very superficial level considering the
heavy implication of the text and its context. This literal application is also implied from
'Gen 3:15 “anticipates the creation of a royal line through which the terrible consequences of the
disobedience of the man and the woman in the Garden of Eden will be reversed” (Alexander, “Messianic
Ideology in the Book of Genesis,” 31).
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
396
the feet that vs. 14 is applied to the literal snake. However, the real application is
spiritual.
Since God is entirely the initiator o f this enmity, He takes side with the “woman"
communion, redemption, and restoration with humanity. God is actually the One fighting
against Satan in the life of mankind. This leads to the second level of this duel.
The enmity between the Satan’s seed and the woman’s seed results from the
spiritual implication of the enmity between Satan and the woman. God is entirely
involved. The grace of God establishes this enmity in the hearts of the descendants of the
woman to the level that each one allows to do it. The individuals who accept God
constitute the woman’s seed. On the other hand, the seed of Satan are all descendants of
humanity who refuse to oppose Satan and engage in this God-originated enmity against
Satan. Rather, these individuals set themselves in opposition to God and his purposes.
Moreover, Satan’s angelic associates, “although not materially descended from the devil,
The whole humanity is divided into only two sides. Those on the Lord’s side are
the woman’s seed (collectively). Those who support Satan in opposition to God are
Satan’s seed (collective). This “anticipates the long struggle that ensues in the history
that follows. ‘Seed of woman’ and ‘seed o f Satan’ conflict with one another throughout
the ages.”2 This conflict between God and Satan, the principles of good and those of
Robertson, 99.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
397
evil, God’s people and Satan’s followers, will continue in all phases and facets of
h u m an ity, from the individual to universal scale, until the full accomplishment of the final
level of this enmity. This is prophetic and eschatological in essence.1 This conflict
The intense struggles described in the first and second levels culminate in the
third level. Here, the enmity narrows down to the singular. Satan himself (singular), as
an individual, enters into the conflict with a representative Seed of the woman (singular).
“‘He’ shall fatally bruise you (Satan) on the head, and you (Satan) shall fatally bruise
Satan himself as an individual, as the prince of his people, stands as representative of their
cause. Corresponding to this narrowing from seed (collective) to Satan (singular) on one
side of the enmity, there is also a definite similar narrowing from a multiple seed
(collective) of the woman to a singular Seed “he” who will champion the cause o f God’s
The truly decisive great controversy is the one between the “he” who is the
“redeemer-representative Seed of the woman” and Satan. These are the two universal
'It should be noted that victory and defeat are intermingled in the immediate experiences of both
sides. Satan’s side sometimes take the upper hand but it remains comforting and assuring that the
ultimate victory belongs to God and His followers. The dynamics of this struggle are vivid in the religious
experiences demonstrated in the book of Psalms and exemplified throughout the Bible from Gen 4 to Rev
22.
^Robertson, 99. The LXX translators chose a distinctively masculine “he” (au?o«), instead of
the neuter “it” (auTO), as pronoun even though its antecedent “seed” (o u ep p a) is neuter. See Martin,
425 passim; and Woudstra, 199-203. The Latin Vulgate translation renders the pronoun as feminine
(ipsa) “she.” This is not supported by the Hebrew text, but rather done to support Mariology in this text.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
398
forces in c o nflict. There are no alternative powers with which to identify, and neutrality
is impossible. The result of this great cosmic moral conflict is pre-determined. The
symbol of the serpent licking the dust and the bruising of its head necessitates the triumph
of the Redeemer and the ultimate annihilation of Satanic forces (3:14-15c). The bruising
of the Seed's heel implies a fetal injury to the Redeemer (3:15d), but His triumph
foreshadows His resurrection from the dead. The final solution to the great cosmic moral
Since this struggle is beyond human powers, the power and ability to withstand
and inflict fatality on Satan and to provide redemption implies that the Redeemer
must be more than human-He must partake of the divine. The mystery of the
Incarnation is thus foreshadowed.1
the great Creator has been assaulted. His handiwork has been disharmonized. Not
simply for the sake of man, but for the glory of God redemption is undertaken.”2
The reality of this great cosmic moral conflict answers the objection that God
could not be given a promise of salvation through or within the context of His sentence
to the enemy. In like manner, Balaam, an enemy’s prophet, spoke blessing of the people
of God (Num 23-24). The Psalmist says pointedly that “the wrath of man shall praise
7. Theme of Eschatology.
‘Koh, 17.
Robertson, 95.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
399
crushed until the end o f the whole ordeal The great controversy is already settled with
the heel injury of the Seed, but does not come to an abrupt end until the serpent is
an nihilated . There is also the tension between the “already” and the “not yet.”
3:15. The redeemer-representative Seed comes back from His heel-inflicted injury to
finish the demise of the satanic forces. Moreover, all the victory of this promised Seed is
transferred to the rest o f the collective seed o f the woman. Everything will be settled
The Creation conveys a “lesson o f faith and hope to the believer.”1 It proves
that “death is not the last word and that new beginnings and restoration are
conceivable.”2 It sensitizes us to the miracle of new life and conversion. In the broader
“Since Creation took place, since the world had a beginning, it is therefore not
eternal: its time depends on God. Creation means that since the beginning was the fact o f
God. The end also belongs to him. Protology leads to Eschatology.”4 A creative-
:Ibid. “The very nature of the miracle of Creation, as an ex-nihilo Creation, points to another
miracle which belongs to the end event” (ibid., 20).
3Ibid., I S. Doukhan further observes that “this way of referring to the post event of Creation in
order to suggest the future event of Salvation is found, for instance, in the book of Jeremiah (especially
4:23-26; 31:35-37; 33:10-25)” (ibid., n. 43).
4Ibid., 20. Claus Westermann concludes that “the beginning and the end” are “the framework for
the history of salvation” which is “the center of the Bible” and, thereby, “takes on a new aspect which is
essential for the Bible as a whole” (Beginning and End in the Bible, trans. Keith Crim [Philadelphia:
Fortress, 1972], 1,29, and 37).
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
400
redemptive relationship has been observed between Protology and Eschatology.1 Not
Several motifs have been discovered in Gen 3 particularly. These motifs are
subsidiary to the major themes discussed above. These motifs may also extend beyond
this chapter but they generally depend on the presupposition o f the passage whether as
instructive or otherwise.
1. Ironic Reversal.
“The myths of sin are ironic in content The serpent’s speech itself is an
ironic overstatement.”3 “He who tempted Eve to eat now himself will eat dust. He who
is arum, ‘subtle’ is now 'arur, banned. The most subtle of all animals now becomes the
cursing into blessing. As an “oracle of destiny,” it forms the primal model for such
poetic intervention. It expresses “retributive irony” to the serpent, the woman, and the
'Gage, 17.
'Geerhardus Vos, The Pauline Eschatology (Grand Rapids: Baker, 1979), 42-61. The divine
work of redemption is described in the language of creation. “The Old Testament likewise appealed to the
creative power of god to urge confidence in divine redemption, an argument from protology to eschatology
expressed in Isaiah’s word from God, ‘I am the first, I am also the last’ (Isa 48:12-14). In this context the
prophet comforts God’s captive people with the assurance that God’s hand, which spread out the heavens,
is the same hand that shall be against the Chaldeans” (Gage, 17, n. 2). See also Pss 74 and 136.
'Edwin M. Good, Irony in the Old Testament, Bible and Literature Series, 3 (Sheffield: Sheffield,
1981), 83.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
401
man. On the other hand, it also expresses “restorative irony” to the woman and the man,
transforming the curse into blessing.' It pronounces God’s wrath in retribution and His
o f prophetic utterance throughout the scripture, a model of all God’s messages o f woe
and comfort.”2
Retributive irony is evident in the condemnation of the serpent: the most crafty of
creatures (Gen 3:1) becomes the most accursed (Gen 3:14). By ironic extension
the serpent’s judgment characterizes the justice distributed to Satan and his
seed The word play in Gen 3:15, ‘you shall bruise him on the heel’ but ‘he
shall bruise you on the head’ (an irony o f degree) establishes the judicial principle
that as Satan had meted out, so in fatal measure it is returned to him again.. . .
Retributive irony likewise characterizes the prophetic judgment upon the woman:
by desiring to rule over her husband she finds herself in perpetual subservience to
him, an irony of contraries. There is retributive irony in the judgment upon the
man as well: the dust that would be like God (cf. Gen 3:22) is turned into dust
again, an irony o f consequence.3
The man and woman were subjects o f both grace and wrath, the ultimate irony
o f curse being transformed into blessing. It was a “demonic irony” when the woman
whose life was derived from the man became the minister of death to him. However by
“divine irony,” the woman was still appointed to be the mother o f all living (Gen 3:20).
'Gage, 45. The poetic means that much may be signified by little stated. The German Dichtung
(“poetry”) is from dichten (‘to make thick, to pack”). The ironic means that what is stated may be
exceeded by or contrary to what is signified. Hermann Gunkel states that poetry was the oldest form of
prophetic speech in almost every ancient culture, a medium suited to the ecstatic passion of the prophet
(Die Propheten [Gdttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1917], 119).
Kiage, 41. See The. Vriezen, An Outline o f Old Testament Theology (Newton, MA: Charles T.
Branford Co., 1970), 233.
3Gage, 45-46. The judicial principle is later developed in the Pentateuch as Lex Talionis. The
idea that Eve was trying to rule Adam stems from the connection between the word “desire” in Gen 3:16
and 4:7. See Cassuto, A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis, 1:165-166. However, this argument is
disputed by others.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
402
The woman who delivered man to sin would deliver him a Savior. By “restorative irony”
God ordained that the weak would conquer the strong because the “Seed” from the
“Procreation is part of creation.” Judaism traces their marriage laws and divorce
laws to Gen 1-3.2 The mention of genealogies and the advancing of the command to “be
fruitful and multiply” are part of the seed m otif3 The use o f TIT “seed” and
“genealogy” in Gen 1-3 interact to form a pattern throughout the book of Genesis. “The
ecstasy of giving life to another hum an being in birth or the earth in forming demands the
agony o f labor.”4
Gen 3 demonstrates the principles that “the punishment fits the crime,” and “not
only the crime, but the criminal”5 “The whole issue of responsibility and obedience is
tied up with ‘eating.’”6 Correspondingly, several portions of the judgment meted out
'Gage. 46.
JIbid., 64.
’Ninow, 121.
‘Benjamin, 54. “The Creator here is more a midwife than a judge” (ibid.). See idem, “Israel's
God as Mother and Midwife,” BTB 19 (1989): 115-120.
‘Patrick D. Miller, Genesis I-l I: Studies in Structure and Theme, JSOTSup, 8 (Sheffield,
England: University of Sheffield, Dept, of Biblical Studies, 1978), 28. God's command in 2:16-17 uses
'Seal four times. In chapter 3, in the encounters that led to the actual judgment speeches, the verb Seal is
used ten times. Cf. Walsh, 161-177.
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
403
have to do with eating. The snake who enticed the woman to sin by eating the fruit
would itself now eat dust all the days of its life. The amicable relations between the snake
Summary
Several theological implications of the “Seed” o f Gen 3:15 arose from the
examination of the main themes of Gen 1-3 and the rest of Genesis. This intensifies the
The seed of Gen 3:15 engenders the Promise theme. Promises and blessings
pronounced to humanity in Gen 3:15 connect with those of Gen 1:28; 2:1-3,9-17, and
21-24 concerning the image of God, dominion, posterity, food, Sabbath rest, blissful
home, sustenance, dominion, happy marriage, and the cloth o f divine glory.
The Covenant theme emphasizes God as a God o f covenant and Adam was a
covenant creature whose covenant-relationship with God was all-inclusive, involving the
totality o f his life. The covenant of creation (Gen 1-2) and the covenant of redemption
(Gen 3:15) are intricately connected, perpetuating the blessings of the Sabbath, labor, and
God promises salvation through His boundless love, grace, and forgiveness. The
special Seed who will save humanity also reverses the alienation, separation, and irony
that has pervaded our experience. Fallen man is also alienated from himself, from one
'Miller, 28-29. “The narrator created a correspondence between the characteristic that led to the
sin and the judgment that is given as a result of it by assonance and repetition of words and sounds" (ibid.,
29).
Reproduced with permission o fth e copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
404
another and from their environment. The character of God is clearly at stake in the
temptation and the Fall story (Gen 3). God’s absolute holiness and moral purity are
repugnant to sin and punishing man was consistent with His character. However,
through the salvation promised, once more humanity will fulfill the mandate to be
‘"fruitful and multiply” and rule over all o f creation made new.
The theme of creation, re-creation, redemption and the gospel is seen in the
divinely-instigated enmity (Gen 3:15). The good news of forgiveness from sin,
ascertained. The Creator God is also the cosmic Redeemer. Creation is an act of
salvation. Creation teaches us dependence. Both creation and redemption require faith
a part of a great cosmic moral conflict between God and Satan. God is the initiator of
the enmity being humanity and Satan, without which humanity would have natural affinity
for sin. The whole humanity is divided into only two sides in the age-long struggle.
Those human beings on the Lord’s side are the woman’s seed while those who support
Satan in opposition to God are Satan’s seed. This conflict centers upon the issue o f the
character of God.
The final solution o f this enmity is eschatological in nature, occurring when the
serpent’s head is finally crushed. This refers to the ultimate annihilation of Satan, his
hosts, all sin, and sinners by Christ who is the representative-Redeemer Seed of the
woman. All the victory o f this special Seed is transferred to the rest o f the collective seed
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
405
of the woman. At the end of time, there will be resurrection of God’s followers and the
re-creation o f all things. Death is not the last word. New beginnings and restorations are
imminent.
Creation witnesses the beginning of all things and equally testifies to the end o f
all things. Creation was the fact o f God. Similarly, the end of all things also belongs to
eschatological.
The minor motif of irony shows itself in various ways in Gen 3. Retributive
irony is seen in the judgments pronounced on the serpent, woman and man. Restorative
irony is shown in the transforming o f the judgments or curses into ultimate blessings for
humanity. By demonic irony, the woman whose life was derived from the man became
the minister o f death to him. However, by divine irony, the woman was still appointed to
be the mother o f all living (Gen 3:20). The woman who delivered man to sin would
The seed and procreation motif notes that procreation is part o f creation. Also,
SHT “seed” and H ilS in “genealogy” advance the command to “be fruitful and
multiply,” given in Gen 1:26-28. Lastly, the motif o f correspondence o f sin and judgment
demonstrates that the punishment fits the crime and the criminal The snake who enticed
the woman to sin by eating the fruit would itself now eats dust all the days o f its life.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
SUMMARY OF FINDINGS, CONCLUSIONS, AND IMPLICATIONS
This study has sought to ascertain the meaning and referent o f “seed” and its
related pronouns in Gen 3:15. This examination is crucial to the true understanding of
this watershed passage that has received considerable attention over the history of Jewish
Summary of Findings
overlaps, opinion shifts, and dogmatism, as well as apologetic rigidity, I have presented
The Literal and Naturalistic interpretations take the text literally as involving
nothing more than snakes and human beings in perpetual hatred for one another. These
refer only to snakebites and the killing of snakes by humans from generation to
406
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
407
The Allegorical interpretations are the most creative and varied, most evidenced
in Philo, Augustine, and several Jewish writers. They deviate from the text into
numerous conjectures using philosophical, moral, and emotional terms like passion, pride,
within the Solomonian era, involve a criticism of this reign through metaphorical
discussions o f Israel’s political enemies like Egypt, Tyre, Moab, Ammon, Edom, Hittites,
and the like. Further, Rationalistic interpretations totally deny that Gen 3:15 possesses
The majority o f scholars writing on Gen 3:15 allow for Naturalistic plus
Figurative interpretations o f the text by seeing a more serious inner symbolic and
figurative interpretation in addition to the literal and naturalistic meaning on the surface.
In fact, Gen 3:14 mostly addresses the literal serpent even though it already contains
certain hints o f the figurative language. However, Gen 3:15 is mostly symbolic, with
Ideology, concern the elaborate king ideology rather than the eschatological messianism
of Bible. These interpretations are based on the equation o f the ancient oriental royal
theology with that of Israel, assuming Israel’s king David as the model of the Adam
interpretations o f the Targums and other Jewish sources reject the uniqueness o f the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
408
Fathers and Calvin identify the woman’s seed collectively as the Church, or the whole
human race, while the woman could be the Church, Eve, or Mary. Some take the
serpent’s collective seed severally to include evil spirits, snakes, demons, and evil people.
Christ is involved by implication because He is the only one who has conquered Satan.
takes the woman’s seed exclusively and particularly as Christ as an individual; but by
being from the woman’s “seed” without the participation o f a man. Hence, Mariology
involves the subsequent exaltation o f Mary, the mother o f Jesus Christ, to a superior
status over all normal humans. This includes Mary’s immaculate conception, sinlessness,
redemptive roles. The final interpretation is the one that recognizes a movement from
Chapter 1 demonstrates that the Hebrew text of Gen 3:15 is relatively problem-
free. The basis of this examination is the final form of the text. The MT represents the
mother text which has influenced the LXX, Peshitta, Latin versions, Vulgate, Jerome,
Targum Onkelos, and Targum Neofiti in retaining the singular masculine personal
The extant portions of Gen 3 from the Dead Sea Scrolls are identical with the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
409
Hebrew text, thus showing that the Hebrew text is uncorrupted as is. Hence, the other
ancient texts cited as following the MT rigidly must also be correct in this respect. The
quality of the LXX for the Pentateuch have been generally accepted as higher than other
parts o f the OT. LXX seems to be a literal rendition o f the MT in Gen 3:14-15.
The genre o f the book of Genesis is narrative like a record of literal events of
history. The genealogical or historical records are called n ilS in (toledoth) for both the
stories of the origin o f the cosmos (Gen 1-11) and the patriarchal stories (Gen 12-50).
The garden of Eden narrative (Gen 2-3) is as much historical as the rest o f the book of
Genesis. Moreover, the word S71T “seed” is programmatic in the book of Genesis,
combining with the key word n ll^ iD in order to yield the central organizing fabric for
the book.
The literary structure of Gen 3 shows that vss. 14-15 are the center of the
chiastic structure. Thus, Gen 3:15 is the central message of the passage. The numerical
pattern of the seven expressions o f the introductory formula o f the divine direct speeches
in the discourse between God and the other characters in Gen 3 underscores the
centrality of God's speech to the snake in Gen 3:14-15. Moreover, the syntactical
analysis supports the centrality of Gen 3:15. The other pronouncements of God to the
woman (Gen 3:16) and man (Gen 3:17-19) are expansions o f Gen 3:15.
The overall structure of the book of Genesis and its earlier chapters evidence the
unity o f the text. The first three chapters o f Genesis are linked together by words,
the creation and the Fall in the garden of Eden. Several interesting transformations and
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
410
reversals are noted between Gen 2 and 3. These strengthen their inseparable
The morphological and semantic analysis o f the words and expressions within
Gen 3:14-15 broaden our understanding o f the passage. The definite article in ©n3H
“the serpent” shows the reader that Adam and Eve must have been familiar with, and
warned about an impending enemy prior to Gen 3. Indeed, the verb "lBtf in Gen 2:15
has varied nuances pointing to the idea o f paying careful attention to oneself, others over
whom one has charge, or to the expressed or implicit will o f one’s superior.
This serpent is the natural snake like other literal beasts o f the field which God
had made in the beginning. This ordinary snake, like other beasts, was put under the
sovereignty of humans. However, the narrative of Gen 3 shows that there was now an
evil power acting behind this ordinary snake. This fact is made evident by the serpent’s
intelligence, conception, speech, knowledge, and keen insight that surpasses those of
humans. This serpent is individualized, and seems to have access to the mind o f God, or
somewhat to the supernatural world. Ultimately, these elements within the text point to
the conclusion that the serpent of Gen 3 represents Satan, the devil.
Only the serpent is cursed by God, apart from other beasts who are not partakers
with it. The form o f this curse reinforces the fact that even though it was pronounced on
this literal, non-morally culpable snake, it was more for the spiritual tempter lying behind
it. However, I submit that the snake itself must have had some measure o f limited
There is some evidence in the text o f Gen 3 suggesting that the serpent might
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
411
have flown prior to the curse that limits it to crawling. This will accentuate the
punishment of the snake for its part in the human Fall. The figurative expressions of
crawling on the belly and eating dust signify utter defeat and annihilation o f the devil and
The emphatic technical and legal term “enmity” in Gen 3:15 is described as
perpetual and occurring only between persons or morally responsible agents, and not
reinforces the involvement o f Satan behind the literal snake, in hostility to Christ and the
righteous people. The hatred between humanity and the evil one is divinely implanted
and maintained, rather than naturally initiated or continued. The decisive end o f this age
long battle is the ultimate victory of the Messianic Seed and the demise o f the serpent
(Satan).
The woman of Genesis is Eve, even though she stands in place o f the couple and
humanity as a whole. The enmity against Satan began with the woman just as the fall of
humanity began when she followed Satan’s offer. The uncommon idea of the woman
possessing “seed,” instead o f the usual male “seed,” appears first here in Gen 3:15. The
seed o f the woman is taken figuratively to represents the plural collective righteous
human beings. The seed of the serpent is taken figuratively to represent the plural
collective wicked human beings, evil angels, and demons. This supports the symbolic
offspring notion, these two opposing seeds stand for two races, or two communities
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
412
found among the children o f men, each marked by moral quality. This fact was first
concretely demonstrated in the contrasting natures of evil Cain and righteous Abel in Gen
The rebellious seeds of Cain follow his unrighteous footsteps by setting God
aside (Gen 4:16-24), while the seeds of Seth, chosen in place o f murdered Abel, “call on
the name o f the Lord” (Gen 4:26). The evil genealogy of Cain (Gen 4:16:24) contrasts
the righteous genealogy o f Seth (Gen 5:3-32), traced directly from Adam, instead of his
evil surviving brother Cain (Gen 5:1-3). The text o f Gen 5 implies that Seth is a “son of
God” like Adam. Hence, the genealogy of Seth constitutes the “sons of God,” i.e., the
righteous seed-group (best exemplified in the life o f Enoch [Gen 5:19-24]). Moreover,
the “daughters of men,” representing the evil lives of Cain and his descendants (most
evident in the wickedness o f Lamech [Gen 4:19-24]), are contrasted with the “sons of
The two verbs used to signify the reciprocal actions o f the serpent and the
representative seed o f the woman come from the same root *]*)£, having a semantic
range that is broad enough to embrace the action o f a snake in biting human beings on the
heel, and the crushing o f the serpent’s head in turn. I subscribe to the translation “fatally
bruise” for both uses. There is no reason in the Hebrew text to suspect the presence of
more than one root for both verbs. Indeed, the reader understands the normal intensity of
Both verbs signify hostile attacks which are eventually fatal for both
representative individuals. Furthermore, the action described by the verb *]!$ affects the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
413
totality o f the person o f each actor in this struggle. The verb affects ultimately the “you”
and the “him,” even though the points o f the contact are the “head” and the “heel”
respectively. The effects o f the attack are by no means limited only to the points of
contact, vis-a-vis, the head and the heel. The text can be literally rendered as “He will
fatally bruise you, [through] the head, and you will fatally bruise him, [through] the heel.”
The only other biblical occurrences o f the verb rp® are Job 9:17 and Ps 139:11.
In both instances, the actions described have negative meanings, always affect the whole
person, and involve dying and disappearing. This sheds light on the use of this verb here
in Gen 3:15. Furthermore, the 1 which separates both usages of this verb in Gen 3:15 is
not strictly causal, but also comparative, introducing the idea o f measure for measure. As
The word tfK l “head” in Gen 3:15 refers to the head o f the symbolic serpent
which is the point o f a fatal attack from the special Seed o f the woman. This indicates
literal death for the serpent. Similarly, the word “heel” refers to the literal heel at
the foot o f the special Seed o f the woman. The Head/Heel dichotomy is a majusi and a
minus signifying victory for humankind. While both actions are fetal the head is more
fragile and fetal This seems to point to the serpent’s total defeat.
The drama o f the enmity prescribed in Gen 3:15 unfolds in stages. On the first
level the serpent is set against the woman, each being a singular individual. This level
15(a): r r o x r m tt
15(b): rra'Krr fa i
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
414
The main characters, vis-a-vis, the snake, the woman, and the man, play representative
roles in this passage. This is supported by the fact that this narrative avoids elaborating
their individual thoughts or their individual plights in a personal crisis. They are indeed
On the second level, the serpent’s seed is set in antagonism with the woman’s
seed each side being plural collective. This level includes this division o f the text:
collective seed grows out o f the initial enmity between Satan and the woman. From this
second level onwards, the serpent is addressed only in symbolic sense, as Satan, the
Devil. Prior in Gen 3:15a-b, the serpent is addressed as both literal and symbolic.
Both the collective woman’s seed and the serpent’s seed have symbolic
connotations, rather than equating them literally and wholly as the totality o f the physical
envisioned describes something much more crucial. This collective woman’s seed
comprises righteous human beings who have been set at enmity with Satan and all forms
Likewise, the collective serpent’s seed are spiritually determined. They are the
followers o f Satan and the opposers of God, His people, and His purposes. They must
include the fallen angels, demons, and all human beings who oppose God, His followers
On the third level, the plural collective woman’s seed is now narrowed down to a
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
415
Hebrew text o f Gen 3:15. Syntactically, the MT signals this shift from a collective to a
singular with an athnach under the last HIHT (Gen 3:15c). This is followed by the
abrupt and sudden usage o f the emphatic masculine independent third-person pronoun
K17T “he” intended to demarcate the intended shift from the collective to the singular
serpent, also signals the fact that the syntactical arrangement calls for an understanding of
the shift from the collective to the singular individual (Gen 3:15e). Also, the imperfect
verb with the third-person singular subject (Gen 3:15d), and the imperfect verb
U B ltin with a third-person singular pronominal suffix (Gen 3:15e) clearly refer to the
A regular pattern and rule emerges from all the occurrences o f TIT “seed” in the
Hebrew Bible. Whenever 5HT refers to the collective for “offspring in general,
posterity,” its related pronouns, are always plural, whether they are independent
specific singular descendant, its related pronouns are always singular independent
manuscripts vividly and intentionally agree with the MT to show that the singular
The most powerful textual support is rendered by the LXX which strictly follows
the Hebrew text in Gen 3:15. LXX intentionally violates the Greek grammatical word
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
416
order in its rendering o f the masculine singular personal pronoun K1H “he” in order to
make a point in favor o f a Messianic reading of this text. Here, LXX uses a neuter
collective noun SIT.- The pronoun which refers back to the 21T and the o t r c p p a
correct in the Hebrew, but an obvious syntactical violation in the Greek. The Greek
In all other cases of translating the Hebrew masculine pronoun K1H, LXX never
violates Greek grammar, even if the translator needed to change gender or loosely render
uniquely so, the LXX o f Gen 3:15 rigidly translates the Hebrew masculine pronoun K in
with the masculine Greek pronoun auioq although the Greek grammar will require the
Messianic.
translation of the Hebrew into the Aramaic, translates Gen 3:15 by rendering the singular
pronoun K1H “he” and prepositional phrase JT*? “to him” in agreement with the MT.
This sustained narrowing from the collective plural seed to the singular individual Seed is
Messianic also.
Likewise, the Targum Neofiti, the most literal of the Palestinian Targums,
translated the first half o f Gen 3:15 quite literally (bnh may be singular or plural), and
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
417
retains ITIV “him” which is certainly a third-person singular pronoun. This abrupt and
addition, the Syriac Peshitta, which appears to literally render the MT of Gen 3:14-15,
follows this Messianic narrowing phenomenon already established in the MT, LXX,
Finally, the Old Latin manuscripts from the European text type (E) and the North
African one use the masculine intensive pronoun, ipse. Jerome seems to have also
followed the Hebrew masculine pronoun by retaining the masculine pronoun as ipse.
These also maintain the Messianic narrowing of the plural seed to the singular Seed.
Seemingly, even some o f the OL manuscripts, like Fischer’s edition and the Vulgate
which use the feminine singular pronouns ipsa and eius with the woman as the
antecedent, also inadvertently recognize the narrowing from the plural to the singular.
All these lines o f textual evidence within the Hebrew of Gen 3:15 and the early
translations of this Hebrew text confirm the idea o f a narrowing from collective to the
singular. It also suggests that this may be stylistic for other seed texts which evidence
narrowing from plural collective seed to singular individual Seed to be most likely
Messianic in intention.
Three powerful witnesses in the Hebrew text thus suggests its intention: a
conscious narrowing down from the collective plural seed to a singular representative
Seed! These include the masculine singular personal pronoun K1H “He,” the imperfect
verb ^|£nBr with the third-person singular subject (Gen 3:15d), and the imperfect verb
13B10n with a third-person singular pronominal suffix (Gen 3:15e); all clearly referring
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
418
In the fourth level o f the text (Gen 3:15[d] and [e]), there are two expressions
each o f which has three words which correspond to, parallel, and antagonize each other.
This parallelism in the literary structure of Gen 3:15 is another strong evidence of the
narrowing o f the collective seed of the woman to a singular Seed. The enmity is
climaxed in a clash between the serpent HriK “you” (singular representative individual)
and the “He” (singular representative individual Seed). Since the serpent is
with another singular individual. This underscores the singular unity that exists in the
collective seed mentioned in the second stage of this ensuing drama. This narrowing
down o f both the concept of woman's seed and the serpent's seed happens in the distant
future showing the prophetic, predictive, and eschatological nature of Gen 3:15.
The representative seed o f the serpent equals Satan in this last stage. Focus is
again given to Satan himself as an individual at this stage o f the conflict. As the prince of
his people, he stands as representative of their cause. In order to parallel and match this
supernatural evil figure, the representative Seed o f the woman must also be a more
powerful supernatural being working in the place o f the woman (Eve) and her posterity.
The collective seed o f the woman find their cause represented and embodied in
an individual in whom the idea “seed o f the woman” finds the most perfect expression,
the masculine Messianic Seed (Jesus Christ). He is the very center of the perfectly
natural concentric circles o f meaning o f the seed o f the woman. As the Champion of the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
419
cause o f God’s enmity against Satan, He is the single representative Hero, more than a
The last portion o f Gen 3:15 vividly shows that this special Seed of the woman is
victorious over Satan. The seed is not exclusively collective or exclusively singular,
Chapter 2 reveals the extent to which the premier Messianic gospel prophecy of
Gen 3:15 is developed through intratextual allusions to the Seed in the rest of the book of
Genesis. The Pentateuch was consistent in its understanding and portrayal of the seed of
Gen 3:15.
Notions o f the “seed” o f Gen 3:15 began in Gen 1:28 with God’s mandate for
humanity to be fruitful and multiply, filling and subduing the earth, and exercising
dominion over all creation. Procreation means “seeding.” This promise was safeguarded
by Yahweh even post-Fail through woman’s seed in Gen 3:15. Aspects of subduing and
exercising dominion are perpetuated by the victorious crushing o f the serpent’s head by
It is the identification o f this special Redeemer Seed who will champion the
cause of humanity against Satan that is the major pre-occupation o f the rest of the book
o f Genesis. This programmatic “Seed” couples with the ni"Tt? in headings to form the
organizing fabric o f the entire book, with a view to delineating the special line o f descent
that will produce the chosen Seed. This chosen Seed is also portrayed as a royal-kingly-
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
420
narrowed down through the twists and turns o f the narratives in the book of Genesis.
Male descendants were designated to bear the promise o f the special Seed from Seth to
Noah, to Abraham to Isaac, to Jacob and his twelve sons, and lastly with Judah, the
chosen one (Gen 49:8-10). The journey that traces the special Seed of the woman (Gen
3:15) within the book o f Genesis ends on a high note in the identification o f Judah (Gen
49:8-12) who is the progenitor of King David. This explains the equation of the singular
“Seed of the woman” with the singular “Seed of Abraham,” the singular royal “Seed of
The biblical text reveals that Adam and Eve must have understood the seed
promise of Gen 3:15 as Messianic. Eve’s exclamation in Gen 4:1 “I have got a Man, the
Lord!” constitutes the first biblical commentary to Gen 3:15 and reveals the Messianic
hope and aspiration of Adam and Eve. Following their tragedy, they still held on to the
fulfillment of this Messianic promise through Seth, the “appointed seed” (Gen 4:25).
Gen 12:7 is reminiscent o f Gen 3:15 in that God both appeared and spoke to
Abraham about the Seed promise. It adds the promise of land possession by the seed,
signifying prosperity and authority. Gen 15:13 also exemplifies both singular and
The rare expression of women possessing seed started in Gen 3:15 and is
repeated in Gen 4:25; 16:10; and 24:60. The emphasis in each case focuses on a single
special individual male child. These other examples o f the feminine seed contradict the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
421
Gen 22:17-18 provides the greatest parallel to Gen 3:15 because of the structural
sim ilarity in terms o f the movement from collective to singular Seed. This narrowing
phenomenon is the strongest Messianic feature o f Gen 22 beyond the idea of the
singu la r individual Seed is also found in Gen 24:60. These narrowing movements vividly
signal a Messianic undertone. Evidently, the Messianic hope was alive and well among
understanding of the Seed o f Gen 3:15 within the Pentateuch, the remaining OT verses,
and the NT. Several major Messianic texts and seed passages in Genesis and the rest of
the OT display vivid allusions to the Seed of Gen 3:15. These intertextual allusions
enhance, complement, and illuminate the limited but programmatic message of Gen 3:15.
It was my finding that subsequent writers o f the OT and NT recognized and followed this
The victory that God assured to the collective righteous seed in their warfare
against the wicked ones is demonstrated in Exod 11:1-10; 15:1-21; and Num 23-24. The
gift o f childbirth is connected with bearing seed in Lev 12:1-8. The kingly role o f the
special Seed is underscored in Deut 17:14-20 and 2 Sam 7:4-19. This Messianic King
will usher in everlasting peace after conquering the enemies. The vicarious suffering
servanthood o f the Messianic Seed, which was hinted at in Gen 3:15, is made plain in Isa
53. The clearest syntactic parallel to the Seed of Gen 3:15 is found in 2 Sam 7:13.
The Messianic Psalms (Pss 2; 18; 68; 72; 89; and 110) echo the note o f victory in
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
422
consonance with the language of the victory o f the Seed o f Gen 3:15. These texts
evidence several terminological, syntactic, and structural links with Gen 3:15. I also
elucidated several themes which the book of Job shares with Gen 1-3 concerning
character and blessings, temptation and its results, great moral conflict, the gospel, and
eschatology.
In the NT, Christ is singled out as the Seed of Abraham (Gal 3:16,19) and the
Seed of David. By extension, believers become the collective seed of Abraham through
faith in Christ (Gal 3:29). This representative aspect of the Messianic Seed's victory is
echoed in Rom 16:20a and Rev 12. Believers are victorious in and through Him only.
Chapter 4 presented the major similarities and contrasts found between the
ancient Near Eastern literature and some o f the expressions found in Gen 3:14-15. Some
o f the similarities are mentioned first. Both traditions contain some form of the
understanding of the fallen condition o f humanity which was preceded by a perfect state
o f existence. In that golden age, humanity dwelt in perfect peace o f some sort and
divinity related well with humanity. For example, the Sumerian had an equivalent o f the
garden o f Eden supplied with good nature, fruits, foods, and clean water in abundance.
Furthermore, both cultures teach the need for a savior of some kind who will deliver
Both cultures accept the serpent as cursed because it has been used as an agent
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
423
by the enemy o f humanity. Negatively, the serpent was also considered as the principle
o f evil and harmfulness in the ANE. It is considered as an enemy of God and good from
primeval times which is always hostile to humanity. Its correlation with deception and
There is similarity between the names o f the biblical Adam and Adapa in the
Mesopotamian story o f Adapa. Both Adam and Adapa were given clothes and
underwent a test before the deity based upon something they were to consume. These
tests led to certain repercussion which affected all humanity and nature. They were both
summoned before the divinity to give account o f their actions and some supernatural
There are numerous contradictions and contrasts between the biblical account
and the ANE cultures. There exist very uncompromising differences in their portrayal o f
the salvation o f humanity. The biblical account seems to have intentionally contradicted
the pagan philosophies in order to distinguish the God o f the Bible as the Creator-
Redeemer. While many of these cultures teach of multiple deities, the Bible opposes this
with monotheism.
A few examples o f ANE folklore portray certain animals talking with humans
and with nature. These differ from the biblical instances in which God is primarily
involved in the incidents of talking animals (Gen 3:1-19 and Num 22:21-35).
Snakes were revered and feared in most ANE cultures. Serpents were regarded
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
424
qualities like evil, enmity, chaos, and death. The Bible does not elevate the serpent to the
However, the serpent’s association with life, immortality, and wisdom resemble
its negatively deceptive agenda for destroying mankind as evident in the Gen 3 story.
The Bible mostly shows the serpent in negative light unlike the numerous positive
attributes given to it in the ANE. Even the wisdom that is attributed to the serpent in the
Many ancient cultures recognize the role o f some woman as the progenitor of
humanity. She is connected with giving life and given the status of a goddess believed to
have had some interrelationship or intercourse with some male gods. While some
similarities exist in the mention o f the “rib” in connection with the creation of the woman,
the Bible rejects the idea o f the woman being a goddess. Moreover, there was no
sickness connected with the perfect creation of God, both male and female, made in
Chapter 5 discusses the theological implications of the “Seed” o f Gen 3:15 which
arise from the examination of the main themes o f Gen 1-3 and the rest o f Genesis. This
intensifies the meaning o f the “Seed” o f Gen 3:15 as Messianic. The promise/blessing
victory over Satan, love, family, and labor. Promises/blessings already pronounced in
Gen 1-2 include those of the image o f God, dominion, posterity, food, Sabbath rest,
blissful home, sustenance, dominion, happy marriage, and the cloth o f divine glory.
The covenant theme begins with the creation covenant which includes the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
425
ordinances of Sabbath, labor, and marriage. Adam was a covenant creature whose
covenant-relationship with God was all-inclusive, involving the totality of his life. Curse
and blessing, life and death-are the alternatives man faced under this covenant.
pronounced the punishment for man’s failure under the covenant o f creation. This
perpetuates the blessings o f the Sabbath, labor, and marriage and centers on the
unfortunate broken relationship between God and man. Several reversals and
transformations pervade Gen 2-3. The fallen man is also alienated from himself. Shame
and guilt became common to human existence as they became alienated from one another
and from their environment. Intimacy and companionship are replaced by alienation and
The theme o f God’s Character involves holiness, righteousness, love, grace, and
forgiveness. The character of God is intentionally expressed in both names in Gen 1-3
that only the Bible combines for God. The name “Yahweh” shows God as personal,
intimate, caring, and covenant-keeping while “Elohim” shows Him as equally infinite and
all-powerful. The character o f God is clearly at stake in the temptation and the Fall story
(Gen 3). God’s absolute holiness and moral purity are repugnant to sin and punishing
God’s gifts (e.g. Sabbath, perfect order in creation, nature, marriage, labor,
procreation), laws, and prohibitions reflect His character o f love and grace. His character
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
426
and lovingly instituted the enmity between humanity and Evil (Gen 3:15) otherwise,
Satan and human beings will have formed an alliance against heaven in opposition to God
and all His purposes. In seeking out fallen humanity with full and free forgiveness,
The theme of creation, re-creation, redemption and the gospel is seen in the
divinely-instigated enmity (Gen 3:15). The good news of forgiveness from sin,
ascertained. The Creator God is also the cosmic Redeemer. Creation is an act of
salvation. Creation teaches us dependence. Both creation and redemption require faith
The theme of the cosmic moral conflict appears because God who initiates this
enmity takes side with the “woman” in a great controversy against Satan. God enters a
is actually the One fighting against Satan in the life o f mankind. The whole humanity is
divided into only two sides in the age-long struggle. Those human beings on the Lord's
side are the woman’s seed while those who support Satan in opposition to God are
Satan's seed. This conflict centers upon the issue o f the character o f God.
This conflict between God and Satan, the principles o f good and those of evil,
God’s people and Satan’s followers, will continue in all phases and facets of humanity,
from the individual to universal scale, until the full accomplishment o f the final level of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
All
this enmity in the final fetal clash between Christ and Satan resulting in the final
destruction o f Satan, his hosts, all sin, and sinners. The final solution to this great cosmic
moral conflict is the crushing o f the serpent’s head. This is prophetic and eschatological.
The eschatological theme is best seen in the feet that the fullest effect of fatally
bruising serpent’s head will not be fully realized until the end o f the on-going cosmic
moral conflict. Though the redeemer-representative Seed o f the woman has already
received His heel injury, yet this controversy does not come to an abrupt end until the
serpent is totally annihilated. There is tension between the “already” and the “not yet.”
returns from His heel-inflicted injury to finish the demise o f the satanic forces. Moreover,
all the victory of this promised Seed is transferred to the rest o f the collective seed of the
woman. Everything will be settled only at the end! Death is not the last word, new
beginnings and restoration are conceivable. In the broader scale o f human destiny, it
Creation witnesses the beginning of all things and equally testifies to the end of
all things. Since creation, the beginning o f all things, was the feet of God, the end o f all
things also belongs to Him. Protology leads to Eschatology. Moreover, not only is
The minor motif o f ironic reversal shows all kinds o f ironies in the text of Gen 3.
Retributive irony is seen in the judgments pronounced on the serpent, woman and man.
Restorative irony is shown in the transforming o f the judgments or curses into ultimate
blessings for humanity. By demonic irony, the woman whose life was derived from the
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
428
man became the minister o f death to him. However, by divine irony, the woman was still
appointed to be the mother o f all living (Gen 3:20). The woman who delivered man to
The seed and procreation motif notes that procreation is part of creation. Also,
in? “seed” and nin^in “genealogy” advance the command to “be fruitful and
multiply,” given in Gen 1:26-28. Lastly, the motif o f correspondence o f sin and judgment
in Gen 3 demonstrates that the punishment fits not only the crime but also the criminal.
On the recurring issue o f “eating,” the snake who enticed the woman to sin by eating the
fruit would itself now eat dust all the days o f its life.
Conclusions
Based on all the findings enumerated above, I conclude that for any translation
or interpretation of Gen 3:15 to be faithful to the Hebrew text, it must recognize the
movements within the text. Moving away from the superficial literal meaning o f the
More importantly, the narrowing movement from the plural collective seed to the
the text. This narrowing happens on both sides of the on-going God-implanted enmity
between the serpent (singular) and the woman (singular); the seed o f the serpent
(collective) and the seed o f the woman (collective); and culminating in the serpent
Hence, the only authentic classification o f interpretation o f Gen 3:15 is the one
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
429
Christological Seed. The 2HT “seed” o f Gen 3:15 is neither solely singular individual nor
plural collective. There is a progression of parallelism in the text. Any interpretation that
leans heavily on mere theories, conjectures, allegories, without due consideration for the
The genre o f the passage is narrative that is a history o f actual events just like the
rest of the book o f Genesis. Gen 3:15 is the pivotal point o f the message of this passage.
It has become a watershed for prophetic interpretations in the Bible. The two technical
words J71T and H ilS in constitute the organizing fabric o f the book.
The woman of Genesis is Eve. The serpent represents Satan. Their seed are
among human beings, depending on who has their allegiance between God and Satan.
The divinely instituted enmity is perpetual until Satan is vanquished. The first level (15a-
b) o f Gen 3:15 features the enmity between Eve and Satan. In the second level (15c), the
In the third level (15d), the focus shifts to the singular individual representative
Seed o f the woman and Satan himself. Grammatical, syntactical, and textual analyses o f
the text reveals its intention to underscore this narrowing from the plural collective seed
to the singular individual representative Seed as the Messianic indicator. Several o f the
early translations of the Hebrew text support this narrowing phenomenon. This is
finalise d in the fourth level (15d-e) o f Gen 3:15 as both singular, individual,
representative subjects fatally clash in a battle that leaves the Messiah victorious and
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
430
Satan vanquished.
My intratextual and intertextual examination o f the Seed o f Gen 3:15 within the
book o f Genesis and beyond yields the tantalizing conclusion that the Messianic hope was
alive and well among the common patriarchal worshipers of Yahweh. Subsequent
biblical writers in the Old and New Testaments recognized, understood, and maintained
this Messianic hope. The first biblical commentary on Gen 3:15, found in Gen 4:1, 25,
helps us to conclude that Adam and Eve immediately understood and perpetrated its
Messianic force. All these later allusions collectively enhance, complement, and
illuminate the Messianic understanding already portrayed in Gen 3:15. However, the
ANE do not constitute exact parallels to the biblical account but a basis of comparison on
The special Seed o f the woman is a Victor, Conquerer, Overcomer, and Leader.
royal and priestly while remaining servant-like. The New Testament proclaims that the
Seed o f Gen 3:15 is Jesus Christ, the Savior of mankind. The Seed of the woman is the
promised Messiah. By extension, all who believe in Christ become victorious in and
through Him over Satan, sin, wicked people, and the world.
The theological themes support the Messianic understanding of the Seed o f Gen
3:15. The promises, blessings, and the covenant are centered on the Messiah who
delivers the people from the enmity of Satan and Satan’s followers. The salvation that
the Messiah offers humanity is individual and cosmic, and both in the present and in the
future. This great cosmic moral conflict will finally end when Christ eliminates Satan, all
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
431
sin, and sinners while vindicating all o f God’s followers as He makes all things new.
paraphrased translation o f Gen 3:15: “And I (God) will put a divinely instigated enmity
between you (Satan) and the woman (Eve); between all human beings who follow after
Satan (seed o f the serpent) and all those who follow righteousness (seed of the woman).
Ultimately, He who is the vicarious male descendant that represents the seed o f the
woman will fatally bruise Satan on the head to fully destroy and annihilate him (and his
Further research is needed for the other seed passages which evidence the
narrowing movement from the plural collective seed to the singular individual seed such
as found in Gen 22:17-19 and Gen 24:60. In addition, there is need for more in-depth
study of all Messianic texts in the canon in order to investigate the possibility o f a
common trend, or sequence or link between them. There seems to be some inherent
More is left for further investigation on another major emphatic word in Gen
3:15, namely HZPK “enmity.” It stands at the beginning o f this watershed text and may
contain more information than I have been able to investigate in this dissertation.
implications and themes that arise from Gen 3:15. This can certainty be the focus of
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
432
thesis by Oliver Koh1examined how an order o f worship can be based on Gen 3:15.
Finally, it is also important to further study the behavior o f other nouns that
function like “seed" by appearing in the same form in both singular and plural forms. It
will be helpful to ascertain to what extent other such nouns reveal their intended singular
or collective meanings in the same way as in the case o f “seed" by means of the
'Koh's thesis has been mentioned several times in the preceding chapters.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Aalders, Gerhard Charles. The Book o f Genesis. 2 vols. Bible Student’s Commentary.
Translated by William Heynen. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1981.
Abbott, John. The Covenant o f Grace. Hornsby, Australia: Stewart, 1981.
Abegg, Martin, Jr., Peter Flint, and Eugene Ulrich. The Dead Sea Scrolls Bible: The
Oldest Known Bible Translatedfo r the First Time into English. New York: Harper
Collins, 1999.
Abela, A. The Themes o f the Abraham Narrative: Thematic Coherence Within the
Abraham Literary Unit o f Genesis 11, 27-25,18. Malta: Studia, 1989.
Aberbach, Moses, and Bernard Grossfeld, eds. Targum Onkelos to Genesis. New York:
Ktav, 1982.
Ackroyd, Peter R. “Meaning and Exegesis.” In Words and Meaning: Essays Presented to
David Winton Thomas on His Retirementfrom the Regius Professorship o f Hebrew
in the University o f Cambridge, ed. Peter Ackroyd and Barnabas Lindars, 1-14.
London: Cambridge University Press, 1968.
________. The Second Book o f Samuel. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1977.
Ackroyd, Peter R., and C. F. Evans, eds. The Cambridge History o f the Bible. Vol. 1.
Cambridge: Cambridge, 1970.
Achtemeier, Elizabeth. “The Story o f Us All: A Christian Exposition of Genesis 3.” In
Preaching Biblical Texts: Expositions by Jewish and Christian Scholars, ed.
Frederick C. Holmgren and Herman E. Schaalman, 1-10. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans,
1995.
Adams, Elsie, and Mary Louise Briscoe. Up Against the Wall, M other... . Beverly Hills:
Glencoe, 1971.
Adar, Zvi. The Book o f Genesis: An Introduction to the Biblical World. Jerusalem:
Magnes, 1990.
AddinaU, Peter. “What Is Meant by a Theology o f the Old Testament?’ Expository Times
97 (1986): 332-336.
Aharoni, I. “On Some Animals Mentioned in the Bible.” Osiris 5 (1938): 461-478.
433
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
434
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
435
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
436
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
437
The Assyrian Dictionary o f the Oriental Institute o f the University o f Chicago. 21 vols.
Chicago: Oriental Institute, 1968-1992.
Astour, Michael C. “Two Ugaritic Serpent Charms.” Journal o f Near Eastern Studies 27
(1968): 13-36.
Atkinson, David John. The Message o f Genesis 1-11: The Dawn o f Creation. Downers
Grove: IL: Inter-Varsity, 1990.
Attinger, P. “Enki et Ninhursaga.” Zeitschrift fu r Assyriologie und Voraerasiatische
Archdologie 74 (1984): 1-52.
Attridge, Harold W. The Interpretation o f Biblical History in the Antiquitates Judaicac o f
Flavius Josephus. Harvard Dissertations in Religion, 7. Missoula, MT: Scholars,
1975.
Austel, J. Hermann. “”113127.” Theological Workbook o f the Old Testament. Edited by R.
Laird Harris, Gleason L. Archer, and Bruce K. Waltke. Chicago: Moody, 1980.
2:939-942.
Augustine, Saint, Bishop o f Hippo. Saint Augustine on Genesis. Translated by Roland J.
Teske. Vol. 84, The Fathers o f the Church: A New Translation. Washington, DC:
The Catholic University of America, 1991.
________. The Literal Meaning o f Genesis. Translated by John Hammond Taylor. New
York: Newman, 1982.
Avi-Yonah, Michael, ed. Encyclopedia o f Archeological Excavations in the Holy Land.
Englewood Cliffs, NJ: Prentice-Hall, 1973.
Azevedo, Joaquim. “At the Door o f Paradise: A Contextual Interpretation o f Gen 4:7.”
Biblische Notizen 100 (1999): 45-58.
Babernitz, Peter Michael. “The Genealogies o f Genesis 1-11: Their Forms and Functions.”
M.A. thesis, St. Mary’s Seminary and University, Baltimore, Maryland, 1980.
Bach, Alice. “After the Garden.” Union Seminary Quarterly Review 44 (1990): 1-17.
Bacher, W. Targum. Vol. 12 o f Jewish Encyclopedia, ed. David Bridger. New York:
Behrman House, 1901.
Badalamenti, Anthony F. “Freud and the Fall o f Man.” Journal o f Religion and Health 27
(1988): 23-61.
Baigent, John, and Leslie C. Allen. “The Psalms.” The International Bible Commentary.
Edited by F. F. Bruce. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1986.552-655.
Bailey, J. “Initiation and the Primal Woman in GQgamesh and Genesis 2-3.” Journal o f
Biblical Literature 89 (1970): 137-150.
Bailey, Lloyd R. Biblical Perspectives on Death. Philadelphia: Fortress, 1979.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
438
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
439
_______ . “Etymology and the Old Testament.” In Language and Meaning: Studies in
Hebrew Language and Biblical Exegesis, 1-28. Oudtestamentische studien, 19.
Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1974.
________. The Garden o f Eden and the Hope o f Immortality. Minneapolis: Fortress,
1992.
________. Holy Scripture: Canon, Authority, Criticism. Oxford: Oxford University Press,
1983.
________. “Hypostatization o f Linguistic Phenomena.” Journal o f Jewish Studies 26
(1962): 85-94.
________. “Man and Nature-The Ecological Controversy and the Old Testament.”
Bulletin o f the John Rylands University Library o f Manchester 55 (1972): 9-32.
________. “The Meaning o f ‘Mythology’ in Relation to the Old Testament.” Vetus
Testamentum 9 (1959): 1-10.
________. The Semantics o f Biblical Language. London: Oxford University Press, 1961.
________. “Themes from the Old Testament for the Elucidation o f the New Creation.”
Encounter 31 (1970): 25-30.
________. “Theophany and Anthropomorphism in the Old Testament.” Vetus
Testamentum Supplements 7 (1960): 31-8.
________. “Thou Art the Cherub: Ezekiel 28.14 and the Post-Ezekiel Understanding of
Genesis 2-3.” In Priests, Prophets, and Scribes: Essays on the Formation and
Heritage o f Second Temple Judaism, Festschriftfo r Joseph Blenkinsopp, ed.
Eugene Ulrich et aL, 213-223. Sheffield: JSOT, 1992.
________. Typology o f Literalism in Ancient Biblical Translations. Nachrichten:
Mitteilungen des Septuaginta-U ntemehmens Gottingen, 1979.
Barr, Jane. “The Vulgate Genesis and St. Jerome’s Attitude to Women.” Studia Patristica
17 (1982): 268-273.
Barth, Karl. Church Dogmatic. Vol. 3, The Doctrine o f Creation, Part I. Edinburgh: T. &
T. Clark, 1958.
Baskin, Judith R. “Rabbinic Reflections on the Barren Wife.” Harvard Theological
Review 82 (1989): 101-114.
Bassler, Jouette. “Adam, Eve and the Pastor: The Use o f Genesis 2-3 in Pastoral
Epistles.” In Genesis 1-3 in the History o f Exegesis: Intrigue in the Garden, ed.
Gregory Allen Robbins, 43-65. Studies in Women and Religion, 27. Lewiston. NY:
E. Mellen, 1988.
Batto, Bernard F. Slaying the Dragon: Myth-making in the Biblical Tradition. Louisville:
Westminster, 1992.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
440
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
441
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
442
Biella, Joan Copelant. Dictionary o f Old South Arabic: Sabaean Dialect. Harvard Semitic
Studies, 25. Chico, CA: Scholars, 1982.
Bietenhard, Hans, and Horst Seebass, ‘‘Enemy, Enmity, Hate.” The New International
Dictionary o f New Testament Theology. Edited by Colin Brown. Grand Rapids:
Zondervan, 1971. 1:553-557.
Bietenhard, Hans, and Philip J. Budd. “Dragon, Serpent, Scorpion, Sting.” The New
International Dictionary o f New Testament Theology. Edited by Colin Brown.
Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1971. 1:507-511.
Bird, Phyllis. “Genesis 1-3 as a Source for a Contemporary Theology o f Sexuality.” Ex
Auditu 3 (1987): 31-44.
________. “Male and Female He Created Them.” Harvard Theological Review 14
(1981): 129-159.
Birkeland, Harris. The Evildoers in the Book o f Psalms. Oslo: I Kommisjon, 1955.
Bjornard, Reidar B. “Jesus and the Messiah of the Old Testament.” Foundations 3
(1960): 172-175.
Blaising, Craig A., and Darrell L. Rock. Progressive Dispensationalism. Wheaton, IL:
Victor, 1993.
Blank, Sheldon H. “The Curse, Blasphemy, the Spell, and the Oath.” Hebrew Union
College Annual 23, no. 1 (1950-1): 73-95.
Blau, Joshua. “Zum angeblichen Gebrauch von DK vor dem Nomativ.” Vetus
Testamentum 4 (1954): 7-19.
Bledstein, Adrien Janis. “The Genesis o f Humans: The Garden of Eden Revisited.”
Judaism 26 (1977): 187-200.
________. “Was Eve Cursed (Or Did A Woman Write Genesis?).” Bible Review 9
(1993): 42-45.
Blenkinsopp, Joseph. A History o f Prophecy in Israel: From the Settlement in the Land to
the Hellenistic Period. Philadelphia: Westminster, 1983.
________. “Biographical Patterns in Biblical Narrative.” Journal fo r the Study o f the Old
Testament 20 (1981): 27-46.
________. The Pentateuch: An Introduction to the First Five Books o f the Bible. Anchor
Bible Reference Library. Edited by D. N. Freedman. New York: Doubleday, 1992.
________. “Theme and Motif in the Succession History (2 Sam xi 2ff.) and the Yahwist
Corpus.” In Congress o f the International Organization fo r the Study o f the Old
Testament: Volume du Congres, Geneve, 1965, ed. G. W. Anderson et a l, 44-57.
Vetus Testamentum Supplement, 15. Leiden: Brill, 1966.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
443
Blocher, Henri. In the Beginning: The Opening Chapters o f Genesis. Translated by David
G. Preston. Downners Grove, IL: Inter-Varsity, 1984.
Bloesch, Donald G. “A Christological Hermeneutic: Crisis and Conflict in Hermeneutics
[Gen 3:14-15; 4:1-16; Isa 35; Matt 5:9; Mk 3:27; 1 Cor 14:33-34] ” In The Use o f
the Bible in Theology: Evangelical Options, ed. Robert K. Johnston, 78-102.
Atlanta, GA: John Knox, 1985.
Blum, Erhard. Die Komposition der Vatergeschichte. Neukirchen-Vluyn: Neukirchener
Verlag, 1984.
Blythin, Islwyn. “The Patriarchs and the Promise.” Scottish Journal o f Theology 21
(1968): 56-73.
Boadt, Lawrence. Old Testament Message. Vol. 9. Wilmington, DE: Michael Glazier,
1982.
Bock, Darrell L. Proclamation from Prophecy and Pattern: Lucan Old Testament
Christology. Journal for the Study of the New Testament Supplement Series, 12.
Sheffield: JSOT, 1987.
Bodenheimer, F. S. Animal and Man in Bible Lands. Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1960.
Boice, James Montgomery. Genesis: An Expositionary Commentary. Grand Rapids:
Zondervan, 1982.
Boisen, Anton T. “What Did Jesus Think o f Himself.” Journal o f Bible and Religion 20
(January 1952): 7-12.
Bolger, Eric W. “The Compositional Role o f the Eden Narrative in the Pentateuch.” Ph.D.
dissertation, Trinity Evangelical Divinity School, Deerfield, Illinois, 1993.
BonhoefFer, Dietrich. Creation and Fall: A Theological Exposition o f Genesis 1-3.
Translated by D. Bax and J. Degruchy. Minneapolis: Fortress, 1997.
Boomershine, Thomas E. “Structure and Narrative Rhetoric in Genesis 2-3.” Semeia 18
(1980): 113-129.
Borger, Riekele. “Genesis IV 1.” Vetus Testamentum 9 (1959): 85-86.
Boslooper, Thomas David. The Virgin Birth. Philadelphia: Westminster, 1962.
Botterweck, G. Johannes, and Helmer Ringgren, eds. Theological Dictionary o f the Old
Testament. 9 vols. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1974-.
________. Theologische Worterbuch zum Alten Testament. 10 vols. Stuttgart:
Kohihammer, 1973-.
Bowker, John. The Targums and Rabbinic Literature: An Introduction to Jewish
Interpretations o f Scripture. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1969.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
444
Boyd, Jesse L., III. “An Example of the Influence of Egypt on the Development o f the
Hebrew Language During the Second Millennium B.C.” In A Tribute to Gleason
Archer, ed. Walter C. Kaiser, Jr., and Ronald F. Youndblood, 191-195. Chicago:
Moody, 1986.
Braaten, Carl E. ‘Toward a Theology o f Hope.” Theology Today 24 (1967): 208-226.
Brandon, S. G. F. Creation Legends o f the Ancient Near East. London: Hodder &
Stoughton, 1963.
________. “The Origin of Death in Some Ancient Near Eastern Religions.” Religious
Studies 1 (1965): 217-228.
Brandscheidt, Renate. “Der Mensch und die Bedrohung durch die Macht des Bdsen. Zur
Traditionsgeschichte von Genesis 3.” Trierer Theologische Zeitschrift 109 (2000):
1-23.
Bratcher, Margaret D. “The Pattern of Sin and Judgment in Genesis 1-11.” Ph.D.
dissertation, Southern Baptist Theological Seminary, Louisville, Kentucky, 1985.
Bratcher, Robert G., ed. Old Testament Quotations in the New Testament. Helps for
Translators, 38. New York: United Bible Societies, 1987.
Bratsiotis, N. P. and n#K .” Theological Dictionary o f the Old Testament. Edited
by G. Johannes Botterweck and Helmer Ringgren. Translated by John T. Willis.
Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1974.1:222-235.
Bray, Gerald L. “The Fall Is a Human Reality.” Evangelical Review o f Theology 9 (1985):
334-338.
Breasted, James Henry. A History o f Egypt. New York: Bantam, 1964.
Brenner, Athalya, ed. A Feminist Companion to Genesis. The Feminist Companion to the
Bible, 2. Sheffield, England: Sheffield, 1993.
_______ . The Israelite Woman. Social Role and Literary Type in Biblical Narrative.
England: Sheffield, 1985.
Bresslau, Marcus H. English and Hebrew Dictionary. London: Crosby Lockwood, 1910.
Brichto, Herbert C. “Kin, Cult, Land, and Afterlife.” Hebrew Union College Annual 44
(1973): 1-54
________. The Problem o f “Curse ” in the Hebrew Bible. Journal o f Biblical Literature
Monograph Series, 13. Philadelphia: Society of Biblical Literature, 1968.
Briggs, Charles A. Messianic Prophecy: The Prediction o f the Fulfillment o f Redemption
through the Messiah. New York: Charles Scribner’s Sons, 1886.
Briggs, Charles A., and Emilie G. Briggs. A Critical and Exegetical Commentary o f the
Book o f Psalms. International Critical Commentary. Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark,
1952.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
445
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
446
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
447
Caird, George B. A Commentary on the Revelation o f St. John the Divine. New York:
Harper & Row, 1966.
Calderini, Simonetta. “Woman, ‘Sin’ and ‘Lust’: The Fall o f Adam and Eve According to
Classical and Modem Muslim Exegesis.” In Religion and Sexuality, ed. Michael A.
Hayes, Wendy Porter, and David Tombs, 49-63. Studies in Theology and Sexuality,
2. Roehampton Institute London Papers, 4. Sheffield, England: Sheffield, 1998.
Calvin, John. Commentaries on the First Book o f Moses, Called Genesis. Translated by
John King. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1948.
________. Institutes o f Christian Religion. Edited by John T. McNeill and translated by
Ford L. Battles. Library o f Christian Classics, vol. 20. Philadelphia: Westminster,
1960.
Campbell, A. F., and M. A. O’Brien. Sources o f the Pentateuch: Texts, Introductions,
Annotations. Minneapolis: Fortress, 1993.
Campbell, K. M. “The Messianic Covenant.” Journal o f the Evangelical Theological
Society 15 (1972): 181-185.
Campenhausen, Hans von. The Virgin Birth in the Theology o f the Ancient Church.
Studies in Historical Theology, 2. London: SCM, 1964.
Candish, Robert Smith. Commentary on Genesis. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1956.
Cansdale, George Soper. All the Animals o f the Bible Lands. Grand Rapids: Zondervan,
1970.
Carlson, G. J. “The Two Creation Accounts in Schematic Contrast.” Bible Today 66
(1973): 1192-1194.
Carlson, Rolf August. David the Chosen King: A Traditio-historical Approach to the
Second Book o f Samuel. Uppsala: Almqvist and WikseU, 1964.
Carmichael, Calum M. “Forbidden Mixtures.” Vetus Testamentum 32 (1982): 394-415.
________. “The Paradise Myth: Interpreting without Jewish and Christian Spectacles.” In
A Walk in the Garden: Biblical, Iconographical and Literary Images o f Eden, ed.
Paul Morris and Deborah Sawyer, 47-63. Journal for the Study o f the Old
Testament Supplement Series, 136. Sheffield: JSOT, 1992.
Carpenter, Eugene, and Michael A. Grisanti. “3pff.” New International Dictionary o f Old
Testament Theology and Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et al. Grand
Rapids: Zondervan, 1997.3:504-506.
Carr, David. “The Politics o f Textual Subversion: A Diachronic Perspective on the Garden
o f Eden Story.” Journal o f Biblical Literature 112 (1993): 577-595.
Carter, Roman E. A. “Two Glimpses o f Satan.” Philippiniana Sacra 28 (1993): 353-359.
Cary, Phillip. “Seeing through Adam's Excuse.” Daughters o f Sarah 14 (1988): 7-11.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
448
Cassuto, Umberto. Biblical and Oriental Studies. Translated by Israel Abrahams. 2 vols.
Jerusalem: Magnes, 1973.
________. A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis. Vol. 1, From Adam to Noah.
Jerusalem: Magnes, 1961.
________. A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis. Vol. 2, From Noah to Abraham.
Jerusalem: Magnes, 1961.
________. The Documentary Hypothesis and the Composition o f the Pentateuch: Eight
Lectures. Jerusalem: Magnes, 1961.
________. La Questione della Genesi. Firenze: F. de Monnier, 1934.
Castelino, G. R. “Genesis IV, 7.” Vetus Testamentum 10 (1960): 442-5.
Cazelles, Henri. “Genese III, 15: Exegese contemporaine.” La Nouvelle Eve 3 (1957): 91-
99.
Cerfaux, Lucien. “La vision de la femme et du dragon de l'apocalypse en relation avec le
protevangile.” Ephemerides Theologicae Lovaniensis 31 (1955): 21-33.
Chance, J. Bradley. “The Seed of Abraham and the People o f God: A Study of Two Pauls
[Rom 4; Gal 3; Luke-Acts].” In Society o f Biblical Literature 1993 Seminar
Papers: 129h Annual Meeting, Washington DC, November 20-23, 1993, ed.
Eugene H. Lovering, 384-411. Atlanta, GA: Scholars, 1993.
Chappell, Timothy D. J. “Explaining the Inexplicable: Augustine on the Fall.” American
Academy o f Religion 62 (1994): 869-884.
Charles, Robert H. Apocrypha and Pseudepigrapha o f the Old Testament. Vols. 1 and 2.
Oxford: Clarendon, 1913.
________. The Book o f Enoch. Oxford: Clarendon, 1912.
________. The Book o f Jubilees or the Little Genesis: Translatedfrom the Ethiopic Text.
London: Society for Promoting Christian Knowledge, 1917.
________. A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on the Revelation o f St. John. 2 vols.
International Critical Commentary. Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1920.
________. “The Translator o f the Greek Genesis.” In La Septuaginta en la Jnvestigacion
Contemporanea (VCongreso de la IOSCS), ed. N. Fernandez Marcos, 169-182.
Madrid: Instituto “Arias Montano” C. S. I. C., 1985.
Charlesworth, James H., ed. The Messiah: Developments in Earliest Judaism and
Christianity. Minneapolis: Fortress, 1992.
________, ed. The Old Testament Pseudepigrapha. 2 vols. Garden City: Doubleday,
1985.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
449
Charlesworth, James H., and Craig A. Evans, eds. The Pseudepigrapha and Early
Biblical Interpretation. Journal for the Study of the Pseudepigrapha Supplement
Series, 14. Sheffield, England: JSOT, 1993.
Chave, Peter. “The Fall” Expository Times 97 (1985): 16-17.
Chawla, Janet. “Gendered Representation of Seed, Earth, and Grains: A Woman-Centered
Perspective on the Conflation of Woman and Earth.” Journal o f Dharma 18 (1993):
237-257.
Chazal, Nancy de. “The Women in Jesus’ Family Tree.” Theology 97 (1994): 413-419.
Chew, Hiang Chea. “The Theme o f‘Blessing for the Nations’ in the Patriarchal Narratives
o f Genesis.” Ph.D. dissertation, University of Sheffield, England, 1982.
Childs, Brevard S. Biblical Theology o f the Old and New Testaments: Theological
Reflection on the Christian Bible. Minneapolis: Fortress, 1993.
_______ . “Interpretation in Faith: The Theological Responsibility of an Old Testament
Commentary.” Interpretation 18 (1964): 432-449.
_______ . Introduction to the Old Testament as Scripture. London: SCM, 1979.
_______ . Myth and Reality in the Old Testament. London: S. C. M.,1960.
_______ . “Old Testament Theology.” In Old Testament Interpretation: Past, Present,
and Future: Essays in Honor o f Gene M. Tucker, ed. James Luther Mays, David
Petersen, and Kent Harold Richards, 293-301. Nashville: Abingdon, 1995.
_______ . Old Testament Theology in Canonical Context. Philadelphia: Fortress, 1986.
Chilton, Bruce D. “Jesus and Israel's Scriptures.” In Studying the Historical Jesus, ed.
Bruce D. Chilton and Craig A. Evans, 281-335. Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1994.
_______ . Paradise Restored: A Biblical Theology o f Dominion. Fort Worth: TX:
Dominion Press, 1987.
Cho, John Chongnahm. “Adam’s Fall and God’s Grace: John Wesley’s Theological
Anthropology.” Evangelical Review o f Theology 10 (1986): 202-213.
Christo, Gordon Eugene. “The Eschatological Judgment in Job 19:21-29: An Exegetical
Study.” Ph.D. dissertation, Andrews University, Berrien Springs, Michigan, 1992.
Chrysostom, John. Homilae in Genesimi. English translation: St. John Chrysostom:
Homilies on Genesis l - l 7. Translated by Robert C. HilL VoL 74, The Fathers o f the
Church: A New Translation. Edited by Thomas P. Halton et aL Washington, DC:
Catholic University o f America Press, 1986.
Churgin, Pinkhos. “The Targum and the LXX.” American Journal o f Semitic Languages
and Literature 50 (1933): 41-65.
Cini, Thomas. “Original Sin in Contemporary Thought.” Dimension 1 (1969): 103-116.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
450
Clark, Elizabeth A. “Heresy, Asceticism, Adam, and Eve: Interpretation of Genesis 1-3 in
the Later Latin Fathers.” In Genesis 1-3 in the History o f Exegesis, ed. Gregory
Allen Robins, 99-133. Lewiston, NY: Edward Mellen, 1988.
Clark, Gordon Haddon. “The Image o f God in Man.” Journal o f the Evangelical
Theological Society 12 (1969): 215-222.
Clark, Harold Willard. The Battle Over Genesis. Washington, DC: Review and Herald,
1977.
Clark, W. Malcolm. “The Animal Series in the Primaeval History.” Vetus Testamentum 18
(1968): 433-449.
________. “The Flood and the Structure o f Pre-patriarchal History.” Zeitschrift fu r die
alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 83 (1971): 196-197.
________. “Law.” In Old Testament Form Criticism, ed. J. H. Hayes, 113-116. San
Antonio, TX: Trinity University Press, 1974.
________. “A Legal Background to the Yahwist’s Use o f ‘Good and Evil’ in Gen 2-3.”
Journal o f Biblical Literature 88 (1969): 266-278.
Clarke, E. G., et al. Targum Pseudo-Jonathan o f the Pentateuch: Text and Concordance.
Hoboken, NJ: Ktav, 1984.
Clay, Albert T. The Origin o f Biblical Traditions: Hebrew Legends in Babylonia and
Israel. Yale Oriental Series, 12. New Haven: Yale University Press, 1923.
Clements, Ronald E. Abraham and David: Genesis 15 and Its Meaningfo r Israelite
Tradition. London: SCM, 1967.
________. “The Messianic Hope in the Old Testament.” Journalfo r the Study o f the Old
Testament 43 (1989): 3-19.
Clifford, Richard J. The Cosmic Mountain in Canaan and the Old Testament. Harvard
Semitic Monographs, 4. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 1972.
________. “The Hebrew Scriptures and the Theology of Creation.” Theological Studies
46 (1985): 507-523.
________. “Isaiah 40-66.” Harper’s Bible Commentary. Edited J. L. May et al. San
Francisco: Harper & Row, 1988. 571-596.
Clines, David J. A. “False Naivety in the Prologue of Job.” Hebrew Annual Review 9
(1985): 127-136.
________. “The Image o f God in Man.” Tyndale Bulletin 19 (1968): 53-103.
________. Job 1-20. Word Bible Commentary, 17. Dallas: Word, 1989.
________. The Theme o f the Pentateuch. Journal for the Study o f the Old Testament, 10.
Sheffield: JSOT, 1997.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
451
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
452
________. “The Bible, Man, and Nature in the History of Western Thought: A Call for
Reassessment.” Journal o f Religion 65 (1985): 155-172.
Cohen, Samuel S. “Original Sin.” Hebrew Union College Annual 21 (1948): 275-330.
Cohn, Norman. Cosmos, Chaos and the World to Come: The Ancient Roots o f
Apocalpytic Faith. New Haven: Yale University Press, 1993.
Cohn, Robert L. “Narrative Structure and Canonical Perspective in Genesis.” Journalfor
the Study o f the Old Testament 25 (1983): 3-16.
Collins, Adela Yarbro. The Combat Myth in the Book o f Revelation. Harvard Theological
Review Harvard Dissertations in Religion, 9. Missoula, MT: Scholars, 1976.
Collins, George N. M. “Federal Theology.” Baker’s Dictionary o f Theology. Edited by E.
F. Harrison, G. W. Bromiley, and Carl F. H. Henry. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1960.
217-218.
Collins, Jack. “A Syntactical Note (Genesis 3:15): Is the Woman’s Seed Singular or
Plural?” Tyndale Bulletin 48 (1997): 139-148.
Collins, Nina L. “218 BCE: The Date o f the Translation o f the Pentateuch into Greek
under Ptolemy II.” In Septuagint, Scrolls and Cognate Writings: Papers Presented
to the International Symposium on the Septuaginty and its Relations to the Dead
Sea Scrolls and Other Writings, ed. G. J. Brooke and B. Lindars, 403-503. Atlanta:
Scholars, 1992.
Collins, Sheila D. “Toward a Feminist Theolgy.” The Christian Century 89 (1972): 796-
799.
Combs, E. “Has YHWH Cursed the Ground? Perplexity o f Interpretation in Genesis 1-5.”
In Ascribe to the Lord: Biblical and Other Studies in Memory o f Peter C. Craigie,
ed. L. Eslinger and G. Taylor, 265-287. Supplements for Journal for the Study of
the Old Testament, 67. London: Sheffiled, 1988.
________. “The Political Teaching o f Genesis I-XI.” In Studia Biblica 1987, ed. Elizabeth
A. Livingstone, 105-110. Journal for the Study o f the Old Testament Supplement
Series, 11. Sheffield: Sheffield University Press, 1979.
Conklin, Edward. Getting Back into the Garden o f Eden. Lanham, MD: University Press
o f America, 1998.
Conrad, Edgar W. “The Annunciation o f Birth and the Birth of the Messiah.” Catholic
Biblical Quarterly 47 (1985): 656-663.
Conybeare, Frederick C., and St. George Stock. Selections from the Septuagint
According to the Text o f Swete. Boston: Ginn & Co., 1905.
Coogan, Michael David. Storiesfrom Ancient Canaan. Philadelphia: Westminster, 1978.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
453
Cook, E. M. “Rewriting the Bible: The Text and Language o f the Pseudo-Jonathan
Targum.” Ph.D. thesis, University o f California, Berkeley, 1986.
Cook, Johann. “The Exegesis o f the Greek Genesis.” In Volume fo r the €h Congress o f
the International Organization fo r Septuagint and Cognate Studies, Jerusalem,
1986, ed. Claude E. Cox, 91-125. Septuagint and Cognate Studies Series, 23.
Atlanta: Scholars, 1987.
Cook, S. D. N. “Technology and Responsibility: Reflections on Genesis 1-3.” Judaism 45
(1996): 412-420.
Coote, R. B. “The Serpent and Sacred Marriage in Northwest Semitic Tradition.” Ph.D.
dissertation, Harvard University, Cambridge, Massachusetts, 1972.
Coppens, Joseph. “La mere de Sauveur a la lumiere de la Theologie Veterotestamentaire.”
Ephemerides Theologicae Lovaniensis 31 (1955): 7-20.
________. “La Portee Messianique du Psaume 110.” Ephemerides Theologicae
Lovaniensis 32 (1956): 5-23.
________. “Le Protevangile: Un nouvel essai d’exegese.” Ephemerides Theologicae
Lovaniensis 26 (1950): 5-36.
Cooper, Howard J. “Guilt and God, or ‘Whatever Happened in the Garden?’” Journal o f
Psychology and Judaism 15 (1991): 75-88.
Cooper, W. R. “Observations on the Serpent Myths of Ancient Egypt.” Journal o f
Transactions o f the Victoria Institute 6 (1873): 325.
Cornelius, Izak. “Some Pages from the Reception History of Genesis 3: The Visual Arts.”
Journal o f Northwest Semitic Languages 23 (1997): 21-234.
Couffignal, R. “Guides pour l’Eden: Approches nouvelles de Genese II,4-III.” Revue
thomiste 80 (1980): 613-627.
Coutts, John. The Messianic Secret and the Enemies o f Jesus. Journal for the Study o f the
New Testament Supplement Series, 2. Sheffield: JSOT, 1980.
Cranfield, Charles E. B. A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on the Romans.
Edinburgh: T & T Clark, 1975.
Crawford, Timothy G. Blessing and Curse in Syro-Palestinian Inscriptions o f the Iron
Age. New York: P. Lang, 1992.
Crawley, A. E. “Cursing and Blessing.” Encyclopaedia o f Religion and Ethics. Edited by
J. Hastings. Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1911.4:367-374.
Crenshaw, James L. “Journey into Oblivion: A Structural Analysis o f Gen 22:1-19.”
Soundings 58 (1975): 243-256.
________. “Popular Questioning o f the Justice o f God in Ancient Israel.” Zeitschriftfu r
die alttestamentliche Wissenschft 82 (1970): 380-395.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
454
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
455
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
456
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
457
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
458
________. “The Scope o f a Small Literary Unity in the Old Testament: Introduction to the
Interpretation of Genesis 4.” In Voicesfrom Amsterdam: A Modem Tradition in
Reading Biblical Narrative, ed. Martin Kessler, 37*51. Atlanta, GA: Scholars,
1994.
Dever, William G., and J. Edward Wrights, eds. The Echoes o f Many Texts. Atlanta GA:
Scholars, 1997.
DeWitt, Dale S. “The Generations of Genesis.” Evangelical Quarterly 48 (1976): 196-
211 .
________. “The Historical Backgrounds o f Genesis 11:1-9: Babel or Ur.” Journal o f the
Evangelical Theological Society 22 (1979): 15-26.
De Wette, Wilhem Martin. Kritik der Israelitischen Geschichte. Halle: Schimmelpfening,
1807.
Dietrich, M., O. Loretz, and J. Sanmartin, eds. Die keilalphabetischen Texte aus Ugarit.
Alter Orient und Altes Testament, 24. Neukirchen-Vluyn: Neukirchener Verlag,
1976.
Diez Macho, Alejandro, ed. Neophyti I: Targum Palestinense ms. de la Biblioteca
Vaticadicion principe, introduccion y version casteliana. Madrid: Consejo Superior
de Investigaciones Cientificas, 1979.
Dijk, Jan Van. “Anat, Seth and the Seed o f Pre.” In Scripta signa vocis: Studies about
Scripts, Scriptures, Scribes, and Languages o f the Near East, ed. H. L. J.
Vanstiphont et al., 31-51. Groningen, Netherlands: Egbert Forsten, 1986.
________. “A Neglected Connotation o f Three Hebrew Verbs.” Vetus Testamentum 18
(1968): 16-30.
Dillmann, August. Genesis: Critically and Exegetically Expounded. Translated by William
B. Stevenson. Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1897.
Dirksen, Peter B. “The Old Testament Peshitta.” In Mikra: Text, Translation, Reading,
and Interpretation o f the Hebrew Bible in Ancient Judaism and Early Christianity,
ed. Martin J. Mulder, 255-297. Compendia rerum iudaicarum ad Novum
Testamentum, 2. Philadelphia: Fortress, 1988.
Dodd, Charles H. According to the Scriptures. London: Collins, 1952.
Ddderlein, Johann (d. 1792). Institutio Christiani in captibus religionis nostris
temporibus accomdata. Ahdorf: Sumtu Monath et Kussler, 1787.
Donaldson, Mara E. “Kinship Theory in the Patriaehal Narratives: The Case of the Barren
Wife.” Journal o f the American Academy o f Religion 49 (1981): 77-87.
Dorman, Theodore M. “Virgin Birth o f Jesus Christ.” The International Standard Bible
Encyclopedia. Edited by Geoffrey W. BromOey et a l Grand Rapids: Eerdmans,
1979.4:990-993.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
459
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
460
Driver, Godfrey R., and J. C. Miles. The Babylonian Laws. Oxford: Clarendon, 1952-5.
Driver, Samuel R. The Book o f Genesis with Introduction and Notes. Westminster
Commentaries. London: Metheuen, 1943.
_______ . An Introduction to the Literature o f the Old Testament. Gloucester, MA: Peter
Smith, 1972.
_______ . A Treatise on the Use o f the Tenses in Hebrew and Some Other Syntactical
Questions. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans. 1997.
Dryness, William. Themes in the Old Testament Theology. Downer’s Grove, IL:
InterVarsity, 1979.
Dubarle, F. A. M. ’‘Original Sin in Genesis.” Downside Review 76 (1958): 223-250.
Duling, Dennis C. “The Promises to David and Their Entry into Christianity.” New
Testament Studies 20 (1973-74): 55-77.
Dumbrell, William J. “The Covenant with Abraham.” Reformed Theological Review 38
(1982): 42-50.
________. “The Davidic Covenant.” Reformed Theological Review 39 (1980): 40-47.
_______ . The End o f the Beginning: Revelation 21-22 and the Old Testament.
Homebush, New South Wales: Lancer, 1985.
_______ . “Genesis 1-3, Ecology, and the Dominion o f Man.” Crux 21, no. 4 (1985): 16-
26.
Duncan, Roger. “Adam and the Ark.” Encounter 37 (1976): 189-197.
Dunn, James D. G. Romans 9-16. Word Bible Commentary, 38b. Dallas: Word, 1988.
Dussan, R. “Le Mythe de Ba’al d’apres des documents noveaux.” Revue del'Histoire des
Religions 111 (1935): 62.
Edwards, David Miall. “Dust.” The International Standard Bible Encyclopedia. Edited by
Geoffrey W. Bromiley et a l Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1979. 1:998.
Eichhom, David Max. Cain, Son o f the Serpent. Chappaqua, NY: Rossell Books, 1985
Eichrodt, Wahher. Ezekiel. Translated by Cosslett Quin. Old Testament Library.
Philadelphia: Westminster, 1970.
_______ . Theology o f the Old Testament. Philadelphia: Westminster, 1967.
Eiselen, Frederick Carl, Edwin Lewis, and David G. Downey, eds. The Abingdon Bible
Commentary. New York: Abingdon, 1929.
Eissfeldt, Otto. The Old Testament: An Introduction. Translated by Peter R. Ackroyd.
Oxford: Blackwell, 1966.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
461
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
462
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
463
_______ . “The Curse o f the Cross and the Renewal o f the Covenant.” In Biblical Essays
1966,219-226. Old Testament Society of South Africa. Potchefstroom: Pro Rege-
Pers, 1966.
_______ . “Malediction and Benediction in Ancient Near Eastern Vassal Treaties and the
Old Testament.” Zeitschrift fu r die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 74 (1962): 1-9.
Fernandez, Mignel Perez. Tradiciones messidnicas en el Targum Palestinense: Estudios
exegeticos. Institution San Jeronimo, 12. Valencia, Spain: Artes Graficas Soler,
1981.
Fewell, Danna Nolan. “Introduction: Writing, Reading, and Relating.” In Reading
Between Texts: Intertextuality and the Hebrew Bible, ed. Danna Nolan Fewell, 11-
20. Louisville, KY: Westminster/John Knox, 1992.
Feyerick, Ada. Genesis: World o f Myths and Patriarchs. New York: New York
University Press, 1996.
Ficek, Jerome L. “The Paradox of the Fortunate Fall in Contemporary Theology.” Bulletin
o f the Evangelical Society 2, no. 3 (1959): 1-7.
Figes, Eva. Patriarchal Attitudes. Greewich, CT: Fawcett, 1970.
Fischer, Bonifatio. Iohanne Gribomont, H. F. D. Sparks, and W. Thiele, eds. Biblia Sacra:
Iuxta Vulgatam Versionem. VoL 1, Genesis-Psalmi. Stuttgart, Germany:
WQttembergische Bibelanstalt, 1969.
Fishbane, Michael Biblical Interpretation in Ancient Israel. Oxford: Clarendon, 1985.
_______ . “Genesis 2.4b-11.32: The Primeval Cycle.” In Text and Texture: Close
Readings o f Selected Biblical Texts, 17-39. New York: Schocken, 1979.
______ . “Jer. iv 23-26 and Job iii 1-13: A Recovered Use o f the Creation Pattern.” Vetus
Testamentum 21 (1971): 151-167.
_______ . Text and Texture: Close Readings o f Selected Biblical Texts. New York:
Schocken, 1979.
Fisher, Loren A. “Creation at Ugarit and in the Old Testament.” Vetus Testamentum 15
(1965): 314-324.
_______ , ed. Ras Shamra Parallels. Vol. 1. Analecta Orientalia, 49. Rome: Pontificium
Institution Biblicum, 1972.
Fisher, L. R. “Can This Be the Son of God?” In Jesus and the Historian: Written in
Honor o f Ernest Cadman Colwell, ed. Frederick T. Trotter, 82-97. Philadelphia:
Westminster, 1968.
Fisher, Milton C. “^|03.” Theological Workbook o f the Old Testament. Edited by R. Laird
Harris, Gleason L. Archer, and Bruce K. Waltke. Chicago: Moody, 1980.2:604-
605.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
464
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
465
Fox, Everett. The Five Books o f Moses: A New Translation with Introductions,
Commentary, and Notes. New York: Schoken, 1995.
________. Genesis and Exodus: A New English Rendition. New York: Schocken Books,
1991.
Fraine, Jean De. Adam and the Family o f Man. Translated by Daniel Raible. Staten Island,
NY: Alba House, 1965.
________. The Bible and the Origin o f Man. 2d ed. Staten Island, NY: Alba House,
1967.
Frame, F. M. “Virgin-Birth o f Jesus.” Evangelical Dictionary o f Theology. Edited by
Walter A. Elwell. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1984. 1143-1145.
Frankfort, Henri, et al. The Intellectual Adventure o f Ancient Man. Chicago: University of
Chicago Press, 1977.
Frazer, James G. Belief in Immortality and the Worship o f the Dead. London: Dawsons.
1968.
________. Folk-lore in the Old Testament. London: MacMillan, 1919.
Fredericks, Daniel C. ‘W ” New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology
and Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et al. Grand Rapids: Zondervan,
1997.4:11.
Freedman, David NoeL “Divine Commitment and Human Obligation: The Covenant
Theme.” Interpretation 18 (1964): 419-431.
________. “Divine Names and Titles in Early Hebrew Poetry.” In Magnolia dei, 55-107.
Garden City, NY: Doubleday, 1976.
Freedman, David NoeL et al., eds. Anchor Bible Dictionary. 6 vols. New York:
Doubleday, 1992.
Freedman, David R. “Woman, ‘A Power Equal to Man.’” Biblical Archaeological Review
9 (1983): 56-58.
Fretheim, Terence E. The Book o f Genesis: Introduction, Commentary, and Reflections.
Louisville, ICY: Westminster/John Knox, 1994.
________. Creation, Fall and Flood: Studies in Genesis I-l I. Minneapolis: Augsburg,
1969.
________. The New Interpreter’s Bible. Vol. 1, General Articles on the Bible, General
Articles on the Old Testament, the Book o f Genesis, the Book o f Exodus, and the
Book o f Leviticus. Nashville: Abingdon, 1994.
________. The Pentateuch. Nashville, TN: Abingdon, 1996.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
466
Freudenberger, C. Dean. Global Dust Bowl: Can We Stop the Destruction o f the Land
Before I t’s Too Late? Minneapolis: Augsburg, 1990.
Freund, Richard A. “Individaul vs Collective Responsibility: From the Ancient Near East
and the Bible to the Greco-Roman World." Scandinavian Journal o f Old Testament
11 (1997): 279-304.
Fromm, E. You Shall Be as Gods. New York: Holt, Rinehart, and Winston, 1966.
Frymer-Kensky, Tikva. “Atrahasis Epic and its Significance for Our Understanding of
Genesis 1-9.” Biblical Archaeologist 40 (1977): 147-155.
Fuchs, E. “Status and Role of Female Heroines in the Biblical Narrative." Mankind
Quarterly 23, no. 2 (1982): 149-160.
_______ . “The Literary Characterization o f Mothers and Sexual Politics in the Hebrew
Bible.” In Feminist Perspectives on Biblical Scholarship, ed. A. Y. Collins, 117-
136. Chico, CA: Scholars, 1985.
FQglister, N. “Die Verwendung und das Verstdndnis der psalmen und des Psalters um die
Zehenwende.” In Beitrage zur Psalmenforschung: Psalm 2 und 22, ed. Josef
Schreiner, 319-384. Forschung zur Bibel, 60. WQrzburg: Echter Verlag, 1988.
Fuller, Reginald H. The Foundations o f the New Testament Christology. New York:
Scribner, 1965.
Gabel, John B., Charles B. Wheeler, and Anthony D. York. “The Composition of
Pentateuch.” In The Bible as Literature: An Introduction, ed. John B. Gabel,
Charles B. Wheeler, and Anthony D. York, 101-115. 4* ed. Oxford: Oxford
University Press, 2000.
Gage, Warren Austin. The Gospel o f Genesis: Studies in Protology and Eschatology.
Winona Lake: Carpenter, 1984.
Galambush, Julie. “Adam from adama, issa from is: Derivation and Subordination in
Genesis 2:4b-3:24.” In History and Interpretation (Festschrift for John H. Hayes),
ed. M. Patrick Graham et al., 33-46. Sheffield: JSOT, 1993.
Galjart, Benno F. Peasant Mobilization and Solidarity. Assen, Amsterdam: van Gorcum,
1976.
Galhis, S. J. Iterpretatio Mariologica Protoevangelii [Gen 3:15], Temporare
postpatristico usque ad Concilium Tridentium. Rome: n.p., 1949.
Gallus, Tibor. Der Nachkomme der Frau (Gen 3,15) in der Altlutheranischen
Schriftauslegung. VoL 1, Luther, Zwingli und Calvin. Klagenfurt: Carinthia, 1964.
________. Der Nachkomme der Frau (Gen 3,15) in der Altlutheranischen
Schriftauslegung. VoL 2, Von den Zeitgenossen Luthers bis zur Aufkldrungszeit.
Klagenfurt: Carinthia, 1973.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
467
_______ . Der Nachkomme der Frau (Gen 3,15) in der Evangelischen Schriftauslegung.
Vol. 3, Von der Aufkldrungszeit bis in die Gegenwart. Klagenfurt: Carinthia, 1976.
_______ . Die Frau in Gen 3,15. Klagenfurt: Carinthia, 1979.
Gane, Roy E. Syllabus for GSEM 538— Covenant-Law-Sabbath. Andrews University
Theological Seminary, Berrien Springs, Michigan, 1997.
Ganong, Martin Howard. “The Human Relationship with the Earth: Ruling, Tilling, and
Tending in the Creation Accounts o f Genesis.” M.Div. thesis. Emmanuel School of
Religion, Johnson City, Tennessee, 1990.
Gardiner, Alan Henderson. Egyptian Grammar. 3rd ed. Oxford: Clarendon, 1975.
Gardner, Anne E. “Genesis 2:4b-3: A Mythological Paradigm o f Sexual Equality or of the
Religious History of Pre-Exilic Israel.” Scottish Journal Theology 43, no. 1 (1990):
1-18.
_______ . “The Way to Eternal Life in Dan 12. le-2 or How to Reverse the Death Curse
o f Genesis 3.” Australian Bible Review 40 (1992): 1-19.
Gardner, John, and John R. Maier. Gilgamesh. New York: Knopf 1984.
Garrett, Duanne. Rethinking Genesis: The Sources and Authorship o f the First Book o f
the Pentateuch. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1991.
Garrett, Susan R. The Demise o f the Devil: Magic and the Demonic in Luke’s Writings.
Minneapolis: Fortress, 1989.
Gaster, Theodor H. Myth, Legend and Custom in the Old Testament. Vol. 1. New York:
Harper & Row, 1975.
Geddes, A. “Creation, and the Blessing or the Curse Upon Fruitfulness: An
Anthropologeographical Interpretation of Genesis I-III ” Man 45 (1945): 123-8.
Gehman, Henry S. “The Hebraic Character o f Septuagint Greek.” Vetus Testamentum 1
(1951): 81-90.
Gehrke, Ralph D. Beginning From Basics: The Bible's Universal Primer in Genesis l - lI .
The Bible’s Famous Master Stories. N.p.: 1994.
________. “Genesis Three in the Light o f Key Hermeneutical Considerations.” Concordia
Theological Monthly 36 (1965): 534-560.
Gelin, Albert. The Concept o f Man in the Bible. Translated by David M. Murphy. Staten
Island, NY: Society o f St. Paul, 1968.
Gemser, Berend. Studies on the Book o f Genesis. Oudtestamentische Studien, 12. Leiden:
Brill 1958.
Genette, Gerard. Palimpseste: Die Literatur auf zweiter Stufe. Frankfurt: Suhrkamp,
1993.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
468
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
469
Gordis, Robert. The Book o f Job: Commentary, New Translation, and Special Studies.
New York: Jewish Theological Seminary o f America, 1978.
________. “The Knowledge o f Good and Evil in the Old Testament and the Qumran
Scrolls.” Journal o f Biblical Literature 76 (1957): 123-138.
________. “The Significance o f the Paradise Myth.” American Journal o f Semitic
Languages and Literatures 52 (1935-36): 84-94.
Gordon, Alexander Reid. The Early Traditions o f Genesis. Edinburgh: T & T Clark,
1907.
Gordon, Cyrus HerzL “Canaanite Mythology.” Mythologies o f the Ancient World, ed.
Samuel N. Kramer, 181-218. Garden City, NY: Doubleday & Co., 1961. *
________. “Higher Critics and Forbidden Fruit.” Christianity Today 4, no. 23 (1959): 3-
6.
________. Ugaritic Textbook: Grammar, Texts in Transliteration, Cuneiform Selections,
Glossary, Indices. Rome: Pontifical Biblical Institute, 1965.
Gordon, Robert P. “Curse, Malediction.” New International Dictionary o f Old Testament
Theology and Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et al. Grand Rapids:
Zondervan, 1997.4:491-493.
________. 1 & 2 Samuel. Old Testament Guides. Sheffield: Sheffield, 1984.
________. ““HR.” New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology and
Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et al. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1997.
1:524-526.
Gore, Charles. Dissertations on Subjects Connected with the Incarnation. New York:
Charles Scribner, 1895.
Gdrg, Manfred. “Das Wort zur Schlange (Gen 3,14f): Gedanken zum sogenannten
Protoevangelium.” Biblische Notizen 19(1982): 121-140.
________. “Die ‘SOnde' Salomos: Zeitkritische Aspekte der jahwistischen
SundenfallerzShlung.” Biblische Notizen 16 (1981): 42-59.
________. “Weisheit als Provokation: Religionshichtliche und theolgische Aspekte der
SundenfallerzShlung.” In Die Kraft der Hoffhung: Gemeinde und Evangelium:
Festschriftfu r Dr. Josef Schneider zum 80. Geburtstag, ed. Alfred E. Hierold, 19-
34. Bamberg: St. Otto-Veriag, 1986.
Gosse, Bernard. “Lecriture de Gn 3, le Serpent dualite de la femme et de l’homme.”
Biblische Notizen 98 (1999): 19-20.
Goulder, Michael D. “Exegesis of Genesis 1-3 in the New Testament.” Journal o f Jewish
Studies 43 (1992): 226-229.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
470
________. The Prayers o f David (Psalms 51-72): Studies in the Psalter, II. Journal for
the Study of the Old Testament Supplement Series, 102. Sheffield: Sheffield, 1990.
Gowan, Donald E. From Eden to Babel: A Commentary on the Book o f Genesis 1-11.
Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1988.
________. When God Becomes Man: Humanism and Hybris in the Old Testament.
Pittsburgh Theological Monograph Series, 6. Pittsburgh: Pickwick, 1975.
Gowan, Donald E., and Millard Schumaker, eds. Subduing the Earth: An Exchange o f
Views. Kingston, Ontario: Queen’s Theological College, 1980
Grant, A. M. “'Adam and 'Ish. Man in the O.T.” Australian Biblical Review 25 (1977):
2 - 11.
Grayson, A. K., and J. van Seters. “The Childless Wife in Assyria and the Stories of
Genesis.” Orientalia 44 (1975): 485-6.
Green, William Henry. “Primeval Chronology.” Bibliotheca Sacra 47 (1890): 285-303.
________. The Unity o f the Book o f Genesis. New York: Scribner, 1895; reprint, Grand
Rapids: Baker, 1979.
Greenberg, Moshe. Ezekiel 1-20: A New Translation with Introduction and Commentary.
The Anchor Bible. Garden City, NY: Doubleday, 1983.
Greenblatt, Stephen J. Shakespearean Negotiations: The Circulation o f Social Energy in
Renaissance England. Oxford: Clarendon, 1988.
Greenfield, Jonas C. “A Touch of Eden.” In Orientalia J. Duchesne-Guillemin emerito
oblata, ed. Jacques Duchesne-Guillemin, 219-224. Hommages et opera minora, 9.
Leiden: Brill, 1984.
Greiner, Susan L. “Did Eve Fall or Was She Pushed?’ Bible Review 15, no. 4 (1999): lb-
23.
Grefimann, H. “Mythische Reste in der Paradieserzahlung.” Archiv fur
Religionswissenschaft 10 (1907): 345-348.
Griffith-Jones, Ebenezer. Genesis: A Little Library o f Exposition with New Studies. New
York: Doubleday, 1926.
Groningen, Gerard van. “Interpretation o f Genesis.” Journal o f the Evangelical
Theological Society 13 (1970): 199-218.
________. Messianic Revelation in the Old Testament. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1990.
Grosheide, Frederick W. De Psalmen. Kampen: Kok, 1955.
Gros Louis, Kenneth R. R., and James S. Ackerman, eds. Literary Interpretations o f
Biblical Narratives. 2 vols. Nashville, TN: Abingdon, 1982.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
471
Grossfeld, Bernard. The Targum Onkelos to Genesis. The Aramaic Bible, vol. 6.
Wilmington, DE: Michael Glazier, 1988.
Guichard, J. “Approche ‘materialise’ du recit de la chute: Genese 3.” Lumiere et Vie 131
(1977): 57-90.
Guillaume, Alfred. “Paronomasia in the Old Testament.” Journal o f Semitic Studies 9
(1964): 282-290.
Gulley, Norman. “The Effects o f Adam’s Sin on the Human Race.” Journal o f the
Adventist Theological Society 5 (1994): 197-215.
Gunderson, Barbara. “The Transformation o f the Ancient Near East Garden of God
Tradition in the Book of Ezekiel” M.A. thesis, Pacific School of Religion,
California 1983.
Gunkel Hermann. Die Propheten. Gdttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1917.
________. Einleitung in die Psalmen. 4th ed. Gdttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1985.
________. The Folktale in the Old Testament. Translated by Michael D. Rutter. Sheffield:
Almond, 1987.
________. Genesis. 3d ed. Translated by Mark E. Biddle. Macon, GA: Mercer University
Press, 1997.
________. The Legends o f Genesis, the Biblical Saga and History. Translated by W. H.
Carruth. New York: Schocken, 1964.
________. The Stories o f Genesis. Translated by John J. Scullion. Vallejo, CA: BIBAL,
1994.
Guyot, Gilmore H. “Messianism in the Book of Genesis.” Catholic Biblical Quarterly 13
(1951): 415-421.
Habel Norman C. The Book o f Job: A Commentary. Old Testament Library. Philadelphia:
Westminster, 1985.
________. “Ezekiel 28 and the Fall of the First Man.” Concordia Theological Monthly 38
(1967): 516-524.
________. “Gospel Promise to Abraham.” Concordia Theological Monthly 40 (1969):
346-355.
________. Literary Criticism o f the Old Testament. Philadelphia: Fortress, 1971.
Hahn, Ferd. The Titles o f Jesus in Christology. Translated by H. Knight and G. Ogg.
London: Lutterworth, 1969.
Hall Douglas John. Thinking the Faith. Minneapolis: Augsburg, 1989.
Hallo, William W. “Antediluvian Cities.” Journal o f Cuneiform Studies 23 (1970): 57-67.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
472
Hallo, William W., and W. K. Simpson. The Ancient Near East: A History. New York:
Harcourt Brace Jovanovich, 1971.
Hals, Ronald M. The Theology o f the Book o f Ruth. Facet Book. Philadelphia: Fortress,
1969.
Hamilton, Victor P. The Book o f Genesis: Chapters 1-17. The New International
C o m m e n ta ry on the Old Testament. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1990.
________. The Book o f Genesis, Chapters 18-50. Word Bible Commentary. Grand
Rapids: Eerdmans, 1995.
________. Handbook on the Pentateuch. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1982.
________. “SHT.” New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology and
Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et al. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1997.
1:1151-1152.
HaneL, J. Die aufiermasorethischen Ubereinstimmungen zwischen der Septuaginta und
der Peschittha in der Genesis. Beihefte zur Zeitschrift fiir die alttestamentliche
Wissenschaft, 20. GrieBen: n.p., 1911.
Hansen, G. W. Abraham in Galatians. Journal for the Study of the New Testament
Supplement Series, 29. Sheffield: JSOT, 1989.
Hanson, Richard S. The Serpent Was Wiser. Minneapolis: Augsbury,1972.
HarL, Marguerite. La Bible d ’Alexandrie: La Genese. Paris: Edition du Cerf., 1986.
Harman, Allan. “Particles.'’ New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology and
Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et al. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1997.
4:1028-1042.
Harper, Robert Francis. The Code o f Hummurabi, King o f Babylon, About 2250 B.C.:
Autographed Text, Transliteration, Translation, Glossary, Index o f Subjexts, Lists
o f Proper Names, Signs, Numerals, Corrections and Erasures with Map,
Frontispiece, and Photograph o f Text. 2nded. Chicago: University of Chicago Press,
1904.
Harris, R. Laird, Gleason L. Archer, and Bruce K. Wahke, eds. Theological Workbook o f
the Old Testament. 2 vols. Chicago: Moody, 1980.
Harris, Zelligs S. “Linguistic Structure of Hebrew.” Journal o f the American Oriental
Society 61 (1941): 143-167.
Harrison, Everett F, ed. Baker's Dictionary o f Theology. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1960.
Harrison, Ronald K. Introduction to the Old Testament. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1969.
Harrisville, Roy A. The Figure ofAbraham in the Epistles o f Paul: In the Footsteps o f
Abraham. San Francisco: Mellen Research University Press, 1992.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
473
Hart, Ian. “Genesis 1:1-2:3 as a Prologue to the Book o f Genesis.” Tyndale Bulletin 46
(1995): 315-336.
Hartman, Louis F. “Sin in Paradise.” Catholic Biblical Quarterly 20 (1958): 26-40.
Hasel, Gerhard F. Biblical Interpretation Today. Washington, DC: Biblical Research
Institute, 1985.
________. Covenant in Blood. Mountain View, CA: Pacific, 1982.
________. “Equality from the Start: Woman in the Creation Story.” Spectrum 7, no. 2
(1975): 23-24.
________. “The Genealogies o f Gen 5 and 11 and Their Alleged Babylonian
Background.” Andrews University Seminary Studies 16 (1978): 361-374.
________. “Man and Woman in Gen 1-3.” General Conference o f Seventh-day Adventists
Biblical Research Committee, Washington, DC, 1976.
________. Old Testament Theology: Basic Issues in the Current Debate. Grand Rapids:
Eerdmans, 1982.
________ . “The Polemic Nature o f the Genesis Cosmology.” Evangelical Quarterly 46
(1974): 81-102.
________. “The Significance of the Cosmology in Genesis 1 in Relation to Ancient Near
Eastern Parallels.” Andrews University Seminary Studies 10 (1972): 1-20.
________. Understanding the Living Word o f God. Mountain View, CA: Pacific, 1980.
Hasel, Michael G. “Domination and Resistance: Egyptian Military Activity in the Southern
Levant During the Late Bronze/Early Iron Age Transition (Bronze Age).” Ph.D.
dissertation, University o f Arizona, Arizona, 1996.
________. “Israel in the Memeptah Stela.” Bulletin o f American Schools o f Oriental
Research 296 (November 1994): 45-61.
Haspecker, Josef, and Norbert Lohfink. “Gen 3,15: Weil du ihm nach der Ferse
Schnappst.” Scholastik 36 (1961): 357-372.
Hastings, James. The Great Texts o f the Bible. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1958.
Haun, Charles A. Genesis: Chapters One Through Five. Goldsboro, NC: Teaching All
Nations, 1984.
Haupt, Paul. “The Curse on the Serpent.” Journal o f Biblical Literature 35 (1916): 155-
162.
Hauser, Alan J. “Genesis 2-3: The Theme o f Intimacy and Alienation.” In Art and
Meaning: Rhetoric in Biblical Literature, ed. David Clines, 20-36. Journal for the
Study o f the Old Testament Supplement Series, 19. Sheffield: JSOT, 1982.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
474
________. “Linguistic and Thematic Links Between Gen 4:1-16 and Gen 2-3.” Journal o f
the Evangelical Theological Society 23 (1980): 297-305.
Hayashi, Francis A. “The Mariological Sense of the Protoevangelium, Genesis 3:15.”
S.T.L. thesis, St. Mary’s Seminary, Baltimore, Maryland, 1955.
Hayden, Roy E. “"IDE.” New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology and
Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et a l Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1997.
3:472-473.
Hayes, John Lewis. A Manual o f Sumerian Grammar and Texts. Malibu, CA: Undena,
1990.
Hayman. A. P. “The Fall, Freewill, and Human Responsibility in Rabbinic Judaism.”
Scottish Journal o f Theology 37, no. 1 (1984): 13-22.
Hays, Richard B. Echoes o f Scripture in Paul. New Haven: Yale University Press, 1989.
Heidel, Alexander. The Babylonian Genesis: The Story o f Creation. 2d ed. Chicago:
University of Chicago Press, 1951.
Heim, Knut. “The Perfect King of Psalm 72: An Intertextual Enquiry.” In The Lord's
Annointed: Interpretation o f Old Testament Messianic Texts, ed. Philip E.
Satterhwaite, Richard S. Hess, and Gordon J. Wenham, 223-248. Grand Rapids:
Baker, 1995.
Heim, S. Mark. “Salvations: A More Pluralistic Hypothesis.” Modem Theology 10
(1994): 341-360.
Heller, J. “Der Name Eva.” Archiv orientalni 26 (1958): 636-656.
________. “Grenzen.” Mitteilungen des Institutsfu r Orientforschung 15 (1969): 234-
248.
HendeL, Ronald S. “The Flame of the Whirling Sword: A Note on Genesis 3:24.” Journal
o f Biblical Literature 104 (1985): 671-674.
________. “In the Margins of the Hebrew Verbal System: Situation, Tense, Aspect,
Mood.” Zeitschriftfu r Althebraistik 9 (1996): 129-181.
________. “O f Demigods and the Deluge: Toward an Interpretation of Genesis 6:1-4.”
Journal o f Biblical Literature 106 (1987): 13-26.
________. The Text o f Genesis I-II: Textual Studies and Critical Edition. New York:
Oxford University Press, 1998.
Henderson, James L. The Wisdom o f the Serpent: The Myths o f Death, Rebirth, and
Resurrection. New York: G. BrazQler, 1963.
Hengel, Martin. The Son o f God: The Origin o f Christology and the History o f Jewish-
Hellenistic Religion. Translated by J. Bowden. Philadelphia: Fortress, 1976.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
Hengstenberg, Emst William. Christology o f the Old Testament, and a Commentary on
the Messianic Predictions. 4 vols. Grand Rapids: KregeL, 1956.
________. Christology o f the Old Testament, and a Commentary on the Predictions o f
the Messiah by the Prophets. 3 vote. Translated by Reuel Keith. Alexandria: William
M. Morrison, 1836-1839.
________. Commentary on the Psalms. Translated by John T. Leith. Edinburgh: T. & T.
Clark, 1870.
Henri, Dunbar C. “Jesus in the Old Testament.” Message, October 1980,18-22.
Henry, M. L. Jahwist und Priesterschrift. Stuttgart: Calwer, 1960.
Herr, Larry G. “Seed.” The International Standard Bible Encyclopedia. Edited by
Geoffrey W. Bromiley et al. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1979.4:380.
Hershon, Paul Isaac. Genesis with a Talmudic Commentary. London: Samuel Bagster &
Sons, 1883.
Hertzberg, Hans W. I & II Samuel. Philadelphia: Westminster, 1974.
HescheL, Abraham. God in Search o f Man: A Philosophy ofJudaism. New York: Farrar,
Straus & Giroux, 1955.
Hess, Richard S. “Adam as Skin and Earth: An Examination of Some Proposed Meanings
in Biblical Hebrew.” Tyndale Bulletin 39 (1988): 141-149.
________. “The Genealogies of Genesis l-l 1 and Comparative Literature.” Biblica 70
(1989): 241-254.
________. “The Roles o f the Woman and the Man in Genesis 3.” Themelios 18. no. 3
(1992): 15-19.
________. Studies in the Personal Names o f Genesis 1-11. Alter Orient und Altes
Testament, 234. Kevelaer: Verlag Butzon & Becker, 1993.
Hess, Richard S., and David Toshio Tsumura, eds. I Studied Inscriptions from Before the
Flood: ANE, Literary, and Linguistic Approaches to Genesis 1-11. Winona Lake,
IN: Eisenbrauns, 1994.
Hewett, John H. “Genesis 2:4b-3:31; 4:2-16; 9:20-27; 19:30-38.” Review and Expositor
86 (1989): 237-241.
Higgins, J. M. “The Myth o f Eve: The Temptress.” Journal o f the American Academy o f
Religion 44 (1976): 639-647.
Hillers, Delbert R. Covenant: The History o f a Biblical Idea. Baltimore: Johns Hopkins,
1969.
________. Treaty Curses and Old Testament Prophets. Rome: Pontifical Biblical
Institute, 1964.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
476
Hinke, William John, ed. Zwingli: On Providence and Other Essays. Durham, NC:
Labyrinth, 1983; originally 1526.
Hirsch, Samson Raphael The Pentateuch Translated and Explained. 2nded. London: L.
Honig & Sons, 1963.
________. The Psalms. New York: Feldham, 1966.
Hobbs, T. Raymond, and P. Kenneth Jackson. “The Enemy in the Psalms.” Biblical
Theology Bulletin 21 (1991): 22-29.
Hoben, Allan The Virgin Birth. Historical and Linguistic Studies Related to the New
Testament. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1903.
Hocherman, Yaakov. “Notes to Gen 4,1; 6,3; 22,6; 27,40.” Beth Mikra 36 (1990): 20-28.
Hoffineier, James K. Israel in Egypt: The Evidence fo r the Authenticity o f the Exodus
Tradition. New York: Oxford University Press, 1997.
________. “Some Egyptian Motifs Related to Enemies and Warfare and their Old
Testament Counterparts.” In Egyptological Miscellanies: A Tribute to Prof Ronald
J. William, Vol. 6 of Ancient World, ed. James K. Hoffineier and Edmund S.
Meltzer, 53-70. Chicago: Ares, 1983.
Ho finer, Harry A., Jr. “Ancient Views o f Prophecy and Fulfillment: Mesopotamia and
Asia Minor.” Journal o f the Evangelical Theological Society 30 (1987): 257-265.
Holladay, William Lee. A Concise Hebrew and Aramaic Lexicon o f the Old Testament.
Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1971.
________. Jeremiah: Spokesman Out o f Time. New York: Pilgrim, 1974.
________. The Root Subh in the Old Testament. Leiden: E. J. Brill 1958.
Hollis, Michael “Davidic Descent and the Virgin Birth.” Indian Journal o f Theology 8
(1959): 51-53.
Holmes, Oliver Wendell. The Common Law. Boston: Little, Brown, & Co., 1881.
Holmgren, Fredrick. “Abraham and Isaac on Mount Moriah: Genesis 22:1-19.”
Covenant Quarterly 39 (1982): 75-85.
Holmgren, Fredrick C., and Herman E. Schaalman, eds. Preaching Biblical Texts:
Expositions by Jewish and Christian Scholars. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1995.
Hotter, Knut. “The Serpent in Eden as a Symbol o f Israel’s Political Enemies: A Yahwistic
Criticism o f the Solomonic Foreign Policy?” Scandinavian Journal o f the Old
Testament 1 (1990): 106-112.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
477
Holyoke, Edward. The Doctrine o f Life, or o f Man’s Redemption, by the Seed o f Eve, the
Seed ofAbraham, the Seed o f David, as it was taught in Several Periods o f Time,
from Gen. 3.15 till Christ came in the Flesh, to Fulfill all Typical Prefigurations o f
him by his Death.. . . London: T. R. for Nath. Ekins, 1658.
Holzinger, H. Numeri. Kurzer Hand-Commentar zum Alten Testament. TQbingen: J. C. B.
Mohr, 1903.
Hood, Rodney T. “Genealogies of Jesus: [Mt 1; Lk 3].” In Early Christian Origins:
Studies in Honor o f Harold R. Willoughby, ed. Allen Paul Wikgren, 1-15. Chicago:
Quadrangle Books, 1961.
Hopkins, David C. “Between Promise and Fulfillment: Von Rad and the ‘Sacrifice of
Abraham.’” Biblische Zeitschrift 24, no. 2 (1980): 180-193.
_______ . “The First Stories o f Genesis and the Rhythm o f the Generations.” In The
Echoes o f Many Texts: Reflections on Jewish and Christian Traditions. Essays in
Honor o f Lou H. Silberman, ed. William G. Dever and J. Edward Wright, 25-41.
Atlanta, GA: Scholars, 1997.
Horton, Fred L. The Melchizedek Tradition: A Critical Examination o f the Sources to the
Fifth Century A. D. and in the Epistle to the Hebrews. Cambridge: Cambridge
University Press, 1976.
Houk, Cornelius B. “A Syllable-Word Structure Analysis o f Genesis 12-23.” In The Word
o f the Lord Shall Go Forth: Essays in Honor o f David Noel Freedman in
Celebration o f His Sixtieth Birthday, ed. Carol L. Meyers and M. O’Connor, 191-
201. American Society o f Oriental Research, 1. Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns,
1983.
Houston, Walter. ‘“ And Let Them Have Dominion. . . ’: Biblical Views o f Man in
Relation to the Environmental Crisis.” In Studia Biblica. I. Papers on Old
Testament and Related Themes, ed. E. A. Livingstone, 161-184. Journal for the
Study of the Old Testament Supplement Series, 11. Sheffield: JSOT, 1979.
Howard, Henry E. J. The Book o f Genesis According to the LXX. Cambridge: Cambridge,
1855.
Hubbard, David A. “Hope in the Old Testament.” Tyndale Bulletin 34 (1983): 3.
Hudson, Don Michael. “From Chaos to Cosmos: Sacred Space in Genesis.” Zeitschrift fur
die alttestamentliche Wissenschqft 108 (1996): 87-97.
Huey, F. B., Jr. “Are the ‘Sons o f God’ in Genesis 6 Angels? Yes.” In The Genesis
Debate, ed. Ronald F. Youndblood, 184-204. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1990.
Hufnagel, Wilhelm. Handbuch der biblischen Theologie, Zweiter Teil. Erlangen: J. J.
Palm, 1789.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
478
Hugenberger, Gordon P. “The Servant o f the Lord in the ‘Servant Songs’ o f Isaiah: A
Second Moses Figure.” In The Lord’s Annointed: Interpretation o f Old Testament
Messianic Texts, ed. Philip E. Satterhwaite, Richard S. Hess, and Gordon J.
Wenham, 105-140. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1995.
Hughes, Paul A. “How Did Man Change When Adam Fell?” Parabola 23 (1989): 20-23.
HQhn, Eugen. Die messianischen Weissagungen des israelitisch-JUdischen Volkes bis zu
den Targumim. Freiburg: Mohr, 1899.
Humbert, Paul. Etudes sur le Recit du Paradis et de la Chute dans la Genese. Neuchatel:
Secretariat de l’Univershe, 1940.
Hummel, Horrace D. “Justification in the Old Testament.” Concordia Journal 9 (1983):
9-17.
________. “The Image o f God.” Concordia Journal 10 (1984): 83-93.
Hunnius, Aegidius. Antipareus, Opera Latina. Tomus Secundus. Frankfurt-am-Main:
Impensis Iohan, Iacobi Porsij Bibliopolae, 1608.
Hurley, James B. Man and Woman in Biblical Perspective. Grand Rapids: Zondervan,
1981.
Hutchinson, Amo, Jr. “Response to Culley.” Semeia 18 (1980): 35-40.
Hutton, Rodney R. “God or Beast: Human Self-Understanding in Genesis 2-3.”
Proceedings, Eastern Great Lakes and Midwest Biblical Societies 6 (1986): 128-
141.
Hvidberg, Flemming F. “The Canaanhe Background o f Genesis I-III.” Vetus Testamentum
10 (1960): 288-290.
Ide, Arthur Frederick. Woman in Ancient Israel under the Torah and Talmud: With a
Translation and Critical Commentary on Genesis 1-3. Mesquite, TX: Ide House,
1982.
Irenaeus Against Heresies. Translated by Alexander Roberts and W. H. Rambaut. The
Ante-Nicene Fathers. 1:315-567.
Isbell, Charles David. Corpus o f Aramaic Incantation Bowls. Missoula, MT: Society of
Biblical Literature, 1975.
Ishida, Tomoo. The Royal Dynasties in Ancient Israel: A Study on the Formation and
Development o f Royal-Dynastic Ideology. Beihefte zur Zeitschrift fQr die
aittestamentliche Wissenschaft, 142. Berlin: de Gruyter, 1977.
Jackson, Bernard S. Essays in Jewish and Comparative Legal History. Leiden,
Netherlands: E. J. Brill, 1975.
Jackson, Samuel McCauley, and Clarence Nevin Heller, eds. Commentary on True and
False Religion: Zwingli. Durham, NC: Labyrinth, 1981.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
479
Jacob, Benno. Das Erste Buch der Tora: Genesis. Berlin: Schoken, 1934.
________. The First Book o f the Bible: Genesis. Translated by E. I. and W. Jacob.
Abridged ed. New York: Ktav, 1974.
Jacob, Edmond. “Que sais-je?’ L ’Ancien Testament. Paris: Presses Universitaires de
France, 1970.
________. Theology o f the Old Testament. New York: Harper & Row, 1958.
Jacobs, Alan. “Provocative and Tendentious.” Reformed Journal 39 (1989): 21-25.
Jacobsen, Thorkild. “Sumerian Mythology: A Review Article.” Journal o f Near Eastern
Studies 5 (1946): 128-152.
________. “The Eridu Genesis." Journal o f Biblical Literature 100 (1981): 513-529.
James, Edwin O. The Cult o f the Mother Goddess: An Archaeological and Documentary
Study. New York: Barnes & Noble, 1959.
________. Myth and Ritual in the Ancient Near East. New York: Praeger, 1958.
Jamieson, Robert, A. R. Fausset, and David Brown. Genesis-Deuteronomy. A
Commentary, Critical, Experimental, and Practical on the Old and New Testaments.
Vol. 1. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1945.
Janzen, J. Gerald. Abraham and All the Families o f the Earth: A Commentary on Genesis
12-50. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1993.
Janzen, Waldemar. Gospel According to Genesis: Genesis 1-11. Newton, KS: Faith and
Life, 1991.
Jaros, Karl. “Die Motive der Heiligen BSume und der Schlange in Gen 2-3.” Zeitschrift
fu r die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 92 (1980): 204-215.
Jastrow, Marcus. “Adam and Eve in Babylonian Literature.” American Journal o f Semitic
Languages and Literature 15 (1898-1899): 209-212.
________. A Dictionary o f the Targum, the Talmud Babli and Yerushalmi, and the
Midrashic Literature. New York: Pardes, 1943.
Jeansonne, Sharon P. “Images of Rebekah: From Modem Interpretations to Biblical
Portrayal.” Biblical Research 34 (1989): 33-52.
Jellicoe, Sidney, ed. Studies in the Septuagint: Origins, Rescensions, and Interpretations:
Selected Essays with a Prolegomenon. New York: Ktav, 1974.
________. The Septuagint and Modem Study. Oxford: Clarendon, 1968.
Jenni, Ernst, and Claus Westermann, eds. Theological Lexicon o f the Old Testament. 3
Vols. Translated by M.E. Biddle. Peabody, MA: Hendrickson, 1997.
Jensen, Philip D. Beyond Eden: Genesis 1-11. Kingsford, N.S.W.: St. Matthias, 1990.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
480
Jensen, Robin M. “The Offering of Isaac in Jewish and Christian Tradition: Image and
Text.” Biblical Interpretation 2 (1994): 85-110.
Jeppesen, Knud. “Mother Zion, Father Servant: A Reading o f Isaiah 49-55.” In O f
Prophets ’ Visions and the Wisdom o f Sages: Essays in Honour o f R. Norman
Whybray on His Seventieth Birthday, ed. H. A. McKay and D. J. A. Clines, 109-
125. Journal for the Study of the Old Testament Supplement Series, 162. Sheffield:
Sheffield, 1993.
Jerome, Saint. Saint Jerome’s Hebrew Questions on Genesis. Translated by C. T. R.
Hayward. New York: Oxford University Press, 1995.
Jetters, Joseph R. “Woman's Seed and Woman's Revenge: The Anti-Feminism o f Disciples
Patriarchs Reconsidered.” Encounter 49, no. 1 (1988): 53-62.
Jewett, Paul K. “Original Sin and the Fall o f Man.” Southwestern Journal o f Theology 19
(1976): 18-30.
Jobling, David K. “A Structural Analysis o f Genesis 2.4b-3.24.” Society o f Biblical
Literature Abstracts and Seminar Papers 1 (1978): 61-69.
________. “The Myth Semantics o f Genesis 2:4b-3:24.” Semeia 18 (1980): 41-59.
________. The Sense o f Biblical Narrative. Vol. 2, Structural Analyses in the Hebrew
Bible. Journal for the Study o f the Old Testament Supplement Series, 39. Sheffield:
JSOT, 1986.
Johansen, John H. “The Fall and Original Sin.” Covenant Quarterly 27 (1969): 18-26.
Johns, Warren. “Literary Structure o f Genesis 3.” Lecture Notes for OTST 653, Andrews
University Theological Seminary, Berrien Springs, Michigan, 1997.
Johnson, Aubrey R. The One and the Many in the Israelite Conception o f God. Cardiff:
University o f Wales Press, 1961.
________. The Vitality o f the Individual in the Thought ofAncient Israel. Cardiff:
University o f Wales Press, 1949.
Johnson, Kapp L., and Garth I. Moeller. “Messianic Perspectives in the Bible.” In
Christology: The Center and the Periphery, ed. Frank K. Flinn, 3-17. New York:
Paragon House, 1989.
Johnson, Marshall D. The Purpose o f Biblical Genealogies with Special Reference to the
Setting o f the Genealogies ofJesus. Society for New Testament Studies Monograph
Series, 8 .2nd ed. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1988.
Johnston, Robert Morris. “The Messiah in Late Judaism.” Shabbat Shalom, April 1997,
22-24.
Joines, Karen R. “The Bronze Serpent in the Israelite Cult.” Journal o f Biblical Literature
87 (1968): 245-256.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
481
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
482
_______ . The Messiah in the Old Testament. Studies in Old Testament Biblical
Theology. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1995.
_______ . “The Old Promise and the New Covenant: Jeremiah 31:31-34.” Journal o f the
Evangelical Theological Society 15 (1972): 11-23.
________. “The Promise Theme and the Theology o f Rest.” Bibliotheca Sacra 130
(1973): 135-150.
_______ . Toward an Old Testament Theology. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1978.
_______ . The Uses o f the Old Testament in the New. Chicago: Moody, 1985.
_______ . “U1T.” Theological Workbook o f the Old Testament. Edited by R. Laird
Harris, Gleason L. Archer, and Bruce K. Waltke. Chicago: Moody, 1980. 1:252-
253.
_______ . “HS3.” Theological Workbook o f the Old Testament. Edited by R. Laird
Harris, Gleason L. Archer, and Bruce K. Waltke. Chicago: Moody, 1980. 2:594-
595.
Kapelrud, Arvid S. The Violent Goddess Anat in the Ras Shamra Texts. Oslo:
Universitatsforlaget, 1969.
_______ . “You Shall Surely Not Die.” In History and Traditions o f Early Israel in
Honor o f E. Nielsen, ed. Andre Lemaire and Benedikt Otzen, 50-61. Leiden: Brill,
1993.
Kasher, Menachem M. Encyclopedia o f Biblical Interpretation: A Millennial Anthology.
Translated under the Authorship of Rabbi Dr. Harry Freedman. New York:
American Biblical Encyclopedia, 1953.
Kass, Leon R. “Man and Woman: An Old Story.” First Things 17 (1991): 14-26.
Kaufman, Philip. “The One and the Many.” Worship 42 (1968): 546-558.
Kaufmann, Yehezkel. Toledot ha-Emuna ha-Yisre ’elit. 7 vols. Condensed and Translated
by M. Greenberg, The Religion o f Israel. London: Allen and Unwin, 1960.
Kautzsch, Emil, ed. Gesenius' Hebrew Grammar. Translated by A. E. Cowley. Oxford:
Clarendon, 1910.
Kearney, Peter J. “Creation and Liturgy: The P Redaction o f Exodus 25-30.” Zeitschrift
fu r die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 89 (1977): 375-387.
Keel, Othmar. The Symbolism o f the Biblical World. Translated by Timothy J. Hallett.
New York: Seabury, 1978.
KeiL Carl F. Hosea. Translated by James Martin. Reprint, Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1954.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
483
Keil, Carl. F., and Franz Delhzsch. Biblical Commentary on the Old Testament: The
Pentateuch. Biblical Commentary on the Old Testament, vols. 3 ,4, and S.
Translated by James Martin. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1959.
Kelly, Brian. “Redemption and Original Sin.” Irish Theological Quarterly 60 (1994): 1-
16.
Kempf, Stephen. “Genesis 3:14-19: Climax of the Discourse?’ Journal o f Translation and
Textlinguistics 6 (1993): 354-377.
________. “Introducing the Garden of Eden: The Structure and Function of Genesis
2:4b-7.” Journal o f Translation and Textlinguistics 7 (1996): 33-53.
Kennedy, James M. “Peasants in Revolt: Political Allegory in Genesis 2-3.” Journal fo r
the Study o f the Old Testament 47 (1990): 3-14.
Kidner, Derek. Genesis: An Introduction and Commentary. Tyndale Old Testament
Commentary. Downers Grove, IL: InterVarsity, 1967.
________. An Introduction and Commentary on Books I and II o f the Psalms. London:
Inter-Varsity, 1973.
________. Psalms 73-150. London: Inter-Varsity, 1975.
Kierkegaard, Soren. Fear and Trembling. New York: Penguin Books, 1985.
Kikiwada, Isaac M. “Genesis on Three Levels.” Annual o f Japanese Biblical Institute 7
(1981): 3-15.
________. “The Irrigation o f the Garden o f Eden.” Actes du XXIXe Congre. . . des
Orientalistes, Etudes Hebraiques (1975): 29-33.
________. “Literary Convention o f the Primaeval History.” Annual o f Japanese Biblical
Institute 1 (1975):3-21.
________. “A Quantitative analysis of the ‘Adam and Eve,’ ‘Cain and Abel,’ and ‘Noah’
Stories.” In Perspectives on Language and Text (Festschriftfo r F. Andersen), ed.
Edgar W. Conrad and Edward G. Newing, 195-203. Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns,
1987.
________. “The Shape o f Genesis 11:1-9.” In Rhetorical Criticism: Essays in Honor o f J.
Muilenburg, ed. J. Jackson and M. Kessler, 18-32. Pittsburgh: Pickwick, 1974.
________. “Two Notes on Eve.” Journal o f Biblical Literature 91 (1972): 33-37.
________. “The Unity o f Genesis 12:1-9.” In Proceedings o f the Sixth World Congress o f
Jewish Studies, ed. Avigdor Shinan, 1:229-235. Jerusalem: Work! Union o f Jewish
Studies, 1977.
Kikiwada, Isaac M, and Arthur Quinn. Before Abraham Was: The Unity o f Genesis 1-11.
Nashville: Abingdon, 1985.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
484
Kilmer, Anne. “Speculations on Umul, the First Baby.” Alter Orient und Altes Testament
25 (1976): 265-270.
________. “The Mesopotamian Concept o f Overpopulation and Its Solution as
Represented in the Mythology.” Orientalia 41 (1972): 160-177.
Kim, Dwight Dongwan. “Is Christ Sitting on the Davidic Throne? Peter’s Use o f Psalm
110:1 in His Pentecost Speech in Acts 2.” Th.D. dissertation, Dallas Theological
Seminary, Texas, 1993.
King-Farlow, J., and D. W. Hunt. “Perspectives on the Fall o f Man.” Scottish Journal o f
Theology 35 (1982): 193-204.
Kirkpatrick, Patricia G. The Old Testament and Folklore Study. Journal for the Study of
the Old Testament Supplement Series, 62. Sheffield: JSOT, 1988.
Kissane, Edward J. The Book o f Psalms. Westminster: Newman, 1954.
Kitchen, Kenneth A. Ancient Orient and Old Testament. Chicago: Inter-Varsity, 1966.
Kittel, Gerhard. The Scientific Study o f the Old Testament. Translated by J. Caleb
Hughes. Edinburgh: Saint Andrew, 1965.
Klein, Ernest, ed. A Comprehensive Etymological Dictionary o f the Hebrew Language fo r
Readers o f English. New York: Macmillan, 1987.
Klein, Michael L., ed. The Fragment-Targums to the Pentateuch According to Their
Extant Sources. 2 vols. Analecta Biblica, 76. Rome: Biblical Institute Press, 1980.
Klijn, Albertus Frederik J. Seth in Jewish, Christian and Gnostic Literature. Leiden: E. J.
Brill, 1977.
Kline, Meredith G. By Oath Consigned: A Reinterpretation o f the Covenant Signs o f
Circumcision and Baptism. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1968.
________. “Divine Kingship in Genesis 6:1-4.” Westminster Theological Journal 24
(1962): 187-204.
________. Images o f the Spirit. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1980.
________. Kingdom Prologue: Genesis Foundations fo r a Covenantal Worldview.
Overland Park, KS: Two Age, 2000.
________. “Old Testament Origins o f the Gospel Genre.” Westminster Theological
Journal 38 (1975): 1-27.
________. The Structure o f Biblical Authority. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1972.
Knapp, Gary L. “Viper.” The International Standard Bible Encyclopedia. Edited by
Geoffrey W. Bromiley et a l Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1979.4:988-989.
Koehler, Ludwig, and Walter Baumgartner. Lexicon in Veteris Testamenti Libros. Leiden:
E. J. Brill, 1953.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
485
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
486
Kronholm, Tryggve. Motifs from Genesis 1-11 in the Genuine Hymns o f Ephrem the
Syrian: With Particular Reference to the Influence o f Jewish Exegetical Tradition.
Old Testament Series 11. Uppsala, Sweden: Almqvist & Wiksell, 1978.
Krueger, Frederick W., ed. Christian Ecology: Building an Environmental Ethic fo r the
Twenty-First Century. San Francisco: North American Conference on Christianity
and Ecology, 1988.
Kruse, Heinz. “David's Covenant.” Vetus Testamentum 35 (1985): 139-164.
Kselman, John S. “The Book of Genesis: A Decade of Scholarly Research.” Interpretation
45 (1991): 380-392.
________. “Psalm 72: Some Observations on Structure.” Bulletin o f the American
Schools o f Oriental Research 220 (1973): 77-81.
Kugel, James L. “Cain and Abel in Fact and Fable: Genesis 4:1-16.” In Hebrew Bible or
Old Testament? Studying the Bible in Judaism and Christianity, ed. Roger Brooks
and John J. Collins, 167-190. Christianity and Judaism in Antiquity, 5. Notre Dame,
IN: University of Notre Dame Press, 1990.
________. The Idea o f Biblical Poetry: Parallelism and Its History. New Haven: Yale
University Press, 1981.
KQmmel, Werner Georg. Promise and Fulfillment. London: SCM, 1961.
Kunad, Johann. Disputatio Theologica de Inimicitiis inter Serpentum et Mulierem, ad
Locum Classicum Gen 3, 15 adomata. Lipsiae: Veit et Comp., 1662.
Kuyper, Lester J. “To Know Good and Evil.” Interpretation 1 (1947): 490-492.
Kvarme, Ole C. M. “Torah and Christ: On the Use of the Old Testament in the Early
Synagogue and in the Early Church.” Evangelical Review o f Theology 8 (1984):
183-201.
Labuschagne, Casper J. Numerical Secrets o f the Bible: Rediscovering the Bible Codes.
North Richland Hills, TX: BIBAL, 2000.
Laffey, Alice L. Introduction to the Old Testament: A Feminist Perspective. Philadelphia:
Fortress, 1988.
Lambden, Stephen N. “From Fig Leaves to Fingernails: Some Notes on the Garments of
Adam and Eve in the Hebrew Bible and Select Early Postbiblical Jewish Writings.”
In A Walk in the Garden: Biblical, Iconographical and Literary Images o f Eden,
ed. Paul Morris and Deborah Sawyer, 74-90. Journal for the Study o f the Old
Testament Supplement Series, 136. Sheffield: JSOT, 1992.
Lambert, Wilfred G. “Babylonien und Israel” Theologische Revue 5 (1980): 72-3.
________. “A New Look at the Babylonian Background o f Genesis.” Journal o f
Theological Studies 16 (1965): 287-300.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
487
________. “Trees, Snakes and Gods in Ancient Syria and Anatolia.'’ Bulletin o f the
School o f Oriental and African Studies 48 (1985): 435-451.
________, ed. Babylonian Wisdom Literature. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1960.
Landy, Francis. ‘‘Narrative Techniques and Symbolic Transactions in the Akedah.” In
Signs and Wonders: Biblical Texts in Literary Focus, ed. J. C. Exum, 1-40. Atlanta,
GA: Scholars, 1988.
________. Paradoxes o f Paradise. Identity and Difference in the Song o f Songs. Bible
and Literature Series, 7. Sheffield: Sheffield, 1983.
________. “The Song o f Songs and the Garden o f Eden.” Journal o f Biblical Literature
98 (1979): 513-528.
Lang, Bernhard. Eugen Drewermann: interprete de la Bible. Paris: Cerf, 1994.
________. “Social Organization o f Peasant Poverty in Biblical Israel.” Journalfo r the
Study o f the Old Testament 24 (1982): 47-63.
Lange, John Peter. Genesis. A Commentary on the Holy Scriptures: Critical, Doctrinal,
and Homilectical, vol. 1. Translated by Philip Schaff. New York: Charles Scribner’s
Sons, 1915.
Langer, Daniel. “A tikkun: Rebekah and Eve.” Tradition 27 (1992): 3-19.
Lanser, Susan. “(Feminist) Criticism in the Garden: Inferring Genesis 2-3.” Semeia 41
(1988): 67-84.
Lapide, Pinchas. “Touching the Forbidden Fruit.” Bible Review A, no. 4 (August 1988):
42-43.
Larkin, Katrina. The Eschatology o f Second Zechariah. Kampen: Pharos, 1994.
LaRondelle, Hans. Deliverance in the Psalms. Berrien Springs, MI: First Impressions,
1983.
Larsen, David L. The Evangelism Mandate: Recovering the Centrality o f Gospel
Preaching. Wheaton, IL: Crossway, 1992.
LaSor, William S. “Prophecy, Inspiration, and Sensus Plenior.” Tyndale Bulletin 29
(1978): 56-7.
Lattey, Cuthbert. “Vicarious Solidarity in the Old Testament.” Fetus Testamentum 1
(1951): 267-274.
Law, Henry. The Gospel in Genesis. London: Banner o f Truth Trust, 1961.
Leach, Edmund. Genesis as Myth and Other Essays. Suffolk, England: Richard Clay,
1971.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
488
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
489
Lewis, Jack P. A Study o f the Interpretation o f Noah and the Flood in Jewish and
Christian Literature. Leiden: E. J. BrilL 1968.
________. “The Woman's Seed (Gen 3: 15).” Journal o f the Evangelical Theological
Society 34(1991): 299-319.
Lewy, Immanuel. “The Two Strata in the Eden Story.” Hebrew Union College Annual 27
(1956): 93-99.
L’Heureux, Conrad E. In and Out o f Paradise: The Book o f Genesis from Adam and Eve
to the Tower o f Babel. New York: Paulist, 1983.
Lichtheim, Mariam, ed. Ancient Egyptian Literature. 3 vols. Berkeley, CA: University of
California Press, 1973-5.
Lief, Harold, ed. The Psychological Basis fo r Medical Practice. New York: Harper &
Row, 1963.
Lightfoot, Joseph Barber. Saint Paul's Epistle to the Galatians. London: Macmillan,
1866; reprint, Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1957.
Limburg, James. “The Responsibility of Royalty: Genesis 1-11 and the Care o f the Earth.”
Word& World 11 (1991): 124-130.
________. “What Does It Mean to Have Dominion Over the Earth?” Dialog 10 (1971):
221-223.
Ling, Trevor. “Satan Enthroned.” South East Asia Journal o f Theology 3 (1961): 41-53.
Lindblom, J. The Servant Songs in Deutero-Isaiah: A New Attempt to Solve an Old
Problem. Lund: C. W. K. Gleerup, 1951.
Linss, Wilhelm C. “Prediction and Fulfillment.” Lutheran Quarterly 11 (1959): 237-243.
Lipinski, Edouard. “Etudes sur des textes ‘Messianiques’ de l’ancien Testament.”
Semitica 20 (1970): 41-57.
________. “Garden of Abundance, Image o f Lebanon.” Zeitschrift fu r die
alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 85 (1973): 358-9.
______ . “]nj.” Theologisches Worterbuch zum Alten Testament. Edited by G.
Johannes Botterweck et a l Stuttgart, Germany: W. Kohlhammer, 1986. 5:694-711.
Lloyd-RusseU, V. “The Serpent as the Prime Symbol o f Immortality Has Its Origin in the
Semhic-Sumerian Culture.” Ph.D. dissertation, The University o f Southern
California, Los Angeles, California, 1938.
Loewenstamm, Samuel E. “The Divine Grants o f Land to the Patriarchs.” Journal o f the
American Oriental Society 91 (1971): 509-510.
________. “The Ugaritic Fertility Myth: The Result o f a Mistranslation.” Israel
Exploration Journal 12 (1962): 87-88.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
490
Lohfink, Norbert. “Gen. 2-3 as ‘Historical Etiology.”’ Theology Digest 13 (1965): 11-7.
________. ‘“Seid fruchtbar und fiillt die Erde an.’” Bibel und Kirche 30 (1975): 77-82.
Long, Burke O. The Problem o f Etiological Narrative in the Old Testament. Beihefte zur
Zeitschrift fiir die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft, 108. Berlin: Tdpelmann, 1968.
Longacre, Robert. The Grammar o f Discourse. New York: Plenum, 1983.
Longenecker, Richard N. Biblical Exegesis in the Apostolic Period. Grand Rapids:
Eerdmans, 1974.
Lovestam, Evald. Son and Saviour: A Study o f Acts 13,32-37, With an Appendix: “Son o f
God" in the Synoptic Gospels. Coniectanea Neotestamentica, 18. Copenhagen:
Ejnar Munksgaard. 1961.
Luc, Alex T. “3pU.” New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology and
Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et al. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1997.
3:506-507.
Luke, K. “Isaac’s Blessing: Genesis 27.” Scripture 20 (1968): 33-41.
Lund, Jerome A. “The Influence of the Septuagint on the Peshitta: A Re-Evaluation o f
Criteria in Light of Comparative Study of the Versions in Genesis and the Psalms.”
Ph.D dissertation, The Hebrew University, Jerusalem, 1988.
Lundbom, Jack R. “Abraham and David in the Theology o f the Yahwist.” In The Word o f
the Lord Shall Go Forth: Essays in Honor o f David Noel Freedman, ed. C. L.
Meyers, 203-9. Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns, 1983.
Lussier, Ernest. “Adam in Gen 1.1-4.24.” Catholic Biblical Quarterly 18 (1956): 137-
139.
Luther, Martin. Luther’s Works. Vol. 1, Lectures on Genesis Chapters 1-5. Translated by
George V. Schick. Edited by Jaroslav Pelikan. Saint Loius: Concordia, 1958.
MacDonald, D. B. “The Pre-Abrahamic Stories o f Genesis as a Part o f the Wisdom
Literature.” In Studia Semitica et Orientalia FSJ. Robertson, ed. William B.
Stevenson, 115-125. Glasgow: University o f Glasgow Oriental Society, 1920.
MacDonald, John. “The Particle TIK in Classical Hebrew: Some New Data on Its Use with
the Nominative.” Vetus Testamentum 14 (1964): 264-275.
Machen, John Gresham. The Virgin Birth o f Christ. New York: Harper & Brothers, 1932.
Mackenzie, Roderick A. F. “Divine Soliloquies in Genesis.” Catholic Biblical Quaterly 19
(1955): 277-286.
Mackintosh, Charles Henry. Genesis to Deuteronomy: Notes on the Pentateuch. Neptune,
NJ: Loizeaux Bros., 1972.
MacQuarrie, John. “Creation and Environment.” Expository Times 83 (1971-2): 4-9.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
491
Magonet, Jonathan. “The Themes of Genesis 2-3.” In A Walk in the Garden: Biblical,
Iconographical and Literary Images o f Eden, ed. Paul Morris and Deborah Sawyer,
39-46. Journal for the Study o f the Old Testament Supplement Series, 136.
Sheffield: JSOT, 1992.
Maher, Michael J. Targum Pseudo-Jonathan: Genesis. The Aramaic Bible, vol IB.
Collegeville, MN: Liturgical, 1992.
Malamat, Abraham. “King Lists o f the Old Babylonian Period and Biblical Genealogies.”
Journal o f the American Oriental Society 88 (1968): 163-173.
Malina, Bruce J. “Some Observations on the Origin of Sin in Judaism and St. Paul.”
Catholic Biblical Quarterly 31 (1969): 18-34.
Maly, Eugene H. “Genesis.” The Jerome Biblical Commentary. Edited by Raymond E.
Brown. Englewood Clifls, NJ: Prentice-Hall, 1968. 7-46.
Mandelkern, Solomon, ed. Veteris Testamenti Concordantiae: Hebraicae atque
chaldaicae. Lipsiae: Veit et Comp., 1925.
March, W. Eugene. “2 Samuel 7:1-17: [A Messianic Interpretation].” Interpretation 35
(1981): 397-401.
Margalh, Baruch. “Lexicographical Notes on the Aqht Epic (Part I: KTU, 1.17-18).”
Ugaritische Forschung 15 (1983): 95-96.
Marks, Isaac M. Fears and Phobias. New York: Academic, 1969.
Marshall, I. Howard. “Is Apocalyptic the Mother of Christian Theology?' In Tradition
and Interpretation in the blew Testament: Essays in Honor o f E. Earl Ellis fo r His
60h Birthday, ed. Gerald Hawthorne and Otto Betz, 33-42. Grand Rapids:
Eerdmans, 1987.
Martens, Elmer A. Plot and Purpose in the Old Testament. Leicester: Inter-Varsity, 1981.
Martin, Raymond Albert. “ The Earliest Messianic Interpretation o f Genesis 3:15.”
Journal o f Biblical Literature 84 (1965): 425-427.
Martin-Achard, Robert. Et Dieu Cree le d el et la Terre. Geneva: Labor et Fides, 1979.
Mason, Rex. The Books o f Haggai, Zechariah and Malachi. The Cambridge Bible
Commentary. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1977.
Matar, Nabil I. “Adam and the Serpent: Notes on the Theology o f Mikhail Naimy.”
Journal o f Arabic Literature 11 (1980): 56-61.
Mathews, Kenneth A. Genesis 1-11:26. Nashville, TN: Broadman & Holman, 1996.
Matthews, Melvyn. “Who Told You That You were Naked? A Metaphor for a Christian
Theology o f Atonement.” Theology 93 (1990): 212-220.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
492
Matthews, Victor H., and Don C. Benjamin. Old Testament Parallels: Laws and Stories
from the Ancient Near East. New York: Paulist, 1997.
Mattson, David Llovd. ‘The Blessing Themes in the Abraham Story and Their
Implications for the Date and Purpose o f the Story.” Ph.D. dissertation, The
University of Michigan, Ann Arbor, Michigan, 1983.
Mauldin, Frank L. “Singularity and a Pattern of Sin, Punishment, and Forgiveness.”
Perspectives in Religious Studies 10 (1983): 41-50.
May, Herbert G. “The King in the Garden o f Eden: A Study o f Ezekiel 28:12-19.” In
Israel’s Prophetic Heritage: Essays in Honor o f James Muilenberg, ed. Bernhard
W. Anderson and Walter Harrelson, 166-176. New York: Harper and Brothers,
1962.
Mays, James Luther. “The David o f the Psalms.” Interpretation 40 (1986): 143-155.
May, James Luther, et al., eds. Harper's Bible Commentary. San Francisco: Harper &
Row, 1988.
Mazar, Benjamin. “The Historical Background o f the Book of Genesis.” Journal o f Near
Eastern Studies 28 (1969): 73-83.
Mazor, Yair. “Scolding Aesthetics in Biblical Literature.” Scandinavian Journal o f the
Old Testament 9 (1995): 297-313.
McCarter, Peter Kyle. II Samuel: A New Translation with Introduction, Notes and
Commentary. Anchor Bible. Garden City: Doubleday, 1984.
McCarthy, Dennis J. “Covenant in the Old Testament: The Present State of Inquiry.”
Catholic Biblical Quarterly 27 (1965): 217-240.
________. “Three Covenants in Genesis.” Catholic Biblical Quarterly 26 (1964): 179-
189.
________. “II Samuel 7 and the Structure of the Deuteronomistic History.” Journal o f
Biblical Literature 84 (1965): 131-138.
McComiskey, Thomas Edward. The Covenants o f Promise: A Theology o f the Old
Testament Covenants. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1985.
________. “S’K.” Theological Workbook o f the Old Testament. Edited by R. Laird
Harris, Gleason L. Archer, and Bruce K. Waltke. Chicago: Moody, 1980. 1:36-37.
_______. “Hosea.” In The Minor Prophets: An Exegetical and Expository Commentary.
Grand Rapids: Baker, 1992.
McCreesh, Thomas P. Biblical Sound and Sense: Poetic Sound Patterns in Proverbs 10-
29. Journal for the Study of the Old Testament Supplement Series, 128. Sheffield:
Sheffield, 1991.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
493
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
494
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
495
________. “Some Second Thoughts about Adam’s First Wife.” In Genesis 1-3 in the
History o f Exegesis, ed. G. A. Robbins, 225-253. Studies in Women and Religion,
27. Lewiston, NY: Edwin Mellen, 1988.
Millard, Alan Ralph. “The Etymology of Eden.” Vetus Testamentum 34 (1984): 103-105.
Miller, Elliot, and Kenneth R. Samples. The Cult o f the Virgin: Catholic Mariology and
the Apparitions o f Mary. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1992.
Miller, John W. “Depatriarchalizing God in Biblical Interpretation: A Critique.” Catholic
Biblical Quarterly 48 (1986): 609-616.
Miller, Patrick D. Genesis 1-11: Studies in Structure and Theme. Journal for the Study of
the Old Testament Supplementary Series, 8. Sheffield, England: University o f
Sheffield, Dept, o f Biblical Studies, 1978.
Millett, Kate. Sexual Politics. New York: Doubleday, 1970.
Milne, D. J. W. “Genesis 3 in the Letter to the Romans.” Reformed Theological Review
39(1980): 10-18.
Milne, Pamela J. “Eve and Adam: Is a Feminist Reading Possible?” Bible Review 4
(June1988): 12-21.
Minear, Paul Sevier. Christians and the New Creation: Genesis Motifs in the New
Testament. Louisville, KY: Westminster John Knox, 1994.
________. “Far as the Curse Is Found: The Point o f Revelation 12:15-16.” Novum
Testamentum 33 (1991): 71-77.
Miscall, Peter D. “Isaiah: New Heaven, New Earth, New Book.” In Reading Between
Texts: Intertextuality and the Hebrew Bible, ed. Danna Nolan FewelL, 41-56.
Louisville, KY: Westminster/John Knox, 1992.
Mitchell, Christopher Wright. The Meaning o f “Brk, ” “To Bless, " in the Old Testament.
Society o f Biblical Literature Dissertation Series 95. Atlanta, GA: Scholars, 1987.
Mitchell, Daniel R. “Man on the Eve of Destruction.” Fundamentalist Journal 3, no. 11
(1984): 23-27.
Moberly, R. W. L. At the Mountain o f God: Story and Theology o f Exodus 32-34.
Sheffield: Sheffield, 1983.
________. “Christ as the Key to Scripture: Genesis 22 Reconsidered.” In He Swore an
Oath: Biblical Themesfrom Genesis 12-50, ed. Richard S. Hess, G. J. Wenham,
and P. E. Satterthwaite,143-173.2nded. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1994.
________. “The Church’s Use o f the Bible: The Work of Brevard Childs.” Expository
Times 99 (1988): 104-109.
________. “Did the Serpent Get It Right?’ Journal o f Theological Studies 39 (1988): 1-
27.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
496
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
497
Morgenstem, Julian. The Book o f Genesis: A Jewish Interpretation. New York: Schocken
Books, 1965.
________. “On Gilgamesh-Epic XI.” Zeitschrift fUr Assyriologie 29 (1915): 274-320.
________. “The Mythological Background of Psalm 82.” Hebrew Union College Annual
14 (1939): 93-95.
Morris, Henry M. The Genesis Record: A Scientific and Devotional Commentary on the
Book o f Beginnings. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1976.
Morris, Paul. “Exiled from Eden: Jewish Interpretations o f Genesis.” In A Walk in the
Garden: Biblical, Iconographical and Literary Images o f Eden, ed. Paul Morris
and Deborah Sawyer, 117-166. Journal for the Study o f the Old Testament
Supplement Series, 136. Sheffield: JSOT, 1992.
Morris, Paul. “A Walk in the Garden: Images o f Eden.” In A Walk in the Garden:
Biblical, Iconographical and Literary Images o f Eden, ed. Paul Morris and
Deborah Sawyer, 21-38. Journal for the Study o f the Old Testament Supplement
Series, 136. Sheffield: JSOT, 1992.
Moscati, Sabatino, ed. An Introduction to the Comparative Grammar o f Semitic
Languages. Wiesbaden: Otto Harrassowhz, 1964.
Moskala, Jifi, ed. Creation, Life, and Hope: Essays in Honor o f Jacques B. Doukhan.
Berrien Springs, MI: Old Testament Department o f Seventh-day Adventist
Theological Seminary, Andrews University, 2000.
Moster, Julius B. “Cain: Why Is He Featured So Prominently in the Bible.” Jewish Bible
Quarterly 24 (1996): 233-240.
________. “Revisiting the Garden o f Eden.” Journal o f Biblical Quarterly 26 (1998):
223-230.
Motyer, J. Alec. The Prophecy o f Isaiah: An Introduction and Commentary. Downers
Grove, IL: Inter-Varsity, 1993.
Mowinckel, Sigmund. He That Cometh. Translated by G. W. Anderson. New York:
Abingdon, 1954.
________. The Psalms in Israel’s Worship. New York: Abingdon, 1967.
________. In Hebrew and Semitic Studies: Presented to Godfrey Rolles Driver in
Celebration o f His Seventieth Birthday, 20 August 1962, ed. D. Winton Thomas
and W. D. McHardy, 95-103. Oxford: Clarendon, 1963.
Muilenburg, James. “Abraham and the Nations: Blessing and World History.”
Interpretation 19 (1965): 385-398.
________. “The Book o f Isaiah, Chapter 40-66.” In Interpreter’s Bible. Edited by George
Arthur Buttrick. New York: Abingdon, 1989.5:422-773.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
498
________. “Form Criticism and Beyond.” Journal o f Biblical Literature 88 (1969): 1-18.
________. “The Form and Structure o f the Covenantal Formulations.” Vetus
Testamentum 9 (1959): 347-365.
________. “The Linguistic and Rhetorical Usages o f the Particle ki in the Old Testament.”
Hebrew Union College Annual 32 (1961): 135-160.
Mulder, Martin Jan. “The Use of the Peshitta in Textual Criticism.” In La Septuaginta en
la Investigacion Contemporanea (V Congreso de la IOSCS), ed. N. Fernandez
Marcos, 37-53. Madrid: Instituto “Arias Montano” CSIC, 1985.
Munday, John C. Jr. “Creature Mortality: From Creation or the Fall?’ Journal o f
Evangelical Theological Society 35 (1992): 51-68.
Mundkur, Balaji. The Cult o f the Serpent: An Interdisciplinary Survey o f Its
Manifestations and Origins. Albany: State University o f New York, 1983.
Munk, Elie. La Voix de la Torah: Commentaire du Pentateuque. Paris: Foundation
Samuel et Odette Levy, 1969.
Mufioz, Leon Domingo. Dios-Palabra: Memra en los Targumim del Pentateuco.
Granada: Editorial Imprenta Santa Rita, 1974.
Muraoka, Takamitsu. Emphatic Words and Structures in Biblical Hebrew. Leiden: Brill,
1985.
________. “On the Nominal Clause in Late Biblical Hebrew and Mishnaic Hebrew.” In
Languages Studies IV, ed. Mosheh Bar-Asher, 219-252. Jerusalem: Magnes,
1990.
Murphy, James Gracey. A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on the Book o f Genesis.
Boston: Gould & Lincoln, 1866.
Murphy, Roland E. A Study o f Psalm 72 (71). Washington, DC: Catholic University of
America Press, 1948.
Murray, Campion. “The Origin o f the World and Genesis 1-3.” Australian Biblical Review
13 (1965): 1-18.
Murray, John. The Covenant o f Grace: A Biblico-Theological Study. London: Tyndale,
1954.
________. Principles o f Conduct. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1957.
Murtonen, A. “The Use and Meaning o f the Words lebarek and berakah in the Old
Testament.” Vetus Testamentum 9 (1959): 157.
Nachmanides, Ramban. Commentary on the Torah: Genesis. Translated by Charles B.
Chavel. New York: Shik), 1971.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
499
Naidoff, Bruce P. “A Man to Work the Soil: A New Interpretation o f Genesis 2-3.”
Journalfo r the Study o f the Old Testament 5 (1978): 2-14.
Nassif Bradley L. ‘Toward a ‘Catholic’ Understanding of St. Augustine’s View of
Original Sin.” Union Seminary Quarterly Review 39 (1984): 287-299.
Neff, Robert Wilbur. “The Annunciation in the Birth of Ishmael.” Biblical Research 17
(1972): 51-60.
________. “The Birth and Election of Isaac in the Priestly Tradition.” Biblical Research
15 (1970): 5-18.
Nelson, M. “The Sacrifice o f Isaac: A Humanistic Interpretation.” Neuphilologische
Mitteilungen (Helsinki) 89 (1988): 286-294.
Nettelhorst, R. P. “The Genealogy of Jesus.” Journal o f the Evangelical Theological
Society 31 (1988): 169-172.
Neufeld, Ernest. “Cain and Abel.” World Jewish Journal 17 (1988): 40-43.
________. “The Anatomy of the First Lies.” Jewish Bible Quarterly 24 (1996): 112-114.
Neusner, Jacob. Genesis Rabbah: The Judaic Commentary to the Book o f Genesis.
Brown Judaic Studies, 104-106. Atlanta, GA: Scholars, 1985.
Newman, Barclay M. ‘Translating ‘Seed’ in Galatians 3:16, 19.” Bible Translator 35
(1984): 334-337.
Newman, Jacob. The Commentary o f Nachmanides on Genesis 1-6. Leiden: Brill, 1960.
Newman, Robert C., and Herman J. Eckelmann, Jr. Genesis One and the Origin o f the
Earth. Downers Grove, IL: Inter-Varsity, 1977.
Nezikin, Seder. The Babylonian Talmud. Translated into English with Notes, Glossary
and Indices by Rabbi Dr. I. Epstein. London: Soncino, 1935.
Niccacci, Alviero. “Analysis of Biblical Narrative.” In Biblical Hebrew and Discourse
Linguistics, ed. Robert D. Bergen, 175-198. Dallas, TX: Summer Institute of
Linguistics, 1994.
________. “Basic Facts and Theory of the Biblical Hebrew Verb System in Prose.” In
Narrative Syntax and the Hebrew Bible: Papers o f the Tilburg Conference, 1996,
ed. Ellen van Wolde, 167-202. Biblical Interpretation Series, vol. 29. Leiden: BrQL
1997.
________. Syntax o f the Verb in Classical Hebrew Prose. Sheffield: Sheffield, 1990.
Nickelsburg, George W. E. “Reading the Hebrew Scriptures in the First Century:
Christian Interpretation in Their Jewish Context.” Word & World 3 (1983): 238-
250.
Nida, Eugene A. “New Meanings for Old.” The Bible Translator 31 (1980): 224-228.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
500
Niditch, Susan. Chaos and Cosmos. Studies in Biblical Patterns o f Creation. Chico, CA:
Scholars, 1985.
_______ . “The Cosmic Adam: Man as Mediator in Rabbinic Literature.” Journal o f
Jewish Studies 34 (1983): 137-146.
_______ . Folklore and the Hebrew Bible. Guides to Biblical Scholarship. Minneapolis:
Fortress, 1993.
Niehaus, Jeffrey J. God at Sinai: Covenant and Theophany in the Bible and Ancient Near
East. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1995.
Nielsen, Eduard. “Creation and the Fall o f Man: A Cross-Disciplinary Investigation.”
Hebrew Union College Annual 43 (1972): 1-22.
Ninow, Friedbert. “Indicators of Typology within the Old Testament: The Exodus Motif.”
Ph.D. dissertation, Andrews University, Berrien Springs, Michigan, 1999.
Noble, Paul R. The Canonical Approach: A Critical Reconstruction o f the Hermeneutics
o f Brevard S. Childs. Leiden: Brill, 1995.
Noll, Stephen F. “Genesis 3: The Fall Upward Toward Calvary.” Mission and Ministry 8
(1991): 35-36.
Noth, Martin. A History o f Pentateuchal Traditions. Translated by Bernhard W.
Anderson. Reprint, Englewood Clifls, NJ: Prentice-Hall, 1972.
Nowell, Irene. “The Narrative Context o f Blessing in the Old Testament.” In Blessing and
Power, ed. Mary Collins and David Power, 3-12. Concilium, 178. Edinburgh,
Scotland: T & T Clark, 1985.
O’Brien, Joan, and Wilfred Major. In the Beginning: Creation Myths from Ancient
Mesopotamia, Israel, and Greece. Chico, CA: Scholars, 1982.
Och, Bernard. “The Garden o f Eden: From Creation to Covenant; Part 1.” Judaism 37
(1988): 143-156.
O’Connell, Robert H. “^ n S .” New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology
and Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et al. Grand Rapids: Zondervan,
1997.2:784-785.
O’Connor, Edward Dennis, ed. The Dogma o f the Immaculate Conception: History and
Significance. Notre Dame, IN: University of Notre Dame Press, 1958.
Oden, Robert A., Jr. “Divine Aspirations in Atrahasis and in Genesis 1-11.” Zeitschriftfur
die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 93 (1981): 197-216.
________. “Grace or Status? Yahweh’s Clothing of the First Humans.” Chapter 3 o f The
Bible Without Theology: The Theological Tradition and Alternatives to It. San
Francisco: Harper and Row, 1987.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
501
________. “Transformations in Near Eastern Myths: Genesis 1-11 and the Old Babylonian
Epic of Atrahasis.” Religion 11 (1981): 21-37.
Odendaal, Dirk H. The Eschatological Expectation o f Isaiah 40-66 with Special
Reference to Israel and the Nations. Nutley, NJ: Presbyterian and Reformed, 1970.
Odom, Leo. “Messianic Expectation in the First Century C.E. -1.” Israelite 27 (July-
September 1980): 14-15.
Oesterley, William Oscar Emil. The Evolution o f the Messianic Idea: A Study in
Comparative Religion. New York: E. P. Dutton, 1908.
Ogden, Graham S. “A Fresh Look at the ‘Curses’ o f Gen 3:14-19.” Taiwan Journal o f
Theology, no. 7 (1985): 129-140.
Ohm, Won Shik. “A Comparative Analysis o f the Literary Structure of Genesis 1-11 to
Ancient Near Eastern Patterns.” Ph.D. dissertation, Mid-America Baptist,
Baltimore, Maryland, 1992.
Olbricht, Thomas H. “The Theology o f Genesis.” Restoration Quarterly 23 (1980): 201-
217.
Oldenburg, Ulf. The Conflict Between El and Baal in Canaanite Religion. Leiden: E. J.
Brill, 1969.
Oliver, James Arthur. Snakes, in Fact and Fiction. New York: Macmillan, 1958.
Oosten, Jarich G. “The Ambivalent Gardener: The Animal and Vegetable Codes o f
Genesis 2.4 to 9.9.” Anthropologica 21 (1979): 118-127.
Orbe, Antonio. “Ipse tuum calcabh caput: San Ireneo y Gen 3:15.” Greg 52 (1971): 95-
150; 215-271.
Ortlund, Raymond C. “Male-Female Equality and Male Headship: Genesis 1-3.” In
Recovering Biblical Manhood and Womanhood: A Response to Evangelical
Feminism, ed. John Piper and Wayne A. Gruden, 95-112,479-483. Wheaton, IL:
Crossway, 1991.
Oswalt, John N. “Recent Studies in Old Testament Eschatology and Apocalyptic.”
Journal o f the Evangelical Theological Society 24 (1981): 289-301.
________. “The Myth o f the Dragon and Old Testament Faith.” Evangelical Quarterly 49
(1977): 163-172.
Ottosson, Magnus. “Eden and the Land Promise.” In Congress Volume, Jerusalem 1986,
ed. J. A. Emerton et a l, 177-188. Vetus Testamentum Suplement, 40. Leiden: Brill,
1988.
Ouellette, Lucien. “Woman’s Doom in Genesis 3,16.” Catholic Biblical Quarterly 12
(1950): 389-399.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
502
Page, Hugh Rowland, Jr. The Myth o f Cosmic Rebellion: A Study o f Its Reflexes in
Ugaritic and Biblical Literature. Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1996.
Pagels, Elaine. Adam, Eve, and the Serpent. New York: Random House, 1988.
________. The Origin o f Satan. New York: Random House, 1995.
________. “The Politics o f Paradise: Augustine’s Exegesis o f Genesis 1-3 Versus That of
John Chrysostom.” Harvard Theological Review 78 (1985): 67-99.
Pardes, liana. “Beyond Genesis 3: The Politics o f Maternal Naming.” In A Feminist
Companion to Genesis, ed. Athalya Brenner, 173-193. Sheffield: Sheffield, 1993.
Pareus, David. Commentarius in Genesin. In Opera Theologica Exegetica. Pars Secunda.
Compiled by John Philip Pareus. Frankfurt: John Rose, 1647.
Park, William. “Why Eve?” St. Vladimir’s Theological Quarterly 35 (1991): 127-135.
Parker, Judson F. “Structural Exegesis o f Genesis 2 and 3.” Society o f Biblical Literature
Seminar Papers, no. 13 (1978): 3.
Parunak, Van Dyke. “Oral Typesetting: Some Uses o f Biblical Structure.” Biblica 62
(1981): 158-168.
Patrick, Dale. The Rendering o f God in the Old Testament. Overtures o f Biblical
Theology. Philadelphia: Fortress, 1981.
Patrick, James. “Seed, Seedtime.” A Dictionary o f the Bible Dealing with Its Language,
Literature, and Contents. Edited by James Hastings. New York: Scribner’s, 1911.
4:429-430.
Patte, Daniel. “One Text: Several Structures.” Semeia 18 (1980): 3-22.
Patte, Daniel, and Judson F. Parker. “A Structural Exegesis of Genesis 2 and 3.” Semeia
18 (1980): 55-75.
Paul, Maarten J. New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology and
Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et a l Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1997.
2:778-780.
Payne, D. F. Genesis One Reconsidered. London: Tyndale, 1964.
Payne, J. Barton. Encyclopedia o f Biblical Prophecy. New York: Harper & Row, 1973.
________. “3j?B.” Theological Workbook o f the Old Testament. Edited by R. Laird
Harris, Gleason L. Archer, and Bruce K. Waltke. Chicago: Moody, 1980.2:691-
692.
Payne, Robert A. “The ‘Seed,’ the Spirit, and the Blessing o f Abraham.” Bibliotheca
Sacra 152 (1995): 211-222.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
503
Peacock, Kevin Curtis. ‘The Covenant Promises in Their Canonical Relationship to the
Eden Narrative.” Ph.D. dissertation, Southwestern Baptist Theological Seminary,
Louisville, Kentucky, 1995.
Pearce, Eustace K. V. Who Was Adam? Exeter: Paternoster, 1970.
Pearce, Sarah J. K. “Echoes of Eden in the Old Greek of Susanna.” Feminist Theology 11
(1996): 11-31.
Pedersen, Johannes. “The Fall o f Man.” In Interpretationes ad Vetus Testamentum
pertinentes Sigmundo Mowinckel, ed. N. A. Dahl and A. S. Kapelrud, 162-172.
Oslo: Forlaget Land og Kirche, 1955.
_______ . Israel: Its Life and Culture. VoL I. London: Oxford University Press, 1926.
Peirce, Francis X. “The Protevangelium.” Catholic Biblical Quarterly 13 (1951):
239-252.
Penchansky, David. “Staying the Night: Intertextuality in Genesis and Judges.” In Reading
Between Texts: Intertextuality and the Hebrew Bible, ed. Danna Nolan Fewell, 77-
88. Louisville, KY: Westminster/John Knox, 1992.
Perowne, J. J. Stewart. The Book o f Psalms. 2 vols. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1976.
Perpetua, Saint. Passion o f Perpetua and Felicitas. VoL 3, The Ante-Nicene Fathers.
Edited by Alexander Roberts and James Donaldson. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1989.
Petersen, David L. “The Formation o f the Pentateuch.” In Old Testament Interpretation:
Past, Present, and Future, ed. James Luther Mays, David Petersen, and Kent
Harold Richards, 31-45. Nashville, TN: Abingdon, 1995.
________. “A Thrice-Told Tale: Genre, Theme, and Motif.” Biblical Research 18 (1973):
30-43.
________. Zechariah 9-14 and Malachi. London: SCM, 1995.
Pfeiffer, Charles, et a l, eds. Wycliffe Bible Encyclopedia. 2 vols. Chicago: Moody, 1975.
Pfeiffer, Robert H. Introduction to the Old Testament. New York: Harper and Brothers,
1941.
Pfeiffer, Robert H., and William G. Pollard. The Hebrew Iliad. New York: Harper, 1957.
Phillips, Anthony. Lower Than the Angels: Questions Raised by Genesis 1-11. Norwich:
Canterbury, 1996.
Phillips, Gary. “Response to Boomershine: Structure and Narration, An Enunciative
View.” Semeia 18 (1980): 131-138.
Phillips, John A. Eve: The History o f an Idea. San Francisco: Harper & Row, 1984.
Philo Philo. 10 vols. Loeb Classical Library. Edited by T. E. Page. Translated by F. H.
Colson and G. H. Whitaker. New York: Putnam, 1926-62.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
504
Phipps, William E. “Adam’s Rib: Bone o f Contention.” Theology Today 33 (1976): 263-
273.
________. “Eve and Pandora Contrasted.” Theology Today 45 (1988): 34-48.
Pieters, Albert. Notes on Genesisfo r Ministers and Serious Bible Students. Grand Rapids:
Eerdmans, 1943.
Pietersma, Albert. “New Greek Fragments o f Biblical Manuscripts in the Chester Beatty
Library.” Bulletin o f the American School o f Papyrology 24 (1987): 37-61.
Pink, Arthur W. Gleanings in Genesis. Chicago: Moody, 1922.
Plaut, Gunther. “Cain and Abel: Bible, Tradition, and Contemporary Reflection [Gen
4:1-16].” In Preaching Biblical Texts: Expositions by Jewish and Christian
Scholars, ed. Fredrick Carlson Holmgren and Herman E. Schaalman, 11-16. Grand
Rapids: Eerdmans, 1995.
Plessis, I. J. du. “The Relation Between the Old and New Testaments from the Perspective
o f Kingship/Kingdom: Including the Messianic Motif.” In Relationship Between the
Old and New Testament: Proceedings o f the I6'h Annual Meetings o f the New
Testament Society o f South Africa, 1980,42-61. Bloemfontein, South Africa: New
Testament Society o f South Africa, 1981.
Plum, Karin Friis. “Genealogy as Theology.” Scandinavian Journal o f the Old Testament
1 (1989): 66-92.
Pohle, Joseph. Mariology: A Dogmatic Treatise on the Blessed Virgin Mary, Mother o f
God. St. Louis: Herder, 1953.
Pokomy, Petr. The Genesis o f Christology: Foundationsfo r a Theology o f the New
Testament. Translated by Marcus Lefebure. Edinburgh: T & T Clark, 1987.
Porter, Joshua R. “The Legal Aspects o f the Concept o f ‘Corporate Personality’ in the
Old Testament.” Vetus Testamentum 15 (1965): 361-380.
Porter, Stanley E. “Two Myths: Corporate Personality and Language Mentality
Determinism.” Scottish Journal o f Theology 43 (1990): 289-307.
Powell, Henry Tudor. The Fall o f Man: Its Place in Modem Thought. London: Society
for Promoting Christian Knowledge, 1934.
Power, William J. A. “The Book of Genesis: A Folk Theology.” The Perkins Journal 37
(1984): 1-56.
Pratt, Henry Barrington. Studies in the Book o f Genesis. New York: American Tract
Society, 1906.
Premsager, P. “Theology of Promise in the Patriarchal Narratives.” Indian Journal o f
Theology 23 (1974): 112-122.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
505
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
506
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
507
________. ‘“ Subdue the Earth': Man and Nature in the Old Testament.” Theology Digest
27 (1979): 213-216.
________. “What We Miss by Taking the Bible Apart.” Bible Review 14 (1998): 42-44.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
508
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
509
Ronning, John L. “The Curse on the Serpent (Gen 3:15) in Biblical Theology and
Hermeneutics.” Ph.D. dissertation, Westminster Theological Seminary, Philadelphia,
Pennsylvania, 1997.
Rose, Benjamin L. “Fall o f Man.” Christianity Today 10 (1965): 45-48.
Rosenbaum, Morris, and Abraham M. Silbermann. Pentateuch with Targum Onkelos,
Haphtorah and Rashi's Commentary: Genesis. New York: Hebrew Publication,
1965.
Rosenbaum, Stanley N. “Israelite Homicide Law and the Term ‘Enmity’ in Genesis 3:15.”
Journal o f Law and Religion 2 (1984): 145-151.
Rosenberg, A. J. The Book o f Genesis: A New English Translation o f the Text, Rashi, and
a Commentary Digest. Judaica Press Books of the Bible. New York: Judaica, 1993.
Rosenberg, Joel W. “The Garden Story Forward and Backward: The Non-Narrative
Dimension of Genesis 2-3.” Prooftexts: A Journal o f Jewish History 1 (1981): 1-27.
Ross, Allen P. Creation and Blessing: A Guide to the Study and Exposition o f the Book o f
Genesis. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1988.
________. “Psalms.” In Bible Knowledge Commentary. Edited by John F. Walvoord and
Roy B. Zuck. Old Testament ed. Wheaton, IL: Victor, 1985. 799-899.
Rotem-Nelken, Ora. “The Fall and Rise o f Man.” Parabola 14 (1989): 61-64.
Roth, Lieberman, S. “The Eve Motif in Ancient Near Eastern and Classical Greek
Sources.” Ph.D dissertation, University of Michigan, Ann Arbor, Michigan, 1975.
Roth, Wolfgang M. W. “The Wooing of Rebekah: A Tradition-Critical Study o f Genesis
24.” Catholic Biblical Quarterly 34 (1972): 177-187.
Rottzoll, D. U. “Ihr werdet sein wie Gott indem ihr ‘Gut und B6se’ kennt.” Zeitschriftfu r
die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 102 (1990): 385-391.
Rowley, Harold Henry. The Aramaic o f the Old Testament. London: Oxford University
Press, 1929.
________. The Faith o f Israel. London: SCM, 1956.
________. Job. New Century Commentary. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1976.
________. The Servant o f the Lord and Other Essays on the Old Testament. London:
Lutterworth, 1952.
Roger, Hans Peter. “On Versions of Genesis 3:15, Ancient and Modem.” Bible Translator
27(1976): 105-110.
Ruiten, Jacques van. “The Garden of Eden and Jubilees 3:1-31.” Bijdragen 57 (1996):
305-317.
Rushing, Jane Gilmore. Covenant o f Grace. Garden City, NY: Doubleday, 1982.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
510
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
511
________. “Psalm 89: A Study in Inner Biblical Exegesis.” Brandeis University (P. W.
Lawn Instit.), Studies and Texts 1 (1963): 29-46.
________. Understanding Genesis. The Heritage of Biblical Israel. New York: Schocken
Books, 1970.
Sasson, Jack M. “A Genealogical ‘Convention’ in Biblical Chronography.” Zeitschrift fu r
die alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 90 (1978): 171-185.
________. “‘The Tower o f Babel’ as a Clue to the Redactional Structuring of the
Primeval History [Gen. 1-11:9].” In The Bible World: Essays in Honor o f Cyrus H.
Gordon, ed. Gary Rendsburg et al., 211-219. New York: Ktav, 1980.
Satterthwaite, Philip E. “David in the Books o f Samuel: A Messianic Expectation.” In The
Lord’s Annointed: Interpretation o f Old Testament Messianic Texts, ed. Philip E.
Satterthwaite, Richard S. Hess, and Gordon J. Wenham, 41-65. Grand Rapids:
Baker, 1995.
_______ . “Genealogy in the Old Testament.” New International Dictionary o f Old
Testament Theology and Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et al. Grand
Rapids: Zondervan, 1997.4:654-663.
Savasta, Carmelo. “Genesis 3,1-19 (I).” Bibbia e Oriente 39 (1997): 3-20.
_______ . “Genesis 3,1-19 (II).” Bibbia e Oriente 39 (1997): 65-77.
_______ . “Genesis 3,1-19 (III).” Bibbia e Oriente 39 (1997): 120-153.
_______ . “Genesis 3, 1-19 (IV).” Bibbia e Oriente 39 (1997): 193-206.
_______ . “Genesis 3,1-19 (V).” Bibbia e Oriente 40 (1998): 3-18.
Savran, G. “Beastly Speech: Intertextualhy, Balaam’s Ass, and the Garden of Eden.”
Journalfo r the Study o f Old Testament 64 (1994): 33-55.
Sawyer, Deborah F. “The New Adam in the Theology o f St Paul.” In A Walk in the
Garden: Biblical, Iconographical and Literary Images o f Eden, ed. Paul Morris
and Deborah Sawyer, 105-116. Journal for the Study of the Old Testament
Supplement Series, 136. Sheffield: JSOT, 1992.
________. “Resurrecting Eve? Feminist Critique o f the Garden o f Eden.” In A Walk in the
Garden: Biblical, Iconographical and Literary Images o f Eden, ed. Paul Morris
and Deborah Sawyer, 273-289. Journal for the Study of the Old Testament
Supplement Series, 136. Sheffield: JSOT, 1992.
Sawyer, John F. A. “The Image o f God, the Wisdom of Serpents and the Knowledge of
Good and Evil” In/I Walk in the Garden: Biblical, Iconographical and Literary
Images o f Eden, ed. Paul Morris and Deborah Sawyer, 64-73. Journal for the Study
o f the Old Testament Supplement Series, 136. Sheffield: JSOT, 1992.
Sayce, A. T. “The Serpent in Genesis.” Expository Times 20 (1909): 562.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
512
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
513
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
514
Scroggs, Robin. “The Adamic Christology of Paul in the Light o f His Jewish Heritage.”
Ph.D. dissertation, Princeton University, Princeton, New Jersey, 1961.
Scullion, John J. Genesis: A Commentaryfo r Students, Teachers, and Preachers. Old
Testament Studies, 6. Collegeville, MN: Liturgical, 1992.
_______ . “Genesis 1-11: An Interpretation.” Saint Mark’s Review 122 (1985): 11-17.
________. “New Thinking on Creation and Sin in Genesis I-XI.” Australian Biblical
Review 22 (1974): 1-10.
Segal, Alan F. “He Who Did Not Spare His Own Son: Jesus, Paul, and the Akedah.” In
From Jesus to Paul: Studies in Honour o f Francis Wright Beare, ed. Peter
Richardson and John C. Hurd, 169-184. Waterloo, Ontario: Wilfrid Laurier
University Press, 1984.
Segal, Moses H. “The Composition o f the Pentateuch: A Fresh Examination.” Scripta
Hierosolymitana 8 (1961): 68-114.
_______ . The Pentateuch: Its Composition and Its Authorship and Other Biblical
Studies. Jerusalem: Magnes, 1967.
Sekine, Seizo. “A Symbolism-Based Interpretation of the Adamic Myth.” In
Transcendency and Symbols in the Old Testament: A Genealogy o f the
Hermeneutical Experience, 215-283. Beihefle zur Zeitschrift fiir die
alttestamentliche Wissenschaft, 275. Berlin/New York: de Gruyter, 1999.
Selvidge, Marla J. Schierling. “Primeval Woman: A Yahwistic View of Woman in Genesis
1-11:9.” Journal o f Theologyfo r Southern Africa 42 (1983): 5-9.
Sender, Johann Salomon. Institutio ad Doctrinum: liberaliter discenduam Auditorum usui
destinata. Halae Magdeburgicae: n.p., 1774.
Shank, Harold Leroy. “The Sin Theology of the Cain and Abel Story: An Analysis of
Narrative Themes Within the Context of Genesis 1-11.” Ph.D. thesis, Marquette
University, Milwaukee, Wisconsin, 1988.
Shanks, Hershel. “How the Bible Begins.” Judaism 81 (1972): 51-58.
Shapiro, David S. “Be Fruitful and Multiply.” Tradition 13:4-14:1 (1973): 42-67.
Shea, William H. “Adam in Ancient Mesopotamian Traditions.” Andrews University
Seminary Studies 15 (1977): 27-41.
________. “Date o f the Exodus.” The International Standard Bible Encyclopedia. Edited
by Geoffrey W. Bromiley et aL Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1979.2:230-238.
Sheppard, Gerald T. “Barr on Canon and Childs: Can One Read the Bible as Scripture?'
Theological Students Fellowship Bulletin 7, no. 2 (1983): 2-4.
Shideler, Mary McDermott. “Male and Female Created He Them.” Religion in Life 43
(Spring 1974): 60-67.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
515
Shinan, Avigdor. “Echoes from Ancient Synagogues: Vocatives and ‘Emendations’ in the
Aramaic Targums to the Pentateuch.” Jewish Quarterly Review 81 (1991): 353-364.
Sigvartsen, Jan Age. “Messiah Son o f Joseph: Genesis 49:22-26.” M.A. thesis, Andrews
Univeristy, Berrien Springs, MI, 1998.
Sinclair, Cameron. “A Near-Eastern Prototype for the Primeval History.” In Tradition as
Openness to the Future: Essays in Honor o f Willis E. Fisher, ed. Fred 0 . Francis
and Raymond Paul Wallace, 5-31. Lanham, MD: University Press o f America, 1984.
Sjoberg, Ake W. “Eve and the Chameleon: [Gen 3].” In In the Shelter o f Elyon: Essays
on Ancient Palestinian Life and Literature in Honour o f G. W. Ahlstrom, ed. W.
Boyd Barrick and John R. Spencer, 217-225. Sheffield, England: JSOT, 1984.
Skehan, Patrick W. “Strophic Structure in Psalm 72.” Biblica 40, no. 2 (1959): 302-308.
Skinner, John. A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on Genesis. International Critical
Commentary. Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1951.
Smith, D. Moody. “The Pauline Literature.” In It is Written: Scripture Citing Scripture:
Essays in Honour o f Barnabas Lindars, ed. Donald A. Carlson and Hugh Godfrey
M. Williamson, 269-291. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1988.
Smith, Gary V. “Structure and Purpose in Genesis 1-11.” Journal o f the Evangelical
Theological Society 20 (1977): 307-319.
Smith, George. The Chaldean Account o f Genesis. New York: Scribner, Armstrong,
1876.
Smith, James E. What the Bible Teaches About the Promised Messiah. Nashville: Nelson,
1993.
Smith, S. Marion. “New Testament Writers Use the Old Testament.” Encounter 26
(1965): 239-250.
Smith, Samuel H. P. A Critical and Exegetical Commentary on the Books o f Samuel.
International Critical Commentary. Edinburgh: T & T Clark, 1951.
Smith, Stephen H. “The Function of the Son o f David Tradition in Mark's Gospel.” New
Testament Studies 42 (1996): 523-539.
Snahh, Norman Henry. The Distinctive Ideas o f the Old Testament. London: Epworth,
1944.
________. “Isaiah 40-66: A Study o f the Teaching o f Second Isaiah and Its
Consequences.” In Studies on the Second Part o f the Book o f Isaiah, ed. Norman
Henry Snahh and Harry Meyer Orlinsky, 135-264. Supplements to Vetus
Testamentum, 14. Leiden: E. J. Brill, 1967.
________. Notes on the Hebrew Text o f Genesis I-VIII. London: Epworth, 1947.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
516
________. Notes on the Hebrew Text o f Genesis XXII-XXV & XXVII. London: Epworth,
1965.
________. “Sacrifices in the Old Testament.” Vetus Testmentum 7 (1957): 308-317.
Snelling, Clarence H. “Synchronic Texts and Diachronic Interpreters.” Semeia 18 (1980):
149-155.
Soden, Wolfram von. Akkadisches Handwdrterbuch. Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz, 1959-
1981.
________. The Ancient Orient: An Introduction to the Study o f the Ancient Near East.
Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1994.
________. “VerschlQssehe Kritik an Salorno in der Urgeschichte des Jahwisten?” Die
Welt des Orients 7, no. 2 (1974): 228-240.
Soggin, J. Alberto. “The Fall of Man in the Third Chapter of Genesis.” In Old Testament
and Oriental Studies, 88-111. Biblica et Orientalia, 29. Rome: Pontifical Biblical
Institute, 1975.
________. “La caduta dell’unomo nel terzo capitolo della Genesi.” Studi e Materiali di
Storia Delle Religioni 33 (1962): 227-256.
________. “Philological-Linguistic Notes on the Second Chapter o f Genesis.” In Old
Testament and Oriental Studies, 171-172. Biblica et Orientalia, 29. Rome: Pontifical
Biblical Institute, 1975.
Soisalon-Soininen, Ilmari. Studien zur Septuaginta-Syntax. Suomalaisen Tiedeakatemian
Toimituksia Annales Academiae Scientiarium Fennicae, Ser. B, Vol. 237. Helsinki:
Suomelainen Tiedeakatemia, 1987.
Sokoloff, Michael. A Dictionary ofJewish Palestinian Aramaic o f the Byzantine Period.
Ramat-Gan, Israel: Bar Ilan University Press, 1990.
Solomon, A. M. Vater. “Fable.” In Saga, Legend, Tale, Novella, Fable: Narrative Forms
on Old Testament Literature, ed. G. W. Coats, 114-132. Journal for the Study of
the Old Testament Supplement Series, 35. Sheffield: JSOT, 1985.
Song, Choan-Seng. “The Seed o f Hope in the Womb.” Religious Education 74 (1979):
533-542.
Sparks, Kenton L. “The Problem o f Myth in Ancient Historiography.” In Rethinking the
Foundations: Historiography in the Ancient World and in the Bible, Essays in
Honour o f John Van Seters, ed. Steven L. Mckenzie, and Thomas Rdmer, 269-280.
New York: Walter de Gruyter, 2000.
Spaulding, Harry, and Maurice Simon. Zohar. 5 vols. London: Soncino Press, 1956.
Speiser, Ephraim Avigdor. “An Angelic ‘Curse’: Exodus 14:20.” Journal o f the American
Oriental Society 80 (1960): 198-200.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
517
_______ . “Basic Idea o f History in Its Common Near Eastern Setting.” Israel
Exploration Journal 7, no. 4 (1957): 201-216.
_______ . Genesis. The Anchor Bible. New York: Doubleday, 1981.
________. “The Rivers o f Paradise.” In I Studied Inscriptions From Before the Flood
Ancient Near Eastern, Literary, and Linguistic Approaches to Genesis l- l 1, ed.
Richard S. Hess and David Toshio Tsumura, 175-182. Sources for Biblical and
Theological Study, vol. 4. Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns, 1994.
Spence, Henry D. M., and Joseph S. Exell, eds. The Pulpit Commentary. Vol. 1, Genesis
and Exodus. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1977.
Spencer, M. D. “The Apparition o f Mary in the Light of the Theology o f the Bible.”
Reviewfo r Religions 48 (1989): 760-773.
Spero, Shubert. “The Biblical Stories o f Creation, Garden of Eden, and the Flood: History
or Metaphor?’ Tradition 33, no. 2 (1999): 5-18.
Spiegel, Shalom. The Last Trial: On the Legends and Lore o f the Command to Abraham
to Offer Isaac as a Sacrifice: The Akedah. Translated by Judah Goldin. New York:
Pantheon Books, 1967.
Spinka, Matthew, ed. Advocates o f Reform: From Wyclif to Erasmus. Library of Christian
Classics, 14. Philadelphia: Westminster, 1953.
Stallman, Robert C. “tiTO.” New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology
and Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et al. Grand Rapids: Zondervan,
1997. 3:84-88.
Stanton, Elizabeth Cady. The Woman’s Bible, Part I. New York: European, 1895.
State o f the World 1990. Worldwatch Institute. New York: W. W. Norton, 1990.
Stefanovic, Zdravko. “Daniel: A Book o f Significant Reversals.” Andrews University
Seminary Studies 30 (Summer 1992): 139-150.
________. “The Great Reversal: Thematic Links Between Genesis 2 and 3.” Andrews
University Seminary Studies 32 (1994): 47-56.
Stegner, Wallace. “It All Began with Conservation.” Smithsonian 21 (April 1990), 35-43.
Steinberg, Naomi. “Gender Roles in the Rebekah Cycle.” Union Seminary Quarterly
Review 39 (1984): 175-188.
________. “The Genealogical Framework o f the Family Stories in Genesis.” Semeia 46
(1989): 41-50.
Stendahl, Krister. “Contemporary Biblical Theology.” The Interpreter’s Dictionary o f the
Bible. Edited by George A. Buttrick et al. Nashville: Abingdon, 1990. 1:418-432.
Reproduced with permission o f the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
518
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
519
________, ed. The Old Testament in Greek according to the Septuagint. 3 vols. Reprint,
Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1930.
Swindell, A. C. “Abraham and Isaac: An Essay in Biblical Interpretation.” Expository
Times 87 (1975): 50-3.
Syren, Roger. The Blessings in the Targums: A Study on the Targumic Interpretations o f
Genesis 49 and Deuteronomy 33. Acta Academiae Aboensis, Series A, Humaniora,
64, no. 1. Abo: Abo akademi, 1986.
________. The Forsaken First-Born: A Study o f a Recurrent M otif in the Patriarchal
Narratives. Journal for the Study of the Old Testament Supplement Series, 133.
Sheffield: JSOT, 1993.
The Talmud o f Babylonia: An American Translation. Vol. 22A, Tractate Baba Bathra
Chapters 1-2. Translated by Jacob Neusner. Atlanta, GA: Scholars, 1992.
Tate, Marvin E. Psalms 51-100. Word Bible Commentary, 20. Dallas: Word, 1990.
________. “Satan in the Old Testament.” Review and Expositor 89 (1992): 461-474.
Taylor, Barbara B. “Surviving Eden-Gen 3:1-21.” Reformed Review 44, no. 1 (1990): 15-
18.
Taylor, Vincent. The Historical Evidence fo r the Virgin Birth. Oxford: Clarendon, 1920.
Tertel, H. J. Text and Transmission: An empirical Modelfo r the Literary Development o f
Old Testament Narratives. Beihefte zur Zehschrift fiir die alttestamentliche
Wissenschaft, 221. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter, 1994.
Thackeray, Henry St. John. Grammar o f the Old Testament in Greek: According to the
Septuagint. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1909.
Thielicke, Helmut. How the World Began: Man in the First Chapters o f the Bible.
Translated by John W. Doberstein. Philadelphia: Muhlenberg, 1961.
Thiselton, Anthony C. “The Supposed Power of Words in the Biblical Writings.” Journal
o f Theological Studies 25 (1974): 283-299.
Thompson, Alden. “Satan Bites the Dust.” Signs o f the Times, September 1986, 28.
Thompson, Reginald C. The Epic o f Gilgamesh Text, Translation, and Notes. Oxford:
Clarendon, 1930.
Thompson, R. J. Moses and the Law in a Century o f Criticism Since Graf. Supplements
to Vetus Testamentum, 19. Leiden: Brill, 1970.
Thompson, Thomas L. The Origin Tradition o f Ancient Israel: I: The Literary Formation
o f Genesis and Exodus 1-23. Journal for the Study o f the Old Testament
Supplement Series, 55. Sheffield: JSOT, 1987.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
520
Tomasino, Anthony J. “History Repeats Itself: The ‘Fall’ and Noah’s Drunkenness.” Vetus
Testamentum 42 (1992): 128-130.
Towner, W. Sibley. “Interpretations and Reinterpretations of the Fall.” In Modem Biblical
Scholarship: Its Impact on Theology and Proclamation, ed. Francis A. Eigo.
Proceedings of the Theology Institute o f Villanova University, 16. Villanova, PA:
Villanova University Press, 1984, 53-85.
Tov, Emmanuel. “Did the Septuagint Translators Always Understand Their Hebrew
Text?” In De Septuaginta: Studies in Honour o f John William Wevers on His Sixty-
fifth Birthday, ed. Albert Pitersma and Claude Cox, 53-70. Mississauga, Ontario:
Benben, 1984.
________. “The Septuagint.” In Mikra: Text, Translation, Reading and Interpretation o f
the Hebrew Bible in Ancient Judaism and Early Christianity, ed. M. J. Mulder,
161 -188. Compendia rerum iudaicarum ad Novum Testamentum, 1. Philadelphia:
Fortress, 1988.
________. “Three Dimensions.” Revue Biblique 83 (1976): 529-574.
Toy, John. Towards Understanding Genesis 1-11. New York: Dean & Chapter of York,
1989.
Trible, Phyllis. “A Love Story Gone Awry.” In God and the Rhetoric o f Sexuality, 72-
142. Philadelphia: Fortress, 1978.
________. “Depatriarchalizing in Biblical Interpretation.” Journal o f the American
Academy o f Religion 41 (1973): 30-48.
________. “Eve and Adam: Genesis 2-3 Reread.” In Womanspirit Rising: A Feminist
Reader in Religion, ed. Carol P. Christ and Judith Plaskow, 74-83. San Franscisco:
Harper & Row, 1979.
Trudinger, L. Paul. “Some Observations Concerning the Text o f the Old Testament in the
Book o f Revelation.” Journal o f Theological Studies 17 (1966): 82-88.
Trumbower, Jeffrey A. “Traditions Common to the Primary Adam and Eve Books and on
the Origin o f the World (NHCII.5).” Journalfo r the Study o f Pseudepigrapha 14
(1996): 43-54.
Tsevat, Matitiahu. The Meaning o f the Book ofJob and Other Biblical Studies: Essays on
the Literature and Religion o f the Hebrew Bible. New York: Ktav, 1980.
Tsumura, David T. “Genesis and Ancient Near Eastern Stories o f Creation and Flood: An
Introduction.” In I Studied Inscriptions From Before the Flood'. Ancient Near
Eastern, Literary, and Linguistic Approaches to Genesis 1-11, ed. Richard S. Hess
and David Toshio Tsumura, 27-57. Sources for Biblical and Theological Study, 4.
Winona Lake, IN: Eisenbrauns, 1994.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
521
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
522
_______ . ed. New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology and Exegesis. 5
vols. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1997.
Vanoni, G. “D’tD.” Theologisches Worterbuch zum Alten Testament. Edited by G.
Johannes Botterweck et al. Stuttgart, Germany: W. Kohlhammer, 1986. 7:761-781.
_______ . TPO .” Theologisches Worterbuch zum Alten Testament. Edited by G.
Johannes Botterweck et al. Stuttgart, Germany: W. Kohlhammer, 1986. 7:1296-
1306.
Van Seters, John. Abraham in History and Tradition. New Haven: Yale University Press,
1975.
_______ . “The Creation o f Man and the Creation of the King.” Zeitschrift fu r die
alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 101 (1989): 333-342.
_______ . “The Primeval Histories of Greece and Israel Compared.” Zeitschrift fu r die
alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 100 (1988): 1-22.
_______ . Prologue to History: The Yahwist as Historian in Genesis. Louisville, KY:
Westminster, 1994.
Vaux, Roland de. Ancient Israel: Its Life and Institutions. Vol. 1, Social Institutions.
Translated by J. McHugh. New York: McGraw-HilL 1961.
_______ . “Le roi dTsraeL, vassal de Yahve.” In Melanges Eugene Tisserant, ed. Paule
Hennequin, 1:119-133. Citta del Vaticano, Rome: Biblioteca Apostolica Vaticana,
1964.
Vawter, Bruce. On Genesis: A New Reading. Garden City, NY: Doubleday, 1977.
_______ . A Path through Genesis. New York: Sheed & Ward, 1956.
Vermes, Geza. The Dead Sea Scrolls in English. 2nded. New York: Penguin, 1975.
_______ . “Genesis 1-3 in Post-Biblical Hebrew and Aramaic Literature before the
Mishnah.” Journal o f Jewish Studies 43 (1992): 221-225.
_______ . “Haggadah in the Onkelos Targum.” In Post-Biblical Jewish Studies, 127-138.
Studies in Judaism in Late Antiquity, 8. Leiden: Brill, 1975.
Vermeylen, Jacques. Le mythe d'Adam et Eve: Genese 2-3 a la lumiere de I exegese
historic-critique. Chauleroi: Centre Universitaire, 1988.
_______ . “Le recit du paradis et la question des origines du pentateuque.” Bijdragen
Tijdschrift voor Filosofie en Theologie 41 (1980): 230-250.
Vogels, Walter. “L’etre humain appartient au sol: Gn 2,4b-3,24.” Nouvelle Revue
Theologique 105 (1983): 515-534.
________. “The Power Struggle Between Man and Woman (Gen 3,16b).” Biblica 77
(1996): 197-209.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
523
Von Rad, Gerhard. “The Beginnings of Historical Writing in Ancient Israel.” In The
Problem o f the Hexateuch and Other Essays, 166-204. Translated by E. W.
Trueman Dicken. Edinburgh: Oliver and Boyd, 1966.
________. Genesis: A Commentary. London: SCM, 1972.
________. Old Testament Theology: The Theology o f Israel's Historical Traditions. Vol.
1. Translated by D. M. G. Stalker. New York: Harper & Row, 1962.
Vorster, Willem S. “The Messianic Interpretation of Gen 3:15: A Methodological
Problem.” Ou Testamentiese Werkgemeenskap in Suid-Afrika 15 (1972): 108-118.
Vos, Geerhardus. Biblical Theology: Old and New Testaments. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans,
1959.
________. The Pauline Eschatology. Grand Rapids: Baker, 1979.
Vos, Howard F. Genesis and Archaeology. Chicago: Moody, 1963. Rev. ed. Grand
Rapids: Zondervan, 1985.
Vries, Simon John De. “Sin, Sinners.” The Interpreter’s Dictionary o f the Bible. Edited by
George Arthur Buttrick. New York: Abingdon, 1962.4:365.
Vriezen, Theodorus Christiaan. An Outline o f Old Testament Theology. Newton, MA:
Charles T. Branford, 1970.
________. Onderzoek naar de Pradijs-voorstelling bij de oude Semietische volken.
Wageningen: H. Veenman, 1937.
Wagner, Norman E. “Abraham and David?” In Studies on the Ancient Palestinian World,
ed. J. W. Wevers and D. B. Redford, 117-140. Toronto Semitic Texts and Studies,
2. Toronto: University o f Toronto Press, 1972.
Wakely, Robin. “*]!&.” New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology and
Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et al. Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1997.
3:1289-1291.
Wakeman, Mary K. God’s Battle with the Monster: A Study in Biblical Imagery. Leiden:
Brill, 1973.
Waldow, H. Eberhard von. “The Concept o f War in the Old Testament.” Horizons in
Biblical Theology 6, no. 2 (1984): 27-48.
Wallace, Howard N. The Eden Narrative. Harvard Semitic Monographs, 32. Atlanta, GA:
Scholars, 1985.
Walle, Rene Vande. “The Sin in the Garden and the Sinfulness o f the World.” Indian
Journal o f Theology 18 (1969): 124-164.
Wallenstein, Meir. “Unnoticed Euphemism in Isaiah 9:19-20.” Vetus Testamentum 2
(1952): 179-180.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
524
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
525
Watson, Wilfred G. E. Traditional Techniques in Classical Hebrew Verse. Journal for the
Study of the Old Testament Supplement Series, 170. Sheffield: Sheffield, 1994.
Wedderburn, A. J. M. “Genesis II-III in 1QH8.” In Studia Evangelica, ed. E. A.
Livingston, 6:609-614. Berlin: Akademie-Verlag, 1973.
Weeks, Noel. “The Hermeutical Problem o f Genesis 1-11.” Themelios 4 (1978): 12-19.
Wegner, Paul D. An Examination o f Kingship and Messianic Expectation in Isaiah 1-35.
Lewiston, NY: Mellen Biblical Press, 1992.
Wehmeier, Gerhard. “The Theme ‘Blessing for the Nations’ in the Promises to the
Patriarchs and in Prophetical Literature.” Bangalore Theological Forum 6 (1974):
1-13.
Weinfeld, Moshe. “Sabbath, Temple and the Enthronement of the Lord, The Problem of
the Sitz in Leben o f Gen 1:1-2:3.” In Melanges bibliques et orientaux en I ’honneur
de M. Henri Cazelles, ed. A. Caquot and M. Delcor, 501-512. Neukirchen:
Neukirchener Verlag, 1981.
Weir, Jack. “Analogous Fulfilment: The Use o f the Old Testament in the New
Testament.” Perspectives in Religious Studies 9 (1982): 65-76.
Weiser, Arthur. Introduction to the Old Testament. Translated by D. M. Barton. London:
Darton, Longman & Todd, 1961.
_______ . The Psalms: A Commentary. Translated by Herbert Hartwell. Old Testament
Library. London: SCM., 1962.
Weisman, Ze’ev. “National Consciousness in the Patriarchal Promises.” Journalfo r the
Study o f the Old Testament 31 (1985): 55-73.
Welker, Michael. “What Is Creation? Rereading Genesis 1 and 2.” Theology Today 48
(1991): 56-71.
Wellhausen, Julius. Die Composition des Hexateuchs und der historischen Bucher des
Alten Testaments. Berlin: G. Reimer, 1963.
_______ . Prologomena to the History o f Ancient Israel. Cleveland: Meridian, 1957.
Wenham, Gordon J. “Genesis: An Authorship Study and Current Pentateuchal Criticism.”
Journalfo r the Study o f the Old Testament 42 (1988): 3-18.
________. Genesis 1-15. Word Biblical Commentary. Vol. I. Waco: Word, 1987.
_______ . Genesis 16-50. Word Biblical Commentary. Vol. 2. Dallas, TX: Word Book,
1994.
________. “Sanctuary Symbolism in the Garden of Eden Story.” Proceedings o f the
World Congress o f Jewish Studies 9 (1986): 19-25.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
526
Wemberg-Moller, Preben. Studies on the Texts o f the Desert ofJudah. Edited by J. Van
Der Ploeg. VoL 1, The Manual o f Discipline: Translated and Annotated with an
Introduction. Leiden, Netherlands: E. J. Brill, 1957.
Westbrook, Deeanne. “Paradise and Paradox: Gen 2-3.” In Mappings o f the Biblical
Terrain: The Bible as Text, ed. Vincent L. Tollers and John Maier, 121-133.
Lewisburg, PA: Bucknell University Press, 1990.
Westermann, Claus. “Arten der ErzShlung in der Genesis.” In Forschung am Alten
Testament, 9-91. Munich: Chr. Kaiser, 1964.
________. Beginning and End in the Bible. Translated by Keith Crim. Philadelphia:
Fortress, 1972.
________. Blessing in the Bible and the Life o f the Church. Translated by Keith Crim.
Philadelphia: Fortress, 1978.
________. Creation. Translated by John J. Scullion. Philadelphia: Fortress, 1974.
________. Genesis: A Practical Commentary. Text and Interpretation. Translated by
David E. Green. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1987.
________. Genesis 1-11: A Commentary. Translated by John J. Scullion. Minneapolis:
Ausburg, 1984.
________. Genesis 12-36: A Commentary. Translated by John J. Scullion. Minneapolis:
Augsburg, 1985.
________. Genesis 37-50: A Commentary. Translated by John J. Scullion. Minneapolis:
Augsburg, 1986.
________. The Genesis Accounts o f Creation. Translated by Norman E. Wagner.
Philadelphia: Fortress, 1964.
________. Handbook to the Old Testament. Translated by Robert H. Boyd. London: S. P.
C. K., 1975.
________. The Living Psalms. Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark, 1989.
________. The Old Testament and Jesus Christ. Translated by Omar Kaste. Minneapolis,
MN: Augsburg, 1970.
________. The Promise to the Fathers: Studies on the Patriachal Narratives. Translated
by David E. Green. Philadelphia: Fortress, 1980.
________. The Structure o f the Book ofJob: A Form-Critical Analysis. Translated by
Charles A. Muencow. Philadelphia: Fortress, 1981.
________. What Does the Old Testament Say About God? Atlanta: John Knox, 1979.
Wevers, John William.. “An Apologia for Septuagint Studies.” Bulletin o f the
International Organization fo r Septuagint and Cognate Studies 18 (1985): 16-38.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
527
________. Notes on the Greek Text o f Genesis. Septuagint and Cognate Studies Series,
35. Atlanta, GA: Scholars, 1993.
Wheeler, Dale Mark. “Paul’s Use of the Old Testament in Galatians 3:16.” Th.D. thesis,
Dallas Theological Seminary, Texas, 1987.
Whitaker, Richard E. A Concordance o f the Ugaritic Literature. Cambridge: Harvard
University Press, 1972.
White, Ellen G. Patriarchs and Prophets. Boise, ID: Pacific, 1989.
________. The Great Controversy. Mountain View, CA: Pacific, 1950.
White, Hugh Clayton. “Direct and Third Person Discourse in the Narrative of the ‘Fall’.”
Semeia 18 (1980): 91-106.
________. “The Divine Oath in Genesis.” Journal o f Biblical Literature 92 (1973): 165-
179.
White, James F. Introduction to Christian Worship. Nashville: Abingdon, 1980.
White, Lynn, Jr. “Continuing the Conversation.” In Western Man and Environmental
Ethics: Attitudes Towards Nature and Technology, ed. Ian G. Barbour, 55-65.
Reading, MA: Addison-Wesley.1973.
________. “The Historical Roots of our Ecological Crisis.” Science 155 (March 1967):
1203-1207.
White, R. Fowler. “The Last Adam and His Seed: An Exercise in Theological
Preemption.” Trinity Journal, no. 6 (Spring 1985): 60-73.
Whybray, Roger Norman. Isaiah 40-66. Grand Rapids: Eerdmans, 1975.
________. The Making o f the Pentateuch. Journal for the Study of the Old Testament
Supplement Series, 53. Sheffield: JSOT, 1987.
Wiester, John. The Genesis Connection. Hatfield, PA: Interdisciplinary Biblical Research
Institute, 1992.
Wifall, Walter R. “The Breath o f His Nostrils.” Catholic Biblical Quarterly 36 (1974):
237-240.
________. “David, Prototype of Israel’s Future?’ Biblical Theology Bulletin 4 (1974):
94-107.
________. “Gen 3:15: A Protevangelium?” Catholic Biblical Quarterly 36 (1974): 361-
365.
Wilcox, Max. “The Promise o f the ‘Seed’ in the New Testament and the Targumin.”
Journalfo r the Study o f the New Testament 5 (1979): 2-20.
________. “‘Upon the Tree’-Deut 21:22-23 in the New Testament.” Journal o f Biblical
Literature 96 (1977): 94-97.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
528
Wildberger, Hans. “Das Abbild Gottes, Gen 1:26-30.” Theologische Zeitschrift 21 (1965):
245-259,481-501.
Wiles, Gordon P. Paul’s Intercessory Prayers: The Significance o f the Intercessory
Prayer Passages in the Letters o f St. Paul. Society for New Testament Studies
Monograph Series, 24. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1974.
Wilfong, Marsha W. “Genesis 2.18-24.” Interpretation 42 (1988): 58-63.
Williams, Anthony J. “Mythological Background of Ezekiel 28:12-19.” Biblical Theology
Bulletin 6 (1976): 49-61.
________. “The Relationship of Genesis 3:20 to the Serpent.” Zeitschrift fu r die
alttestamentliche Wissenschaft 89 (1977): 357-374.
________. “The Significance of the Genesis Three Serpent with Reference to Old
Testament and Ancient Near Eastern Tradition.” Ph.D Thesis, University of
Manchester, England, 1973.
Williams, A. Lukyn. Justin Martyr: The Dialogue With Trypho, Translation,
Introduction, and Notes. Translations o f Christian Literature, Series I - Greek Texts.
London: MacMillan, 1930.
Williams, Christopher J. F. “Knowing Good and Evil.” Philosophy 66 (1991): 235-240.
Williams, D. Newell. “After the Fall.” Encounter 49 (1988): 235-238.
Williams, George Hunston, ed. Spiritual and Anabaptist Writers: Documents Illustrative
o f the Radical Reformation. Library of Christian Classics. Ichthus ed. Philadelphia:
Westminster, 1957.
Williams, Jay G. “Genesis 3.” Interpretation 35 (1981): 274-279.
Williams, Norman Powell. The Ideas o f the Fall and Original Sin: A Historical and
Critical Study. London: Longmans, Green, & Co., 1927.
Williams, R. E. “Genesis 3: An Epitaph.” Expository Times 92 (1981): 339.
Williams, Roland J. Hebrew Syntax: An Outline. Toronto and Bufialo: University of
Toronto Press, 1976.
Williams, Tyler F. “T K .” New International Dictionary o f Old Testament Theology and
Exegesis. Edited by Willem A. VanGemeren et a l Grand Rapids: Zondervan, 1997.
1:365-371.
WQliams-Forte, Elizabeth. “The Snake and the Tree in the Iconography and Texts o f Syria
during the Bronze Age.” In Ancient Seals and the Bible, 18-43. Occasional Papers
on the Near East, 2. Malibu, CA: Undena, 1983.
WQlimon, William H. “The Chosen: The Story o f Cain.” Cumberland Seminarian 21
(Spring-Fall 1983): 16-20.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
529
Willis, John T. Genesis. Living Word Commentary. Austin, TX: Sweet, 1979.
________. “Some Recent Studies on Genesis and the Literary-Historical Approach.”
Restoration Quarterly 23 (1980): 193-200.
Wilshire, Leland E. “The Servant-City: A New Interpretation o f the ‘Servant of the Lord’
in the Servant Songs of Deutero-Isaiah.” Journal o f Biblical Literature 94 (1975):
356-367.
Wilson, Marvin R. ‘H12J.” Theological Workbook o f the Old Testament. Edited by R.
Laird Harris, Gleason L. Archer, and Bruce K. Waltke. Chicago: Moody, 1980.
2:576-577.
Wilson, Richard G. “The Theological Significance o f Animals in Genesis 1-11.” M.Div.
research paper, Concordia Theological Seminary, Fort Wayne, Indiana, 1989.
Wilson, Robert D. “The Headings o f the Psalms.” Princeton Theological Review 24
(1926): 32-35.
Wilson, Robert R. Genealogy and History in the Biblical World. Yale Near Eastern
Researches, 7. New Haven: Yale University Press, 1977.
________. “The Old Testament Genealogies in Recent Research.” Journal o f Biblical
Literature 94 (1975): 169-189.
Winchester, Elhanan. “The Seed o f the Woman Bruising the Serpent's Head.” A Discourse
Delivered at the Baptist Meeting House, Sunday April 22, 1781, Philadelphia,
Benjamin Towne, 1781.
Wingren, Gustaf. “Adam, wir und Christus: Christus unter dem Gesetz.” Kerygma und
Dogma 7 (1961): 54-68.
Winnett, Frederick Victor. “Re-examining the Foundations.” Journal o f Biblical
Literature 84 (1965): 1-19.
Winzen, Damasus. “Words of Eternal Life: On Reading the Scriptures.” Epiphany 6 no. 2
(1985): 10-15.
Wise, Harry S. “The Aetiological Legends in the Book o f Genesis 1-11.” M.A. thesis,
Northwestern University, Evanston, IUinios, 1921.
Wiseman, Donald John. “Flying Serpents?” Tyndale Bulletin 23 (1972): 108-110.
Wiseman, P. J. Ancient Records and the Structure o f Genesis: A Case fo r Literary Unity.
Nashville, TN: T. Nelson, 1985.
________. Creation Revealed in Six Days. London: Marshall, Morgan, and Scott, 1948.
________. New Discoveries in Babylonia About Genesis. 7th ed. London: Marshall,
Morgan & Scott, 1958.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
530
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
531
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
532
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.
533
Zones, J. S., ed. Taking the Fruit: Modem Women’s Tales o f the Bible. 2nd ed. San
Diego: Woman's Institute for Continuing Jewish Education, 1989.
Zwingli, Ulrich. On Providence and Other Essays. Edited by William J. Hinke. Durham,
NC: Labyrinth, 1983.
Reproduced with permission of the copyright owner. Further reproduction prohibited without permission.